Ordermaster
By
L. E. Modesitt, Jr.
I
You sure you'd not be wanting more, ser?" The ample
Adelya stood in the archway from the kitchen to the breakfast room. Kharl smiled as he eased back the straight-backed
oak chair and stood. He glanced down at the green-trimmed white plate-it was
the plain china-on which remained a half slice of egg toast. "More,
Adelya? I couldn't finish everything you cooked. It's been a long time
since I've eaten so well." That wasn't quite true. He'd eaten that well as
Lord Ghrant's guest in Dykaru, but, he reflected, he'd never eaten under his
own roof as he had for the last two eightdays.
He still
had trouble believing that he was lord of Cantyl. He'd studied the figures laid
out in the ledger by Speltar, the estate steward, and seen and counted the
golds in the strong room below. He was wealthy, if modestly so by the standards
of lords, and that was something he'd never expected, never dreamed. Not for a
man who had been a cooper in Brysta most of his life, and a carpenter's
assistant on the Seastag after he'd been forced into exile by Lord West's son
Egen.
From
that exile had come all the events-and the magely talents-that had led him to
become lord and master of Cantyl and its lands. Cantyl was a modest estate, as
estates went, roughly some ten kays by five, with tim-berlands and vineyards,
enough fertile ground to provision the lands, and more than a few rugged and
rocky hills. There were a handful of fruit trees on the slope south of the main
house, but they were barely an orchard.
The only
things missing were his sons, but he had no way to reach Arthal, and he'd sent
a message on
"You
be sure you've had enough, ser?" asked Adelya. "The way you've been
working, more like a field hand than a lord ..."
"Hard
work makes me feel better," Kharl replied.
"You
could have someone-"
"I'm
a better cooper and carpenter than anyone I could pay." Kharl grinned.
"And I'm more trustworthy, too."
Adelya
tried not to smile, and failed.
"Besides,
how can I learn about Cantyl if I don't work it?"
"You
sound like Lord Koroh. He was Lord Julon's father."
"Good
lord, Koroh was." Adelya straightened. "You sure you don't need any
more?"
"I'm
most certain." With a smile, Kharl turned and walked from the breakfast
room down the rear hall to the south doorway. It was really a service entrance,
but it was closest to the small barn that he was converting into his private
cooperage. He enjoyed working with wood, and once he received the oak he had
ordered, he could begin to make barrels for the vineyard. That would save
Glyan, the head vintner, more than a few golds over the course of the year, and
it would give Kharl the sense that he was adding to the worth of Cantyl.
Once
outside in the chill sunlight, he walked briskly down the gravel path toward
the small barn. Although the first days of spring had been cool for Austra, the
heavy sandstone walls of the house had kept it pleasant during the past
eightdays as Kharl had worked to learn about his holding, studying the
accounts, walking the lands, and building his cooperage.
Without
hesitation, Kharl slid back the barn door and stepped into what had once been a
secondary stable. At some point, he'd need to put in a better set of doors, but
his first task was to finish removing the remaining stalls. For a good two glasses, Kharl worked in the
small barn, carefully loosening and breaking down the last of the stall walls,
taking out pegs and the occasional nail, so that the planks and cut timbers
could be reused. He had three piles in the center of the dirt floor.
After
finishing with the eighth stall, he straightened. Despite the coolness of the
day, sweat beaded on his forehead, and he blotted it away with the sleeve of
the heavy gray shirt he'd worn as the carpenter's assistant on the Seastag.
"Ah
... ser?"
Kharl
turned to see Speltar, the estate steward, standing in the open doorway.
"Good morning, Speltar."
"That
it is, ser. You've been working hard."
"I
can't build a cooperage here until I've got the space ready."
The
steward nodded. "I should have the listing ready this afternoon." He
paused. "For the equipment we talked about yesterday."
"What
did we forget?" Kharl grinned. "Or I forgot?"
"We'd
talked about varnish or shellac for the flooring here...."
Kharl
looked at the dirt floor inside the east end of the barn, a space where there
had been ten stalls, then glanced to Speltar. "I can't believe there were
so many stalls. There were ten here, and there are twenty in the main
barn."
"Lord
Julon had four teams," replied the short and slim steward, nervously
pushing back his wispy reddish brown hair, not that there was enough to cover
his balding pate. "He had four horses to a team, and they weren't used for
work around the lands. So we needed stalls for the shire horses, mostly in
winter, and stalls for the fancy teams."
"Where
did he drive them?"
"Oh,
he took two teams to Valmurl. One team pulled the carriage most of the way, and
then he made his entrance with the other." Speltar cleared his throat.
"About the varnish?"
"What
about it?"
"I
was talking to Dorwan about it. He had a suggestion."
Kharl
nodded. He'd already learned that Dorwan never volunteered anything directly to
him, but always suggested things to Speltar. The forester, for all his size and
bulk, was almost painfully shy, and it would take a while before he was at ease
with Kharl-or anyone new to the estate. "It was probably a good one."
"Yes,
ser. You know the flagstone walk in front? Well... years back, Lord Julon had
flagstone squares cut, big thick squares, and he was going to have them
polished for a summer porch. Ah... the porch never got built. Dorwan says that
the flags, more than enough to floor your cooperage anyway, are still there, in
the back of the storage shed above the vineyard building. They were smoothed,
but never polished."
Kharl
laughed. "Those would be better than a timber floor, especially around the
forge." He paused. "I know how to lay a plank floor. I can't say I
know how to lay a stone floor that well."
"Dorwan
says his boy Bannat and he can do it. Take less than an eight-day. Need some
lime for the mortar, but that's a sight cheaper than varnish."
Does he
have the time, without neglecting what he does in the woodlands?"
Still
early for poachers, and word's out that Lord Kharl's a mage." peltar
grinned shyly. "Dorwan says that he and Bannat can start leveling and
Packing the clay underneath tomorrow."
"What
do you think?"
"Stone'll
last longer than wood, ser. We already have the flags. If we have to cut the
timbers ... all we have is softwood."
"What
you're trying to tell me is that a softwood floor won't last, and that we could
sell the good spruce timbers to the carpenters and shipyards in Valmurl for
good coins, and besides that, you can get some use out of the flagstones stored
in the shed, and free up some storage space."
"There
is that, ser."
Kharl
shook his head. "It's a good idea. We should do it. If I don't see Dorwan
today, and you do, tell him that I appreciate his thoughtfulness. I'll tell
him, but..."
"Yes,
ser. He's a mite ... reserved."
"Begging
your pardon, ser .. ." came a young voice from behind Kharl. "There's
a vessel under steam headed for the pier. Da said you'd want to know,
ser."
Kharl
turned to see a dark-haired girl of ten or so-Glyan's daughter Rona. She was
the unofficial messenger around Cantyl. "Thank you."
"Yes,
ser." Rona smiled. "Do you want me to tell Da anything?"
"Not
yet. Why don't you come down to the pier with us? That way, if I need you to
take a message ..."
"Yes,
ser!"
Kharl
and Speltar walked up the rise from the small barn to the main house, then took
the graveled lane that led down to the east and to the pier. Rona followed
several paces behind. The lane split a large sloping meadow into two sections
of roughly equal size-although the grass was still winter brown, with just the
barest hints of green showing beneath the dead thatch. The meadows were
bordered by stone walls, beyond which, on the south-facing slopes, were the
vineyards that produced much of the income from the estate, mainly from the
sale of the pale amber Rhynn, considered a desirable wine with poultry and fish
by those well-off in Valmurl and Bruel. In the brief time he'd been at Cantyl,
Kharl had discovered that he actually liked good wine, and he suspected that
his past dislike of wine had not been a distaste for wine but a repugnance for
bad wine-and that had been all that he'd ever tasted. Still, a good lager was
his favorite.
The
incoming vessel was already well past the harbor mouth and steaming toward the
pier, a thin trail of smoke dispersing into the blue-green sky.
"You
weren't expecting a ship?" asked Kharl.
"No,
ser."
Kharl
tried to make out the vessel. It wasn't the Seastag, but with the twin masts,
and the midships paddle wheels, it could have been her twin. "Looks like
one of Lord Hagen's vessels."
"Aye,"
offered Speltar. "Looks much like the Seacat. Captain Druen stops here now
and again for timbers, and for the wine."
Kharl
and Speltar reached the pier before the ship, but not before Dor-wan and his
assistant, the wiry Norgal.
"You'll
be handling the lines?" Kharl asked.
"Yes,
ser," replied Dorwan.
"Good."
Kharl paused. "Dorwan ... Speltar told me about your idea for the
cooperage floor. Using the old flagstones, that's much better than using
softwood. Thank you."
Dorwan
nodded. "My duty, ser."
"That
may be, but I appreciate how well you do it."
"Thank
you, ser." Dorwan turned toward the end of the pier, watching as the
vessel approached with bare steerageway.
When the
ship drew within ten rods or so of the pier, Kharl made out the name under the
bowsprit-Seafox. Within moments after making out the name, Kharl recognized
That was
unlikely, Kharl thought, because
"Walk
her in! Lively now!" came the commands from the deck.
When the
gangway was down,
"Ser
Kharl and mage."
"I
don't see any lord-chancellor's finery on you, ser," Kharl replied.
"Not
when traveling,"
"I
was working on turning part of a barn into a cooperage. If we make our own
barrels, we can bring in more coins from the wine. We can also save on storage
barrels...."
"I
can't be a mage all the time, not when matters here are peaceful." Kharl
gestured toward the Seafox. "I'm not sure that we have any cargo for your
ship." He turned toward the steward. "Speltar? Do we have cargo that
should go?"
"Not
right now, ser."
"That
makes us even," replied
Kharl
gestured toward the house. "Would you like to see the house? You haven't
seen it before, have you?"
"No.
I wasn't exactly favored by either Lord Julon or Lord Estloch."
Kharl
caught the slight emphasis on private. Of course,
"Yes,
ser."
As Rona
and Speltar hurried ahead of them, Kharl and Hagen started up the lane toward
the house at a more measured pace.
After
several moments, Kharl glanced at
"That
would be about all," replied
"Me?"
Lord
Ghrant had told Kharl his services might be required, but within two eightdays
of coming to Cantyl? "He has a problem,"
"The
head of the factors' council?" As Kharl recalled, perhaps according to
Lyras, the black mage who had claimed he was but a minor mage, if that, Guillam
had been quietly backing Ilteron and had slipped out of Val-murl during the
revolt.
"Guillam
claims that he is a most faithful subject. For obvious reasons, Lord Ghrant has
his doubts. You are known to be a mage, and Lord Ghrant wishes you present when
he receives Guillam."
"He
expects I will know if Guillam lies, then?"
"Will
you not? You knew when Asolf was lying about stealing Reisl's coins."
Again,
Kharl was reminded of how thorough
"That
could be a problem," mused
"That
I might not be able to tell?"
"No.
That you could. Let us say that Guillam did support Ilteron. What else can Lord
Ghrant do but execute or exile him?"
"If
he does either, then, that will upset the other factors."
"All
regarded Ghrant as weak."
"He
still is," suggested Kharl. "He has a strong lord-chancellor."
"And
a black mage," added
"So
... you are suggesting that my presence is more important than my
judgment?"
"Your
presence is most important."
Kharl
realized that. It had to be, with
"If
he lies about his past, but honestly believes that he is loyal," Kharl
said slowly, "Lord Ghrant might overlook his lies."
"That
is possible, but what if Guillam lies about his loyalty?"
"Then
Ghrant is better off if he is dead or exiled, I would judge," Kharl
replied carefully. "Dead. Traitorous exiles can
return." Kharl wasn't so sure that he liked having
Guillam's life put in his hands.
"You
see, Kharl,"
Kharl
couldn't help but wonder if Lord West of Nordla and his sons had ever paid such
a price, or if it had been deferred in the manner
Adelya
hurried up as Kharl and
"Whatever
we have will be fine," Kharl said to Adelya. "I didn't know that Lord
Hagen was coming, and he didn't know before yesterday. That didn't give him
time to send a messenger."
"Whatever
you cook will be far better than we ate on board ship."
Adelya
did not look mollified, not completely.
"I'll
come back-with notice-for one of your finest meals,"
Adelya
bowed again. "Your lordship is most kind."
"Please
don't blame Lord Kharl. He did not know I was coming."
Kharl
could hear the words under her breath as Adelya backed away, "But he's a
mage...." He resisted replying.
"She
isn't happy that I like working with my hands."
"People
aren't ever happy when you don't meet their expectations."
Kharl
gestured toward the bay. "It's more than I ever expected. I'm still
learning about the lands, and I haven't been through all the timberlands and
the southern hills yet."
"If
you do, you'll have seen more of them than any of the lords who've held Cantyl
in generations,"
"How
can a man not know his lands?" asked Kharl.
"That's
a good question. It's also why at least some of them didn't keep them."
"Let
me show you the house and the nearer outbuildings," offered Kharl.
"If
you would..."
Kharl
began the informal tour by showing
Adelya
hovered in the archway as the two seated themselves.
"This
looks to be a feast, not a midday meal!"
"It's
little enough, ser."
"It's
a great deal, Adelya," Kharl said firmly, "and we both appreciate it.
Thank you."
"I
am hungry,"
"How
long will that take?"
"We'll
be using both the engines and sails. If the winds hold, we might reach the
harbor by midnight."
Kharl
filled both goblets, then lifted one. "To you, for all of this ..."
"And
to friendship ..."
"I
like it. Glyan says that the Rhynn is better, but to me, they're both
good." Kharl broke off a chunk of the dark bread and passed the basket to
the other. "Do you know how Tarkyn, Furwyl, and Rhylla are doing?"
"The
Seastag is on its way to
At the reference to weavers, Kharl couldn't help thinking about Jeka, wondering
how she was doing with Gharan-hoping that she had been able to stay with his
former neighbor. He just wished he'd been able to do more for Jeka. She'd
certainly saved his life and befriended him at a time when no one else would
lift a hand. Beneath the hard surface ...
"Kharl?"
"I'm
sorry. I was . .. thinking. Was everyone all right when they cast off from
Valmurl?"
"Furwyl
left a report for me, and everything was fine. He did say that he needed to
look for another carpenter. Tarkyn was complaining that there was too much work
for any one carpenter."
"Nothing
is ever as good as it was," Kharl said dryly. "Even when it wasn't
that good."
"You
are almost as cynical as I am, ser mage."
Kharl
feared he would need that cynicism when he reached Valmurl.
II
I hrapl
"Ser
Kharl? Ser Kharl?"
Kharl
struggled out of sleep. Where was he? How early was it?
"Ser
Kharl?" The feminine voice was unfamiliar.
He squinted
in the light pouring into the unfamiliar bedchamber, before everything came
back. He was in the north wing of Lord Ghrant's Great House. For just himself,
he had not only a large bedchamber, but a sitting room with a desk, as well as
a lavishly equipped bath chamber.
"Ser?"
"Coming..."
Kharl pulled himself out of the triple-width bed and yanked on his traveling
trousers, shambling through the sitting room to the door, aware of the old but
thick carpet beneath his bare feet.
"Your
breakfast, sir."
Kharl
concentrated, hard as it was, with his order-senses, but so far as he could
tell, the young woman stood alone outside his door. He eased the lock plate
back. A dark-haired young woman, barely out of girlhood, stood there holding an
enormous tray.
"If
you'd let me bring it in, ser. If you would, ser."
Kharl
watched as she eased through the doorway and set the tray on the table desk.
"Thank you."
"My
pleasure, ser." The girl bowed and slipped away.
After
locking the door again, Kharl crossed the sitting room. He looked at the tray,
taking in the slices of ham, the egg toast, fillets of some sort of fish, a
basket of black bread, a pot of jam, and the twin pitchers, one of pale ale,
and the other of cider, with an empty beaker. He hadn't expected a breakfast to
be delivered, but he couldn't say he was displeased, not as late as he had
arrived in Valmurl the night before.
The
winds had not been as favorable as
A faint
smile crossed his lips. A former cooper, being served by the servants of the
Lord of Austra-that was something that Charee would never have believed. The
pain he felt when he thought of his dead consort was not so much grief as a
deep sadness over something that had never been quite right for years-and for
the fact that she had been killed because Egen had wanted to punish Kharl. Her
death had led to his losing both boys. Charee's sister Merayni had claimed the
younger Warrl just before Kharl had been forced into hiding. Arthal, bitter at
his mother's death, had signed on to the Fleuryl as a carpenter's apprentice
without even telling Kharl until the morning he had left.
Kharl
could only hope that Warrl was doing well as a grower's boy at Peachill. Once
the rebel lords were subdued-if they were-then he could look into sending for
Warrl. Going back to Brysta in person to get Warrl wasn't a good idea, but if
all else failed, he'd try that as well. As for Arthal... he didn't even know
where his older son was-or that Arthal would even talk to him if he could find
the boy-except Arthal was a young man, an angry young man. Then, Arthal had
always been angry, and Kharl had never understood why.
He shook
his head and looked down at the breakfast tray. After a moment, he frowned. There was something about the tray. He studied it, both with his eyes and his order-senses.
His eyes and nose insisted that everything was as it should be. His
order-senses told him that there were pockets of reddish white spread through
most of the food.
He left
the tray on the table and went into the bath chamber.
In less
than half a glass he was washed up and dressed. The tray and food remained
untouched on the desk, and Kharl used the big brass key to lock the door behind
him. He doubted that would stop whoever had poisoned the food.
He found
the staircase down to the main level without any difficulty and made his way southward,
toward what he thought was the center of the Great House. He stopped in a large
hexagonal hallway, off which branched four corridors.
"Ser
mage?" asked the guard in the yellow and black of Ghrant's personal guard.
"I'm
looking for the lord-chancellor. Lord-chancellor
The
guard looked at Kharl's face, then at his black garments-those of a mage-once
more. "Ah ... yes, ser. His chamber is this way. I'd best take you."
Kharl
studied the man with his order-senses, but the fellow seemed honest. The guard turned down a narrower corridor that stretched
a good fifty cubits, but he stopped after thirty at an unmarked ironbound door. "The mage Kharl to see you, ser."
"Have
him come in."
"Ser."
The guard nodded and stepped back.
Kharl found
himself inside a small chamber, no more than ten cubits square, without even a
window. There was a second door, also of golden oak, at the rear of the room.
Wearing a black velvet jacket trimmed in gold, with a heavy gold chain with a
gold medallion at the end around his neck,
"You
look upset, Kharl. What is it?"
"I
had a breakfast tray delivered. I'm fairly sure it's poisoned. I just left it
in the sitting room."
"The
rats?"
"Lord
Estloch keeps them for just such purposes. Anything that kills a rat will
certainly kill a person."
Kharl
hadn't thought about the possibility of an organized system for dealing with
poison, but the moment that
"There's
something he doesn't want discovered," Kharl suggested. "Why else ...
?"
"I
must have slept. I don't recall anything."
"Good.
It's likely to be a long day. Lord Ghrant has confirmed that he expects Guillam
at the second glass past noon."
"Early
afternoon," Kharl mused. "Does Guillam have a dwelling near here in
Valmurl?"
"Not
that close. He has a country house fifteen kays west of Valmurl, and a small mansion
off the Factors' Square. That's three
kays from here-"
"Charsal,
ser."
"Come
in."
The door
opened, and a trim young man, half a head shorter than Kharl, entered. He wore
the yellow and black of the Ghrant's personal guard.
"Undercaptain...
this is ser Kharl of Cantyl, the mage. He believes that a breakfast tray that
was delivered to his quarters may be poisoned. If you would take one of your
Serjeants ..."
"The
rats, ser?"
"Exactly,
and have him watch them closely."
"Ah
... after that... where can I get breakfast?" Kharl asked sheepishly.
Charsal
will take you to the kitchen. It's probably best if the cooks fix something for
you while you're there. I'll send a messenger to find you efore the audience.
If you'd just stay somewhere in the Great House."
"Yes,
ser."
Because
"Until
later, ser."
"Is
this it, ser?" asked Charsal, gesturing toward the tray.
"That's
it."
Charsal
nodded to the seargent. "Everything gets fed to the rats. You're to watch
them and report to me."
"Yes,
ser." The seargent lifted the tray and carried it out.
"Now
for the kitchen." Charsal smiled.
"I
hope this isn't too much of a problem."
"No,
ser. We can't have people being poisoned here in the Great House."
"I'm
not sure it is poisoned, but there's something not right about it."
"When
a mage says something's not right, best to listen." Charsal smiled.
"You were asking about breakfast, I believe."
"I
had thought about it," Kharl replied with a grin.
"This
way, ser."
The
kitchen was on the lower level of the north side of the Great House, a large
stone-walled room already uncomfortably warm even before mid-morning.
"The
mage here needs some breakfast," Charsal announced. "Prepared
now."
A
round-faced woman looked up, then nodded. "Be right on it. We could have
prepared a tray if we'd 'a known."
Kharl kept
his frown to himself, but noted the slightest nod from Charsal.
"Anything
you'd be liking, ser?" asked the cook.
"Whatever
you do best, except I'd rather not have any fish."
"We
can do that. Egg toast, good ham, fresh bread, and cool cider? Jam, too."
"That
would be fine," Kharl replied.
Both
Charsal and Kharl stood against the stone wall and watched as the cooks bustled
around the huge cast-iron stove.
Seemingly in moments, the cook had two heaping platters, pitcher and
goblet, a basket of the black bread, and a pot of jam all set on a tray. She
looked around, as if for a serving maid.
"I
can take it," Kharl said.
"But..
. ser . .."
"I'm
escorting the mage." Charsal stepped forward and took the tray, then
turned and led the way to the northwest corner of the kitchen, through an
archway, and up a circular set of stone steps into an airy room with wide
windows overlooking a stone terrace. "This is one of the dining rooms,
ser. For those guests and staff here who are not being fed at various
functions."
Two
younger men were seated at a circular table in one corner, clearly finished
with eating, but talking in low and intense voices. Besides Kharl and the
undercaptain, they were the only ones in the room.
Charsal
set the tray on a table before the windows. "Is this all right, ser?"
"That's
fine. Thank you, undercaptain. I can find my way back to my chambers, and
there's no need to keep you from your other duties." Kharl paused.
"You have eaten, haven't you? There's more than enough-"
"I
ate just a little while ago, ser, but I appreciate your kindness." Charsal
bowed. "If you would not mind ..."
Kharl
smiled. "Go."
After
Charsal turned, Kharl settled into the breakfast. While he had thought the portions
large, he was surprised to find that he left little enough, except for half a
loaf of bread. The black bread was heavy and sweetish, some of the best he
recalled having, and he'd appreciated it. He still recalled all too well the
days of hiding between the Tenderer's walls in Brysta, when he and Jeka had
gone days with little sustenance.
With his
hunger satisfied, using his order-senses, he tried to pick up the conversation of
the two men in the corner, both wearing dark green tunics and trousers, the
same color as the green of the Austran armsmen and lancers.
" ・・ taking a chance to stay here ... Lord
Ghrant... be vindictive ..."
・・ ? not that bad ... worse to worry about
Fostak ..."
・・ say Guillam has audience with
Ghrant... what if ..."
Kharl
strained, but could not make out the words for the next several foments. He
refilled his goblet with cider.
・・・ wouldn't know a mage ... saw one . .. not
here in Austra . .."
"...
wear black or white sometimes ... Lyras does ... black ... not much of a mage
..."
"...
say the new one killed Ilteron with a thunderbolt..."
Kharl
wanted to snort. He couldn't create a spark, let alone a lightning bolt. He'd
just surrounded Ilteron and his wizard with an impermeable barrier of solid air
and let them suffocate. It had been the only thing he'd known how to do.
"...
fellow who's over there wearing black ..."
There
was a strangled gulp. Kharl did not look up as the two young men hurried out of
the breakfast room. A wry smile crossed his face. From the
fragments of the conversation he'd overheard, he doubted that either man had
been the one who had tried to poison him. On the other hand, the younger man
had glanced back worriedly, and his hand had been held close to the hilt of the
sabre at his side.
Kharl
got up slowly, glancing around. As he did, a serving girl, not even so old as
his younger boy Warrl, dashed out from the archway at the top of the steps from
the kitchen.
Kharl
held out a hand.
"Ser?"
"Those
two men who were seated in the corner. Do you know who they are?"
"Ser?"
"Do
you know who they are?"
The girl
looked down, then up. She did not meet Kharl's eyes. "The taller one, ser,
that was ser Zerlin. He's the youngest son of Lord Woren. The other man ... I
have seen him, but I don't know his name."
Kharl
sensed the truth. "Thank you." Unfortunately, he could have used the
name she didn't know. He stepped back and let the scullery girl collect his
tray and the dishes on the table the two men had vacated.
He'd
been in the Great House less than half a day, and he was beginning to see why
Still...
he needed to be watchful.
He
passed two guards in yellow and black on the main level as he made his way
toward the staircase up to his chamber. Both nodded politely, and he returned
the nods.
For the
residence of the Lord of Austra, the Great House was surprisingly stark and
simple. The walls on the main level were of simple polished stone, as were the
floors. There were occasional niches, set shoulder high, in which there were
busts of figures Kharl did not recognize. The ceilings were of a white plaster,
and unadorned. All the doors were of ancient golden oak, and the fixtures upon
them were brass, tarnished in many
cases.
Kharl
was halfway up the closed circular staircase when he thought he heard something
below. He stopped and looked back over his shoulder. He couldn't see the bottom
of the staircase because of the curvature and the walls, but there was no one
on the steps as far down as he could see.
He
turned and continued up the stairs, stopping at the top landing, and listening.
Then he extended his order-senses. Two figures were frozen around the curve of
the stairs, as if waiting for him to go on. Kharl considered. Now what? He
wasn't carrying any weapons, not that he was any good with anything except a
staff or a cudgel, and even if he had been, he couldn't very well attack
someone for merely following him.
He
smiled, then turned and walked quickly through the archway at the end of the
landing, turning left and heading toward the north wing.
He
swallowed. Ahead of him was a figure in the shadows of the space where the
corridor ended, intersecting the narrower hallway that served the north wing.
The figure was lifting something. Behind him, he could hear boots racing up the
staircase.
Kharl
concentrated, first hardening the very air on each side of him into a barrier,
but with a good three cubits between each barrier, then wrapping himself in
darkness-and invisibility. He also flattened himself against the wall, as an
added, if unnecessary, precaution.
Clank!
Something had struck the barrier. Clank! Clank!
"Frig!"
The single word was half-whispered, half-hissed, and came from the hallway,
probably at the top of the staircase, but Kharl could not see, not wrapped in
the darkness of invisibility, and he was having enough trouble managing the
barrier and invisibility, without trying to extend his order-senses forty or
sixty cubits.
" ・・・ gone ..." " ・・ friggin' mage ... get out of here ..."
At the
sound of boots on stone, Kharl dropped the invisibility, but, Ven so' could
only catch the vaguest glimpse of two figures in dark green r gray as they
darted from the hallway down the staircase. He turned back toward the north wing, but that figure
had vanished as well. He could not see or sense anyone else nearby.
With
more than a little trepidation, he released the barriers, quickly. He was
breathing as hard as if he had run half a kay, but that was to be expected.
Using order-magery the way he had took strength and endurance.
Kharl
collected the three bent crossbow quarrels, then, with his order-senses
extended, made his way to the end of the central corridor and down the narrower
hallway back to his own chamber. His order-senses told him that it was empty.
He unlocked it and stepped inside, sliding the lock plate into place.
He sat
down in a straight-backed chair to catch his breath and collect his thoughts.
Should
he tell
He
decided against immediately telling the lord-chancellor. What good would that
do?
Besides,
Kharl needed to prepare for the audience with Guillam. He needed to think about
what he might say, and, if given a chance, what questions he might need to ask.
Also, he
didn't want to create more consternation in the Great House. That would not
help him, Hagen, or Lord Ghrant. No ... it might better be handled quietly.
That was also something else he had learned from experience. Bitterly.
Kharl
studied his image in the mirror of the bedchamber. His dark brown hair was cut
tastefully short, his beard neatly trimmed. The silvery gray shirt and black
waistcoat, and even the black trousers- bestowed by Lord Ghrant in Dykaru-were
far finer than any raiment he had ever worn.
Was
Guillam so worried about Kharl that he had attempted two assassination attempts
in one morning? Or was Kharl so much of a threat that more than one person
wanted him dead? Was truth-or disclosure-that deadly?
He
laughed. Egen had certainly not wished certain things to become known and had
killed Charee and Tyrbel to quell that information, as well as hounded Kharl
out of Brysta. The Lord Justicer Reynol had seen what Egen wanted and had made
sure that Charee could not reveal anything before she had been hanged.
Why
would people be any different in Austra and Valmurl?
He took a
deep breath, thinking once more about the past. He shook his head. At the
moment, he could do nothing about it. He never could do anything for Charee,
but he had hopes for Warrl, and Jeka ... if he could ever get back to Brysta.
As for Arthal. .. what would be would be.
As he
waited, Kharl leafed through The Basis of Order, seeking a passage that might
shed some light on the issues of truth and justice, even as he doubted that
Lord Ghrant truly wanted justice or truth from Guillam.
...
there is order, and there is chaos, and those who follow each will declare that
either order is truth or chaos is truth. A truth that holds for all does not
exist, not in the world, nor in the stars, nor on the surface of the land, nor
beneath the waves of the ocean. That which is exists, but those who search for
truth that applies to all seek what never was and never will be. That is
because truth is an image of what is, and that image is painted in the colors
of the seeker's beliefs. Each seeks a different truth, and each claims that his
is the only truth. In that the seeker is surely correct...
No such
thing as truth?
Kharl
frowned, then nodded slowly.
As
midday came and passed, Kharl read, and thought, and considered. He spent close
to a glass just thinking about how to word questions for the chief factor. He'd
been a cooper, not a justicer or a minstrel.
Thrap!
"Lord
Kharl?" The voice was that of Charsal. "I'm to take you to see the
lord-chancellor, ser."
Kharl
used his order-senses to make sure the undercaptain was alone, hen he picked up
the three bent quarrels and unlocked the door to his chamber, stepping out into the stone-walled
corridor and relocking the door.
Charsal
glanced at the bent metal quarrels.
"I
thought the lord-chancellor should see these."
"Those
are standard quarrels, ser. Why-"
"That
is why he should see them. We should go." '
"Yes,
ser." Charsal's voice expressed puzzlement.
The two
walked silently to the central staircase, then down to the main level. There
were more bodies-and more guards-in the large hall at the base of the
staircase.
When
Kharl entered
Kharl
set the three quarrels on the desk. "Three men tried to kill me after
breakfast this morning. They missed, but I thought you'd like to see
these."
"Why
didn't you tell me earlier?"
"What
good would it have done? They were too far away and in too much shadow for me
to recognize anyone. It would have distracted you. We already know that people
want me dead." Kharl shrugged.
"We
might have-"
"Something
like that."
"I
knew things were bad here, but..."
"You
didn't tell anyone when you left to fetch me?"
"No
one. I did say that I was going out on the Seafox to test the new
condensers."
"Did
you talk to the girl who brought the tray?"
"I
couldn't."
A dead
serving girl and two attempts on his life-scarcely a promising beginning to his first day in Lord Ghrant's
Great House. "Does the name Fostak mean anything to you?"
"Where
did you hear that?"
"I
overheard it in a conversation, from a young man named Zerlin. I had the
feeling I wasn't supposed to hear it."
"Fostak
is the private secretary of Lord Joharak. Joharak is the Hamor-ian envoy to
Austra. There have been rumors that Fostak is a duelist, as well as the one who
funneled golds to Ilteron to encourage him to take up arms against
Ghrant."
"He
is still in Valmurl?"
"Of
course. Would you wish to upset the Emperor of Hamor, with all his iron-hulled warships?
Without a shred of proof?"
There
hadn't been any real proof against Kharl when he'd been unjustly accused of
murdering Jenevra, but that hadn't stopped Egen and Lord West. But then, Kharl
reminded himself, there were different standards when rulers and power were
involved.
"The
other reason I wanted to talk to you was to brief you on what will happen
shortly. As we discussed earlier, Lord Ghrant will be seeing Chief Factor
Guillam in a formal audience. That means that no one else can speak unless
addressed first by Lord Ghrant. Even if he looks at you, that does not give you
permission to speak. He may ask you if you have any questions for Guillam. That
means that he expects you to have a question or two, three at the most. When
you speak to Guillam, or offer more than a word or two, you step forward
slightly. If Lord Ghrant wishes you to continue with questions, he will let you
know by saying something like, 'Please continue, ser Kharl.' You should ask
several more questions, then look at Lord Ghrant and either suggest that you
have a few more questions or say that you have nothing further to ask the chief
factor. Oh, and during an audience, Lord Ghrant is addressed as 'your
lordship.'"
Kharl
nodded. "Do you know what Lord Ghrant wants to know?"
"And
if he will not be loyal?"
'Some
way to show Guillam's treachery to all present." "He does not wish
much."
Rulers
never do. Neither do lords-chancellor."
Rather
than take the front door,
"This
is a private entrance to the audience chamber. When we reach the dais, you
stand to my left and about a half pace back, if you would."
"I
can do that."
At the
end of the short passageway was an armsman, wearing the yellow and black of
Ghrant's personal guard.
"Lord-chancellor
. .. how should I announce .. . ?"
"The
lord-chancellor and ser Kharl of Cantyl."
"Ser
mage." The guard inclined his head, then turned and opened the door,
stepping into the audience hall. His voice boomed out. "The lord-
chancellor, Lord Hagen, and ser Kharl of Cantyl."
As
directed, Kharl followed
The area
below the dais contained close to a hundred men, and no more than a handful of
women. All stood facing the dais, but most continued to talk to each other in
low voices. Only a handful even looked in Kharl or Hagen's direction as the two
walked into the hall. At first glance, Kharl recognized no one, but then, after
a moment, he did see Commander Vatoran near the rear of the group on the right
side.
When
"In
a moment,"
"I
only recognize Commander Vatoran."
"They
do not know your face, but some know your name, and that will spread through
them. Trust me. Watch."
Kharl
watched. As
"...
big man for a mage ..."
"...
said he was a cooper and a marine ... lord-chancellor's ships ..."
"...
"...
not all bad that way ..."
In a
sense that was right, because without
"His
Lordship, Ghrant of Dykaru, Lord of Austra and Scion of the North."
The
murmurs died away as Ghrant entered the hall from the other rear door-opposite
the one through which Kharl and Hagen had entered. The Lord of Austra was attired
in dark green, trimmed in black, and the green was the same shade as worn by
the two men whose conversation Kharl had overheard, although the cloth itself
looked to be of the finest velvet.
Without
a word, Ghrant seated himself in the ancient high-backed chair. He nodded to
the chamberlain, who had followed him and stood to the right of the chair,
roughly the same distance from Ghrant as were Hagen and Kharl.
"Summon
Guillam of Desfor."
The hall
remained silent for a time, without even the lowest of murmurs.
"Guillam
of Desfor, chief factor of Austra," announced one of the guards in yellow
and black stationed just inside the double doors.
"Have
him enter."
Guillam
stepped through the doors, which closed behind him, and into the audience chamber.
He was an angular figure, with thinning gray hair and deep-set eyes. Over his
trousers and jacket, he wore a sleeveless open robe of purple. Since no one
else in the audience hall wore anything like it, Kharl assumed the robe was a
symbol of his position as chief factor.
From the
moment the chief factor stepped into the hall, Kharl could sense the whiteness
of chaos that drifted around him. That whiteness felt wrong to Kharl, almost
like an itching that he could not scratch.
Guillam
glanced toward the mage, then away. As he headed toward the ^gh-backed chair,
and Lord Ghrant, his eyes flickered toward Kharl several times Even so, the
chief factor walked deliberately, without a hint of haste, to the foot of the
six wide and carpeted steps that rose from the floor to the dais. There he
halted.
"You
had requested my presence, your lordship?" Guillam's voice was a smooth
yet resonant baritone. He bowed slightly after speaking.
"We
did, chief factor." Ghrant's voice was thin by comparison to those of
Guillam, the guard, and the chamberlain.
"At
your request I am here." Guillam emphasized the word request ever so
slightly.
"I
always attempt to be courteous, wherever possible," Ghrant replied
smoothly. "During the recent uprising, your early absence from Valmurl was
noted. I had hoped that you might enlighten us as to the reasons for your
departure .. . and, of course, your destination."
"I
had received word that my eldest son was most ill. It was feared that he might
not live, and I repaired to my country house."
Guillam
was but six cubits from Kharl, and the falsity of his reply shivered through
the mage.
"How
is your son? I assume that he recovered, since we have not heard
otherwise."
"He
is on the path to recovery, your lordship."
"And
you remained at your country house during the entire period of
unpleasantness?"
"Of
course, your lordship."
That
also was false, strongly so.
"Some
have questioned your loyalty and stated that you had favored the would-be
usurper. I would not wish to make a judgment on such without hearing from
you."
"Your
lordship, I favored and supported your father. You are his rightful heir, and I
have likewise supported you. I will continue to support you, as I have from the
beginning." Guillam bowed again.
Kharl
managed to keep his face absolutely immobile in the face of the chaos and
falsity that filled and lay beneath Guillam's words, words so smoothly
delivered.
"I
am most pleased to hear that, chief factor." Ghrant turned slightly in the
chair. "Do you have any questions you might wish to ask the chief factor,
ser Kharl?"
"Yes,
your lordship." Kharl was very glad that he had thought over carefully
what Guillam might say.
Ghrant
nodded at Kharl.
Kharl
stepped forward a pace. "Chief factor, you are a man who knows a great
deal and a great number of people in Austra. Because you do know so many, you
might be most helpful. This morning, there was a poisoned tray offered to a
guest at the Great House. Before she could be questioned, the server who offered
it was found strangled. Did you have any knowledge of this?"
"No,
ser mage. Why would I have any knowledge of something that sordid?"
Contempt oozed from Guillam, along with a sense of chaos, not the chaos of
magic, but the sort of chaos that Kharl was coming to associate with evil.
While Guillam seemed to be looking at Kharl, his eyes avoided those of the
mage. He was also lying.
"What
is your relationship with a man named Fostak?" After a slight pause, Kharl
added, "Or what was it?"
For the
slightest moment, Guillam did not move, a moment almost imperceptible. "I
have no relationship with anyone called Fostak. I never have."
Another
lie. Kharl was beginning to feel that he was making the chief factor uncomfortable,
but that might have been because of the questions.
"This
morning, three crossbowmen fired quarrels within the Great House. While no one
was hurt, this sort of matter could be considered to reflect poorly upon Lord
Ghrant, and your knowledge could be most helpful in resolving this. Have you
any knowledge of this?"
"Crossbowmen
in the Great House? Hardly."
That was
also a lie, if not so pronounced as the other two. Kharl could see that there
was no way to get Guillam to admit his guilt, and if he could not, Lord Ghrant
would not be terribly pleased with Kharl. That didn't bother Kharl so much as
the fact that Guillam was not only a liar, but someone who had ordered two
murders and was and would be a traitor.
"Ser
mage?" asked Ghrant, a slight hint of irritation in his voice.
"One
more question, if you please, your lordship."
"Go
ahead."
Kharl
forced a hard smile. "Chief Factor, why have you lied in answering every
question you have been asked? Have your misdeeds been so great that honest
answers would have condemned you to execution for treason and treachery?"
Kharl
could hear the indrawn breaths from some standing below the dais.
"I
have answered most truthfully, ser mage. Surely, you of all people must know
that."
"I
know that you will choke on your treachery, your lies, and that your smooth
tongue will not save you from the poison within you. Speak the truth or be
suffocated by it." With his last words, Kharl turned the air around
Guillam solid, so solid that the factor stood immobile, unmoving.
Silence
filled the chamber. Kharl could feel Guillam struggling, unmoving as he was.
The chief factor's face slowly turned red, then redder, then blue. Only when
Kharl could feel the emptiness of death did he dissolve the barriers.
Guillam
toppled forward, hitting the floor with a sickening dull thud. He did not move.
Kharl knew he never would.
The
stillness in the chamber stretched out.
"What.
.. what did you do, ser mage?" Ghrant's voice was thin.
"I did
nothing out of the ordinary," Kharl said. "I merely commanded him to
speak the truth or to choke on his untruths. He could not bear to speak the
truth. He died, rather than speak the truth." Kharl had to struggle to
keep his voice steady. His entire body seemed ready to shake, and his knees
felt watery. He'd forgotten how much effort magery of that sort took, and he'd
done almost none since the battle at Dykaru- four eightdays earlier.
Ghrant
turned slightly, his eyes fixing on a darker-skinned individual in
crimson-and-gold silks, standing in the group of envoys on the south side of
the audience. "Lord Joharak ... apparently, there are times when the truth
must out-if one is to live."
"So
it might seem, your lordship. Yet one man's truth is another's traitor. All
rulers who have succeeded have come to understand that."
"That
is most true, Lord Joharak, and the truth that must be in Austra is that which
serves Austra." Ghrant stood. "Chamberlain ..." He gave the
slightest nod to the body sprawled at the foot of the steps from the dais.
"The audience is over." Ghrant turned and departed.
The
moment Ghrant vanished into the one archway,
Kharl
followed.
"Every
word he spoke was a lie," Kharl replied. "He had no intention of being loyal. He knew Fostak and knew him
well. He had also ordered my death and the serving girl's."
"You
realize that you have now become a danger to most of the lords and
merchants?" asked
"I'm
sure Lyras could do what I did."
"He
probably could tell who was lying, but he couldn't do what you did about it,
and he has no magery capable of protecting himself. You will have to be most
careful in the days ahead."
"It
might be best if I returned to Cantyl, at least for a time," Kharl
suggested.
"Not
quite yet. We will have to act quickly."
Kharl
raised his eyebrows.
"There
will be more than one attempt to kill Ghrant within days, if not sooner, or a
revolt in his personal guard, or one by the regular guard. Perhaps all
three."
"Because
I can tell if someone is lying?"
Kharl
had thought he was resolving Ghrant's problem with Guillam, as well as getting
rid of a man who had tried to kill him twice-and now
"You
make it sound like ruling fairly is impossible."
"It
is. Everyone has a different idea of what fairness is."
"While
they're here, or after they leave?"
"While
they're here. We don't have time for indirection. I take it that you can
immobilize or kill one of them if he turns violent?"
"I
can, but if you want me to do much, I'll need to eat something. Bread or
cheese, but something."
"I'll
have some brought. Then we'll see how much treachery we can sniff out."
Kharl
managed not to shake his head. He just swallowed. He'd never even considered
that the truth would have such far-reaching and dangerous consequences-or so
quickly.
IV
Almost
half a glass had passed before the three commanders stood in
Vatoran
stood in the middle, a gray-haired officer with a broad forehead, pointed chin,
and perfect mustache. Casolan, to Vatoran's right, was short and blocky,
square-faced. Both Vatoran and Casolan wore the green-and-black uniforms, while
on the left stood Norgen, a slender man in black and yellow, whose once-red
hair had faded to strawberry and whose freckles had faded into pale splotches
on a face that had seen too much sun.
While
"Commander
Vatoran,"
Vatoran
squinted slightly. Clearly, the question puzzled the officer, Kharl felt.
After a
moment, Vatoran replied. "His words were polite. They were not truthful,
but they have never been. He was never that truthful to Lord Estloch." The
commander coughed, several times, then stepped back, trying to clear his
throat. When he finally straightened up, he was to the left of Norgen.
Kharl
could sense the falsity of the cough, but why had Vatoran moved to one side?
There was a hint of chaos around the commander, but Kharl had found that many
people occasionally showed such hints. While he did not know why, he had surmised that occurred
because they had been near a source of chaos.
"What
was your impression of the chief factor, Commander Norgen?"
"Guillam
was always well-spoken, ser. He chose his words with care. His own interests
were always more important to him than the interests of Austra, but I have
found that to be true of most factors and merchants."
"Were
you surprised to find that he was plotting against Lord Ghrant
andserKharl?"
"No,
ser. He is the sort that believes he is superior to others. He believes that,
even if they know he opposes them, they will not dare to act against him."
"You
are charged with the safety of Lord Ghrant, Commander Norgen. One of your more
trusted armsmen was suborned and tried to murder his consort and heirs. The
performance of a number of your companies and their officers has left something
to be desired. Under these conditions, I have to ask two questions. First, are
you willing to do what is necessary to improve the personal guard? Second, are
you personally completely loyal to Lord Ghrant?"
Norgen
smiled ironically. "If I were not loyal to the Lord of Austra, I would not
be in this room. It is clear that ser Kharl can tell falsehoods more quickly
than they can be uttered. Because I understand this, I will tell the truth as I
see it. I am loyal to the Lord of Austra, and I will do all that I can to
improve the personal guard. I am greatly concerned that Lord Ghrant is not the
leader that his sire was, but I always felt that Ilteron would have plunged
Austra into chaos and that we would have ended as either a Hamorian pawn or
part of their empire. Any other leader would not have the support of all those
necessary to rule effectively. Lord Ghrant, unless he is most careful, and
unless he heeds your advice, may still have great difficulty."
Kharl
could sense the truth of Norgen's words, even to the fact that Norgen did not
particularly care for Ghrant, but would be loyal.
Norgen
looked to Kharl, not to
"Commander
Norgen is bound by his duty, and will be loyal, even though he does not have
the deepest of affection for Lord Ghrant."
Vatoran
shifted his weight from one boot to the other, and his lips tightened.
"No,
ser. I have already removed three captains, and one overcaptain, and we have
stepped up training for all companies."
"I
know,"
"How
do you see your duty to Lord Ghrant, commander?"
"Guess
I'm like Norgen. Lord Ghrant's got a lot to learn, and he didn't want to learn
it until circumstances forced him. Ilteron was the worst of a bad lot, and I
can't thank the mage enough for putting an end to that problem. I'm loyal to
the Lord of Austra. I just hope he's worth that loyalty."
Along
with truthfulness, Casolan conveyed a rock-hard solidity. On the far side of
the other two commanders, Vatoran shifted his weight once more, almost
imperceptibly, his eyes avoiding Kharl.
"Ser
mage?" asked
"Commander
Casolan has stated his feelings most truthfully, ser."
"I
would expect no less from a distinguished officer."
Kharl
thought he understood what was coming. "Commander Vatoran, the last time
we met, I had told you about the officers who were eating a lavish meal in
Dykaru when a battle was about to begin. I also told you about the officer who
had given poor direction to the driver of a wagon carrying wounded. Could you
tell me what you did about those incidents?"
Vatoran
looked at Kharl, coldly, then at
"Can
you suggest anyone more honest, and more interested in the truth,
commander?" replied
Kharl
could sense the faintest hint of ironic amusement from Casolan, but he kept his
eyes and senses upon Vatoran.
"Truth
means nothing without understanding," Vatoran replied.
"That
is very true," Kharl said. "That is why I asked what you did. You could
certainly explain matters to me so that I could understand. What did you
do?"
Vatoran
stiffened. "My officers insist that you were mistaken, mage. Honestly
mistaken, but mistaken."
Vatoran
was lying, but Kharl could not understand why, not under the circumstances. "I am confused,
commander." Kharl paused. "The uniforms of Austran officers are very
distinctive. I did see those uniforms. Does that mean that someone else was
wearing them?"
"You
had to be mistaken."
"Did
you actually inquire?"
"Of
course."
That was
a blatant lie. "I see. Would you say that your loyalty is more to your
officers, or more to the Lord of Austra?"
"I
must be loyal to both. If my officers do not trust me, then I can do nothing
for my lord."
Kharl
had to think. Vatoran was right about that. "How do you enforce
discipline, then, when they have done wrong?"
"Done
wrong? You were mistaken, mage." Vatoran's voice was tight.
Kharl
half turned to
Vatoran
turned to Casolan. "Will you let them do this? Listen to a cooper who has
never commanded a single armsman?"
Casolan
smiled sadly. "The mage has been in more battles than you have, Vatoran.
He doesn't lie, either."
Vatoran
looked to Norgen.
Norgen
shook his head.
Kharl cleared
his throat. "I have one last question. Have you been involved in any of
the plots against Lord Ghrant?"
Vatoran
looked from Kharl to
"Yes,
you do,"
"Ghrant
is a weakling. Who would not oppose him?" Vatoran shrugged. "You can
imprison me, but you will not hold me."
"My
guards will," said Norgen.
Vatoran
looked stunned. "You don't even like Ghrant."
"That
has nothing to do with loyalty and duty," replied Norgen.
Casolan
nodded.
Vatoran
looked at Kharl, except that his eyes darted away from meeting Kharl's
directly. "You will destroy Austra, mage, you and your truth-telling."
Kharl
said nothing. He well might destroy the Austra that Vatoran represented, but
could he do less, after what he had experienced?
"If
that is the Austra you represent, Vatoran, it might as well be destroyed,"
At the
knock on the door,
Undercaptain
Charsal opened the door. Behind him were four guards, two in green and black
and two in yellow and black.
"Commander
Vatoran is to be held,"
"Yes,
ser."
Vatoran
looked around the small chamber. "None of you will survive this. Not even
you, mage. There are always greater mages." He turned to the undercaptain.
"I am in your care, undercaptain. For now."
No one
in the room spoke until the door closed.
"He
never did like real armsmen," Casolan said.
"That
may be," replied
"I
have one company standing by, ser," offered Norgen. "I can get
another in place within two glasses."
"I
only have one near here. Most of mine are nearer to Bruel," said Casolan
dryly.
"You'd
best go and form up what you can."
"Best
start with Lord Kenslan," suggested Norgen.
The two
bowed and departed.
Kharl
frowned. "Fuelt? Wasn't he in that meeting in Dykaru? Was he the one who
was contemptuous-"
"That
would be Fuelt. His father is worse."
Kharl
looked to
"Don't
be sorry. It would have happened sooner or later. Better now than later. If...
if we can weather this storm, it may be for the best."
Kharl wasn't
so certain. He recalled what Lyras and Taleas had said to him, how setting
forth the truth was a good way to get killed, and to upset everyone. Well, he'd
exposed too many truths in the past day. That was
clear.
"You
look doubtful, Kharl."
"I
was thinking about the dangers of truth."
"It's
a little late for that. I need to brief Lord Ghrant. He won't be happy, but I
think I can convince him that it's better to face this head-on than to get a
knife or a crossbow quarrel in the back in a season or two. You need to get
more to eat. We'll need all the strength you have in the glasses ahead. Go on
down to the kitchen. Then come back here. If I'm not here, wait for me."
"Yes,
ser."
"Don't
fret so much. We might as well face this storm as run from it."
As if we
have much choice, thought Kharl.
V
Kharl
made his way to the kitchen, where he ate heartily, if guiltily, then hurried
back to his chamber-carefully-to recover The Basis of Order before returning to
Hagen's small chamber. The pair of guards in yellow and black who had been
posted there since his departure a half glass before opened the door for him.
"The
lord-chancellor said it might be longer than he thought,
ser mage."
"Thank
you."
Kharl
didn't mind the quiet of the chamber. He needed to think. If armsmen did attack
or storm the Great House, what could he do? His skill of hardening air-or
anything-was of limited use, except against a very few individuals, and it
tired him quickly. He was good with a staff, but that would only be useful in
defending himself while he did something else.
The one
thing that would be useful would also be the most dangerous- and it would work
only if there were but one or two leaders of the attackers. He could use his ability
to move unseen and attack the leaders.
That
worked only if the attackers did not have a mage who could detect him-and if
someone didn't detect him by other means and fill the air with arrows. His
ability to order-harden air and other things was useful only for defense or
against one or two people from a very close distance.
What
else could he do? The ability to know and tell the truth had only created more
problems-or perhaps it had simply made obvious problems that were already
there. But sometimes, it was clear, revealing the truth directly was not the
best course. Very few people liked hearing the truth.
His
thoughts skittered back to the passage in The Basis of Order that he had read
earlier in the day. What if there were no such thing as truth? He shook his
head. That was not what the words had meant, because the book had said that
what was, indeed was. Did that mean that there was something wrong with the
idea of truth? That it was something beyond what was?
He
nodded. When people talked about truth, there was a righteousness in their
words, a belief that the truth was absolutely the way they saw it. That was
what the book had meant, and that was why revealing what in fact had happened
or what someone believed could be so dangerous. It was not because of the
Tightness of what was revealed, but because revealing that kind of truth showed
people's weaknesses. So often what one person saw as truth was another person's
failing.
Kharl
smiled wryly. That was an interesting insight, and one he should have
understood years earlier, but that was the sort of thinking that wasn't usually
required of coopers. Interesting or not, it didn't offer a way to solve the
immediate problem of what he could do to help defend the Great House.
He
opened The Basis of Order and began to leaf through the pages, hoping that
something, on some page, might spur an idea. After several pages, his eyes
caught on several lines.
... when chaos that is bound to nothing strikes an object, it
loosens the bonds that hold the object together. Order holds all together.
Without order, stone would be as sand, water as mist or rain. Thus, order can
strengthen what is beyond its natural strength, while chaos weakens it...
That didn't
help, except to confirm what he already knew. That additional
order was what made the staff of a beginning mage as strong as iron, if far
lighter. He might be able to strengthen a weapon or two, but that was
all, and someone still had to wield those weapons, and it wouldn't be him,
unless it was a staff. He certainly wasn't that good with weapons like sabres.
Kharl
skimmed through nearly thirty pages before he found something else.
Light
from the sun is thought by the learned to be chaos, but it is not that. Rather
it is not precisely that. Light is composed of tiny particles of order that can
be thought to flow like water in a mill-race from the sun-or from a lamp. The
flow is chaotic, but the light itself is not. Could the light be ordered, in a
fashion similar to what a burning glass will do, except within itself, its
power would be almost without limit...
Kharl
pursed his lips. He wasn't sure exactly what the words meant, but they did mean
that sun and light itself were somehow linked to order. How that might benefit
him ... or how he could use it... that was another question. The words
suggested that there was a way to make the light from the sun terribly
powerful, but the book did not say how. Or did it?
He read
on, but there was nothing in The Basis of Order that suggested how sunlight
might be ordered to create such power. Had anyone ever done so? Kharl smiled
faintly. With all the secrets Reduce kept, how would he or anyone else ever
know?
The mage
who knew that he knew too little kept reading, searching, but, as he had
suspected, order was far better suited to protection of an individual than to
attacks against an army. Or ... whoever had written it had hidden the aspects
of order suited to attack so that each had to be ferreted out in the way that
Kharl had figured out how to use the hardening of air as a weapon as well as a
defense.
Karl
straightened in the chair, then rose, as the door
opened, and
"I
apologize for being so long, Kharl."
"I'm
the one who should be sorry. If I hadn't-"
"Wasn't
he the lord who killed Lord Estloch?"
"It
was suspected, but there was no way to prove it. Once word got out about your
ability to discern the truth, several of the more dissatisfied lords scurried
off to tell Malcor. Since he's avoided Lord Ghrant, I think we can take it that
he did murder Lord Estloch."
"They
wouldn't be plotting another revolt if it weren't for me, because they could
just cover up what happened."
"There's
some truth in that,"
Kharl
could tell that
"I've
talked it over with Ghrant. We've sent Casolan west to gather his forces.
Casolan's confident that most of the western lords will either back Lord Ghrant
or remain out of the conflict." Hagen laughed. "Strange, isn't it?
The lords who backed Ilteron are likely to support Ghrant against Malcor and
his allies. They don't want years of squabbling. Most of them backed Ilteron
because they felt he was stronger. The way he fought Ghrant weakened their
support. Casolan thinks the way that you and Ghrant handled Guillam will add to
their backing of Ghrant. They've been worried about the power that the factors
have been gaining, anyway."
"But.. . trade .. . doesn't it help all Austra?"
"It
does, but it helps the east more than the west."
As
"They
also back you," Kharl suggested.
"That
doesn't hurt, but it's not enough."
"What
do you think will happen next?" asked Kharl.
"We
won't see an attack today. Perhaps not even tomorrow. We will see one,"
Hagen said tiredly. "Vatoran threatened the guards who imprisoned him. He
had already ordered the eastern companies to obey Lord Kenslan if anything
happened to him."
"He
wasn't threatening them. He was bargaining for his own safety."
"Kenslan,
unfortunately, is a better arms-commander than Vatoran, and his son is one of
the subcommanders."
"What
if something happens to Kenslan?"
If you
kill him with magery, without even an audience, that will just stir things up
more."
"He
can start a revolt, take over some of Lord Ghrant's armsmen, but if I use
magery...?"
"Exactly."
"So
we wait?"
"We
gather forces, strengthen our position, and see where they plan to attack.
There is little doubt that they will attack."
Kharl
could tell he would not be headed back to Cantyl anytime soon.
VI
Threeday
passed, and so did fourday. Kharl found nothing else of use in The Basis of
Order. On fiveday, right after breakfast, in the chill of the spring morning,
under a gray sky with high clouds, Kharl stood in the front courtyard of the
Great House, studying the walls, only about five cubits high and but a double
course of stone in width-designed to keep out casual intruders, but certainly
not an attacking force. But then,
"Good
day, ser Kharl."
The mage
turned. Undercaptain Charsal stood ten cubits away.
"Good
day, undercaptain. What news do you have?"
"No more than you, probably. No one's moving armsmen toward Val-murl
yet. Lord Malcor leveled Lord Vertyn's country place because Vertyn voiced
support for Lord Ghrant. Folk are worried about fighting. Most in Valmurl
support Lord Ghrant." Charsal shrugged. "Then, they might well be
telling me that because they know I do."
"What
about the factors?"
"My
cousin works for Gessryn. He's a small wool factor. He says that all the factors are upset about what
happened to Guillam. Half are mad at Guillam, dead as he may be, because he
thought only of himself. The other half are mad because they think Lord Ghrant
and the other lords want to tariff them more heavily ... and keep all the power
to themselves."
"No
one thinks about the people or Austra?"
Charsal
laughed. "Have they ever, ser mage?" He nodded. "Need to be
reporting to Commander Norgen."
Kharl returned
the nod and watched as the young undercaptain hurried toward the main entrance
to the Great House. The mage took a last look at the low walls and turned,
making his way through the side service entrance and along the back corridors
he was beginning to learn until he reached Hagen's chamber.
The two
men in yellow and black were new to Kharl, but the shorter inclined his head.
"Ser mage, would you be wanting to see Lord Hagen?"
"If he's not with someone."
The
guard turned, knocked once, and said, "The mage to see you,
lord-chancellor."
"Have
him come in."
The
guard opened the door, and Kharl entered. The guard closed the door behind
Kharl.
"Undercaptain
Charsal told me that Malcor had destroyed Lord Ver- tyn's estate," Kharl
said.
"He
did,"
"Charsal
said no one was moving toward Valmurl. What is Malcor doing?" asked Kharl.
"Word
is that he and Lord Kenslan look to be marching northward toward Lord Lahoryn's
lands."
"If
they attack Lord Lahoryn, is that a battle?" asked Kharl. "Will Lord Ghrant see it so?"
"I
do. I don't like it, but what is ... is."
"Go
ahead, ser mage."
"It's
simple, honored lord-chancellor. As a mage, that is, with what I know now, I
can do very little against companies and armies. I can sometimes do a great
deal against individuals. In most battles, lots and lots of armsmen get killed
and wounded. Most of the time the commanders and lords don't, not from the
little I've seen and what the armsmen say."
"That's
true, but once you leave the Great House, you're going to be the target of
every crossbow that Malcor and his allies can find."
"That's
if they know I'm leaving."
Kharl
laughed, a sound holding amusement and irony. "If Lord Ghrant is
overthrown, after all that I've already done, how long before I'm dead or
skulking down alleys looking over my shoulder-or back at sea on a vessel far
worse than the Seastag?"
"Not
long, I'd judge." Hagen's smile was sympathetic. "So you want to
increase the stakes for Lord Malcor and the discontents? Is that it?"
"They're
the ones causing the troubles, aren't they?"
"Depends
on who's talking."
"From
what I've seen, Lord Ghrant's biggest problem is that he doesn't look or talk like a leader. He's not out making free with every
girl, and he's not lining his pockets with everyone else's coins. Or have I
missed something?"
"No.
Ghrant doesn't want to hurt anyone. He just wants his comfortable life to go
on, and he doesn't want to be betrayed or removed."
"That's
more reasonable than most lords," Kharl said dryly.
"You
have a high opinion of rulers,"
"Will
things get better for what I need to do if I wait?"
"No."
Hagen took a deep breath.
"Do
you know if they have any wizards or mages?"
"No
one has said anything about wizardry. If Malcor was supporting Ilteron, there
might be another white wizard from Hamor around. Supposedly, there were two
left, but there's been no sign of either yet."
Kharl
had hoped there weren't any, but he'd have to deal with whatever was, wizards or not. He still didn't like the thought of
running up against a powerful white wizard. There was so much he still didn't
know.
"Charsal
knows the area. What about sending you with him and a squad on what look to be
road patrols? You'd have to wear Ghrant's personal livery, the yellow and
black."
Kharl
fingered his beard. He'd considered going alone, dressed as a carpenter, but
carpenters couldn't afford mounts, and it took a long time to walk anywhere.
"That might be best."
"You
don't have to do this, you know?"
"I know.
But what I might have to do later, if I don't, could be worse."
"I'll
see if Charsal is willing, and then the three of us can talk about where you
should go and which roads and lanes to take."
Kharl
nodded. He didn't like the idea much. He just liked far less what he feared
would happen if he didn't act soon.
VII
Sixday
morning found Kharl wearing the yellow-and-black uniform of Ghrant's personal
guard as he rode northwest beside Charsal along a rutted clay road barely wider
than a lane. Kharl was doing his best not to bounce in the saddle, but his
riding experience had been most limited. Instead of a sabre, there was a cudgel
in the lance holder, since Kharl had never learned either lances or blades.
Behind him rode ten other lancers, a half squad.
A fine
cold spring mist drifted down from low-lying clouds, leaving a thin sheen of
water on the lower and more level sections of the road. The flat light gave the
water-covered parts of the road a silver cast. The air was still cold and damp
enough that at times the breath of the horses steamed.
What was
he doing riding out again to do something that could easily get himself killed
if anything at all went wrong? Kharl wondered. He'd had to risk his life just
to stay alive when he had been running from Egen. Then he'd risked his life in
saving Lord Ghrant to repay Hagen. Now he was risking his life, in a sense, to
keep what he'd earned so that he didn't end up back in poverty and on the run.
Was life just a continuing series of situations where he had to wager himself
for higher and higher stakes-just to avoid losing what he had? Was that why
rulers in difficulties ended up making bad decisions?
After a
time, Kharl began to notice an acrid odor in the air. Something was burning,
and it didn't smell like a hearth fire or a forge. He turned to Charsal.
"How much farther do we need to ride along this road?"
"A good two kays more, maybe three. Then we'll be taking a lane to the back
side of the orchards. The scouts reported that Malcor and Kenslan have got
their forces north of there. The trees have started to leaf out, but they're
mostly still winter-gray."
"That
will provide some cover?"
"Enough
so they won't see us from afar, anyway. They don't have pickets out more than
half a kay. Leastwise, they didn't yesterday. Wouldn't count on that, though.
Kenslan’l begin whipping 'em into better discipline."
"Vatoran
didn't do that?"
"Vatoran
came up through the ranks. Learned that you got further if you didn't piss off
the officers who came from lordly families and if you always said yes to lords.
Gets you promoted. Doesn't make for good discipline." Charsal laughed.
"That's what Commander Norgen says, anyway. But... back then, who was worrying
about discipline? Hadn't been anyone to fight in years."
"It's
late to instill discipline after the fighting starts," Kharl said dryly.
"Yes,
ser. Commander Norgen said that Lord Estloch should have kept Lord Hagen as arms-commander,
but too many of the younger sons of lords complained that he was too
strict."
So
"That's
when he went to sea, they say." Charsal frowned, then held up a hand.
"Halt."
Kharl
managed to rein up his mount, far less smoothly than did the riders behind him.
He glanced northward. The narrow road sloped upward to a crest a good ten rods
ahead. He thought he could make out the beginning of a hedgerow beyond on the
left side of the road.
In the
silence, the undercaptain listened for several moments before speaking.
"Riders .. . headed this way."
Kharl
could not only hear the drumbeat of hoofs, but also, for the first time, could
clearly sense something like a faint white fog-a white wizard. Had they been detected by sorcery? How many
wizards were there supporting the rebel lords? He could hope that there was
only one remaining.
"They're
still almost a kay away, from the sound. We'll head up just short of where the
road crests, so we can look over and see how many and how far away they
are."
Kharl
had hoped they would have been able to get closer to the rebel forces. From
what Charsal said, he was almost three kays away. Still, he'd walked three kays
many a time, and more than once just to save a few coppers.
When
they reined up short of the road crest, Kharl tried to make out the riders who
headed down the long and gentle incline that was opposite the low hillcrest from
where he watched. Against the low clouds, he found it hard to take an accurate
count, but there were clearly far more armsmen headed toward them than in the
small force behind him.
He
looked ahead to his left, where the hedgerow began, bordering the road on the
west. Behind the hedgerow was a meadow, one not terribly tidy, with
winter-browned grass. Farther to the west, at the end of the meadow, was a
grove of trees-or an ill-tended orchard whose leaves had yet to turn from
winter-gray to green. Apples, he thought. Beyond the trees were several
buildings, barely visible. Kharl looked more to the north. After a moment, he
realized that what he'd first thought had been fog was smoke from the buildings
that had already been burned.
"They've
burned that place."
"Lord
Lahoryn's country house," said Charsal. "We've got other problems.
Two whole squads riding toward us, and they look to be fresh."
Kharl
asked quickly, "What would happen if they rode into a wall that they
couldn't see?"
"They'd
still outnumber us."
"But
that would stop them for a bit, get them confused, even if the wall vanished,
wouldn't it?"
Charsal
nodded.
"Then,
let's try this. I'll get off by that hedgerow there. You take my mount and ride
just a little farther, then turn around and ride back. Not too fast at first,
as if your horses are more tired than they are."
"What
if they see you, ser?"
"They
won't." Kharl paused, trying to work out his strategy. "If they turn
back, you can come and get me. If they don't... just head
back toward the
Great House. You remember that corner where the meeting house of the
one-god believers is?"
"You
want us to meet you there?"
"Not
until close to sundown, anyway, and it might be later. That's if they try to
follow you."
"You
don't need to do the wall-like thing, ser. We can just ride."
"It's
better if I do. It should make them cautious in following you. That will be
easier on your mounts. Also, I'm hoping that I can create the impression that
I'm still with you, and that they'll not think I'm where I am."
"If you say so, ser." Charsal turned in his saddle. "We're
riding forward about twenty rods. Then we'll turn and head back .. . slow trot.
The mage is going to work a diversion. Forward!"
Not a
word or a murmur came from the lancers.
Kharl
half turned in the saddle, almost falling off as he struggled to extract some
of the cheese, biscuits, and dried apples from the saddlebag. Then he thrust
those and the water bottle inside the yellow- trimmed black riding jacket. He
had to steady himself by grabbing the gray's mane. A rider he was not.
When
Kharl and Charsal had almost reached the hedgerow, the mage eased his mount
toward the undercaptain. "Slow down for a moment."
"Ah
... yes, sir."
Kharl
leaned right in the saddle and handed the gray's reins to Charsal. "Don't
be surprised." With that, he slipped the sight shield around himself, and,
once more, was in the dark and sightless, relying on his order-senses to get
him off his mount, off the road, and behind the hedgerow.
". ・ gone ..."
".
.. course ... he's a mage ... do our part..."
Once he
was in place behind the hedgerow, mostly hidden, Kharl released the sight shield.
If he couldn't see the road, whoever was on the road was unlikely to see him,
and it was unlikely the holders or tenants in the buildings beyond the trees
would see him against the back of the hedgerow.
Kharl
knelt behind the twisted mass of branches and vines that had barely begun to
show green, using his order-senses to watch what happened on the road. Within
moments, Charsal and his squad trotted back southward past the spot where Kharl
waited behind the hedgerow. From the north came the growing sound of hoofs,
and a stronger sense of the chaos whiteness.
As he
stood next to the foliage that separated him from the road, Kharl concentrated
on creating not so much an image, but a projection of order, set close to the
now-riderless mount that Charsal led, hoping that the white wizard who rode
with the rebels would focus on that order.
The
pursuing lancers did not slow as they neared Kharl's hiding place- a good sign.
He waited until the lancers were within five rods of him before he struggled to
create a solid barrier of air, based on linking the air together with twists of
order. The barrier ran from the road surface to more than head height of a
mounted man.
"We're
gaining..."
A series of dull thuds, followed by screaming from downed
horses and yells as riders tried to rein up and avoid becoming entangled in the
mass of fallen mounts and unhorsed men. At least two of the rebel armsmen were
dead. Kharl had felt the emptiness, the wash of red-tinged death. Several
others were injured, perhaps severely.
Kharl
was trembling when he released the barrier. He took a deep breath and began to
move northward at a quick walk. He did not let go of the order projection
moving with Charsal until he was a good thirty rods north of the milling
confusion. As he moved away from the pileup of men and mounts, he kept checking
with both eyes and senses to see if anyone had chanced to look behind the
hedgerow, but no one did.
"After
them .. . !"
The
riders who had not suffered-or perhaps the second squad- resumed the pursuit of
Charsal.
Kharl
kept walking, hurriedly, through the damp grass of the meadow. Already, the
lower parts of his trousers were wet. The ill-tended meadow extended down a
slight slope for almost a kay, until it reached a small stream, so small that
it was a mere rivulet running across a muddy depression. Just short of the
stream, which Kharl could sense, but not see, the hedgerow stopped, or rather
turned westward at a right angle. So thick was the vegetation that the mage had
to walk almost ten rods westward before he came to a gate in the hedgerow.
The iron
latch was broken, and the gate had been secured with a length of twine. Kharl
used his belt knife to cut it, but quickly retied the twine once he was
through.
His legs
were wobbly.
He
glanced around, then leaned against the stone pillar that held the gate hinges
and took the water bottle out from inside his jacket. After a long swallow, he
munched on some dried apple slices and took a bite of the hard yellow cheese.
He finished with a biscuit that was mostly fragments and crumbs, and another
swallow of water.
Ahead,
near the hilltop almost a kay away, he could make out a large orchard with
trees set precisely in rows-the orchard on the southern border of Lord
Lahoryn's lands, he thought. If so, the rebel forces were less than a kay north
from where he stood.
Before
setting out northward, Kharl scanned the area nearby once more, taking in the
path that led through the muddy depression holding the tiny stream, the
stone-walled meadow on the far side, one wall of which bordered the
road-without a hedgerow. The hedgerow through which he had just passed
continued westward, then turned north once more on the far side of the meadow.
In order not stand out to any observer, Kharl would have to walk westward, then
follow the hedgerow uphill and north toward the orchard-and the rebel forces
beyond. He took another swallow of water, corked the water bottle, and slipped
it back inside the riding jacket. He turned westward, following the hedgerow.
When he
reached the spot where the hedgerow started northward once more, he crossed the
middle strip that held the stream. He had only covered ten or fifteen rods,
walking beside the twisted and intertwined branches and through the damp grass,
before his trousers below the knee were thoroughly soaked, and water oozed down
into his boots. He was also sweating under the riding jacket from his exertions
and the damp spring air.
He kept
close to the hedgerow as he moved uphill. He was still a quarter of a kay from
the stone wall between the meadow and the orchard when he began to sense that
there were sentries set at intervals along the wall. Once more he drew upon his
skills and let the light flow around him so that the sentries could not see
him. He had to move more slowly because he was relying on his order-senses,
rather than his sight.
Kharl
moved even more carefully when he neared the wall. While the sentry a hundred
cubits to the east could not see him, the man could certainly hear if the mage
knocked off a stone or made any other significant noise. Kharl still felt
strange climbing over the low stone wall so close to a sentry.
Once
over the wall he made his way from tree to tree, always headed northward. Outside of the sentries, no
other armsmen were in the orchard. At the north end of the orchard, on the west
end, there was a small section of a hedgerow. There, Kharl found a spot that
was sheltered from casual view and released the sight shield. While he did not
feel as weak as he had after the encounter with the rebel lancers and the white
wizard, he could sense that he needed to rest. He drank some more from the
water bottle and finished the cheese and dried apples-and another biscuit that
was also mostly pieces and crumbs.
After he
had refreshed himself, he peered northward through the screen of branches and
winter-gray leaves. A handful of tents rose from the highest point in the
meadow to the northwest of the hedgerow, and around them were mounts on tie-lines
and armsmen in groups, seemingly waiting. Beyond the meadow were the smoldering
ruins of what had been Lord Lahoryn's large country house.
Kharl
had to wonder why they had burned it, rather than just taking it. Or was the
rebels' plan to make an example of Lord Ghrant's supporters? It didn't make
much sense to him.
Beyond
the hedgerow was more of the damp meadow grass, and he would have to cross a
good half kay of open ground. He just hoped there were no dogs around because
they would sniff him out, even if they couldn't see him.
He took
a long and deep breath, then drew the sight shield around himself and stepped
away from the hedgerow.
Step by
step, he made his slow way toward the tents. After less than ten rods he had to
circle more to the east to avoid a line of mounts and the lancers tending them.
He listened as well as he could as he slipped past.
"..
.not that hard ..."
"...
just an old man and his people ..."
"...
would have liked to have gotten that girl before
..."
"... she's spoils for the lords ..."
By the
time Kharl had circled around more lancers and mounts, reoriented himself, and
headed back toward the low crest in the middle of the meadow, he felt soaked inside
and out, from the high damp grass, from the damp mist that was becoming more
like a fine rain, and from his own sweat. With each step, his feet sank into
the soft ground, and he could feel the chill dampness inside his boots.
From
what his order-senses told him, there were but five tents, the two in the
center being the largest. He eased between two of the smaller tents, both empty, and toward the nearer of the
larger pair. There, he paused near the rear canvas wall. There was no need for
him to enter the tents, but the first larger tent was vacant as well.
At the
sound and sense of someone coming, Kharl edged closer to the canvas, standing
beside a guy rope. An armsman strode past. The man paused, looked around, shook
his head, then continued toward the next large tent.
Kharl
waited, then followed. While the armsman circled to
the front of the tent and the two guards stationed there, Kharl made his way
close to the rear canvas, where he listened.
"Lord Kenslan, Undercaptain Giron, ser."
"Yes,
undercaptain?" The voice was simultaneously surprisingly high and yet
hard.
"You
had asked for a report. Lord Ghrant's black mage came up the orchard road. He
set some sort of trap that killed a handful of our lancers. The mage Alborak
and the lancers chased him back south. We don't have a report on what happened
yet."
"Thank
you, undercaptain. Let us know what occurred as soon as you hear."
"Yes, ser."
There
was silence within the tent until the undercaptain was well away.
"Where
is Yarak? Alborak is barely a wizard. That mage of Ghrant's could be more than
he can handle."
"Yarak
had another task. He went to make sure that our plans are not revealed. What
Ghrant's mage can do is limited. He is black, not white." There was a
laugh. "Kenslan, you worry too much."
"Malcor,
you worry too little. I have good reports on what that mage did. That's why I
suggested to Fostak that a stronger wizard would be necessary if we were to be
successful. And you sent him off on this .. . fool's errand."
"Vatoran
was the fool."
Kharl
nodded. There were only two men in the tent, and they were Malcor and Kenslan.
He took a slow deep breath and concentrated, forming an impermeable barrier of
hard air around each lord.
All sound
from within the tent stopped.
Kharl
felt light-headed, but continued to hold the hardened air barrier around the
two lords.
At last
came one red-tinged void of death, then another.
Kharl
immediately released the barrier. From inside the tent came two dull thuds,
followed by a muffled crash.
The mage
found himself trembling once more. The effort to
remove the two rebel leaders, combined with the requirement to keep himself
shielded, had once more left his legs feeling like jelly. That wouldn't do, not
when he had a good five kays to walk back to the crossroads- avoiding armsmen
the entire way and going much of the distance without being able to see and
having to rely on his order-senses to navigate.
Besides,
it would only be moments before the guards raised an alarm.
Kharl
forced himself to move quickly back the way he had come, but he had covered
less than a handful of rods before he heard the yelling, although he could not
make out the words.
He kept
walking, as fast as he could, knowing that he could not cover as much ground as
he needed at any faster pace. He'd known that using magery would take strength,
but what choice had he had? He'd have to practice more in the future. He
couldn't afford to be tired so quickly, not when he had to deal with Lord
Ghrant's enemies one at a time.
By the
time he reached the southeast edge of the meadow and the hedgerow where he'd
stopped before, he was staggering, and he was so light-headed he wasn't certain
how much longer he could even hold his sight shield.
Like it
or not, he had to rest, even on the matted wet grass and dirt in the small
niche in the hedgerow. He released the sight shield and sank onto the damp soil
behind the twisted branches and winter foliage, which offered but minimal
cover.
His
fingers trembled as he fumbled out the water bottle. The water helped some. He
only had one biscuit left, and half of a dried apple slice. He ate both, then
just sat there, breathing hard.
The rain
was coming down more heavily, and water drizzled off the branches overhead and
down the back of his neck. He could hear and sense more yells, orders being
barked. Before long, if someone hadn't started looking already, they would be
looking for traces, and they well might find his boot prints. Or someone might
think about a tracking dog. The rain and the imprints of other boots might
confuse them, but Kharl couldn't count on that.
He
wasn't quite so light-headed.
He
glanced around, looking to the orchard and toward the sentries and the stone
wall. The rain made it harder to see clearly, and no one was nearby, not that he could see. He decided
against raising the sight shield. It was tiring, and he might need it more
later.
He
stepped around the end of the hedgerow and began to walk quickly toward the
stone wall, as if he were headed on an errand or carrying a message. That was
safer than skulking from tree to tree and looking guilty. Besides, with the
mist and rain, at a distance his riding jacket was not that different from
those of the rebels, and the black trousers were the same. The sentries most
likely wouldn't look behind themselves too much, and in the rain, they might
even concentrate more on the meadow to the south.
Kharl
kept walking through the muddy grass and dirt of the orchard, through a rain
that slowly continued to grow in intensity. He tried to ignore the hubbub
behind him, a snarling confusion that followed him, growing neither louder nor
quieter. Before long, he could see the nearest pair of sentries, one less than
a hundred cubits ahead, and slightly to his right, the other barely visible
twice that distance away and well to the left.
He
watched the nearer sentry closely as he neared the rebel. He was less than thirty
cubits away when the man started to turn. Kharl pulled the sight shield around
himself and angled his steps more to the right so that he would pass behind the
man and reach the wall on the south border of the orchard close to the hedgerow
bounding the west end of the meadow.
He was
almost abreast of the sentry when he heard the mud-muffled hoofs of a horse
behind him.
"Sentries! Eyes sharp! Eyes sharp! Got a scout, maybe
a spy. Might be coming this way. See him ... raise the alarm."
Kharl
kept moving.
"You,
at the point, see anyone?"
"No, ser! Just rain."
The
rider moved eastward away from Kharl. He found himself almost stumbling and
forced himself to concentrate on maintaining the sight shield as he eased over
the low stone wall and began to make his way down the west side of the meadow.
The going was slower, because the winter-dead grass had gotten slicker with the
rain, and the dirt in the bare patches had turned to slippery mud.
Still,
he made it down the side of the meadow and back through the gate, which he
forced himself to secure once more. Once he was out of any possible sight of
the sentries to the north, he released the sight shield. He followed the
hedgerow eastward, then south.
He made
it halfway up the slope, within a few hundred cubits of where he had set the ambush, when he heard
hoofs and riders on the road. He sensed a squad of riders. They reined up
almost on the other side of the hedgerow from him.
"There's
no one on the road. Not any tracks in the mud."
"What
about the fields, behind the hedgerow there? Someone could walk or ride there
and not be seen."
Kharl
looked around. He certainly couldn't move fast enough to outrun a horse,
especially the rain, and he had real doubts about how long he could hold a
sight shield.
"Senstyn! Take your four and check out the fields to
the west. Derk, you check the east fields there."
The hedgerow closest to where Kharl was offered no real
concealment. He looked back north. That was too open. To the south, perhaps a hundred cubits
ahead, the hedgerow widened, just slightly, and it looked like there was an
opening of some sort. Maybe.
He
picked up his steps and hurried toward what he hoped would provide cover.
On the
road, the riders also began to move.
Kharl began
to run, if slowly, trying to pick his way over and through the muddy grass and
uneven ground toward what looked to be his only chance of hiding without using
the magery that he knew he could not hold for long.
He was
within cubits of the slight overhang in the hedgerow and a depression that
looked to be hidden from view, especially from the south, and he looked toward
the end of the hedgerow, hoping that the riders had not started to turn past
the hedgerow.
At that
moment, with his eyes off the ground, Kharl's boot caught on something, and he
found himself flying forward, helplessly. The ground came up and hit him-hard.
A flash
of pain-and then blackness-washed over him.
When he
woke, for a moment, he wasn't certain where he was. But the patter of rain on
the hedgerow told him that he was partly under cover. His clothes and jacket
were soaked, and he was shivering. Each shudder sent dull spasms through his
chest.
He was
sprawled in a muddy depression overhung by the hedgerow, and he could taste the
mud in his mouth and on his lips.
He
started to move, to wipe it away, and dull reddish fire surged over the left side of his chest, all the way
into his shoulder and down almost to his waist. His eyes blurred. Then, slowly,
very slowly, he rolled to his right side and gathered his knees under him.
It took
him some time to get to his feet.
He
glanced around. Up the short slope was a root, thick as a heavy rope, and below
it was the heavy gray rock he'd come down on. From what he could tell, someone
had tried to dig out the rock, and failed, leaving a hole between the rock and
the hedgerow. Over time the hole had softened into a depression and the grass
had mostly overgrown the buried boulder-except for the part where he had hit,
then slid down out of sight.
He
studied the area around him quietly, but he didn't see or hear or sense anyone
nearby, or on the road to the east of the twisted foliage. The cloudy gray
afternoon was slightly lighter, and the rain had let up. He guessed it might be
midafternoon, but it was hard to tell without seeing the sun.
Slowly,
he eased himself out of the depression and back onto the grass beside the
hedgerow and south of where he had fallen. He took a step, then a breath. Step
and breath ... step and breath.
He had
covered almost two kays, slowly, when the sky began to darken, not from another
storm, but from the sun dropping behind the hills to the west. He'd had to
hide, several times, but most of the riders had been solitary, and for the one
rebel patrol, he'd managed to hold the sight shield until they had ridden well
past to the north. He'd had to sit behind the stone wall for a time after that,
regaining his strength.
Now he
was almost to the crossroads. Once there, he would have to find somewhere to
wait, either until the lancers returned, or to rest. He hoped they would. He
couldn't count on walking all the way back to the Great House, not with his
ribs the way they were.
Kharl settled
behind the hedge around the meeting house, in a corner invisible from any of
the windows, although no one was inside the place. He was soaked, muddy,
shivering, and flushed.
Just as
full twilight had descended over the crossroads area, and Kharl was gathering
himself together to begin walking again, he heard mounts. Cautiously, he peered
out. It took him a while to determine that eight riders in yellow and black
approached the crossroads, one leading a riderless mount. Charsal was not among
the riders.
Kharl
rose from behind the low hedge. "Over here."
"Ser
mage?"
"It's
me." Kharl tried not to wince or limp as he made his way toward the
riders.
"Weren't
sure you'd be here." The speaker was an older guard, one Kharl recognized
by his face, but not by his name.
"I
managed. Undercaptain Charsal... ?"
"Wizard
got him and Zolen with a firebolt... Tiersyn got burned, sent him back to
Commander Norgen with message."
Kharl
swallowed silently.
"You
get done .. . what you needed, ser mage?" The
lancer rode led the mount for Kharl closer.
"It's
done." Kharl had to lever himself into the saddle with his right arm and
hand. Even so, his vision was blurring, and his head was light once more as he
tried to steady himself on his mount. He had to grasp twice for the reins
extended by the other.
"You
wounded, ser mage?"
"Injured,"
Kharl replied. "Had some of the rebels chasing me. Stupid. Fell and
smashed my side. Ribs."
"We'd
better get moving." The squad leader shook his head. "That's war.
Gets you in ways you'd never think."
Kharl
had to admit that the squad leader was right. He held on to the reins and tried
not to lurch in the saddle. He would ride back, even if every sway of the mount
sent another wave of pain through his chest.
VIII
Kharl
sat on a stool in his sitting room at the Great House, stripped to the waist,
while a healer finished binding his chest. On the table was a small tray which
had held the good dark bread and cheese, and a cold fowl breast. There was also
an empty pitcher of ale and an empty beaker. He had eaten while he had waited
for the healer. The food and ale had helped.
"How
bad ... ?"
"You're
a mage. Can't you tell?" asked the gray-haired Istya. "I'm a poor
healer at best, and I can even feel some of it."
"I'm
a very ill-educated mage. Healing's something I don't know too much
about."
"You
keep getting banged up like this, and you'd better learn, ser mage."
The
heavy cloth did seem to help, and Kharl thought that he could probably speed
the healing some by infusing some order into the injured ribs.
"From
the bruising, and chaos there, I'd say you cracked two ribs. They're not out of
place, but you get hit there again, and they could splinter, maybe go right
into your lungs. Mages aren't supposed to be fighting like lancers."
"I
was doing the best I could. I didn't do it as well as I should." Kharl had
refrained from explaining what had happened in detail. He'd said that he'd been
trying to get back to Great House, and he'd been chased by lancers and fallen
and hit a boulder. Tripping over a root and his own boots was hardly noble-or
smart-especially when lancers were getting slain by sabre, crossbow, and
firebolts.
"Better
not do it again, ser mage." Istya straightened. "That should do it.
Don't be getting the binding wet."
"Yes, healer."
After
Istya left, stepping out past the pair of guards now stationed outside his
door, Kharl eased himself back into the chair, most carefully. Despite the long
day and the darkness outside, he wasn't ready for sleep, and he hadn't yet
talked to Hagen.
Charsal's
death bothered him. Kharl hadn't thought that the white wizard could have
gotten that close or that he'd been strong enough to throw a firebolt from a
distance. Had he exposed Charsal unnecessarily by suggesting that the lancer
ride slowly at first? Were firebolts that easy for chaos-wizards? Even Kenslan
had said that the white wizard chasing Charsal and his half squad hadn't been
that strong.
Kharl
knew life was not fair, but he wondered about how a weak white wizard could
create so much damage. It seemed to be such an imbalance, but was it? So long
as his strength held out, he could block anything the wizards he'd encountered
could throw, and against any single white wizard he was probably stronger than
one of comparable power in a one- on- one situation, but the chaos-wizard could
spray destruction against scores, and Kharl could not. That was balance ... of
a sort.
At the
sound of voices, Kharl's head turned toward the door.
Thrap. "The lord-chancellor, ser."
"He's
more than welcome," Kharl called back.
The door
opened, and
"Kharl."
"You'll
excuse me if I don't rise."
"Don't
fret about it. I'm sorry I was late getting up to see you, but Lord Ghrant had
some concerns." Hagen looked at Kharl, propped up carefully in the
armchair. "You have this habit of creating havoc, then getting
injured."
"I
didn't plan it that way." Kharl started to shake his head, then stopped at
the warning twinges. "I tripped over a root and fell on a half-buried
boulder because I was trying to make sure I didn't get seen by lancers who were
chasing me."
"Might
I ask why they were chasing you?"
"Malcor
and Kenslan are dead."
"I
thought-I hoped-it might be something like that. Lord Ghrant will be happy to
learn of the deaths, especially of Malcor's. That will help . .. some."
"Some?"
Kharl could sense more trouble.
"While
you were gone, Vatoran escaped. Three of the guards were killed-one by a
firebolt."
Kharl
wanted to sigh, but he was afraid it would hurt his bruised ribs too much.
"So ... while I was after the lords, their wizard came in here?"
"From
what we can tell, he had a squad dressed in the uniforms of the personal guard,
and they killed the guards who challenged them."
That
didn't speak very highly of the defenses of the Great House, but Kharl let that
pass. "I overheard a few words between Malcor and Kenslan. They had sent a
newly arrived wizard out. Kenslan called it a fool's errand. Malcor said that
it was necessary to make sure that their plans were not revealed. Oh ... and
they both had been talking to Fostak. He was the one who made sure they got
another wizard. You can't do anything about him, can you?"
"If
we did, the emperor would have our envoy in Cigoerne killed or
imprisoned."
Kharl
did sigh. What was he supposed to do? What was anyone supposed to do?
"You
can't be everywhere, Kharl,"
"We're
different kinds of mages. That's the problem. They can spray chaos at a number
of people. Mostly, what I can do is defend."
"You
defended Malcor and Kenslan to death?" Hagen raised his eyebrows.
"What
I did is really a perverted way of using order. It works, but only against one
or two people at a time, and I can't do much else."
"Something
like what happened to Guillam?"
"In
a way," Kharl said tiredly. "So far as I know, not that I know much
about it, it's not something that very many mages have figured out." He
paused. "Is there any good news?"
"Norgen
managed to ambush Vatoran's third and fifth companies with his two companies.
Between that and your disorganization of the rebels' leadership, we may have
enough time for the nearer companies under Casolan to reach Valmurl before
there's an attack on Valmurl or the Great House." Hagen looked to Kharl,
then stood. "You need some rest. This revolt is going to last longer than
anyone thought, and we'll need your skills."
"Even with Malcor and Kenslan dead?"
"Vatoran
is free, and there are lords like Fergyn and Hensolas who were looking for an
excuse to overthrow Ghrant. Casolan cannot possibly reach Valmurl with all his
forces until late spring, at the earliest."
"I
thought-"
"He
has three companies that will be here in another two eightdays, perhaps less,
but they will only allow us to defend Valmurl."
"How
did it come to this? I thought that once Ilteron was dead ..."
"Fostak,
Lord Joharak... they've been spreading rumors and golds, I'd wager, even
promises to support a new ruler."
"How
could anyone believe them?"
"The
ambitious believe anything that fuels their dreams, and the Hamorians will take
full advantage of that." Hagen stepped toward the door. "You need
your rest. I'll talk to you tomorrow."
After
IX
On
sevenday morning, Kharl woke in the grayness before dawn. His entire chest was
one dull aching mass, but that was not what had wakened him. He could sense
chaos ... somewhere beyond the Great House ... and it seemed to be getting
nearer.
Much as
he tried to hurry, dressing was a choie. Bending enough to get on his boots was
near agony, and getting on his tunic was almost as bad. He didn't bother with
much in the way of washing up, not when he knew time was short, and not after
what had happened to Charsal and the arms-men guarding Vatoran.
As Kharl
made his way stiffly to the outer door of his quarters, he could have used the
black staff he'd destroyed in fighting Ilteron and one of the Hamorian white
wizards-but just for support. He felt old and tired-and all because of one
moment of carelessness.
"Ser?" The guards stiffened as Kharl stepped out.
"I'm
headed up to the north tower. Could one of you find the lord- chancellor and
tell him that there's a white wizard headed this way?"
"Ah..."
The two
exchanged glances. Then the taller and dark-haired sentry nodded. "Will
you be wanting to meet with him?"
"Just
tell him that there's a white wizard and that I'll be in the north tower. On
top."
"Yes, ser."
Kharl turned
and headed toward the stone stairs that would take him to the third level. Then
he'd have to take another passageway to reach the circular steps that led to
the top of the tower. Behind him, he could hear the low murmurs, words he could
not have made without his order-senses.
".
.. mages ... strange . .."
"...
leastwise, ours goes out and fights ..."
Kharl
wasn't so sure that what he'd done merited being called fighting, but he was
glad they thought of him as one of theirs. He moved deliberately, but it took
him twice as long, if not longer, to climb to the top of the tower as it would have normally, and he had
to stop twice. Breathing was harder with his chest bound and sore.
His breath
steamed as he stepped through the narrow doorway and walked to the eastern side
of the tower. From there, standing behind battlements that were more decorative
than functional, on the open top of the north tower, Kharl had a sweeping view
of both the grounds of the Great House and of Valmurl. Walls a third of a kay
on a side surrounded the Great House, with the main eastern gates in the front
on the avenue. There was also a delivery gate on the avenue, but near the south
end of the wall, and a small bailey gate in the middle of the north wall. Lawns
and gardens extended immediately behind the main structure, with outbuildings
farther to the rear against the north and south walls.
The
Great House stood on a rise more than a kay west of the center of Valmurl, and
nearly two kays from the harbor. From his viewpoint, Kharl could just barely
make out the dry docks to the north of the harbor where the Seastag had been
repaired and refitted more than a season earlier. He could also discern
Traders' Square and the Guard Barracks to the south, barracks now empty because
Kenslan had earlier marched the armsmen west, then north.
The
eastern horizon lightened as Kharl made his survey. Then the top edge of the
white disc that was the sun flared above the dark waters of the harbor and the
western ocean beyond. Overhead, the sky was mostly clear, with only a hint of
hazy clouds over the hills to the west of Valmurl, hills still dotted with snow
near their crests.
Kharl
walked around the parapets, slowly, letting his order-senses extend beyond the
low gray stone walls around the Great House. To the north, beyond where the
avenue that passed in front of the Great House turned into the winding road
that eventually led to the Nierran Hills, Kharl could sense a concentration of
chaos. He could see nothing.
He
frowned. That was not quite right. His eyes seemed to dart away, to avoid one
spot on the road. So the white wizard had something like a sight shield as
well? Kharl had thought that had to be the case. Otherwise, how else had they
managed to get close enough to kill the armsmen guarding Vatoran?
He tried
to judge the distance, but he wasn't that familiar with Valmurl. The white
wizard was more than a kay away, closer to two. As Kharl watched and sensed,
occasionally, he thought he saw a puff of dust, but that could have been his
imagination.
At the
sound of boots on the stones of the tower, he turned.
"A
white wizard headed this way?" Hagen, wearing a black jacket trimmed in
green, walked toward Kharl.
The mage
waited until
"He
has a sight shield. Your eyes feel like they're moving away from the
road."
"It's
hard to tell. It's less than a company, I think. This wizard feels stronger
than the one that attacked Charsal. He might be the one that Kenslan
mentioned."
"Or another one from Hamor."
Kharl
didn't like that possibility at all.
"What
can you do about him?" asked
"To
do much of anything, I'd have to get close to him."
"It
would be better if you didn't,"
"Not
exactly see," Kharl admitted. "I'll know where he is."
"Can
you describe it? Well enough so that crossbowmen can aim a quarrel?"
"I
could. What about rifles- No. I suppose he could set off the powder."
"That's
why no one uses rifles against white wizards, and why cannon are used sparingly
and set apart. Except on iron-hulled warships." Hagen's voice turned dry.
"It's also why there are never very many experienced artillerymen. Even
without mages around, it's still possible for free chaos to set off the
powder."
Kharl
used his order-senses to study the approaching wizard. "I'd say two squads
are with him. That's a guess, though."
"We
could put a half score of crossbowmen in the gate towers with you, and we could
have others wind and cock."
"We
can try. If he heads for the main gates. If he doesn't... then I can always try
something else," Kharl admitted.
"We'd
better get moving,"
"I'll
meet you there."
"You're
still sore, aren't you?"
"Yes."
Kharl was more than sore, but what was the point of admitting it? It had been
his own carelessness, and he still had to do something about the white wizards,
whether he was hurt or not. "I'll be there."
Kharl
followed, not quite so swiftly, descending the steep steps with care, since
there were no railings, and the centers of the stone treads had been hollowed
out by years of usage.
The
corridors of the Great House seemed empty, even emptier than he might have
expected nearing end-day. Was that because people were slipping away, afraid
that the rebel lords would overthrow Lord Ghrant?
Kharl
made his way down to the main level, then out across the front courtyard. As he
crossed the stone-paved expanse, a half squad of arms- men in yellow and black
bearing crossbows hurried past him. By the time Kharl reached the gate tower,
its lower entrance was guarded by two arms-men in yellow and back.
"The
lord-chancellor is waiting topside for you, ser mage."
"You
a former sailor?"
"Yes,
ser."
"I
know I'll be in good hands, then." Kharl smiled and stepped through the
narrow doorway. The stone steps up the gate tower were even narrower and
steeper than the north tower, although the gate tower itself only rose some
thirty cubits above the courtyard and the avenue it overlooked.
The
small room at the top of the stairs held four armsmen serving as loaders. Kharl
saw that they had more than ten crossbows set out, ready to wind and cock. He
nodded as he eased past them in the crowded space and out onto the semicircular
battlement overlooking the avenue.
Standing behind the center merlon, Kharl began to search for the rebel wizard,
with both order-senses and eyes. Directly across the avenue from the gate
towers was the Lord's Park- almost a garden with topiary and grass and stone
paths. Around the park were the town dwellings of various lords and wealthy
merchants and factors, none over two stories, by decree. Kharl studied the
avenue to the north. While someone might have expected so little traffic just
after dawn on eightday-that there were so few out on sevenday, usually a market
day, was disturbing. He could see a servant hanging out wash in the side court of a modest dwelling across the avenue and
perhaps thirty rods to the northeast, and a doorman standing on the porch of a
dwelling even farther north, but no riders or carriages were visible on the
avenue-not to the eye. After a moment, Kharl could sense the wizard and the
riders who accompanied him, now on the avenue itself, and less than a kay away.
"They're
about three quarters of a kay to the north," he said, before
"A
quarter glass before they're in range,"
Kharl should
have thought of that. Stone was about the only thing, besides thick and heavy
iron or an order shield, that could stop a large fire-bolt.
Silently,
Kharl and Hagen watched the avenue.
Kharl
concentrated for a moment, just briefly, on throwing up a weaker shield, one
that partly hardened the air but was coated with a thin layer of order to
deflect something like a firebolt. He dropped it instantly, but he had wanted
to make sure that he was ready.
"I
don't see any signs of them, not even any dust off the stones,"
"No
sound, either ..." murmured an armsman behind them.
Kharl
frowned. "They've split. The riders are headed down a lane to the
east."
"There
they are! On the lane north of the Lord's Park," called one of the
armsmen.
"They're
headed toward Lord Lahoryn's dwelling," murmured
Get a
squad over to Lord Lahoryn's dwelling! Now!"
"Yes,
ser!" came back a call from lower in the tower.
"Close
the main gates behind our squad!" Hagen glanced at Kharl. "The rebels
will ride off, but it will stop the destruction."
Even as
he spoke, the riders fired several times. After a moment, one of the riders
dismounted and opened the iron gates to the courtyard in front of the mansion.
Why were
they attacking a supporter of Lord Ghrant, and so close to the Great House?
With the others, Kharl watched. Then he shook his head. Where was the white wizard?
Outside of a vague feeling that the wizard was somewhere north of the Great
House, he could not pin down where the other was.
"Kharl?"
asked
"The
white wizard ... he's disappeared."
"Disappeared?
Where?"
"I
can't tell."
"A
diversion! Do you have any idea where he was?" demanded Hagen.
"To
the north ... somewhere."
"The
bailey gate-that has to be it. We need to get there before he does." The
lord-chancellor whirled and headed for the stairs. After a moment, Kharl
followed, trying to ignore his various aches.
"Send
a squad right behind us!" Hagen snapped at the senior squad leader at the
top of the tower stairs. "We're headed for the north bailey gate."
"Third
squad! After the lord-chancellor! Loaders, too!"
Kharl
felt as though he were more staggering than anything else as he followed
Even
from a good fifty cubits away, he could see that there was no one at the bailey
gate, a gate far too small for mounted entry, and that the gate was ajar.
Then the
solid oak gate flew open, and rebel armsmen in the green- and-black uniforms of
Austra rushed through.
Kharl
could feel chaos building. A shadowy figure appeared behind the armsmen, and a
firebolt flew toward Hagen, Kharl, and the armsmen flanking the
lord-chancellor.
"Fire!"
snapped
Four
armsmen with crossbows halted and fired. Quarrels flew past Kharl. Most of them
missed, and Kharl could see several skitter off the paving stones short of the
bailey gate. One bounced away from the indistinct figure of the white wizard,
who had created a shield.
At the
same time, Kharl did the same.
Chaos
flared outward from the bailey gate and nearly simultaneously, two quarrels
struck the back side of the shield and rebounded toward Kharl and Hagen, one
dropping but a few cubits from Kharl's boots.
"Have
them stop firing!" Kharl said, still holding the shield as another
firebolt flared across the north courtyard.
"Reload
and hold!"
Yet
another blast of chaos flared against Kharl's shields, but it was weaker than
the earlier chaos-fire.
Kharl tried
to reach out to see if he could harden the air around the white wizard, but the
distance was either just a trace too far-or perhaps it was because the white
wizard had his own shields.
A third
blast of chaos flared against Kharl's shields, still weaker than the first two.
As Kharl
sensed that the white wizard was trying to recover, he dropped his own shields.
"Have them fire now!"
"Resume
fire!"
This
time, the quarrels began to strike the handful of rebel lancers. *
Another
firebolt arced over the rebels toward Kharl, and he deflected it back toward
the white wizard.
Chaos
flared around the wizard, and one of the rebel armsmen flared into flame,
screaming, if only for a moment, before pitching onto the stones.
"Back! Now!" ordered someone, and within moments, the area
inside the bailey gate held only those loyal to Lord Ghrant.
"Secure
the gate!" ordered
The
sound of hoofs on stone echoed through the still-open gate, but faded quickly as
the gate closed and the riders departed northward along the back lane.
Four
rebels lay on the stones of the courtyard, just inside the gate.
"...
won't try that again ..." murmured one of the
crossbowmen to Kharl's left.
Kharl had
his doubts about that. The rebels might well try another sneak attack. They
knew that Ghrant only had one mage. He looked at Hagen.
The
older man offered a crooked smile. "Best we take what we can," he
said in a low voice.
Kharl
realized that sweat was streaming down his forehead and that his ribs were
aching more than they had-but not too much more. Carefully raising his right
arm, he blotted the sweat away with his sleeve. He extended his order-senses,
just to make sure that the attackers were continuing northward. While he could
not tell if all the riders continued away from the Great House, the white
wizard certainly had.
"They're
still riding north?" asked
"The
wizard is."
I
"Stand
by here. Don't open that gate for anyone until either the captain or I tell you
to," Hagen ordered. "The mage and I need to check on some
matters." He nodded to Kharl. "You go first. I'll be right behind
you." His voice lowered to barely more than a murmur. "You need to
eat. You're as pale as those dressings on your chest."
Belatedly,
Kharl realized that he did feel slightly light-headed. "I didn't have time
to eat."
"Neither
did
"I'd
be happy to."
Before long
the two were in a small dining room less than thirty cubits from
"Two
full breakfasts, with hot spiced cider,"
Kharl
sank gratefully into the chair across the table from the lord- chancellor.
"This
morning's skirmish will hearten the personal guard,"
"Order
is better at defending, I think."
"It
also may buy us some time." Hagen paused. "Why couldn't you sense him
for a time there?"
"He
knew I was looking. He stopped using chaos at all. That was how I found him to
begin with. He needed it to get the armsmen close to the Great House, but then
he dropped all his shields and stopped using chaos. He and the smaller force
slipped behind the bigger dwellings to the north, where we couldn't see them,
and circled around to come down the lane behind the houses toward the bailey
gate."
"That's
probably how they got in to take Vatoran. They had to bribe someone. I'd wager
that the armsman who left the gate open is long gone." Hagen shook his
head. "None of this helps. It was very clever. Even if the attempt to get
into the Great House failed, they attacked one of Lord Ghrant's supporters
right here in Valmurl, and they got inside the Great House-twice, if anyone
tells about how Vatoran escaped. Word will get around that Lord Ghrant can't
even protect those close to him."
All of
it had started with Kharl showing that the chief factor had lied, and matters
just kept getting worse .. . "What did you want
to talk about?"
"I'll
be better in a few days. I should have kept up practicing using magery."
"You'll
get plenty of practice in the next few eightdays."
Kharl
had no doubts about that.
"Here
comes the hot cider."
Kharl
let
X
Eightday
dawned far more quietly than had sevenday, for which Kharl was most grateful,
since his chest and ribs did not seem much improved. There was less sharp pain
and more of a dull aching. Since Hagen had told him to eat in the smaller
dining room, he had enjoyed a hot breakfast there.
As Kharl
had finished eating,
"You
look worried."
"I
thought Vatoran had escaped."
"He
did. He didn't live very long after he escaped. He was garrotted."
"Like
the serving girl," Kharl said.
"It
might have been the same person, someone whom they both trusted. Or they were
with someone they trusted, and off guard." Hagen frowned. "I don't
see why they'd help Vatoran escape, then kill him. If they were worried about
what he'd told us, they'd have found out-" Hagen looked at Kharl.
"Chaos-wizards have a hard time telling if someone is telling the truth,
don't they?"
Kharl
considered, then recalled what he had seen in Hamor, where a wizard had
destroyed an innocent man who had been telling the truth. At the time, he'd just
thought it cruel, but what if Hagen happened to be right? "Some of them
probably do. Maybe a lot. I don't know for sure."
"So
they couldn't be sure that he hadn't betrayed them. That would explain it. Once
you'd talked to him, they couldn't trust him."
The
rebels had killed Vatoran because Kharl had talked to him? "But he never
told anyone anything."
"They
don't know that. Lords like Malcor and Kenslan don't trust anyone. Neither do
Fergyn and Hensolas, and I'd wager that they've taken over leadership of the
rebels."
"There
were that many lords who opposed Ghrant?"
"These
things take on a life of their own. Hensolas in particular is too calculating
ever to start a revolt, but he might encourage others and let them take the lead.
That was why Estloch had sent him off as envoy to Brysta. Once he came back,
he'd stayed in the background, but he had to have worried about Malcor's
treachery and Kenslan's brutality. With both of them dead, and with the quiet
support of Hamor-and seeing what you've done to Malcor, Kenslan, and Guillam,
he and Fergyn wouldn't trust Lord Ghrant. They'd feel that they had no choice.
They don't." Hagen's words were level.
"You're
telling me that I caused this revolt? Because I caught Guillam lying in his
teeth?" Kharl set down the mug of warm cider without taking a swallow.
"Lords
fear the truth at times more than death or their ruler." Hagen offered a
faint smile. "You didn't cause the revolt. It would have happened before
long."
Kharl understood
all too well that Hagen and Lord Ghrant would have liked more time before the
rebel lords had acted. He just shook his head. "I was afraid that if
Guillam walked out of the audience hall, there would have been a revolt within
eightdays. I didn't realize that I'd cause it to occur immediately."
"Lord
Ghrant is aware of that." Hagen fingered his chin. "As I told you
earlier, if we can get through this, matters may turn out for the best."
He laughed softly. "The next few eightdays will be the test."
"What
else has happened?"
"Norgen's
scouts have reported several Hamorian vessels off the coast just north of here.
They landed a small party, then departed."
"Golds
... and more white wizards," Kharl suggested.
"The
golds I can see. They're cheaper than soldiers and less costly."
"So
are white wizards. The one wizard with Malcor wasn't that strong. Neither was
the one with Ilteron. The one who attacked yesterday wasn't as strong as the
one with Ilteron in Dykaru." Kharl felt that any white wizard he'd bested
couldn't be that powerful. After all, he'd been working with order for less
than a year.
"You
think so?"
"The
emperor keeps his wizards under tight rein. I saw that in Hamor. What better
way to suggest that they stay in line than by sending those who are not as ...
obedient as he might like to Austra?"
"And
if they refuse to follow orders once they're here,"
Kharl
nodded.
"Always
Hamor ..."
"What
about Reduce?"
"Hamor
will try to take over everyone else first. It may take generations, but the
emperors have all been patient, and they have wizards and iron-hulled warships
and golds." Hagen rose. "How are your ribs?"
"Still sore."
"You'll
have a few days, I'd judge. I'd like more, but I'm not counting on it."
Neither
was Kharl.
XI
As
Kharl
spent the time practicing his order-skills, particularly his shields, and in
studying The Basis of Order in the manner in which he had found most
effective-by questioning. Sometimes he read in his quarters, but when he could,
he preferred the sheltered area on the top of the north tower.
On
fiveday, after midday dinner, he was in the bright and cool sunlight of the tower, his back against sun-warmed
stone, perusing a particularly obvious section, wondering why the writer
had felt it necessary to empha size the point so thoroughly.
Every
strength is a weakness, every weakness a strength, for under the Balance there
cannot be more order than chaos. Thus, if order is concentrated in one place,
there must be another place where there is less and where it will take less
effort for chaos to prevail. Likewise, the same is true of chaos ...
That had
certainly been the case in his own experience. If he concentrated order into a
shield, for him to resist the firebolts of the white wizards, that order had to
be restricted to a very small area. On the other hand, he asked himself, was
there a time or place where the use of additional order spread over a large
area, almost like seasoning over a large piece of meat, would prove useful?
Kharl considered it, but could not think of a situation where it might be
useful. Perhaps he might in time.
He
continued reading, until he came to a passage which seemed both direct and
obscure, simultaneously.
Because
chaos reflects the absence of order, it can manifest itself in two fashions, or both at once. The first is as what appears as
white fire, and that is chaos free of all order and all constraints, but chaos
drawn from elsewhere by one who is able to do so and imposed upon what order
may exist in a given place. The second is that chaos caused by the withdrawal
of order from the place itself. Both methods produce that force known as chaos,
and the unrestrained chaos created by either means cannot be differentiated,
one from the other. The first method is the easiest, and the one most widely
practiced, but the amount of chaos that can be mustered is limited by the strength
of the wizard, because by nature such free chaos is widely dispersed. The
second method does not require strength alone, but great mastery of both order
and chaos, and has seldom been employed because failure to attain mastery is
almost inevitably fatal.
Kharl
understood the concepts well enough, but there was no explanation of why
attempting the second method was so dangerous. He read on, but nowhere could he
find any explanation of the dangers-or even of the reasons behind the caution.
He frowned.
The book seemed to suggest that technique was the key to the second method. As
a cooper, he certainly understood that the key to any craft was skill and not
brute force, but exactly what sort of skill was required to remove order from an area or an
object? What would happen if he did?
He
marked his place in the book and closed it slowly, thinking.
What
sort of danger was involved? Why hadn't the book explained? Or was it like so
much else-something that the writer had not wanted to spell out? Or could not?
"Ahhh.. ."
Kharl
turned his head, then rose from where he had been
seated.
"You
look worried-again," offered Kharl.
Kharl
didn't know enough about the local geography to understand what that meant.
"Where are they heading?"
"I'd
judge that they're planning to use the southern high road into the harbor. If
they take the harbor, they can claim they hold Valmurl. It also makes it much
easier for the Hamorians to send them supplies."
"What
about Lord Fergyn?"
"No
one seems to know. I'd wager that he's moving through the area just south of
the Nierran Hills toward the north road. That's closer than we'd like"
"It's
closer to the dockyards."
"And most of the factors' warehouses."
"Are
they short of supplies?"
"I'd
imagine so, and their armsmen haven't been paid in several eight-days."
"Have
you heard from Commander Casolan?"
"We're
still looking at almost an eightday before his forces arrive." Hagen
offered a laugh, a sound somewhere between sardonic and humorous. "I was
wondering if you have any other magely stratagems that might work against an
attack on the road into the harbor."
"Are
there any places where the road is narrow? Any bridges that they have to
cross?"
"Only
the causeway, and that's not really that narrow. It was built by Lord Estloch's
great-grandfather through the marshes. For ten years he just had anyone convicted of crimes sent there
to cart rocks. It's two kays long, and between three and five rods wide. If we
blocked it, though, they could just ride through the city. In any case, the
causeway is so open that they could see anyone waiting there for them. You couldn't
hide us, could you?"
"I
could hide you from sight, but it would be hard on the armsmen, because they
wouldn't be able to see, and any wizard could still tell that I was doing
it."
"I
had hoped ..."
"Let
me think about it. How long do I have?"
"Norgen
thinks they'll begin before dawn tomorrow."
Kharl
nodded.
"If
you need supplies of any sort, let me know."
After
What
could he do? How?
He
glanced at the stones of the parapets, catching sight of a fragment of dried
leaf that had been blown into a corner in the stone, doubtless by a winter
storm. He'd had luck in working with leaves before. Could he try removing the
order from a fragment of a leaf, leaving only chaos? Would it be like hardening
the leaf, then infusing the order elsewhere?
With his
order-senses, Kharl reached out for the piece of dried leaf, no larger than
perhaps a quarter of his palm. Carefully, he tried to sense the order links within
the bleached and ragged tan fragment. The dark links felt faded, but so did the
whitish points of chaos.
Rather
than strengthening the links between the minute segments of order, as he did
when creating shields, Kharl concentrated on the ties between two points. He
tried to break the linkage, but all that happened was that he felt warmer, as
if he had been walking uphill. He paused. Mere force wasn't the answer.
Technique-that
was what worked. But what kind of technique? He considered for a moment. When
he strengthened air into a barrier, he reinforced the hooks and links. Was
there a way to unlink one small segment from another? He tried visualizing two
segments of darkness as linked by interlocking open hooks, then concentrating
on turning them so that they separated.
Once
more, he could feel himself getting hotter, but nothing happened with the leaf.
Were the
ordered sections of the leaf, faded as they were, tied together more like a
hook and eye? He tried that, but the results were the same. Nothing happened,
except he was sweating more than before.
What
about some sort of latch structure? He realized that he was trying to visualize
the unknown, but order had to have some pattern or structure. Didn't it? The
latch idea didn't work either.
For a
time, he just leaned on the stones of the parapet, letting himself cool back
down, thinking about how many ways order could be structured. When he felt
somewhat refreshed, he tried not forcing his concepts of linkage on the leaf,
but instead concentrated on trying to receive, to sense, the order-structure of
the leaf. For a time, he could sense nothing except the darkness of order and
the reddish white of chaos. Instead of turning away, he took a deep breath and
let himself and his senses drift toward the leaf.
In time,
he began to get an impression of linkages, of hundreds of rows of tiny twisted
hooks. Instead of immediately trying to use that image, he willed himself to
gather in an even more detailed understanding of the order linkages of the leaf,
trying to gather an image of just how the links twisted and how much each
needed to be turned to be unlinked from the next. The leaf seemed to have
frayed barbs on the tips of the hooks. That was the way Kharl perceived them,
at least.
Ever so
gently, he began to press, then push and twist. One of the minute linkages
released, and then another. The third and fourth were easier, and, almost
immediately, Kharl could feel heat rising from the leaf. Despite the cool
breeze coming from the ocean and across Valmurl, he had begun to sweat even
more heavily.
The heat
was far greater than if the leaf had caught fire and burned on the spot.
Involuntarily, Kharl stepped back.
He could
feel a surge of chaos-stronger than even that thrown by the chaos-wizard who
had tried to attack the Great House-and he threw himself to the side. A jolt of
pain flashed through his ribs at the sudden movement, and he staggered farther
to his right.
A vortex
of white chaos flared upward from where the leaf fragment had been, and the
force of the chaos-explosion flung Kharl onto the stones that paved the top of
the tower. He lay there for a moment, letting the pain subside. The explosive
force had not been that powerful, and he might not even have sprawled on the
stones had he not already been off-balance.
From
what he could tell, his ribs had not suffered any worse damage, thanks to the
heavy binding around them.
He
lifted his head, then slowly and carefully rose. He
could sense no more free chaos-or none that was concentrated, for there was a
white miasma of scattered chaos slowly drifting westward above the tower.
After a
short time, the mage and cooper eased back toward the lower part of the embrasure
in the parapet where the leaf fragment had been. There was no trace of the
leaf. Five black lines, each a fingernail's width in depth, had been scored in
the granite above where the leaf had been, radiating out from a small pit in
the stone, also blackened.
Kharl
shook his head slowly. All that chaos from such a small fragment of a leaf? No
wonder so few mages survived trying to release chaos from objects. What if he
had been experimenting with wood-or metal?
Kharl's
legs were trembling, and his vision was blurring. Slowly, he sat down and
rested his back against the parapet. He could also feel that his face was
reddened, as if he had spent the day under a hot summer sun.
Was what
he had done possible to replicate from a greater distance?
His lips
curled into a wry smile. What he had done wasn't something he wanted to try if
he couldn't do it from a distance-and from behind a stone wall or the like.
All that
chaos, he marveled, just from a winter-dried fragment of a leaf.
Had the
mage from Reduce who had destroyed Fairven released chaos in such a fashion? Or
had he used something even more terrible?
After a
time, Kharl rose, moving slowly toward the stairs down to the kitchen. He
needed to practice what he had tried, but not without some more to eat-and
certainly not without even greater care-and more distance between him and what
he was working on.
XII
By the
time the sun hung over the hills to the west of Valmurl, Kharl was exhausted.
He had trouble focusing his eyes. He'd spent most of the afternoon on the
tower, working on how to release chaos from various substances through the
manipulation of the order bonds that held all objects together. It hadn't taken him long to
discover that the amount of chaos within a substance was almost directly
proportional to its size and density. The difficulty of releasing the order
bonds was more than proportionally harder with denser materials, like metals,
and even harder with mixed materials, like rocks or alloys like bronze.
He'd enlisted
the armorer to cut him minute scraps of copper, iron, bronze, and tin, and he'd
also taken his own wood samples from the workroom of the Great House's
carpenter. No one had asked him what he wanted the materials for, almost as if
no one even wanted to hazard a guess as to what a mage had in mind.
Kharl
smiled wryly. He was definitely learning, and he'd discovered things that
weren't in The Basis of Order ... or rather, tricks that were barely hinted at
in the order manual. Although the book's lack of clear directions for technique
had bothered him in the beginning, he was beginning to understand why whoever
had written it had avoided describing techniques except for a few relatively
basic points.
Wood was
easier to work with, but the chaos-energy released wasn't that much greater for
most pieces of wood than for a leaf the same size, except for a tiny fragment
of lorken, and that had almost been as hard to handle as iron, although the
"feel" had been different. On the other hand, the chaos released from
a small fragment of an iron nail had blown off a quarter of one of the granite
parapet stones and cracked the remainder of the stone. Kharl was just glad that
he had had the presence of mind to use very small bits of metal and crouch
behind one of the granite parapet braces several cubits away. Even so, he'd
suffered several small cuts from flying stone fragments.
Even
with all the work and experimentation he had done, Kharl had been unable to
release the order bonds from much farther than a rod away for the heavier
substances, such as metals, and perhaps twice that for woods. Exactly how what
he had discovered would help Hagen, he was unsure, but perhaps the
lord-chancellor might have an idea or two.
Kharl
found himself shivering as the wind picked up. The
spring day had started out cold, but the morning breeze had died away, and the
cloudless sky and sun had joined to turn the afternoon almost as hot as early
summer. Nearing sunset, the wind had risen and shifted, blowing out of the
north and cooling the top of the tower.
"Will
it work?" came a voice from the west side of the
north tower.
The
other's figure was blurred to Kharl's sight, but he recognized
"Whatever
you've been doing up here all day that has everyone in the Great House afraid
to get near the tower, or even beneath it." Hagen laughed. "I told
them that the only time to worry would be if you fled the tower."
As
"Wouldn't
you be? Hensolas has moved his forces to Kiford. That's less than five kays
from the southern end of the harbor causeway."
"Why
was it built? Does it go anywhere?"
"It's
a direct road south. They say that Lord Esthaven built it so that he could move
armsmen from the southern barracks directly to the harbor." Hagen laughed.
"The barracks were never used after Esthaven, and Lord Estloch tore them
down and reused the stones for rebuilding the barracks in the city. They were
wood before."
"How
soon will Hensolas attack?"
"Tomorrow,
I'd wager."
"You
didn't tell me until now?" said Kharl.
"Why?
You're doing the best you can, and I just would have wasted your time and mine.
You understand what's happening."
"I
may have wasted it anyway. I've been trying to work out how to release chaos
from objects."
Hagen
frowned. "Is that something black mages can do?"
Kharl
understood the question
"You've
been doing it."
"I
couldn't think of anything else that might be helpful," Kharl admitted.
"I don't know how useful it will be."
"You
blew pieces of granite off the tower. Stone shards were falling in the
courtyard."
Kharl
nodded. "I have to be close, somewhere within twenty or thirty
cubits."
"I
am hungry," Kharl admitted. He was ready to listen. Besides, he was too
tired to try anything else.
"Good.
You look like you could use a good meal." Hagen turned.
Kharl
followed the lord-chancellor down the stone steps from the tower.
XIII
In the
darkness before dawn, Kharl used his order-senses check the causeway to the
east of the flat-bottomed boat. Using them was necessary, because the boat had
been covered with reeds and grass, from which jutted straggly cattails that
remained from the fall before. In the mist that covered the marshes bordering
the causeway, the concealed boat looked like another marshy hump, one of a
number, if the only one in the immediate area. Under the canvas covered with
grass and clumps of plants, the fetid mixed odors of marsh and harbor
backwaters were almost unbearable.
Kharl
swallowed.
"How
much longer, ser mage?" asked Dorfal, the young armsman and former
crabber, his voice low.
"They're
still a good kay or more south of us," Kharl whispered back. As he waited
with the clammy fog all around him, Kharl wondered, once more, how he'd managed
to get himself where he was-sitting in a flat-bottomed boat less than thirty
cubits off the causeway, essentially alone. There was a squad of armsmen
waiting well to the west of the marsh, but they were out of sight, and too far
away to be of much immediate assistance. They were there to protect Kharl once
he returned- and to escort him back to the Great House.
How had
he gotten into this mess? By the way he had dealt with Guil- lam, everything
else had followed. While it might not have been his fault, not totally, it was
certainly his responsibility. More important, if he didn't support Ghrant, he'd
have nothing, and he didn't want to go back to that.
Hiding,
not having enough to eat, watching every corner, listening to every sound-no,
he'd had enough of that, even if it had only been for a season.
He could
only hope the plan he and Hagen had developed would work out.
The plan
itself was simple. Kharl and Dorfal waited in the concealed boat, a craft built
like a scow, but far smaller, with two hastily mounted winches fore and aft.
Cables were attached to the winches. One was anchored-underwater-to a massive
boulder at the edge of the causeway. The other, more than ten rods to the west
and also underwater, was tied to a huge and ancient stump that barely protruded
from the water. Beyond the stump was a low hillock, behind which the armsmen
waited. Between the small scow and the trunk was one of the few stretches where
the murky swamp water was a good three or four rods in depth. Kharl would make
sure that no order or chaos could be sensed by the Hamorian white wizard-or
wizards. He and Dorfal would wait until the bulk of the rebel forces passed.
Then Dorfal would winch the craft to the causeway, and Kharl would begin to
release order from the nails and other small scraps of metal in the pouch at
his belt-after he'd thrown or otherwise placed them in the right spots among
and behind the rebels. With the winch and cables, the scow would stay where it
was supposed to, and could be moved more quietly.
The idea
was to push the rebels forward, toward the harbor front, which appeared largely
undefended. It was, in fact, scarcely defended at all-except for the dozen or
so old cannon that Hagen had taken from the armories. But those cannon were set
to rake the end of the causeway with grapeshot. Hagen had also managed to dig
out cold-iron powder canisters, the kind that could be closed after each load
was measured and set. While there were still risks involved, from what Kharl
and seen and sensed, the Hamorian mages weren't likely to be able to set much
of the powder off at any one time. But he'd told Hagen that it was most likely
that some of the powder would still be fired by chaos.
"We're
still risking less this way," the lord-chancellor had replied.
Kharl
had wondered, but with the first companies of Casolan's main force still at
least four days away-and that was if dry weather held-
Kharl's
"diversion" had two possible favorable outcomes. It either pushed the
rebels into the cannon or forced them to stop and regroup. In the second
instance, Kharl would need to get back to the concealed boat in some haste and
beat a quiet retreat. That was if matters went their way, and Kharl wasn't all
that confident about that, but he didn't wish to think about what might happen
if they didn't.
Dorfal
said nothing, just shifted his weight uneasily, and the scow tilted slightly.
"Someone's
coming ... riders ..." Kharl murmured. "Two squads ... could be
more."
"How far?"
"Half a kay, maybe a little less."
The two waited
and listened, and Kharl let his order-senses receive, but he offered no probes,
nothing active, as the lancers neared. There was no sense in alerting a white
wizard if one accompanied the oncoming forces. Before long he could sense the
armsmen marching behind them, several companies, at least. "Quiet
now," he murmured.
Dorfal
nodded.
Kharl
wasn't certain how much of the gesture he caught with night vision that had
improved dramatically since he had begun to work with order and how much had
come directly from his order-senses.
The
sound of hoofs on the flat stones of the road in the center of the causeway
rose from the faintest hint to semiregular dull clicks. Kharl could only sense
a company of lancers, followed by perhaps three companies of armsmen on foot.
That was half of what Hagen had expected.
The mage
frowned, because he could not sense any other lancers or armsmen-and there was
no sign of a white wizard. That would make his task easier, but it also
disturbed him. Where were the white wizards? Were the armsmen coming up the
causeway from the south some sort of feint? How would Kharl know? How could he?
All he could do was wait until the force passed, then decide whether he could
carry out his mission.
More than
half a glass passed before the last of the foot neared the con
cealed scow.
"Winch
us in, Dorfal, slowly," Kharl finally whispered.
"Yes, ser."
So far
as Kharl could sense, no one had even looked in their direction across the ten
rods that separated the road from the edge of the causeway. In the misty
grayness just before dawn, Kharl slipped from under the canvas flap covered
with tannish marsh grass. His boots splashed slightly as he stumbled in the
span-deep water at the edge of the causeway. He was wearing the heavy winter
grays that he had once used as a ship's carpenter, because the gray would blend
with the morning fog and mist and help in concealing him.
After
scrabbling up the yard or so of rip-rap at the edge of the causeway, Kharl studied
the area around him. The misty fog was still thick enough that the armsmen to
the north and east of Kharl were but indistinct forms. He checked the leather
pouch at his belt and began to move toward the rear of the column of armsmen.
With no wizards around, he could throw up a sight shield once he got closer-or
if the fog began to thin.
He had
decided to begin by releasing the order linkages in the nails he carried in the
pouch. Metal was easier to handle than were small stones, at least with his
level of ability. He'd thought about releasing the order in the nails, then
using a sling to throw them; but the moment he finished unlinking the order
within anything, the chaos flared out instantaneously, and he couldn't unlock
order from any great distance.
As he
eased along the causeway, angling toward the road, Kharl took care that his
boots did not skid on the uneven surface that was mossy rock and slime, with
occasional patches of honest soil. He couldn't see or sense anyone to the
south, not nearby, although he thought there might be others another two kays
or so to the south.
After a
tenth of a glass, Kharl was within perhaps fifteen cubits of the stragglers in
the rear guard, five or six back, and less than ten to one side. With the sun
yet to rise and with mist all around, the carpenter's grays had so far provided
all the concealment Kharl needed.
The
voices of the foot carried in the mist and stillness.
"...
don't have any armsmen at the harbor ... what Vuran
said ..."
"...
got that mage ..."
"...
phaw ... order-mage ... not like a chaos type
..."
"...
hope you're right..."
Kharl's
lips tightened. He still wasn't close enough. With a muted deep breath, he drew
the sight shield around himself and, in the darkness, made his way onto the road,
turning northward and closing the gap between him and the stragglers. As he
neared the last rank, he decided that such a position was unwise, that he
needed to move so that he was more toward the middle of the column.
"You in the rear!"
For a moment,
Kharl thought that the mounted officer had seen him, but the man was calling to
the stragglers in front of Kharl.
"Close
it up! Don't make me keep coming back here, or you'll not be lying on your
backs for a season or so."
"...
frigging undercaptain..."
"...
just move ... don't want a floggin'..."
"Keep
it close!" ordered the officer, even as his
turned his mount back northward.
Kharl
eased back to the west side of the road arid began to hurry along the shoulder,
trying not to breathe hard as he moved past one rank, then another. By the time
the mage had caught up to the middle of the second company, the captain or
undercaptain had ridden even farther toward the front of the column.
Kharl
kept walking, but pulled the first nail from his pouch, letting his
order-senses range over it. The linkages in the iron nails were more like clips
than hooks, but he had discovered how to unlink whole segments. The nails were
small enough, and he was quick enough, that he could handle a nail all at once.
He couldn't have done that with a much larger piece of metal, and that didn't
take into account the fact that his shields wouldn't have been able to protect
him from that much chaos.
Kharl
took the nail and threw it. None of the armsmen seemed to hear the faint clink
as it landed two ranks ahead of where he stood.
With a deftness he would not have believed possible an eightday
earlier, he used his "unclipping" technique to release the order
bonds in the first nail. Immediately, intense heat radiated from the nail, but
none of the armsmen seemed to notice.
As the
last of the order unlinked, Kharl raised his own order shield.
Crumpt!
Soil and chaos flared from the nail as it fragmented into an explosive white
miasma. Dirt and rock fragments pattered against Kharl's order shield.
One of
the armsmen dropped, and those near him scattered.
Kharl
threw another nail, and then undipped the order bonds.
At the
second explosion, the confusion and yells began to mount.
"Cannon! They're shelling us!"
"How?"
"Magery!"
"...
don't have any white wizards ..."
"...
cannon ... somewhere in the marshes!"
Kharl
threw another nail, and removed the order.
Crumpt!
He
winced as he felt the red-white chaos-void of death sweep over him, but he followed
with another nail, and yet another.
Invisible
to those around him, Kharl continued to rain forth random destruction for a
time yet. When he stopped, he could feel that he was close to his own limits,
and the rebel force had split-or he had split it. All the rebel armsmen were
moving quickly, but the lancers and the leading foot continued toward the
harbor. The latter half or so of the column had turned back southward, heading
away from Kharl and past the disguised boat, seemingly not even looking at it.
Kharl
had only covered more than twenty rods of the distance back to Dorfal and the
boat before it had become a chore just to lift one leg, then the other. He had
long since released the order shield, but holding the sight shield had become a
major effort. Keeping himself erect and not falling was also becoming harder
and harder.
The toe
of one boot caught on something, and he sprawled forward. He managed to break
his fall, somewhat, with his hands, but he had the feeling he'd slashed one
palm on a sharp rock, and his left knee throbbed as he scrambled erect,
shambling toward the straggly cattails protruding from marsh-grass-covered
canvas. He knew he wasn't that clumsy, but tiredness and uneven ground could
make the strongest man awkward.
His legs
were shaking, and his eyes blurring as he clumsily struggled under the canvas
flap, and released the sight shield.
Dorfal
had to help him into the scow.
"Winch
... us ... back ..."
"All the way?"
"If...
you do it slow-like ... still might see us ... some close ..." Each word
was an effort.
As
Dorfal began to crank the return winch, Kharl could feel the boat moving away
from the causeway.
Nothing
had gone the way it had been planned. Half the rebels had gone one way, and half
the other. As a mixture of whiteness and darkness swirled around him, Kharl thought he heard
cannon. Had Hagen been more successful?
He tried
to concentrate, to use his senses to find out, but then, a deeper blackness
pulled him under, as though he had sunk silently into the marshes through which
Dorfal winched the concealed scow.
XIV
Kharl's
head was splitting when he woke. He opened his eyes, but the room remained
black. He turned his head, but that didn't help. He tried to reach out with his
order-senses, but a line of fire slammed through his skull, and his head
dropped back onto the pillow. Another wave of darkness swallowed him.
When he
drifted back awake later, he still could not see, but the headache was only a
dull throbbing. He did not try to use his order- senses.
"Ser?"
The
voice was female, slightly throaty-and unfamiliar.
"Yes?"
His voice was croaking and hoarse.
"I
have some ale ... Istya said you should drink as much as you can."
"You'll
have to put the mug in my hands. I can't see right now."
There
was a momentary silence, followed by a clink and a scraping sound.
"Ah
.. . ser."
"Oh
..." Kharl raised both hands.
The
unseen woman guided the mug to his right hand.
Kharl grasped
the heavy mug with both hands before slowly moving it to his lips, tilting it
slowly until he could feel the ale. He took a small swallow at first, then a
larger one.
"What
time is it? What day?"
"Midafternoon, ser. On eightday."
Eightday. He'd been sleeping or unconscious for two days.
"What's happened? The rebels...?"
"The
lord-chancellor... he said to tell you not to worry. He's been stopping
by."
Kharl
belatedly remembered his manners. "I'm sorry. I can't see you. Could you
tell me who you are?"
"Yes, ser. I'm Renella. I'm an apprentice to Istya.
Anew apprentice, ser."
"You've
been most kind, Renella." Kharl took another swallow of ale. Outside of
the headache, which had begun to fade with the ale, and his lack of vision, he
didn't feel that poorly, although his left hand was also sore. But what had he
done that had left him unable to see? Had it come from being surrounded by all
the chaos he had released? Or was there a problem for an order-mage to handle
chaos-even indirectly?
"I
haven't done much, ser. I've just been watching you."
"Thank
you." A scuffing followed, with a slight breeze wafting over Kharl.
"Lord-chancellor ... he's awake, ser." After the briefest of pauses,
she added, "If you need anything, ser Kharl, I'll be back shortly."
Kharl
heard
"You
look all right," offered
"I
can't see," Kharl said. "Other than that..."
"Did
you get hit in the head?"
"It
has to do with magery, I think. I couldn't see for a day or two after the
battle in Dykaru, either."
"Are
you sure you didn't hit your head?"
"I'm
sure." Kharl tried to keep the irritation out of his voice. "Too much
chaos is what causes the problem."
"You're
an order-mage."
"What
I did, remember ... it released chaos."
"You
had said ..." ventured
"I
said I could do it. I hadn't realized what would happen. Most of this is still
new to me."
"We
got off two complete volleys from all the cannon,"
"You
don't sound that happy."
"I'm
not. It was a feint. Hensolas had sent half his armsmen north to join the
troops Fergyn already had. That was so that Fergyn could leave enough in place
to threaten the Great House and still take the dockyards and warehouses."
"But
not the harbor?"
"They
got the supplies from the warehouses, and they have enough armsmen that they
can take the harbor anytime." Hagen laughed, bitterly. "They've put
you out of action for at least a while. It only cost them a hundred men, and
those armsmen really were Lord Ghrant's armsmen."
"You
think they're waiting for help from Hamor?"
"I'd
not be surprised."
"What
else?"
"They
want us to attack them and be the ones that destroy the warehouses and
dockworks?"
"So
Lord Ghrant is the one who is hurting people?"
There
was silence, although Kharl had the feeling that
This time, Kharl waited, taking a sip of the ale from the
mug that he still held.
"Casolan's
been delayed. Forces under Lord Azeolis have been harassing him, and that has
slowed his progress toward Valmurl."
"Azeolis?" Kharl had never heard the name.
"He's
a distant cousin of Malcor. His holdings are in the high hills to the south of
the mountains that border Vizyn."
"That's
a long way north. How did he get far enough south to attack Casolan unless
..."
"Unless he'd been ordered to do so from the
beginning? He
couldn't have."
The more
Kharl heard, the less he liked what was happening, and
the bad news seemed unending.
"So
there are more lords involved than you thought, and they've planned this out in
more detail?"
"It
would seem so." Hagen's voice was flat.
Kharl
took another long swallow of ale, almost finishing the mug. "What do you
think they'll do next?"
"If
they've planned this carefully ... then they must have something worked out to
wipe out Casolan's forces."
"Can
you change his marching route?"
"I'd
thought of that. They'll think that he'll take the shortest route. If he takes
another way, that will at least give them pause." Hagen's sigh was soft,
but audible. "All I can do is give them pause."
Kharl
took a last swallow and finished the ale.
"How
soon . .. ?"
"I
don't know," the mage admitted. "It could be tomorrow; it could be an
eightday." He had to think out what he was doing with his order- skills
far better than he had before-and that was if he got his sight back-before the
rebellion took over all of Austra.
"I'll
talk to you later," offered
So did
Kharl. He also hoped that he could offer Hagen and Ghrant much more aid than he
had so far-and that he could find a way to remedy the damage he had
inadvertently caused.
He sat
in the bed, in his darkness, fretting over the rebellion he had sparked and
pondering what lay ahead.
XV
Oneday came and went, and twoday dawned warmer and
clearer. While Kharl was up and out of bed, he still could not see, but he
could employ his order-senses-sparingly-to get around. The need for
deliberation in movement made him think about Jeka, although he could not have
said why, and about Warrl. He did understand why he had thought about his
younger son. His own lack of deliberation and understanding had been one of the
reasons that had forced the boy into seeking shelter with Mer-ayni. He couldn't
have explained why he'd thought about Jeka, but he did.
At the
moment, there was little Kharl could do about either Jeka or Warrl, and if he
didn't find a way to be more effective in helping Lord Ghrant, he might never
be in a position to help either of them. Yet, without seeing, he could not read
The Basis of Order, and his reflections on what he had recalled seemed to spin
him in circles.
Finally,
when he had not heard from
"I'm
glad you're up and around." Those were the first words from
Hagen,
even before Kharl eased into the chair across the table desk from the
lord-chancellor.
"I still
can't see, but the headaches are gone. What are the rebels doing?"
"Having
their own problems, thankfully. According to the
scouts and various rumors, Lord Hedron doesn't trust Hensolas, and threatened to
withhold supplies and support if Fergyn wasn't given the right of summary
refusal on any of Hensolas's plans. That might gain us another few days."
"How long before the first companies of Casolan's
forces near Val- murl?"
"I
don't know. I sent word to him. I ordered him to take a different route. I left
it up to him as to what route it should be since I cannot be certain that any
choice I made might not be passed to Hensolas or Fergyn." Hagen cleared
his throat. "I also got a messenger from him, and the report that he
crushed a company of rebels under Azeolis. He's very cautious, though. He
didn't pursue, because he had reports that Azeolis had five more
companies."
"That
would make sense to me," Kharl replied. "Lord Ghrant needs those
forces here more than he needs to defeat five companies away from
Valmurl." After a moment of silence, he asked, "Is that not so ... or
is there something I don't know?" He almost had said "don't
see."
"No.
With the disunity among the rebels, Casolan's companies may be enough to stop
their attacks." Hagen laughed ironically. "Now ... if only you could
find a way to remove them from the dockworks and warehouse areas."
"Order
doesn't seem to work that way." Kharl paused before adding, "Not for
most mages, anyway, and the ones who can do more with it haven't shared how
they did."
"I've
heard that," replied
"No."
Kharl didn't explain that was because so much of what he did was through
order-senses, and that the directions would have been meaningless to anyone
without that ability.
"That's
the problem with wizards and mages. They can only be controlled by other mages
or wizards-or by their own beliefs. That bothers lords. They don't like to deal
with powers they can't control."
"That's
why Lord Ghrant prefers to have you deal with me?"
"Of course."
Kharl
waited to see if Hagen would say more.
"Ghrant's
basically honest," the lord-chancellor went on. "Weak about some
things, but honest. Your presence doesn't bother him, except that he'd rather
have me give orders. Vatoran and Guillam, though, you made them uncomfortable
just by being around. Do you feel that way around the white wizards?"
Kharl
frowned. "I can feel them. Don't know as they make me uncomfortable."
He paused and reconsidered his words. "I don't know as I'd be comfortable
around chaos all the time."
"That
makes sense. I'd wager they'd not be comfortable around you, either."
Hagen stood. "I need to go and see Norgen."
After a
moment, Kharl stood, belatedly realizing that the lord- chancellor had many
demands upon him, and Kharl was in no position to help with those
demands-not at the moment, not until he recovered. "I'll try to see if I
can discover some other way to help." He stepped around the chair,
deliberately.
"That
would be useful."
Kharl
appreciated the understatement. Hagen and Lord Ghrant needed something that was
more than merely useful.
After
leaving the lord-chancellor, Kharl walked slowly back up the steps to the upper
level, past his own quarters, and toward the north tower. He took the stone
steps carefully, one at a time. Once he was out in the late-morning air, he
crossed the tower to the east side.
There,
he leaned forward, his forearms on the parapet stones, with the spring sun
warming him and the breeze in his face. For a time, he faced eastward, in the
direction of the city and the harbor he could not see, thinking.
What
could he do? Unbinding order to release chaos was definitely a bad idea-except
as the sort of last resort when he might be killed if he didn't. A chaos-wizard
could spray free chaos everywhere, and it could wound or kill. Doing the same with order
would only strengthen things. It might help people who were ill. As Hagen had
pointed out, order did seem to make people who were chaos-driven uncomfortable,
but Kharl didn't see that as terribly useful in a battle. From what he'd been
able to do so far, his only effective use of order seemed to be to use it to
kill Ghrant's enemies through confinement, and he could only do that to one or
two people at a time. Still... if he removed enough of the rebel lords .. .
He shrugged.
He couldn't do anything until he recovered more.
XVI
By
threeday, Kharl could see-intermittently. His vision came and went
unpredictably. At least, he could not discern the reasons for its presence or
absence, although he had no doubt that his ability to see was affected by some
deeper interrelation between order and chaos. In time, he suspected, he would
understand, and wonder why he had not seen sooner. That seemed to be his lot in
life, to understand, imperfectly and late.
As he
made his way toward the small dining room for a midday meal, in one of his
moments of clear vision, he noticed Commander Norgen leaving
"Commander?"
"Ser mage." Norgen bowed.
"Have
you a moment to join me in eating?" asked Kharl.
"Ah
.. ." Norgen paused. "I cannot take
long."
"You
have not eaten, have you?"
"No.
Sometimes, I end up missing meals here and there."
"That
can't be good. I won't take much of your time, and it won't hurt for you to eat
something."
"I
suppose not." The slender commander's laugh was good-natured.
Once
they entered the larger of the small dining rooms, Norgen led the way to a
corner table. Only one other table was occupied, and that by two men in dark
blue, one with white hair, and the other much younger, perhaps Kharl's age. The
mage recognized neither.
".
.. does not understand that law favors precedent and example ..."
"...
consistency over the wishes of a ruler ..."
Kharl
kept his frown to himself, but even as he did, his sight vanished, and he had to
rely on his order-senses to seat himself.
"Advocates,
magistrates, justicers," said Norgen, "always talking about law. They
think it's the same as justice."
Kharl's
laugh was short and bitter.
"Your
laugh says more than my words," added Norgen.
"Why
are they here?" asked Kharl, not wishing to discuss his past experiences
with justicers, or rather, Lord Justicer Reynol of Nordla.
"They
come to brief Lord Ghrant on the cases they have already decided. Always in
open audiences."
"He's
not in the Hall of Justice?"
"No.
Everyone knows that's not good. They might decide the cases on what Lord Ghrant
wants, or what they think he wants."
Norgen's
reply confused Kharl. "But... if they tell him ... ?"
"Oh . .. there's a procedure for that. Lord Ghrant sits
behind a screen and never speaks. If he has a question, he whispers to the
lord- chancellor or whoever's attending him, and they ask it. His questions are
always about the facts or the law."
That
seemed better than what happened in Nordla, but Kharl still suspected that in
some cases, Lord Ghrant might well be able to get his views across.
"Sers?"
Kharl
turned toward the server's voice.
"We
just have a boar stew today," announced the serving girl.
"I'll
have that with ale," said Norgen.
"The
same," added Kharl. "The pale ale." He liked the lager better
most times, but occasionally had ale.
After
she had left, Norgen cleared his throat.
"I'm
sorry," Kharl said. "At times, I'm still having trouble seeing. It
comes and goes."
"Did
you hit your head? That sometimes .. ."
"No.
What I did on the causeway released too much chaos. I'm pretty much an
order-mage. Handling too much chaos affects how I see for a while."
"I
wondered why we hadn't seen much of you lately."
"Sers
..." The server set the two ales on the table. "I'll be back with the
stew."
"Thank
you," Kharl said. He had to use his order-senses to locate the mug. He
took a swallow, enjoying the coolness.
"You
had something in mind, ser mage?" asked Norgen gently.
"I
did. I don't know how to be subtle. How do the armsmen and lancers feel about
this rebellion?"
As Kharl
took another swallow of the ale, enjoying it, he could see once more. He
blinked.
"You
know, ser mage, that is a dangerous question?"
Norgen lifted his eyebrows, white and bushy, in contrast to his thin and
faded-and wispy- strawberry blond hair.
"Dangerous?
I'm just a cooper and a beginning mage. Why would wanting to know how troops
feel be dangerous?"
Norgen
smiled. "My father always told me to watch the man who began with words
like that. Just a beginning mage? Just a cooper? Hagen said you were one of the
best, and Lyras says you're far more than a beginning mage."
Kharl
laughed. "He also told you to avoid telling people what they don't want to
hear."
"Sometimes." Norgen took a sip of his ale, then tilted his head slightly. "You would understand.
The lord-chancellor might. Lord Ghrant would not." He offered a faint
smile and took another sip of ale.
Kharl
thought he understood. "The armsmen don't see why all this is necessary.
In the end, whoever rules, their situation will be the same. They might stand a
better chance of getting paid by Lord Ghrant, but they also might think they stand
a greater chance of getting killed. Is that it?"
"Close
enough. Most armsmen serve because they've little choice in life. True of many
of the officers, too. Lands go to the eldest, and that leaves being a guard
officer or going into trade. Sons of lords have this worry about trade. It's
... unbecoming. Me ... never saw how honestly making or selling something of
use to others was unbecoming. But I'm better with a mount and blade than with
figures or crafting." Norgen broke off as the serving girl, painfully
thin, returned with two large bowls and a basket heaped with dark bread still
warm from the ovens.
As Kharl
watched her approach, he saw that the two justicers, or magistrates or whatever
they had been, had left the small dining room.
"Here
you are, sers. Would you like more ale?"
Kharl
realized his mug was almost empty. He hadn't been aware of drinking so much,
good as the ale had tasted. "Yes, please."
"I've
enough, thank you," added Norgen.
Once she
departed, Kharl cleared his throat. "You were saying about officers
..."
"I
was." Norgen waited again.
"All
but the most senior feel like their armsmen? That rebellion is meaningless to
them, and they'd prefer to survive it with the fewest casualties?"
"Many
feel that way, or so it's said. Why are you so interested in that, ser
mage?"
"I'm
trying to think of a way to end the rebellion that won't blind me for life and
won't kill thousands of armsmen and their officers."
"You
do that, and you'd have many happy troops. Happier officers." Norgen
snorted. "That'd be true magery." He took a mouthful of stew. After
eating for a time, he added, "Not bad. Glad you dragged me in here."
Kharl
was, too. The stew, if slightly too peppery, was hot and filling, and he could
use the nourishment. He also had a feeling, or part of one ... about what he
could do ... if he could just figure out how to present it to Hagen. "It
seemed the thing to do. I don't know much about armsmen and lancers. I know
more about trade and barrels, and even sailing."
"At
times, I wish I did."
"You
didn't want to be a lancer?"
"It
was the best choice open to me. My father was a cabinetmaker. After I'd ruined
too many pieces, he suggested that I might be better as a Tenderer's apprentice,
because no one cared what anything looked like once it got to the renderer. If
I didn't like that, he said, then being an arms-man or lancer would be a good
second choice." Norgen took another mouthful of stew.
"He
must have had quite a tongue."
"He
did. He was always too quick for me. So was my brother. Figured it was better
for me to listen to orders and have a blade do the talking."
"Are
you from Valmurl?"
"No.
I grew up in Nasloch. About a hundred kays south of Bruel, along the west coast.
My brother's still there, still making cabinets."
"Do
you ever go back?"
"No.
My consort's from Valmurl. Her family thinks what I do is honorable. Mine
doesn't."
Kharl
nodded.
"That
nod says more than words." Norgen stood. "I need to be getting
back." A faint smile appeared on his narrow face. "Anything you can
do will be better than what's going to happen otherwise. Good day, ser
mage."
Kharl
sat for a time at the circular table, sipping the last of his ale.
XVII
Early on
fourday, after his breakfast, Kharl walked to the study
A
quarter glass passed without
After a time, one of the guards-an older man-spoke. "They say the rebels have some
wizards."
"They
do. From what I know, they still have two left."
"Ah
... are they pretty good, ser?"
Kharl
caught the unspoken question behind the one asked. "They're white wizards.
Black and white are different. White is better for attacking. Black is usually
better at defending."
"You
think that's why they haven't attacked the Great House? Except that one
time?"
"It
might be. I wouldn't wish to guess," Kharl said with a laugh. "That's
something the lord-chancellor and Commander Norgen would know better than I
would."
The
guard closed his mouth as
Kharl
waited until the lord-chancellor was within a few cubits. "Good morning,
ser."
"Good
morning, ser mage. I take it that you're better?"
"So
it would seem. I would like a few moments if you can spare them."
"For
you, I can always spare a few moments. This morning, those moments may have to
be fewer, unfortunately."
The mage
closed it after he followed
"I
am glad to see that you are recovered." Hagen settled into chair behind
the table desk.
"So
am I."
"What
did you have in mind? You're not one for idle talk," Hagen observed.
"Who
are the best leaders left among the rebel lords?"
"Hensolas
is probably better at tactics and strategy, but Fergyn is better at inspiring
officers and troops."
"Do
you have pictures or likenesses of them?"
"Ser
Kharl..." Hagen's voice was even, almost flat.
"I've
thought about this, lord-chancellor. I've thought about it a great deal. I am
not that great a help against large forces." Kharl offered a wry chuckle.
"In fact, I've proved to be as great a danger to myself as to them. But
there is another way... If the wizards and the rebel leaders cannot survive,
neither can the revolt."
"What
you're suggesting is a great risk for Lord Ghrant, and
a greater risk for you."
Kharl
snorted. "Anything else is a greater risk. I know what I can do, and I
know what I cannot. When Ilteron was threatening Lord Ghrant, you told me that
if he did not win quickly, then he would lose support throughout Austra. Is not
that the situation Lord Ghrant now faces?"
"It's
possible,"
"If
this revolt is put down without the lives of many more armsmen being taken, whom will that benefit?"
"You
are sounding more like an advocate than a mage," replied
Kharl
forced a laugh. "You murdered a hundred armsmen with cannon on the
causeway. I have murdered a score or more through order-magery. What is the
difference between one death and another?"
"Lords
.. . are not treated that way."
"Oh?
Then it is good-or acceptable-to kill mere armsmen, who have no choice and who
never had much of a say in matters, but it is wrong to kill the leaders who
created the problem and have already sent hundreds to their deaths?"
"Will
the armsmen serving the rebels be more likely to be
supportive of a ruler who butchers them and their mates or one who removes
their leaders and demands their allegiance?" Kharl snorted. "More to
the point... how long will it take to subdue this rebellion by force of arms?
Can it be done?"
"Can
what you propose be done?" countered
"Who
knows? But I cannot do more to slaughter large numbers of armsmen. So what do
you and Lord Ghrant have to lose by letting me try?"
"We
could lose you."
"I
would personally dislike that a great deal, but if I cannot be useful to you
and Lord Ghrant, I do not see a great loss for either of you."
"Just...
for the purpose of discussion ... how would you propose this... effort?"
Kharl
laughed. "In the reverse of what is normally done, from what I have
seen."
Hagen's
brow furrowed.
"Most
times, it seems to me, a mage or a wizard is used to position the enemy's
forces in such a fashion that it allows action by regular lancers and armsmen.
On the causeway, I created chaos with the purpose of moving the armsmen into
range of your cannon. I propose that you use your forces to decoy Hensolas or
Fergyn or their wizards into positions where they are easier for me to
reach."
"And
... if you fail?"
"You
withdraw. Is that not done? You tell no one why the companies are where they
are, not even Norgen or Casolan, when he arrives."
"You
are suggesting a novel approach, ser Kharl."
"I'm
suggesting the only approach I can think of that might work."
"You're
suggesting assassinating lords."
"And
mages. Why not?"
"What
if they return the favor?"
"I'll
have to go for the wizards first, won't I? That would be better, anyway."
"Perhaps
we could discuss the matter of lords after your success with the wizards."
Kharl
leaned back in the chair and looked at
"Every
action creates the need for another action,"
Kharl
waited.
"I
don't have a problem with your taking on the white wizards. First, they're
nothing more than Hamorian spies and tools. Second, any conflicts between them and
you will be regarded as battles between equals. Not even Ghrant's worst
detractors will gainsay your acts against the wizards, but against lords
..." Hagen shook his head. "Austra will end up in fragments
again."
Kharl
had his doubts-strong doubts-but then,
"I'll
see what I can do about the white wizards."
The
lord-chancellor wasn't quite saying no, and he could well be right, Kharl
reflected, as he stood. "I'll be here."
XVIII
Darely
after dawn on sixday, Kharl rode yet another borrowed mount through the damp
air of the late-spring morning. This time, the mage wore the green and black of
the regular Austran lancers. Given the cloudless day and the stillness of the
air, the coolness would doubtless turn into a warm and slightly uncomfortable
noon, and a sticky and sultry afternoon. For the moment, Kharl appreciated the
cool stillness as he rode beside Undercap-tain Demyst. The soreness in his ribs
had subsided enough that he was reminded of their tenderness only when he moved
suddenly-or lurched in the saddle.
The
afternoon before, Kharl and three companies tinder the command of Majer Ghenal
had moved to the northeast of the Great House, settling into the estate of one
Buvert, a sympathizer of the late Lord Malcor. Buvert's consort had fled, along
with the staff and children. Once there, the three companies had begun visible
preparations for an attack upon the dockyards, still held by forces commanded by
Lord Fergyn. Hagen had told Majer Ghenal that the majer was not to attack under
any circumstances, that the maneuver was designed to make sure that Fergyn and
Hensolas did not unite their forces-not until Casolan arrived with
reinforcements, at least.
Kharl
and Undercaptain Demyst's two squads were riding due east, conducting a
reconnaissance in force. Those were the orders that Hagen had given the
undercaptain, along with the observation that, as necessary, Kharl might
undertake his own reconnaissance efforts independently at any time.
The
hoofs of the two squads created a muted thunderlike sound as they struck the
heavy planks set in clay that formed the hard surface of the Cross-Stream Pike.
"Are
there many roads like this?" asked Kharl. He'd heard of timbered pikes,
but never run across one.
"This
used to be a true pike, maybe a hundred years back, and the only way to get to
the part of Valmurl north of the dockworks in times of rain." Demyst
laughed. "Story is that the shamblers burned Lord Lysaran's stables one
night, and the barns an eightday later in protest of the fees. Lord Esthaven
stripped Lysaran of his lands and gave him an eightday to leave Austra. Said
that anyone who couldn't control rabble didn't deserve lands."
"A hard
lord, it sounds like. Wasn't Esthaven the one who built the harbor
causeway?"
"He
was hard, but he did much for Austra. He united east and west..."
"I
thought that was Isthel-"
Demyst
shook his head. "Isthel was his grandsire. Isthel conquered the west, but
Esthaven was the one who united Austra. He gave the new western lords the same
privileges as those in the east and abolished the special tariffs laid on the
west. He even set up schools in Bruel and along the west coast."
Kharl
wondered if he'd ever understand Austra. But then, he hadn't really understood
Nordla, and he'd been born and raised in Brysta.
"There!
One of their scouts."
Kharl
glanced ahead, toward the southeast, following the undercap- tain's gesture. A
rider in green and black, wearing the blue sash of the rebel forces, galloped
southward along a narrow lane that ran between two ragged hedgerows for half a
kay, before the ancient hedgerows ended at a welter of ramshackle wooden
structures. A handful of people in the middle of the lane scattered just before
the lancer bore down on them.
"That's
Tinkertown," offered the undercaptain. "All the peddlers and tinkers,
and the men who offer their backs for a day's work at the dockyards-most of 'em
come from there."
"And
the land used to belong to Lord Lysaran?" Kharl's tone was dry.
"So
they say." After a moment, Demyst added, "Scout's riding hard. He'll
be turning at the crossroads there, come back onto the pike, and make for the
northern corner of the dockworks."
Reportedly,
Lord Fergyn had made one of the old factor's warehouses, one with living
quarters above and behind it, into his temporary headquarters.
"You
think they'll move against us today?" asked Kharl.
"I
don't see how. That's the only scout we've seen. They weren't expecting us to
move before Commander Casolan reached Valmurl."
"We
might as well keep riding and see how close we can get."
"Not
too close to their wizards, if you please, ser
Kharl."
That was
exactly what Kharl wanted-or at least to discover where they were-but he
couldn't admit that. So he nodded, and said, "We don't want to lose any
men to wizardry."
"No, ser."
At the
moment, Kharl was using no active order-magery at all. From what he had
observed so far, the white mages had trouble pinpointing order-users unless the
black mages were actively engaged in some sort of magery. Certainly, it was far
harder for Kharl to determine the exact location of a white wizard if the
wizard wasn't using chaos. Given the distances involved, Kharl had decided that
he would continue on horseback toward the dockworks. He had a bright blue sash
tucked inside his tunic. Once he separated from Demyst and the two squads, he
hoped that the uniform and the sash would suffice as a disguise until he got
close enough to need to use his sight shield. He'd tried the shield with the mount
before leaving Buvert's estate. The gelding hadn't bucked or tried to throw
Kharl, but he had come to a stop, and Kharl had only been able to coax him
along at a slow walk. Kharl thought that, if necessary, he could dismount and
lead the gelding. He'd seen horses blindfolded and led, but he didn't want to
have to walk too far. Not after his last use of magery in rebel-held territory.
As he
rode, Kharl took in the land around him, looking for lanes leading off the pike
to the south that might curve eastward or intersect other smaller roads or
lanes. He didn't recall taking the pike when he had sought out Lyras, and that
meant that there were other ways to the dockworks than the route they were
taking.
He was
also trying to sense where the white wizards were. He'd felt nothing
immediately after leaving Buvert's estate, but as they left Tinker-town behind
and neared the outskirts of Valmurl, he could sense two separate areas of
chaos-presumably the two white wizards. One was less than two kays from where
he rode, closer to the dockworks. The other-and stronger-influence was
somewhere to the south of Valmurl. To Kharl, that meant that the stronger white
wizard was with Lord Hensolas, and the weaker with Fergyn's forces.
Ahead of
them, the pike began to descend slightly into a lower meadow area between two
stone walls. The grass showed the lighter green of spring. At the crest of a
gentle rise some sixty rods farther along the pike to the southeast, scarcely
more than half a kay away, a low wall of greenery lay across the road.
"They've
blocked the pike," said Demyst. "Felled firs or something and dragged
them into place."
Kharl
studied the makeshift barrier, catching sight of men behind the ragged green
barrier. "They've got armsmen there."
"We
need to pull up. If they have cannon and rifles, we'll be too exposed on the
downslope ahead." Demyst turned in the saddle, raising his right arm.
"Squads halt! To the rear, ride!"
As they
turned back the way they had come, Kharl studied the area to the south of the
pike even more closely. Ahead, he saw a narrow way, wider than a path, but
barely a lane, that bordered an ill-tended pearapple orchard.
"It's
time for me to head off," Kharl said. "I need to look into this more
closely. Can you have a squad stand by for me, starting in two glasses?"
"Ah
... ser ... where did you have in mind?"
"Nowhere
close to the rebel forces. What about where the lane from Tinkertown leaves the
pike?"
Demyst
nodded. "That'd not be a problem, not unless they attack, and I don't see
that happening."
"If
they do, I'm on my own."
"You
say two glasses, ser?"
"Probably
be closer to three," Kharl admitted.
"We'll
be there, ser."
With a
nod to Demyst, Kharl turned his mount off the pike and onto the lane that led
past the pearapple orchard. He did not hear a word from the lancers, even using
his order-senses. Once he was well away from the lancers, he extracted the blue
sash from his tunic and smoothed it in place across his chest. As he neared the
southern end of the orchard, he saw a cot and a small barn to his right. A
woman with a babe in her arms turned, then rushed back to the cot.
The door
closed with a muffled thud.
Beyond
the orchard were fields, recently tilled. Kharl could not see anything
sprouting yet, and he had no idea what crops the smallholders might grow. The
sun continued to beat down, and the black-and-green-wool uniform was far warmer
than Kharl had expected. He blotted the dampness from his forehead and kept
riding.
He rode
south almost a kay, watching as holders and their consorts and children either
fled or watched him pass stolidly. With each rod he rode, the huts and cots
were closer and closer together, until they stood almost as close together as
in Valmurl itself, with barely space for small gardens between each dwelling.
At the first wider way, one rutted with the tracks of carts and wagons, he
turned eastward. Ahead, he could see the taller warehouses and the cranes of
the dock area. Only a few people were out and about, and they stayed well clear
of the road.
Another
rider, also in uniform and with a blue sash, rode toward Kharl. As he neared
the mage, the younger lancer called out to Kharl, "Careful when you get to
the square. Old ironbritches 'bout to bust a gut."
"Thanks.
Need to watch out to the north. There's a road patrol farther out on the
pike."
"Thanks to you."
With a
nod, Kharl passed the lancer, letting his order-senses track the man until they
were several rods apart, but the man never looked back.
The
nearer Kharl rode to the docking area, the quieter and emptier the streets became. A good three blocks short
of the square to the north of the dockworks proper, Kharl turned his mount
southward along a side street, one lined with modest dwellings. Most were
shuttered and locked. A prudent precaution, the mage reflected.
As he
rode he used his order-senses to gather in impressions of chaos. A well of
whiteness was centered almost due east of where he rode, and at the next
corner, he turned his mount back eastward, toward the square and the northern
end of the harbor-the part holding the shipworks and dry docks and the majority
of the factors' warehouses. That was where he and the crew of the Seastag had
refitted the ship some two seasons before. Had it only been two seasons?
He could
see lancers in green and black, with the blue sashes, riding back and forth, as
if on a post set across the southern side of the square. Glancing ahead, Kharl
looked for a place to tie his mount. He settled on a hitching rail outside a
felter's shop because the shop was shuttered and seemed empty. There he
dismounted and began to walk toward the square.
He was
now somewhat west and south of the center of the whitish fount of chaos, which
he felt was less than a block to the north of where he was. At the corner of
the square, where one of the other lancers glanced in his direction, Kharl
turned and nodded northward, half-shrugging.
A wry
expression crossed the sentry's face. "Good luck."
"Need
it," Kharl replied, and kept walking, past a row of three shops, a wool factor's, a leather factor's, and a small brassworks.
Ahead of
him to his left was a three-story building-its bricks painted a faded light
green. The sign hung over the large double doors read OSSAFAL AND SONS,
FACTORS, and the letters were a faded dark green. Two armsmen stood before the
doors.
Kharl
did not wish to use any active order-skills until he was far closer to the
white wizard. Before reaching the southern end of the building, as he passed
the brassworks, Kharl turned left and down the narrow lane between the
brassworks and larger factor's structure. The loading dock to the brassworks
was closed, and there was no doorway on the south side of the green-brick
building-the structure within which was one of the white wizards.
At the
end of the side lane on the north side was an enclosed yard, with a gate. The
lock on the gate had already been broken. Kharl paused, letting his
order-senses receive a feeling for the rear yard. It was empty, except for three mounts tethered to a beam
protruding from a sagging dock that had not been used in years. The former
loading dock door had been boarded shut, leaving just a smaller door to one
side.
The
steps up to the smaller door creaked as Kharl took them. He did not sense
anyone just inside the building. Still, he opened the door and paused before
stepping inside. Beyond the door was an oblong room half- filled with pallets
on which bales had been roped, amphorae, crates, and a number of boxes clearly
wrenched open. Scuff marks in the dust on the scarred wooded floors showed
where pallets had been recently moved.
An armsman
straightened up from where he'd been rummaging through one of the boxes. He
frowned.
"Message
for the wizard," Kharl offered, ready to clamp shields around the other at
the slightest sign of alarm.
"His mightiness the white wizard, the almighty Alborak?"
"Guess
he's the one."
"Take
the stairs in front." There was a pause. "Why'd you come in
back?"
"They
said I could tie my mount out back," Kharl explained, hoping the other did
not check immediately.
"Figures."
Kharl walked
toward the only door he saw, still holding himself ready to use the shields if
he needed to. Nothing happened, and he stepped into another corridor, even more
dimly lit. The staircase was to his left.
While
there were no guards on the lower level, a single armsman stood at the top of
the steps. He had not seen Kharl, or not looked in the mage's direction.
Kharl
formed a sight shield, hoping that Alborak would not notice, and began to climb
the steps, quietly, slowly, one at a time. As he climbed, he could hear voices
from above him. He tried to listen as he moved.
"...
you didn't even know he was there?"
"He
was only a cooper," said a second voice, hard and conveying arrogance.
"How can he possibly know that much about order, let alone chaos?"
"I'm
but an undercaptain, ser wizard," came the reply, "but Captain Fegaro said that there was chaos-fire
everywhere on that causeway, and he's seen most everything in his years."
Kharl
moved up several more steps. He had the feeling that he would be able to get
close enough to the white wizard without going all the way to the top of the
ancient stairs.
"It
had to be cannon fire, like in the harbor. Order-mages cannot handle
chaos."
"He
said it was chaos."
Kharl
took two more steps.
"He's
not a wizard or a mage. How would he know?"
"Ser
... you'd have to ask him."
"There's
something strange-"
Kharl
hardened the air around the young wizard before he could say more.
Hssst! White
fire appeared from nowhere, as if it had formed in the air less than three
cubits from Kharl, and flashed downward toward him.
His
shields barely deflected the chaos-bolt, and he took a hard step sideways on
the staircase.
"Chaos-fire!"
called the guard.
"There's
a mage somewhere! Look for him!" called the undercaptain.
Another
blast of chaos flared toward Kharl, if slightly weaker than the first.
Kharl
struggled to maintain his barrier around the white wizard and to maintain the
sight shield. He could sense the sentry moving to the top of the stairs, less
than two cubits from where Kharl stood, and looking down.
"There's
no one here, ser! Just chaos-fire everywhere!"
"There's
a mage somewhere! There has to be!"
"I
don't see no one, ser!"
A third
blast of chaos-fire rocked Kharl, one hurled with a desperation
that
Kharl could feel, but his defenses held. f
"Has to be somewhere!"
Leaning
in darkness against the side of the staircase, Kharl kept his shields in place.
He could smell something burning farther down the staircase.
"The
stairs are catching fire, ser!" called the guard.
More
chaos, this time more diffuse and less focused, splashed around Kharl. He could
also feel heat from the wall behind him, and he edged forward. He knew he
couldn't retreat yet. He was close to the limit at which he could hold the
hardened air barrier around Alborak, and if he loosened that barrier, the white
wizard would escape. That would make any later efforts much, much harder, if
not impossible.
"Find
the wizard!"
"But...
ser ... there's no one here!"
A grim
smile crossed Kharl's lips, one erased by the effort of holding his shields as
another desperate blast of chaos flared around him.
Two more
weaker blasts followed.
The sound
of crackling flames began to rise, and Kharl struggled not to cough as smoke
filled the staircase.
"Ser
... we got to get out of here!" called the armsman at the top of the
staircase.
Abruptly,
the reddish white void of death washed over Kharl. He almost sagged as he
released the hardened air barrier that had killed Alborak. Flames licked at him
and the old and dry wood as he staggered down to the bottom of the steps and
toward the front double doors.
He
scrambled forward and let his sight shield drop just as he pushed open the
right-hand door. "Fire! Fire! Stairs are on fire!"
The two
guards standing beyond the archway just looked at him.
"Can't
you smell it? See the flames? Get a bucket brigade ... or something .. . whole
place'll burn." A well of heat rushed out from behind Kharl.
The
guard who had been at the top of the stairs charged out, beating out small
patches of flame on his uniform. "Call the fire brigade!"
"We
... we're ..." stammered one of the guards.
"I'll
do it." Kharl dashed past them, heading south. "Fire in headquarters!
Fire in the building!"
Others
took up the cry.
Once he
was past the woolen factor's, Kharl raised his sight
shield for a short time, just long enough to get around the corner and closer
to his mount. The gelding had remained where he tied it, doubtless only because
he had only been gone for a short time and possibly because the locals feared
that it had belonged to the rebels and that taking it would have led to great
reprisals.
Kharl dropped
the sight shield, mounted, and rode away at a fast trot, a pace he judged
likely enough for a messenger or a scout. He tried not to bounce in the saddle.
As he
made his way north and west, watching for rebel lancers, and for pursuit, he
couldn't help thinking about the young white wizard he'd killed. The young man
hadn't had a chance, not really. He hadn't known what had struck him, not until
it was effectively too late.
Yet what
else could Kharl do? He didn't know any method to capture a white wizard, or to
hold one once captured, and he couldn't just let the man continue to use chaos
to kill Lord Ghrant's and Hagen's lancers and armsmen. And Kharl didn't have
any other weapons that would be effective. A staff was useless in close
quarters, and, besides, neither a staff nor a cudgel could stand up against
chaos-fire.
He
glanced over his shoulder. A column of thick gray smoke rose from the dockworks
area. Kharl could only hcpe that the fire did not spread beyond the one
building, but how could he have predicted that Alborak's chaos-bolts would turn
the old factoring building into an inferno?
Kharl
shook his head. Chaos-fire was hotter than fire in a hearth or a stove, perhaps
as hot as a forge. With that much of it being flung around an old building,
fire was highly likely-but that was a chance he'd had to take.
He kept
riding, and looking back over his shoulder. The column of smoke had gotten
larger, but not markedly so. He could only hope the damage was limited, but he
kept glancing back.
In time,
he returned to the Cross-Stream Pike, where he removed the blue sash and tucked
it back into his tunic.
Undercaptain
Demyst was waiting-with both squads-at the rendezvous point.
Kharl
reined up. "Thank you."
"Our pleasure, ser mage." Demyst frowned slightly. "Your face
is a shade red, ser Kharl." He glanced eastward toward the column of
grayish smoke that still rose over the north harbor area.
"Matters
were somewhat hotter where I was," Kharl replied, slowly easing his mount
beside that of the undercaptain. "Did you see any rebel forces?"
"Not
except for the ones at that barrier. We saw one messenger. He saw us and turned
due south."
"I
think I saw him, too," Kharl said. "We can head back to Buvert's
estate."
The
undercaptain nodded, then gestured. The two squads fell in behind the mage and
the undercaptain.
Kharl
forced himself not to look back toward the fire. He regretted so much
destruction, but what else could he have done?
XIX
After he
had returned to Buvert's estate and taken care of the mount, Kharl made his way
to the kitchen in the main house. His legs were shaky. His eyes blurred, and
his ribs had begun to ache again. All were signs that he needed to eat. A
servingwoman from the Great House, wearing Ghrant's livery, suggested that he
seat himself at the dining table to be served.
Kharl
walked into the dining room, where the only other person was the
lord-chancellor.
"Good
afternoon, Kharl."
"The same to you, lord-chancellor." Kharl sank into the chair across the
dining room table from
"You
look tired,"
"You
don't," Kharl replied.
"It
is helpful to leave the Great House occasionally. How did your reconnaissance
go?"
"It
was successful. Fergyn no longer has a white mage at the dockyards. I killed
him. That leaves the stronger one in the south with Henso-las." Kharl's
voice was flat. "In the fight, the mage-Alborak was his name-his
chaos-fire turned the factor's place into flames. I hope they were able to
limit the fire to that one building, but there was a lot of smoke."
The door
behind Kharl opened, and the servingwoman appeared with two crystal beakers of
dark ale that she set quickly before the men, then
departed.
"I
had reports of fire,"
"Do
you think that will help?" Kharl did not ask whether Lord Ghrant had
decided to be easier on the street children than his sire had been. He took a
long swallow of the ale.
"It
will help, perhaps more than winning another skirmish with the rebels."
"You
don't think they'll attack?"
"No.
They want us to attack."
"Then
I'd better head south and find the other white wizard. I heard his name once,
but I can't remember it."
"You
don't sound so confident as you did when you proposed
this. Do you wish to continue?" Hagen raised his eyebrows.
"I'm
confident enough." Kharl's throat was dry, and he took another swallow of
the ale before continuing. "It almost seems ... I don't know. I was going
to say that it was pointless, but it's not. If I do what I do carefully and
well.. . I'll probably be successful, and fewer people will die. I don't like
doing it, but I still don't see any other way of dealing with the rebels. Or
the white wizards. Or Hamor." Kharl took a deep breath. "Do
you?"
"That
is often the way of ruling. What is carefully planned and distasteful is often
the most effective strategy. It is effective because it is distasteful, and
because it is distasteful others do not consider the possibility."
"It
doesn't make sense." Kharl held the beaker, but let it rest on the wide
wooden coaster. "Everyone seems to think that battles are glorious-"
"No.
A handful of popinjays think so. The wise commanders see them as necessary, and
the experienced troops accept them, but as a last resort. Only the minstrels
and poets who have not seen the blood and the broken bodies glorify battle.
There is little glorious about battle." Hagen snorted. "The only
virtue a battle has is when it puts an end to more battles that otherwise might
have to be fought."
"After
all this ... if they lose their wizards and their leadership, you think the
rebel lords will just surrender ... or flee?"
"They're
unlikely to surrender. They might flee."
"Have
you told Lord Ghrant? About our plans?"
"There's
no need to do so, not until the wizards are no longer a problem."
"You're
still worried about my using magery on Hensolas and Fergyn?"
"I
can hope that they will see the writing in the flames they have created."
"If they don't?"
"We'll
face that problem when the time comes."
Kharl
could sense that
"The
ones used by Hamor? No. The fewer of them, the better for the rest of the
world."
Although
the
"But
you worry that Fergyn and Hensolas won't flee? That they'll keep
fighting?"
"After
what happened with Guillam and Malcor and Kenslan... wouldn't you be
worried?" countered
"I
would." Kharl had to admit that he could see Hagen's concerns. But if
removing the white wizards and the two lords leading the rebels did not suffice
to break the revolt, what would it take? Turning half of Austra into ashes and
graves?
"When
one deals with passion, ser mage,"
Kharl
looked down at the half-empty crystal beaker.
"I
would not see reason blinded by anger,"
"Then
we will see ..." Those words echoed in Kharl's ears long after he had
eaten and left the dining room to walk alone through the gardens at the rear of
the estate. To the east, the smoke from the dockyards area had subsided, but a
haze lay over Valmurl, and the sun shone with a tinge of red in its rays.
XX
On
sevenday, wearing the blacks of an order-mage, Kharl had ridden back to the
Great House, accompanying the lancers who had been used as the cover for his
attack on Alborak. Hagen had left earlier, late on sixday, without telling
Kharl.
Kharl
had worried about
When he
had been just a cooper, perhaps the best in Brysta, but only a cooper, people
had talked to him. They had been his superiors or his equals or his inferiors,
but no one had hesitated to say what they had thought. Even his sons and Charee
had spoken. Now ...
For a time,
the mage who had been a cooper had paced back and forth in his quarters. Then,
he opened The Basis of Order and paged through the volume, not exactly certain
what he might be looking for, but letting his eyes flow over the words. Before
long, a passage stopped him, and he reread it deliberately and slowly.
Magery
is no different from any other craft. Each action must .
be
constructed with care, and all the components must be finely ,'
finished
before being assembled into the final form ...
"Magery
is no different," murmured Kharl.
Was that
another of his problems? That he had not approached magery as a craft, as he
did coopering, where the staves had to be shaped and fitted perfectly, the
chimes trimmed exactly, the hoops fitted precisely? No ... that was not it
exactly. He had tried to do anything involving order and chaos as precisely and
as perfectly as he knew how, but he had not seen the pieces, the separate acts, as a part of a
whole. Just as a stave was but one part of the barrel, so was one use of magery
just a part of the whole framework of order. And he had seen sight shields as
separate from hardening air. While the acts were separate, each affected the
other.
More
important, each act of magery affected the world around him, in ways that he
still had great trouble foreseeing. He had had no idea that his public
revelation of Guillam's falseness would immediately set off a revolution. While
Kharl had occasionally stretched the truth, or embroidered it, he'd steered
away from out-and-out falsehoods his entire life. That had not been because he
was that good a person, he felt, but because lying about his craft and what his
barrels could and could not do would create more harm than being truthful, even
if his honesty and accuracy had occasionally cost him a sale.
Now, he
was dealing with rulers and politics, where deception seemed to be accepted,
and where so often truth was to be avoided at all costs. Why was that?
Kharl
had shied away from that question before, not even wanting to think about it,
but his most recent experiences made it clear that it was not a question he
could avoid facing. Not any longer. There had to be a reason why truth was
avoided.
He
paused. Maybe the word itself was the problem, as the one passage in The Basis
of Order had suggested.
He shook
his head. That might be part of the problem, because what people saw as
"truth" varied from individual to individual, but that
self-righteousness associated with the word truth also did not explain why
lords and rulers said things that were not factually so. Did those who had
power come to believe that what they wished to be was already so? Or did they
tell lies because they could?
Or was
it simply the fact that even a powerful ruler could not make everything work out
as everyone wanted, and lies were easier for people to accept than words that
were accurate and painful?
Did that
mean that, in effect, telling the "truth" created chaos?
Kharl
closed the book slowly, turning and looking out the window, out at the darkening
clouds rolling in from the west toward Valmurl.
What did
"truth" have to do with order? Or power? Or magery?
Kharl
already knew that lying made him uncomfortable and probably reduced his power
as a mage. Yet those in power, either in Nordla or Aus-fra, used lies to
bolster their power. Those in Reduce did not seem to use lies, but all of Hamor was based on chaos
and deception, from what he had seen in Swartheld, at least. Were lies a
manifestation of chaos? A form of disorder?
That would
grant liars and their lies a measure of power.
What of
honesty and truth? Or perhaps accuracy and lack of falsehood were better terms.
In what aspect of order did their power lie?
Abruptly,
Kharl smiled broadly. In its own way, order created chaos. His acts with
Guillam had proved that. Order could disrupt chaos. He just had not recognized
what had happened.
His
smile faded. That belated realization did not solve his problems in dealing
with the white wizards-and the rebel lords.
His eyes
went to the windows and the oncoming storm. Storms, really, for there would be
many.
XXI
On
eightday, Kharl was in his quarters, seated in the more comfortable armchair,
his back to the window, once more studying The Basis of Order, and thinking
about possible strategies for dealing with the remaining- and
stronger-chaos-mage with the rebel forces. He would have preferred to spend the
time up on the north tower, but the previous day's clouds had brought a cold
and steady spring rain that settled in and showed no sign of soon clearing.
From
what he could tell through his order-senses, the remaining white mage was still
somewhere to the south of Valmurl, but not too far from the city. Kharl had
noticed that the sense of chaos was less when it rained, and he had paged
through the pages of The Basis of Order, seeking an explanation. The first
section dealing with rain was not what he recalled:
Water is
chaos bound in two levels of order. Thus, an ocean or , ・ a lake conveys order, as does rain, and
will provide a barrier . against lesser chaos, but not against greater
...
Like
everything in the book, or so it seemed, the words twisted upon themselves. Several pages farther
along, he found the words he half remembered.
Chaos
fares best upon the dry land, and least in a steady rain or snowfall... Even a
fog will affect a chaos-wielder, but only those who are of the weaker sort. A
steady rain is a patterned fall of ordered chaos. A raindrop is ordered, and
the fall of each is unpat-terned, chaotic, yet all raindrops falling together
results in a pattern ordered by chaos, and that order can weaken or destroy
many of the links of power created by those who wield chaos ...
He
couldn't exactly call up rain, or expect the white wizards to attack during a
storm.
There
was a tentative rap on the door. "Ser Kharl?"
"Yes?"
Kharl extended his order-senses, as much for practice as anything, but also to
assure himself that the figure beyond the door was not another would-be
assassin. While Kharl had a sturdy oak bar on the inside of his door, added
after the earlier trouble, he no longer had guards stationed outside-at his own
request.
The
figure on the far side of the door was alone-and young-and replied quickly,
"The lord-chancellor would like to see you, ser."
Kharl
rose. "Now?"
"At your soonest convenience, ser."
"I'll
be right with you." Kharl laid aside the book, still as frustrating as
enlightening, and straightened his jacket before going to the door and opening
it.
The
young armsman in yellow and black was scarcely older than the boys used as
messengers in the Great House and a good head shorter than Kharl. He stepped
back, involuntarily, as Kharl left the quarters. "Ser ..."
"Lead
the way," Kharl said, with a cheeriness he did not quite feel.
"Yes, ser." The young man turned and headed down the
corridor toward the staircase.
Kharl
followed, absently noting the damp chill that permeated the hallway and
wondering what else had gone wrong for
Even
before Kharl reached the door to the lord-chancellor's study, one ー f the two guards stationed there stepped
forward and opened the door.
After
glancing at Hagen, alone in the chamber and seated behind the table desk, Kharl
entered and closed the door behind him.
"Please
be seated, Kharl." Hagen's voice was gentle.
"You
look worried, ser."
"I
am." Hagen took a sip from the goblet on the table desk. "This rain .
.. my throat is raw. The healer says this should help."
"What
is it?"
"Honeyed
brandy with chaos knows what else in it."
Kharl let
his senses range over both the lord-chancellor and the potion, but he could
feel only the faintest hint of whiteness in the older man's throat. The liquid
in the goblet held no chaos at all. "It may be irritating, ser, but it is
only a small rawness. The potion should help."
"You
sound like Istya." Hagen took another sip. "I was about to tell you.
The rain has slowed Casolan, but his first companies will be here on threeday.
The bulk of his forces should arrive by the end of this eightday."
"That's
good, isn't it?"
"Hensolas
is already moving his forces west to intercept Casolan. In this rain, there are
only two safe ways for Casolan to reach Valmurl. I worry about the white
wizard. If he stays near Valmurl, either you or some of Norgen's forces need to
remain here, but if you do, and the white wizard accompanies Hensolas ..."
"Then
should I not go south so that I can move to shadow the wizard, whatever he
does?"
"If
only there were two of you ..." murmured the lord-chancellor. '
"Did
something else happen?"
"I
just got word. One of Norgen's squads, one he uses for scouting, disappeared.
This happened while you were dealing with the one wizard. That squad was
checking the dam on the Southwest Branch and the Lord's Millrace. We'd heard
that Hensolas had sent sappers to start undermining the dam. If it went, all
the mills would be without power."
Kharl
nodded, not really understanding.
"Kharl...
a quarter of what golds flow into Valmurl from trade come from the cloth woven
in those mills. The mills are powered by the water- wheels on the Lord's
Millrace." Hagen's voice was even, but Kharl recognized the strain behind
the forced patience.
This
time, Kharl's nod conveyed comprehension. "It was a diversion?"
"Exactly. That chaos-spawned wizard flamed down
almost the entire squad." A grim smile preceded Hagen's next words.
"Lord Ghrant has suggested that anything you can do to remove the white
wizards would be appreciated."
Kharl
felt vaguely uncomfortable at first, then angry. Less than half an eightday
before, he had practically had to force Hagen to accept his ideas about dealing
with the wizards. Now, he felt as though he were being blamed indirectly for
not having done enough soon enough. He almost spoke, then swallowed, forcing
himself to take a slow deep breath. After a moment, he spoke quietly. "I
would be happy to do what I can, ser, as I suggested earlier."
"You
did." Hagen paused and took another sip from the goblet. "I did not
mention your suggestion for dealing with Hensolas and Fergyn. I did tell Lord
Ghrant of your willingness to take on the white wizards. He supports that. He
did ask me to suggest to you that it might be unwise to extend your talents to
either lord, except in the heat of battle."
"Does
he fear that the lords who now support him might think I would be turned
against them in time?"
"He
did not say, and it was not a question that was prudent to ask. He was not in
the best of humors. I would judge that he has fears along those lines."
Hagen took a deep breath.
Kharl
said nothing for a moment, understanding belatedly that, in his own way,
Was that
the way all successful ruling was handled? By hint and indirection, so that a
ruler could deny ordering what he had wished? Or so that he had the choice of
taking credit or denying responsibility?
"Do
you think we should leave immediately?"
"I
would judge that dawn tomorrow would be adequate. The rain may have abated by
then."
"Dawn
tomorrow," Kharl affirmed.
"Will
one squad be enough to accompany you?" asked
Kharl
thought he understood that message as well. The undercaptain wasn't that good
in combat and needed direction. Or he had some other fault. "One squad and Undercaptain
Demyst. We will deal with the wizard and keep him and Lord Hensolas from
interfering with Commander Casolan's forces." He just hoped he wasn't
promising more than he could accomplish.
"I
can count on you, Kharl. I wish there were more about whom I could say
that." Hagen offered a wan smile. He coughed several times.
"Chaos-fired throat."
"You'll
be better."
"I'm
sure I will be, especially once this rain ends." Hagen stood. "I need
to get ready to discuss some matters with Commander Norgen."
Kharl
rose. "I'll need to prepare a few things myself."
Once he
was outside
XXII
The clouds
that had brought eightday's rain had lifted, but not vanished, by dawn on
oneday, and the air was warm and damp, enough so that even without direct
sunlight Kharl was sweating in the green-and- black uniform by the time he had
ridden less than a glass southward. The white wizard had left the spot where he
had been, nearly due south of Valmurl, and appeared to be moving westward,
generally toward the Southwest Branch, the stream that fed the Lord's Millrace
before joining the River Val.
From the
maps Kharl had studied and from what Hagen had said, the wizard could be
accompanying rebel troops heading to join battle against Casolan's forces or
riding westward to destroy the millrace and dam. Kharl doubted that a Hamorian
wizard would want to destroy something that produced golds-especially not as a
first resort-but he had been wrong before in his judgments, often enough that
he wasn't about to discard either possibility.
"Warm,
it is, for such a cloudy day," offered Undercaptain Demyst. The stocky and
square-faced man had been blotting his forehead even more often than Kharl.
"It's
likely to get even warmer once the clouds clear." Kharl paused. "How
much longer before we reach the River Val?" To reach the Southwest Branch
and the Lord's Millrace, Kharl and the lancers accompanying him had to cross
the River Val first. Then they would turn east if they wished to reach the
Southwest Branch, or westward on the south river road if it appeared that the
wizard's forces were heading out to intercept Casolan's advance force.
"Less than a glass, ser. Less than a glass. The scouts say that the way is clear. No
rebel lancers, leastwise. Not this side of the river."
Kharl
nodded and concentrated on riding, and in taking in the countryside west of
Valmurl. For at least a score of kays to the west of where they rode, the land
stretched out in a nearly flat valley that extended a good eighty kays to the
south of the River Val and slightly less than forty to the north. In places,
there were low hills, but none rose more than a few rods above the road.
Fields, recently tilled, and meadows were everywhere, with cots set at almost
regular intervals. While he could see both men and women working in more
distant fields, the peasants or smallholders of those lands closest to the road
were wisely remaining out of sight.
To the
northwest, when he looked back over his shoulder, Kharl could make out the
distant hills, and a few snowcapped peaks behind them. He could see nothing but
fields and meadows ahead of them-and a line of trees several kays to the south.
The trees, he suspected, marked the River Val. While there were some woodlots
on the holdings, and a few orchards, most of the land was marked out in
squarish fields set aside for crops, and there were almost no hedgerows at all.
Those appeared to have been created only in the north and west of Valmurl.
"Why
aren't there any hedgerows here?" he asked the undercaptain.
"Lord
Esthaven forbid them here in the valley proper. Said
that they gave holders airs. Had to kill a few before they got the idea."
The more
Kharl heard about Esthaven, the less he liked what he heard. "What do they
grow here?"
"Maize and oats, mostly, besides gardens. Everyone has a garden. There's wheat corn
south of the river. Doesn't do as well here on the north side. No one knows
why. Around the river, where it's wet, there's sorghum. Best molasses in the
world here, and that's why there's none better than Austran black bread."
Kharl
had enjoyed the dark bread, but hadn't connected it to the quality of molasses
in Austra-although that made sense. With a faint smile at the thought, and the realization that there
was much he had never questioned, he shifted his weight in the saddle. He still
wasn't that used to riding, and the saddle got hard after a while. Awkwardly,
he stood in the stirrups, trying to stretch his legs and give his backside a
respite. He glanced ahead, hoping that the river wasn't that far ahead.
"Really
won't be that far, ser," offered Demyst.
"I'm
not a lancer," Kharl said dryly. "Riding is harder on me than
coopering all day."
"You'll
get used to it, ser."
Kharl
wasn't certain he wanted to get that used to riding. As he struggled to make
himself comfortable in the saddle, he sensed something. Except that wasn't it.
He tilted his head, trying to focus on what he'd felt. Then he realized that
for the past quarter glass or so, as he had ridden southward toward the river,
he had lost the distant sense of the white wizard-just as if the wizard had
vanished.
"Chaos
..." he muttered under his breath. He'd been so preoccupied with his own
discomfort that he hadn't even realized when he'd lost the sense of the other
wizard. He tried to gather in a sense of that chaos, but he could feel
absolutely nothing.
Had the
wizard gone into a cave or something? Or behind a waterfall? That might provide
a shield of some sort. Or had he created his own shield?
"Ser? Something wrong?"
"Not
yet," Kharl replied. Now he'd have to be more alert than ever, and
especially after they crossed the River Val.
Almost
half a glass passed before they neared the river. During that time, they had
seen no one nearby on the road, although one cart and another wagon had turned
down side lanes to avoid the lancers. While Kharl had gotten a quick impression
of faint traces of chaos several times, the traces had vanished so quickly that
he only knew that the wizard was somewhere to the south. Were the rebels moving
farther south and trying to circle behind Casolan's forces? Or were they
already west of the bridge and heading out to attack Casolan? Kharl couldn't be
certain, and that worried him.
It was
most likely that the wizard had some sort of shield and did not want Kharl to
track him easily. But why now? Had he just discovered that Kharl was near?
Kharl
blotted his forehead. The clouds had thinned, and at times, faint hazy sunlight had oozed over the riders.
The day had continued to warm, and the heavy armsman's uniform had gotten less
and less comfortable.
Kharl
took in the raised earthen causeway that led to the bridge itself, then the
river that stretched away from the bridge. The River Val wound in wide,
sweeping arcs, its course meandering through the river plain, its banks clearly
marked by earthen levees and trees planted behind the levees. The bridge itself
was an old and heavy timber structure that was supported by three stone piers
evenly spaced across the riverbed. The roadway was broad enough for a large
wagon or three horses abreast, and the side rails were weathered heavy timbers.
The watercourse itself was perhaps ten rods wide under the bridge. The plank
roadbed was worn, and in places, as he crossed, Kharl could see the swirling
gray of the water below through gaps in the planking. While the bridge creaked
slightly as the squad rode across the spans, he could feel no swaying or give,
but he was glad to reach the causeway on the south side.
Kharl
caught the faintest sense of whiteness to the south and west, but when he tried
to focus on it, the feeling was gone.
"You
be wanting us to head back toward Valmurl, ser, or out
west."
"West,"
Kharl said with a certainty he did not feel. "They're past here and headed
west." He glanced back toward Valmurl, but the river road was empty.
"No
tracks on the road, ser. Doesn't look as though they
came this way."
"Not
by the road," Kharl admitted. He somehow knew that the rebel forces had
not returned to Valmurl, but where could they be? The fields immediately to the
south of the river road were flat and open, and the smell of turned bottomland
occasionally came to Kharl on the intermittent light breeze from the west.
Another
kay or so to the west, he could see a stand of trees. As they rode closer, he
realized that the trees extended nearly a kay to the south, and certainly that
far west, if not even farther.
"What
are those trees?"
"Red
pears, ser. Don't grow many places."
Kharl
had heard of red pears, but never seen one. The orchard was old, and the trees
seemed close together, so much so that he could not see more than a few trees
into the mass of foliage, despite the thinner early-spring leaves.
As the
squad passed the eastern edge of the orchard and continued westward on the
river road, the clouds thinned more, and Kharl could feel the spring sun on his
back. He had to blot his forehead more frequently, and he had lost all track of
the white wizard, except for traces of white that felt almost due south, and
closer. What had happened? Where was the wizard?
Demyst
coughed, then swallowed. "Back there, to the
east, ser..." Demyst's voice was almost apologetic as he pointed.
Pouring
out of the orchard less than a half kay behind them was a column of lancers-men
in black and green, with the blue sashes and behind a blue banner bearing a
device Kharl did not recognize, not that he was familiar with heraldry,
especially Austran heraldry.
"That'd
be Lord Hensolas. That's his banner, ser. Looks to be three companies."
Demyst swallowed. "And there's another company to the west, maybe two.
They're riding toward us."
Somewhere
among the eastern group was the faintest trace of chaos. Then, a blaze of white
appeared among the larger force.
Kharl
wanted to hit his forehead with his palm. He'd known that the white wizard had
hidden his chaos behind some sort of shield, but he'd thought that the wizard
had done that to conceal his approach to Casolan's force or to keep Kharl from
tracking him. Instead ... the wizard was after him-with five companies. And
Kharl and his squad were trapped, with a thick orchard that was close to
impossible to ride through to the south, at least at any speed, and with the
river to the north.
"How
deep is the river?" Kharl snapped.
"Two to three rods, five in places. Current's real strong here, ser. We'd be
sitting ducks for crossbows. They got crossbows, ser."
Kharl
understood the unspoken. Most of the lancers couldn't swim. Even Kharl wasn't
that good a swimmer, although he might have been able to manage the river.
But.. . he'd been the one to get them into the trap.
He
looked toward the orchard, and the ancient and crooked split rail fence between
the trees and the road. His order-senses did not find any other chaos, except
that of the single wizard, but... he frowned. There was the thinnest mist of
blackness all across the orchard. Order. From the orchard itself? From the
spring growth? Behind that order was something else, not quite chaos, or a
different kind of chaos, or order. He wasn't certain, and he didn't have time
to puzzle it out.
"Form
up right between the fence and the trees. Make it tight!"
"Ser. .."
"We'll
try magery. If it doesn't work, the men will at least have a chance of escaping
through the trees. The rebels can't ride through them, not at any speed."
"Ah
.. . yes, ser. You pick the spot, and we'll form
around you."
"Just behind me." Kharl turned the gelding toward a gap in
the fence, not exactly a gate, but an opening wide enough for a wagon. He
glanced to the east, but the rebel lancers were not galloping or even trotting,
but closing in inexorably at a fast walk. He looked to the west, but that force
was also closing in on them.
Kharl
decided against staying at all in the open, even just in front of the trees. He
rode right up to one of the gnarled and ancient pear trees. There, he
dismounted and walked the gelding back toward the second row of trees. The
trees had been pruned just enough to allow him to walk between them, but riding
at more than a walk would have been dangerous, as he had guessed. He tied the
gelding and hurried back to the front row.
"Ser?" Demyst looked puzzled. "We can't get
that close to you, not with all the trees."
"Get
into the trees-in back of the first row." Kharl studied the oncoming
riders.
The
white wizard was hanging back, with a full company of lancers between him and
Kharl and the lancer squad. Kharl could also see a score of crossbowmen
dismounting less than twenty rods away. That didn't surprise him. The white
wizard clearly knew about Kharl's shields and wanted to exhaust the black mage
before using chaos-fire. Or perhaps he would just watch for an opportunity.
Could
Kharl tap the order of the orchard? He reached out, nodding as he gathered in
some of the orchard's order, then waited. Both forces drew closer, then reined
up, waiting, except for the crossbowmen, who continued to set up.
Finally,
the crossbowmen lifted their weapons. Kharl smiled grimly. Just before the
quarrels sleeted toward them, Kharl raised a shield of hardened air, only long
enough to halt the quarrels. Bent quarrels and iron shafts rained down short of
the trees. He hoped that the attackers would continue to fire in volleys, but
he watched closely as the crossbowmen rewound their weapons.
The
white wizard had done nothing-except remain well back from the center of the
orchard, as if he knew that Kharl's ability to strike was limited in distance.
"Oh
.. ." murmured one of the lancers.
Kharl
continued to consider what he could do. Before long, either armsmen or lancers
would charge in force, and he could not hold shields for that long, not around
even a small group. His last efforts with releasing chaos had not been totally
successful, but perhaps ... maybe ... using the order of the orchard . .. and
his own shields ...
His lips
tightened. He would have to see.
Three
more volleys flew toward Kharl and the lancers. Between the thick foliage and
Kharl's quickly raised and lowered shields, none reached the defenders.
Then a horn
sounded, and a full company of rebel lancers dressed their lines, then unsheathed blades.
"Don't
leave the trees until I tell you!" Kharl hissed to Demyst.
"You
heard the mage," the undercaptain ordered. "Stay under cover till you
get the word."
"Sitting
ducks ..." murmured someone.
"Not
yet," replied a deeper voice.
There
came two blasts on the horn-off-key-and lancers trotted toward the orchard,
blades at the ready.
Kharl disliked
what he was seeing, because Hensolas and the white wizard were sacrificing
troops-essentially Ghrant's troops-to wear down Kharl. Yet, Kharl reminded
himself, the same thing would have happened, and might anyway, in a pitched
battle between Casolan's forces and those of the rebels.
Kharl
concentrated on a single section of the split rail fence, waiting until the
lancers were almost upon it, when he unlinked the order in a section a third of
a yard long, erecting a curved hardened air shield behind that fence section.
Whhhsssttt!.. . Crumptt!
The
glare was so bright that, for a moment, Kharl could not see, and even behind
the shield, he could barely stand.
Belatedly,
he dropped the shield, and almost collapsed as the wave of death swept over him.
A
blackened quarter circle radiated from the section of the fence a rod in front
of Kharl. Nothing remained except blackened heaps and fine ash for a good five
rods. For another ten rods beyond that, everything was blackened, as if a fire
had swept across everything.
The air
was filled with screams of mounts and groans of men-not from the attackers, for none of them
remained, but from the second company of lancers, those almost twenty rods
back.
Point stars
of brilliant light flashed before Kharl, and he had to squint to try to focus
on the remainder of the attackers' forces. He could feel a wave of fatigue
somewhere, but he called on more of the order from the orchard and walled off
that tiredness.
Hssttt!
A firebolt flared toward the orchard-aimed directly at Kharl.
The mage
flung up an order shield, and fire sheeted to both sides.
The
branches and leaves that protruded forward of Kharl flared into flame and
ashes, and Kharl found himself standing in the open, if half- concealed by fine
gray ash floating everywhere. He took a step backward, under a heavy branch. He
was breathing deeply, trying to catch a solid gulp of air as ashes finer than
dust swirled around him.
Hssst!
Another firebolt slashed through the ash-filled air.
Kharl
staggered. He couldn't keep up the defenses much longer, and no one was moving
close enough for him to use the order-release of chaos effectively. What else
could he do? He was limited in how he could create chaos, and he couldn't fling
it the way the white mage was.
He
swallowed, coughing, blocking yet another chaos-bolt.
There
was one other possibility .. .
He
waited for the next bolt, and as it flashed toward him, he formed a curving
tube, almost like an invisible curved cannon that was aimed back toward the
banner that showed-he hoped-where Hensolas was. As the firebolt slid through
the tube, Kharl released a touch of order from the very air behind the firebolt,
adding speed and force to it, then juggled the tube, trying to focus it on the
banner.
But. .. Kharl had overdone it, and the firebolt flared behind
the banner.
He went
to his knees, under the storm of death and anguish that slammed into him, a
wave almost as great as the effect of his one order- released chaos blast-and
far more deadly, landing as it had in the midst of two companies of waiting
lancers.
The
banner had fallen, and mounts and men scattered.
Kharl
could sense the white wizard, could feel that the other's shields had weakened.
Almost
without thinking, Kharl began to move, walking swiftly through the gray ash and
dust that was everywhere, straight toward the white wizard. He was just trying
to get close enough to clamp hardened air around the other.
Another
firebolt flared toward Kharl, and he redirected it, this time, toward the two
other remaining intact companies of lancers, those on the west side of the
road.
Drawing
even more strength from the orchard, the last of that black mist of order, Kharl
staggered when a deep groan, an anguished wail, emanated from the very earth
itself, or so it seemed. Even with that anguish shivering through him, he
managed to remain upright and cover another ten rods before the next firebolt
came, a slightly weaker blast that he directed toward a group of officers who
had clustered around a single figure-Hensolas, Kharl thought.
White
chaos-fire splashed directly into the center of the officers, and more death
washed over Kharl. The remaining lancers and armsmen, those still alive, were
scattering away from the wizardly battle.
Kharl
could feel, solidly now, the shredding shields of the white wizard, and he
clamped the air hard around the other, throwing back one chaos-bolt then
another, then, later, a third, one that guttered out even as it splashed around
the dead form of the white mage, a form that vanished in white ash as Kharl
released the hardened air around the wizard.
Kharl
coughed, trying to clear his throat and lungs.
Ash was
everywhere, ash and the odor of death and burned flesh. Ash and blackened forms
that had been men and mounts.
Kharl
couldn't help retching as he turned and stumbled back toward the orchard-except
it was no longer there. Where the orchard had been was also an ashen wasteland.
All that was left were two ash-covered oblong shapes that might have been
barns.
Twenty-one
riders waited, covered in gray, still mounted, as Kharl stumbled back toward
them. Brilliant point stars flashed before his eyes, flaring, and each flaring
star sent a dagger through his eyes and deep into his skull. Every muscle, and
every part of his body, even down to his toe-nails, ached.
"Ser . .. that you?"
"It's
me." Who else would it be, he wanted to scream. Who else?
Demyst
guided the gelding toward Kharl. The mage had to clamp his jaws together to
climb into the gelding's saddle, and his legs almost gave way before he got his
boots in the stirrups.
The
undercaptain turned from side to side, his mouth open, staring at the wasteland
of ashes and blackened stumps and fallen figures, and at the lines of blackness seared through the very
earth to the southeast of the river road. "Never seen
... never ..." His voice faded away.
"Chaos-fire
... what the white wizards use." Kharl realized his words were dull,
stating the obvious, but his throat and jaws throbbed when he spoke, and he didn't
feel like explaining more. He doubted he could, or would ever want to.
"Now
... what do we do, ser mage?" asked Demyst.
"We
head back to the Great House." Kharl turned his mount eastward. In the few
moments when he could see, in between the lightstars and pain daggers that
blinded him, causing involuntary tears that carved lines in the ash covering
his face, he thought he made out a handful of riders moving eastward, back
toward Valmurl.
Kharl
felt as though he should be elated, or at least satisfied. Hensolas and the
white wizard were dead, and so were most of the rebel armsmen and lancers. But
most of those troops had not been rebels. They had served the rebels, and Kharl
doubted that they had been given much choice.
His
mouth tasted like ashes, and each breath he drew in, raggedly, reeked of ashes and death. When he could see, he saw lancers
gray-coated in ashes, and when he could not, he could remember all too vividly
the pain of all the deaths, and the last groaning from within the earth as he
had gutted, unknowing, the vast orchard for the force necessary to prevail.
He tried
to wash the taste of ashes out of his mouth with a long swallow from his water
bottle, but the water tasted like ash and death going down his throat.
XXIII
Somewhere,
along the road back to the bridge over the River Val, Kharl passed out. Or fell
asleep. Or dropped out of the saddle.
He knew
that because he found himself lying on something hard and cold-the ground.
Someone was washing and blotting his face with cool water. But the water tasted
and smelled like ashes.
"Ser Kharl... ser."
Kharl
managed to turn his head to the side and cough out some of the water that had
been choking him. Despite the hazy sunlight, there were large irregular patches
of darkness drifting across his eyes. The lightstars and the daggers that they
jabbed into his skull seemed to have subsided a little. Rather than being
agonizing, they had become more like the lashes of a tiny whip.
"Sorry
..." he mumbled.
"Are
you all right, ser?"
Of
course he wasn't all right. No one who fell out of a saddle was all right. He
could tell that his left leg was sore and bruised, and that there was a large
lump on his forehead above his right eye. "... getting there ..."
"One
moment, you were riding," Demyst said, "and the next you
weren't."
"Happens
sometimes after magery," Kharl said slowly, coughing some more.
After a
time, he struggled into a sitting position. He'd thought that he wouldn't
collapse anymore after doing magery. He'd been wrong. Again. "There's some
bread and cheese in my saddlebags . .. might help."
"Sileen
... get the provisions from the mage's saddlebags."
"Yes, ser."
Kharl
just sat on the ground on the shoulder of the road, looking blankly eastward.
The River Val bridge was less than ten rods away. He supposed he'd been lucky. He
could have fallen off on the bridge, hit his head on the railing, and gone into
the water and drowned. At least, that way, he wouldn't have to explain how he'd
been trapped by Hensolas. He hoped Hagen and Norgen didn't ask too many
questions .. . but Hagen didn't miss much.
"Ser
..." As the undercaptain extended the provisions bag, and a water bottle,
his voice was both solicitous and respectful.
Kharl
wondered why. He'd led the squad into a trap, almost gotten them burned to
ashes, and then he'd collapsed and fallen right out of the saddle. That sort of
behavior shouldn't have created respect. "Thank you."
He
forced down the bread, which tasted of ashes, like the water had, and chewed
off several morsels of the hard yellow cheese. The black patches that drifted
across his field of vision shrank, but did not disappear entirely. Much to his
surprise, he did finish everything in the bag, as well as empty the water
bottle.
After
eating, he took a damp rag and wiped the blood from the gash over his forehead
and the ashes from his face.
"We
could wait here a while," suggested Demyst.
"No.
I should have eaten right after the ... fight. Magery takes food." Except
that he doubted he could have kept anything down then.
"You're
in charge, ser."
"In
a moment, we'll start back."
Demyst
nodded.
Kharl's
legs were still a bit weak when he finally stood and walked toward the gelding,
but he remounted, if carefully. He patted the horse's shoulder. "Be trying
not to fall out of the saddle again," he said to the gelding. "Makes
us both look bad."
XXIV
Kharl
and his small force reached the Great House less than a glass before sunset.
They'd had to stop several times for Kharl to rest. His left leg was sore and
getting stiffer, and the lump on his forehead was tender, occasionally
throbbing, as he made his way into the Great House from the stables.
He
decided to report to
After
eating in the small dining room, alone, Kharl checked to see if
When he
woke the next morning, his left leg was almost as sore as it had been the night
before, and far stiffer. The black holes in his vision had diminished to large
spots, but his mouth still tasted like ashes.
There
were guards stationed back outside
"You
can go in, ser. The lord-chancellor ... he's waiting," offered one of the
guards.
"We
did. They were tracking us while we were tracking them..." Kharl
described, as briefly as he could what had happened-but not how. "...
there were but a few armsmen left on their side after it was all over. Most
everything around us got burned to ashes." He decided against explaining
how he had been injured.
Kharl
had no idea even who the lord was-unless he was the man who had left just
before Kharl had entered. "Why?"
"Your
battle with Hensolas and the white wizard destroyed his red pear orchard. That
orchard is one of the few that survived the red blight of twenty years ago, and
the yearly crop of those pears provided Lord Sheram with several hundred golds
a year." Hagen's voice was level, with little sign of either wry humor or
anger.
"I
certainly didn't intend to destroy the orchard. Hensolas and the white wizard
attacked us."
"That
may be, but Lord Ghrant does not like to create more unhappy lords."
Kharl
suppressed his reaction to snap back. Hagen was only stating facts. After a
moment, he said, "Hensolas was the one responsible. He rebelled. He
attacked. Why not allow this Lord ..." Kharl hadn't caught the lord's
name, or perhaps he hadn't wanted to.
"Sheram,"
"...
this Lord Sheram to pick a property of comparable
value from Hensolas's lands and estates?"
"That
might be acceptable to Sheram. Lord Ghrant will doubtless find it so, because
it will further weaken Hensolas's son's ability to raise arms in the
future."
"If
they had all stood behind Ghrant, none of this would have happened," Kharl
declared.
"That
is true,"
"They
were revolting and following Ilteron before Ghrant even had a chance to show
strength or weakness," Kharl pointed out.
"They
do not see it that way. They never will. They perceived Ghrant as weak, and
they hold him responsible for their perceptions."
Kharl
could see no point in arguing against that. "And now they're angry because
I show that he has strength?"
Kharl
took a long and deep breath.
"Do
you see why I would rather be back on the bridge of the Seastag?" asked
The mage
nodded. "Nothing pleases any of them, and yet they are largely responsible
for what has happened."
"As
I said, that may be true, but they do not see it that way."
"Do
they ever?" Kharl was convinced that most lords were that way. Certainly,
Lord West and his son Egen had been. It had all been Kharl's fault that Egen
had been humiliated, when Egen had been in fact assaulting and raping young
women at will. But Kharl had been the one flogged, and his consort executed for
a murder that had been committed by an assassin hired by Egen-not that Kharl
would ever be able to prove such.
"No,"
admitted
"Does
Lord Ghrant know about Hensolas?"
"The
circumstances of Hensolas's death were acceptable to Lord Ghrant."
"Acceptable?"
"That
was the word he used," replied the lord-chancellor, not disguising the
sardonic tone of his words. "Acceptable,"
"How
is your throat?"
"Better.
So long as I don't have to talk too much placating lords who wish everything
and risk nothing. None of them would last a season as traders." The
lord-chancellor took a sip from the goblet. "Lord Ghrant wishes to know how long before you can
arrange an equally suitable incident for Fergyn."
"I'll
need a few days to rest. I sometimes still can't see straight."
"It's
a good thing you were a cooper, ser mage. Any mage less strong than you
wouldn't have survived what you've created."
"Sometimes,
I almost haven't," Kharl admitted.
Kharl
smiled. He wished Hagen hadn't added the last sentence, although he couldn't
imagine what else could happen that had not already. More of the same, perhaps,
and that would be bad enough.
XXV
On
threeday, Kharl decided against trying to see
Kharl
settled into the most comfortable chair in his sitting room and, once more,
began to leaf through the black book that was far more worn than he would ever
have believed possible when it had fallen into his hands less than a year
before. He turned page after page. The light coming through the window behind
him strengthened as the morning sun burned away the mists. He paused at the
paragraph near the bottom of one page.
One
might also say it yet another way. Chaos is power without form, and order is
the form that enables chaos to inspire the spirit of life, to allow the crafting of tools and
of all manner of devices that improve the way of life of man and woman . ..
That was
true enough, Kharl reflected, but not exactly helpful. He kept reading. Some
twenty pages later, he came across another few words. He had seen them before, but
there was something about them that had nagged him before ... and still did.
One
danger of order-magery or chaos-magery is that the mage who handles either in
mighty efforts may become what he attempts to control. For a part of that mage
must accompany the order or chaos that he infuses or creates. An order-mage may
become so fixated upon order that he can do nothing without a structure so
rigid that he accomplishes nothing of value . ..
Kharl
skipped farther down the page.
... more
unnoticed is the danger that order or chaos may rebound upon him who casts it
forth, for there is a tie between what is cast forth and the one who casts
it...
The mage
frowned. If there were such ties ... could he use order to strengthen them?
Ties had to have a basis in order. That might be far easier than creating
hardened air tubes.
He
laughed silently. Once he developed such a technique, it might be easier, but
could he do so? How? What would happen if he did?
Thrap.
"Ser
Kharl? Are you there?"
Kharl
looked up in irritation. "Yes?" He cast forth his order-senses
without rising from the chair. A man, an armsman, stood outside his door.
"The
lord-chancellor'd be seeing you right quick."
"I'll
be with you in a moment." Kharl closed The Basis of Order, set it on the
side table, and slowly rose from the chair. The stiffness was worse when he
hadn't moved for a time. He made his way to the door and out into the corridor.
As he
closed the door behind him, the armsman, another he had not seen before, turned
without speaking. Kharl followed him down to Hagen's study.
There,
one of the guards spoke. "The lord-chancellor said for you to go right in,
ser Kharl. The other mage is already there."
"Thank
you."
The other mage? Lyras? Could there be any other in Austra?
What was he doing in the Great House? From Lyras's own words, he avoided the
Great House and the Lords of Austra in any way possible. As Kharl stepped into
Hagen's study, even before he closed the door behind himself, his eyes took in
Lyras first. The older mage looked even more gray than Kharl recalled.
Lyras
rose from the chair on one side of the table desk and bowed. "Ser Kharl."
"Lyras. I had not expected to find you here." Kharl inclined
his head out of respect.
"I
had not expected to be here."
"We
have news that is less than good." Hagen gestured to the other empty
chair.
Kharl
settled into it, gingerly, and, without a word, waited for
"While
you and Undercaptain Demyst were dealing with Hensolas,"
Two more? How many did Hamor have that the emperor could keep
sending them? Kharl glanced at Lyras.
"One
doesn't seem that powerful. The other one-I've never sensed a white wizard that
strong." Lyras turned to Kharl apologetically. "Begging your pardon,
ser Kharl."
"They
also brought another company of lancers, doubtless to serve as his personal
guard. I'd wager that Fergyn and his forces will move north and that they'll
join the Hamorians at Ghalmat. That's a town about eight kays up the Fahsa
River from the harbor at Valmurl. Ghalmat's where the northeast road from
Valmurl ends. The river road from there to Northbay isn't much better than a
cart path."
Kharl
didn't pretend to understand totally the geography, but it was clear enough
that the Hamorians had picked the small harbor because it would not be easy for Ghrant to send forces
there, even if he had known about the landing.
"That's
..." Kharl wasn't sure what it was, except a sign of trouble.
"As
close to war as Hamor will go,"
"The
emperor would just have left him here if he hadn't left on his own?"
"There
are privileges associated with being an envoy, but there are also risks."
Hagen's smile was brief and cold.
"The
Hamorians intend to make Fergyn their puppet, you think?" asked Kharl.
"Oh
... the emperor might even let him have some real power, so long as he serves
Hamor," replied
"The
lords would not like that," Lyras pointed out.
"There
won't be any of them left,"
Kharl
said nothing. It seemed as though, with each success he had, matters just got
worse.
"What
do you suggest, ser mage?" Hagen looked at Kharl.
"That
we attack," Kharl said tiredly. "There's little to be gained by
waiting."
"Attack? Just like that?" An ironic tone
colored Hagen's words.
"Attack,"
Kharl repeated. "Most of the rebel armsmen and lancers were with Hensolas,
you said. Fergyn doesn't have that many left."
"We
may not, either, not after attacking."
"Do
you think these white wizards-especially the powerful one- will let me just
ride up to wherever they are and attack them?"
"Why
will they meet us?"
"Because
Lyras is going to be with the attacking force," Kharl said.
Lyras
paled. His swallow was audible in the stillness of the chamber.
"These
two wizards have never sensed me, not up close, and most whites don't seem to be
that good at locating blacks. Lyras will show some order-magery, and I'll do what I need to do
while they're concentrating on our force."
"That
could be dangerous,"
"If I can't do what I need to do, you can order a retreat. Or Casolan or
Norgen can."
"It's
best, I think, if I'm there." Another grim smile
crossed the lord-chancellor's lips. "One way or another."
Kharl
understood.
"Yes, lord-chancellor." Lyras's voice carried resignation. He
looked to Kharl. "Ser Kharl."
"I
will see you both in the morning,"
Kharl
inclined his head, then turned and left the study. Lyras followed.
Outside,
in the corridor, the older mage turned to Kharl. After a moment, he said,
"You have learned much, ser Kharl, but do you think you can face one of
the most powerful mages from Hamor?"
"I can
certainly face him," Kharl said, with a laugh. "Whether I can
prevail... that is another question. If I can, it is best to end this now. If I
cannot, then it is also for the best."
"For the best?"
"We
could retreat, and harass, and attack, and in a year all of Austra would be in
flames, and most would be starving." Kharl did not add that there was
already too much blood on his hands, and too many deaths weighing upon him. At
times, his mouth, his food, everything still tasted of ashes.
"You
are saying..."
"I
am saying that there are worse things than being conquered. I would rather not
live under the emperor. I will do my best so that does not happen. What we do
does not affect us alone. Already, Lord Ghrant has lost more than half his
lancers and armsmen, one way or another. Hundreds of women are already widows,
and thousands of children are orphans. How many will there be in a season, in a
year? What sort of land will Lord Ghrant have then, if he has any at all?"
Lyras
looked away.
XXVI
For all
of his words to Lyras, Kharl was worried. Just how would he be able to stand up
to a mighty white wizard? He was wagering on his ability to make something out
of a few words in The Basis of Order and out of the few abilities he had
perfected.
Unlike
most black mages, he had learned little about healing, no matter how he had
tried, and he could barely sense what the weather might do, let alone change it
or influence it. He had no idea how to help things grow, the way Lyras and the
druids did. He could not feel what was deep beneath the earth, nor in the
water. All he had learned was how to sense order and chaos, to harden
substances, especially air, to create shields against chaos, and to release
chaos by unbinding order.
After he
and Lyras parted outside of
Still
thinking about
The
armorer was not using the forge, but the farrier was, shaping a horseshoe. The
horse to be reshod was a dun mare, one that Kharl thought might be the mount
that Lady Hyrietta often rode. Since he had returned to Valmurl, he had seldom
seen the dark-haired lady with the heart- shaped face, or Lord Ghrant's two
sons, even at a distance.
The
farrier glanced at Kharl, nodded, and went about his business, thrusting the
tongs holding the shoe into the forge.
Kharl
stood in the doorway to the smithy, letting his senses range over the forge fire.
The energy of the forge was what he would have called honest chaos, without the
reddish overshades of the chaos-fire spewed forth by the white wizards. Or by
what he had done in unbinding order to release chaos.
The
farrier's hammer struck the horseshoe on the forge, and Kharl sensed the change
in both order and chaos within the iron. There was a flow, an ordering, in the
metal... but why? Kharl continued to follow the farrier's actions for a time.
He could sense the slight ordering in the shoes, and he could tell that the
mount's feet would be protected by more than the shoe, if only slightly. But
why?
He
frowned and let his senses take in the farrier himself. There was the faintest
sense of blackness about the man. In a way, Kharl decided, the farrier had a
touch of the order-mage within him. Only the slightest touch, but a little. Did
all the best crafters have a trace of order- talent? Kharl wouldn't have been
surprised at that, but that observation and its application would have to wait.
As he
took in the smithy, and especially what was happening with the horseshoes, he
began to pick up the pattern, a faint pattern, but it was there. There were
ties between the farrier and the horseshoe, and even though the farrier had
added but the slightest trace of order from himself to the shoe, there was a
link. Kharl tried to follow that link, but it was so delicate that even
reaching out to touch it shattered the connection, and it was so faint that the
farrier didn't even seem to feel it.
After a
while longer, Kharl nodded and stepped back, thinking as he began to walk back
through the warm noon sunlight toward the small dining room. The Basis of Order
had been right. There was a connection or a tie. That suggested that the
linkage might be used. Could it be a way back through the white wizard's
shields? How could he find out?
He
laughed, briefly. There wasn't any way to find out, not short of trying, and
failure could be costly, and probably deadly.
He
turned toward the small dining room. Whatever might happen, he needed to eat,
and he needed to make sure he had plenty of provisions on the ride-or
campaign-against the rebels and the Hamorians.
XXVII
Fourday
found Kharl back in the saddle before dawn, in the green-and- black uniform of
an Austran armsman, riding with Undercaptain Demyst and his squad on a side
road at the south edge of the Nierran Hills, not all that far from Lyras's
cottage. Kharl smiled briefly as he recalled the meeting with the older mage in
the small cottage of red sandstone, with its glass windows and green-painted
shutters and front door. Lyras had offered refreshments, hospitality, and
almost no advice, except how to determine where Kharl's skills might lie. While
he had always suspected the reason for that, Kharl was truly beginning to
understand why. Handling of order-or of chaos-had to come from understanding,
and that could never be taught, only experienced.
There
was barely enough space for two mounts abreast on the clay track that wound
under the sandstone cliffs on the north side of the fast-moving and swirling
dark waters of the rod-wide stream. The road was no more than two cubits above
the spring runoff. Immediately to the south of the stream were low meadows,
some of which were still partly underwater, and beyond them a long sloping
expanse of firs along the north side of a narrow ridge. South beyond the ridge,
Kharl knew, were the open hills that rolled down toward the northeastern part
of Valmurl. Those hills held kay upon kay of orchards and berry patches.
Once
again, Demyst rode alongside Kharl. The square-faced captain looked morosely
ahead, into the lighter gray sky to the east. "This circles north of the
main road, comes out where the stream joins the Fahsa. That's a bit west of
Ghalmat. Should be there well before the rebels." Demyst paused.
"Should be. No telling until then, though."
"The
Hamorians are still somewhere to the east of Ghalmat," noted Kharl.
"They're not moving that fast." He could sense the two focal points
of chaos, even though they were several kays to the south and east. Both were
far stronger than the white wizards he had faced before, although the lesser
chaos-focus was not that much stronger than the last white wizard.
But that
was the lesser of the two, and he had no idea if the two might even be hiding
part of their power, the way the last white wizard had, and as Kharl was
attempting.
Kharl
could also sense Lyras and the comparatively faint but solid black order around
the older mage. Lyras was stronger than he claimed, Kharl was convinced, but
still nowhere near as powerful as he needed to be-not if the older mage had to
hold off the oncoming white wizards if Kharl failed. Then, Kharl himself wasn't
exactly a youth, either, he reflected.
"What
about Lord Fergyn?" asked Demyst.
"I
can't tell. He doesn't have a white wizard with him."
"You
think this'll be as bad as the last time, ser?" asked the undercap-tain.
"No,"
Kharl replied. "If we're fortunate, it will only be about twice as
bad." As soon as he'd spoken, even before the undercaptain shook his head,
Kharl wished he'd been less truthful and more tactful. But why did people ask
such stupid questions, then get upset when they got a truthful reply?
Truth, again. Always seemingly what people claimed they
wanted, but only when it confirmed what they wished to believe. "It might
not be that bad," Kharl said quickly, "but they do have two powerful
white wizards and a company of heavy Hamorian horse." Demyst already knew
that, but it wouldn't hurt to repeat it.
"What
did Lord Ghrant do to Hamor, that they'd send such
against us?"
"He
did nothing. Hamor wants to rule the world. The emperor thinks that, if he can unseat
Lord Ghrant, he can rule through Lord Fergyn. Even if we win, it will take
years to rebuild Austra, and Lord Ghrant will be in no position to move against
Hamor in trade or other matters."
"Some
folks, they never seem to have enough."
"Usually,
they're already the ones who have more than most," Kharl replied, thinking
of Egen and Lord West.
"Saw
that growing up. Biggest orchards belonged to old Khosen, but he was always
trying something to get more."
"It's
like that." Kharl nodded, trying still to gather in a sense of the white
wizards without actively using or creating excess order.
The road
began to angle more to the southeast, and the steep cliffs on the north, to
Kharl's left, gave way first to hillsides of red sand, scrub, and fir, then to
lower hills covered by an older forest, mostly of evergreens.
They
covered another kay or so before the edge of the sun, tinged white-orange by
the mists hanging over both valleys and hills, rose over the old forest to the
east of the narrow road. Ahead of them the narrow way curved even more
southward, following the stream as it angled southeast toward a low gap between
the hills to the north and east and the ridge-line to the south. Beyond the
gap, according to the maps, was where the stream met the River Fahsa, roughly
half a kay west of Ghalmat. Hagen had called Ghalmat a hamlet of but a few
hundred people that basically served as a center for the berry patches and the
orchards that covered the surrounding hills and ridges.
As they
neared the gap between the ridge and hills, a lancer rode toward them, then slowed as he approached. Kharl recognized the scout by
face, but not by name.
"Undercaptain
... ser ... there's no one in the town. Not more 'n a few, anyway. The rest were
clearing out when I got there. They must have heard about the Hamorians."
Or
"Did
you see any other lancers?"
"No, ser. There's dust on the road to the east,
mayhap a kay east of the town. I didn't see any to the west or south. Wagon
tracks in the roads, carts, but not more than a few mounts."
The
undercaptain looked to Kharl. "We'll be getting there a little before the
Hamorians."
"If
we do, we'll let them pass, and we'll do what we need to once they've headed
toward the lord-chancellor."
Demyst
nodded, then looked at the scout. "Fall in."
He'd turned in the saddle. "Herles!"
"Yes,
ser?" answered the left-hand rider of the pair of lancers riding immediately
behind Kharl and the undercaptain.
"Ride
forward and watch the gap ahead. Make sure that no one heads toward us. If they
don't, just wait for us."
"Yes, ser." Herles pulled out and past Kharl and
Demyst, then eased his mount into a faster pace.
Almost
another half glass went by before Kharl reined up just beyond the gap between
the ridge to the west and the low hills to the east. Looking south, he studied
the gentle slope running down to the river and the narrow cart bridge that
arched over the Fahsa. On the far side was the crossroad that linked the north
road and the northeast road out of Valmurl. The woodlots and orchards stretching to the
south seemed to extend to the horizon, yet they were less than five kays north
of the dockworks area of the harbor.
Just
south of the river, and to the east, he could make out the outlines of the
houses and buildings of Ghalmat-and the dust rising on the east side of the
hamlet. The dust seemed to match what his order- senses told him about where
the white wizards were. "They're coming into the east side of the town."
"Yes, ser.
After
several moments, Kharl pointed to a thicker patch of evergreens on a knoll to
the west of the road, no more than twenty rods north of the bridge. "We'll
take cover there, and wait."
"Take
a while to cross the bridge, ser."
"It'll
take longer for the Hamorians."
"Ser?"
"If
they discover us and come after us, they'll have trouble getting to us quickly,
and it won't take that long for us to cross going south."
"Yes, ser."
Kharl
urged the gelding forward, toward the heavily wooded knoll. Again, they would
wait; but waiting, Kharl was learning, was often better than rushing into
disaster.
A quarter
glass went by, then another quarter glass, and the
surge of white chaos drew nearer and nearer. At the same time, from gathering
in impressions of Lyras, Kharl could sense that Hagen had stopped almost a
glass earlier. He hoped that meant that Casolan's first companies and those
remaining forces of Norgen-all under Hagen's command-had reached the hill to
the west of where the northeast road and the river road intersected. There was
a low outcropping of sandstone there on the east side of the hillcrest, which
might give cover from chaos-fire, and the flanks and front of the hill were
steep enough, and so covered by thornberries, that an easy and swift charge was
not possible.
As Kharl
reflected on those precautions, hoping they were sufficient, the Hamorian outriders
appeared. Two posted themselves at the narrow bridge, but made no attempt to
cross. The other six rode westward on the Fahsa River road. Before long, the
column of lancers appeared.
From
what Kharl could tell, the Hamorians had close to two companies of their
lancers. Unlike the armsmen of either Austra or Nordla, whose uniforms were
shaded more dramatic colors, such as green and black and blue, the Hamorians wore pale tan, with
black belts and boots. Their tan caps had black visors as well. They bore
sabres and long belt knives, as well as black lances in their stirrup holders.
"The
squad leaders and officers have rifles," murmured Demyst.
"Not
the lancers?"
"Don't
see any."
Kharl
knew that few armies used firearms, either the kind fired by cammabark or by
powder, because a chaos-mage could trigger any powder not contained within
iron-and sometimes even propellant that was so contained. Yet the Hamorian
officers and squad leaders had rifles. Because they were so confident that
their own mages would prevail? Or for special situations?
Kharl
suspected the latter. He might find out in time, and probably when he least
wanted to do so. Without extending any order-energy beyond himself, he
concentrated on trying to get a better impression of the two white wizards,
both of whom rode roughly in the middle of the Hamorian lancers. What he could
only have described as lines of unseen white flashed from the two, but those
energies were directed more to the west.
"How
long are we waiting?" asked the undercaptain.
"Until
they're far enough away that we can attack the bridge guards and get across
before the main body could turn and get back to us." In some ways, Kharl
would have preferred to have been on the south side of the river; but there was
no cover there, not nearby, and nowhere to go if they had been discovered and
immediately attacked. There was no other bridge across the Fahsa, not within
kays, not except the north road bridge to the west, and the river was also more
than three rods wide, and the spring runoff was violent and deep-close to two
rods deep in midstream.
Kharl
watched.
The main
body of Hamorian column, riding three abreast on the wider river road, was more
than a half a kay in length. With the outriders, and the squad or so of the
trailing rearguard, the Hamorians took up nearly a kay of road.
Almost a
third of a glass passed before the rear guard passed the bridge. When the last
of the rear guards were about fifty rods west of the bridge, the bridge guards
turned their mounts and began to trot westward to rejoin the main body.
"Now?"
"Not
quite yet," Kharl said. "We'll wait until they're another half kay west. They'll still be short of the
lord-chancellor." Not that short of Hagen's forces, he reflected, but he
didn't want to call attention to himself or the squad until he had to.
Kharl
used his order-senses once more, but there were no signs of other Hamorians-or
of Lord Fergyn's lancers. Finally, once the distance between the Hamorian rear
guard and bridge reached more than half a kay, Kharl turned to Demyst.
"Now."
"Forward!
To the bridge."
The
Hamorians did not look back, not so far as Kharl could determine, and none of
the column was detached to fight a rearguard action against the squad, even though
someone must have seen them. Were the Hamorians that oblivious to Kharl? Or
that confidert, or did they know that Kharl-or anyone-would have to come to
them? The latter, probably, Kharl surmised.
Once
across the narrow bridge, a span that did in fact creak and sway with each
passing rider, the squad re-formed in double files and headed after the
Hamorians, who maintained a quick walk westward.
"Don't
seem to care about us, do they?" ventured the undercaptain.
"Not
for now," Kharl replied, his concentration on the
column ahead and the unseen chaos-probes that flashed from the two white mages.
Another
half glass passed as Kharl's small force slowly closed the gap. Kharl could sense
the growing closeness of Lyras and, presumably, Hagen's forces. The morning sun
was beating out of a clear sky, bringing a summerlike heat to the road, and
sweat plastered the armsman's tunic against his back.
"They've
halted."
Kharl
could see that. The Hamorians waited on a flat of the road. Beyond was the
intersection with the northeast road out of Valmurl, and farther to the west
was the hillside on which Hagen and Lyras and their forces had taken a
position. A quick glance showed riders in black and green-with blue
sashes-withdrawing downhill. Kharl had to wonder how many attacks Fergyn's
forces had already made-or if they had just begun, then withdrawn at the
approach of the Hamorians.
Kharl
wrenched himself away from futile speculations because he could also see that
the rear ranks of the Hamorians had turned, and several squads faced eastward-toward
Kharl. Immediately behind them was a smaller group, which included one of the
white mages.
"Ser?"
"Keep
riding. We need to get closer." Kharl could smell, seemingly for the first
time, the road dust, the odor of fresh horse droppings, and the faintly acrid
odor of chaos. Or was that odor only in his thoughts?
Ahead,
the Hamorian lancers facing him lifted their lances but remained in place.
A bolt
of chaos-fire flashed from the white wizard. Kharl waited, and at the last
moment, lifted an order shield, letting the chaos splash away. The impact was
enough to drive him back in the saddle. He leaned forward, trying to
concentrate on finding the chaos tie that led back to the white wizard.
"Ser...?"
"Keep
riding," Kharl snapped. "Unless you want to be ashes."
"Yes, ser." Demyst raised his voice, "Follow ser
Kharl. Keep riding!"
Hssst! Another
chaos-bolt, every bit as powerful as the first, slammed against Kharl's
shields. His readiness kept him in the saddle, but even as he sensed what he
was looking for, he had to wonder how many more firebolts he could deflect-and
he was only facing the lesser wizard.
A
trumpet sounded, somewhere, and the Hamorian rear guard charged.
"Keep
riding! Same pace!" Kharl ordered. The closer to the wizards, the better,
because, while they could incinerate at any distance, or at least at a far
greater distance than could he, what he could do had to be done at close range.
"Keep
riding! Same pace!" echoed Demyst. "Blades at the ready! At the
ready!"
Kharl
waited, knowing what was about to happen.
The
Hamorians thundered toward the Austran squad, still moving forward at a fast
walk. Then, when the lancers in tan were but fifty cubits from Kharl-or less-an
enormous firebolt arced in over them.
Kharl
smiled grimly, and hardened the air before him, into the slippery tube shape
that turned and focused the chaos back on the charging Hamorians.
Whhhssst!
The
chaos-fire flared across the close-packed Hamorians, so quickly that there were
not even screams as men and mounts turned to burned meat and charcoal, then
ashes and blackened forms. The reddish white emptiness of a score or more of
deaths shivered through Kharl, and he swallowed, trying to regain his
concentration.
"...
demon-spawn!"
"Friggin' sowshit!"
"Quiet!
Keep riding!" snapped Demyst.
Within
moments, the squad was through and past the ashes and blackened remnants of the
fallen Hamorians.
For all
his success so far, Kharl knew his strengths and resources were limited.
Another
trumpet sounded, and Kharl glanced beyond the Hamorian forces at the hill where
Hagen and Lyras held out-so far. He could sense an enormous gathering of
power-of mighty raw chaos. Then, a firebolt, more like wave of fire, washed
over the front of the hillside. When the fire subsided, the hillside was black
and gray-bare except for a few tree trunks at each side. The thornberry patches
that would have slowed lancers had vanished into powdery ash.
Kharl found
himself momentarily awed at the power and the amount
of chaos released, far more than he had seen from other white wizards.
But the
remaining Hamorian lancers did not charge. They remained on the flat to the
east of the slope, their lines dressed.
Fergyn's
lancers rode northward, and re-formed.
Kharl
could see all too well what was about to happen. Both Austran forces would fight-and
tear each other down-until either Fergyn was repulsed and defeated or until the
lord-chancellor was. Either way, the Hamorian casualties would be far less.
What
could Kharl do?
Hssst!
Kharl
barely managed to get just an order shield up. Stupid! He needed to concentrate
on one wizard at a time. He and his squad were less than thirty rods from the
lesser wizard and his personal guard. He forced his eyes and his senses on the
nearer wizard, trying to find the line of chaos that had to be there.
Hssst!
This
time, Kharl managed to deflect the chaos-bolt back toward the white wizard,
forcing the white to use his shields against his own chaos-fire. Two Hamorian
lancers and their mounts, out to the side of the white wizard, went down in
flames. One of the mounts screamed-an agonizing cry that went on and on.
Kharl
ignored it, concentrating on the wizard, feeling, using all his order-senses,
as the other drew upon chaos, seemingly from deep within the earth, formed it, and hurled it toward
Kharl, now less than ten rods from the white wizard.
Kharl
caught the chaos-tie between that ball of chaos and the wizard who had cast it,
but lost the tie before he could fully sense it, when he had to throw up
another order shield. If only he had a moment more, but the closer he got the
less time he had, and yet, from a distance, he could do nothing.
Ahead,
he could sense another huge wave of chaos bursting across the hillside-and this
time, the redness of Austran deaths flashed across him. He could also sense
more Hamorian lancers turning, raising lances, but Kharl forced his
concentration back to the nearer wizard, watching the man in white. As Kharl
rode ever nearer, this time, he caught the tie and link, but, again, he was too
slow, and had to release that link- barely in time-to throw up another order
shield. He was drenched in sweat and breathing heavily, and he had not even
lifted a cudgel or a staff-or anything.
He
forged his attention into a narrow line, ignoring the oncoming Hamorian lancers,
waiting. As the white wizard drew upon the chaos of the earth deep beneath,
Kharl seized the linkage and created an order shield within the channel,
throwing the chaos back upon the white wizard, within the wizard's own shields.
Whhhsst!
Kharl
flung up his own shields, around him and the squad, as an expanding blast of
chaos radiating from where the lesser white wizard had stood.
The
impact of that force against his shields jerked him back in the saddle, braced
as he was. The reddish white voids of scores of deaths washed across Kharl, and
tears streamed down his face from the pain and the brightness of that
explosion.
Kharl
shook his head, blotted the dampness from his eyes with the rough fabric of his
uniformed sleeve. Everything around him was faint, washed out, but he
immediately began to look for the other white wizard, both with eyes and
order-senses. The lancers who had been charging Kharl were gone, seared into
ashes or less, and perhaps half the Hamorian forces had already died. That
didn't matter, not so long as a single white wizard remained.
Kharl
could feel another massive wave of chaos rising, and it was not directed at the
hillside, where
Find the
link .. . don't think of shields . .. Find the link,
Kharl kept telling himself. Let the chaos flow back along that link . . . and
return to me. Let it flow. He kept concentrating on the wizard facing him.
For a
long moment, he could see-as if they were less than a rod apart-the
smooth-skinned wizard with the angular face, and the deep black eyes that had
seen more than Kharl ever wanted to see.
Then .. . that vision was gone, and reddish-tinged white chaos
foun- tained from beneath the ground, rising skyward in a plume, unseen except
by the two mages and the white wizard. The earth trembled, then rocked beneath
the gelding's hoofs. Somewhere, another mount screamed.
Kharl
kept concentrating, reaching for the link between wizard and chaos, between
power and the depths from which it came beneath the earth. He had eyes and
senses only for that link, even as he rode forward, ever closer to the figure
that glowed eerily in more chaos than Kharl could ever have imagined, could
ever have wanted to imagine.
Time
seemed frozen, with chaos towering over him, ready to fall and crush him.
Kharl
struck, twisting through that undefended back linkage, opening it and letting
all the chaos that had been gathered from the depths rush to and through the
white wizard.
As the
whiteness of that chaos burned more brightly than the sun for that instant,
Kharl threw up an order shield, one that held all the strength and will that
remained in him, one to block out the fires that seemed hotter than any forge,
any boiler, any sun.
NO!!!!
Kharl
shuddered under the assault of will and chaos, under a wave of heat that
stopped somewhere short of him, but still burned. The very earth groaned,
twisted, and heaved. Sheets of flame flared skyward from the ground.
As fire
flared everywhere, as Kharl could feel himself toppling in the saddle, and someone
grabbing for him, he also realized something else. The greater white wizard had
been a woman. How he knew that... he did not know, but the thought flashed
through his mind, just before the blackness slammed across him.
Somewhere
in that hot blackness, ashes and death sifted down across him, and distant
voices he could not make out called out in languages he could not understand. Then, there was a
silence, and he could feel that he was on his back.
"Eyes
moving ..."
The
first thing Kharl felt was water, warmish water, across his forehead and face,
as he lay on his back on a hard surface-the road, he thought.
"Ser
Kharl?"
He
opened his eyes, but the light seared them, and he closed them immediately. He
tried to speak, but all that came out was a growl, followed by a paroxysm of
coughing. After a moment, he coughed out matter, perhaps fine ashes. Then, as
the coughing subsided, he managed to sit up, assisted by someone he could not
see.
Slowly,
he tried to open his eyes again, slitting them and squinting against the light.
The all-too-familiar daggers stabbed into his skull.
"Ser
.. . best you drink some water."
Kharl
didn't argue, either about the water or about eating the bread and cheese that
a lancer handed him in small morsels. Everything tasted like ashes-again-but he
put the food in his mouth and chewed, methodically. He swallowed the water in
between mouthfuls. Finally, he slowly rose to his feet on legs that felt as
weak as water.
"You
think you should be standing, ser?" asked Undercaptain Demyst from his
mount.
"No.
I probably ought to get mounted and let the horse do the standing."
A lancer
laughed, quietly, but the laugh died away as Demyst turned his head and glared
to his right.
Kharl
closed his eyes for a moment. That helped relieve the pain and the glare,
although he knew that the sun wasn't that bright.
"Just
a moment, ser," said another voice. "Janos is bringing your
mount."
"Thank
you."
Kharl stood
there, waiting, his eyes still closed, with the odors of ashes and death
swirling around him. There was no sense of chaos. He still could not quite take
in what had happened, or the stillness around him.
"The
lord-chancellor's on his way down, ser. Had to go around the back side of the
hill, a long way. That's what Stevras said. Sent him as a messenger."
"I'd
better get mounted." Kharl slit his eyes again. The pain daggers were
still there, but he tried not to wince as he turned and took two steps toward
the gelding. Mounting was easier than seeing what he was doing.
Once in
the saddle, he had to cough again, and, for a moment, he thought he might not
be able to hold down what he had eaten, but he closed his eyes, and the
coughing subsided. As he sat in the saddle, waiting for Hagen, he realized that
he could sense no chaos. None. That was good, he supposed.
After a
time, he slit his eyes again to look around him, first uphill to the southwest,
then along the road to the south. Everywhere he saw gray- ashes, smoke and
ashes, and with the faint breeze came even more strongly the stench of burned
flesh, both of men and mounts. The entire front of the hill beyond the
northeast road and the flat below were smoldering charnel heaps, and the gray of
ashes as fine as dust had settled over everything.
Farther
west, the top of the hill shimmered in the afternoon sunlight, shimmered like a
mirror, a glassy surface of red and black, a surface created by the chaos
blasts of the dead white wizard-or should she have been termed a sorceress?
Kharl
had heard of the Legend, and the tales of Megaera, but... those had always just
been stories. Who could have believed that such a mighty sorceress had existed
in his own time? Or that she had been sent to Austra?
Slowly,
he eased the mount along the road toward the ragged column coming from the west
along the river road.
When he caught sight of Kharl, the lord-chancellor motioned for the other
lancers to halt, then rode alone toward Kharl.
"I'll
meet the lord-chancellor alone," Kharl said to Demyst.
"Lancers
halt! The mage and the lord-chancellor will meet alone."
Kharl
forced himself to take another swallow from the water bottle. The water still
tasted like liquid ashes, but he swallowed with a gulp, then put it back in the
looped holder above his knee.
"Ser
Kharl... What.. . what did ... ?" Hagen could not finish the question.
"What
was necessary." Kharl's voice was flat.
"Both the white wizards are dead. From their own chaos." He closed
his eyes. Talking intensified the sight-daggers jabbing into his skull.
"That
last... it seared everything below the hillcrest-except your squad. We lost a
third of ours then. It's all glass-a hillside of glass."
"And
ashes." Kharl paused. "We lost more than that. We lost all of the
lancers in Lord Fergyn's forces."
"I
see ... why few would wish a war with either Hamor or Recluse."
Kharl
offered a weary smile, except the expression was more grimace than smile.
"No. That is clear. I am certainly not as great a mage as those of Reduce,
and the white wizard could not have been the greatest in Hamor."
"No.
The emperor would not send his greatest," Hagen agreed.
"Will
this end the rebellion?" asked Kharl.
"I
would judge so." Hagen glanced to his right, out across the grayness and
devastation. "One can never tell, but all those who led it or were in the
councils of the rebels are dead. The lancers and armsmen who followed them are
dead."
Kharl
just nodded. Then, a wave of weakness and dizziness swept over him, and he
lowered his head until his forehead was almost resting against the gelding's
mane.
"Kharl...
are you all right?"
"Be
... a while ... before ... I get my strength ... back." Even those few
words seemed to exhaust him, and he sat in the saddle, his eyes closed, trying
just to hang on. After several moments, the worst of the dizziness passed, and
he gradually straightened.
"Are
you sure?" asked
"I'll...
be riding . .. slowly." Kharl managed a faint
smile.
XXVIII
Ihere is
a Balance, too, among those who can master order or chaos. There are few who
have the talent and the discipline to claim even minor skills in handling such
forces. There are even fewer who can boast of some limited degree of mastery,
and fewer still who attain great mastery, especially of order, for mastery of
chaos is far easier than the same level of mastery of order ...
The
balance is this: A mage may have a wide range of skills, but his breadth of
skills will limit great skill in one area of mastery. Conversely, a mage may
have great mastery in one area, but most limited abilities in others, where
lesser mages may in fact show greater skill.
This
Balance of mastery, then, must be considered in all things. A great weather mage may not be able to spur the
slightest growth in plants nor heal the simplest cut. A mighty metal mage may
not be capable of even sensing when the weather will change.
Yet a
possessor of minor order abilities may be able to heal a cut, strengthen the
wool of sheep, find the bad pearapples from among the good without touching a
one, and always know when the weather will change. But he can do no great
mageries, though he can accomplish some magery in all areas where order may be
fruitfully used.
That
often is the weakness of those of great single magely skills, that they fail to
understand that they cannot be great in all areas, and that they may make great
errors if they fail to recognize that the Balance applies to them as well as to
the relation between order and chaos.
As in
all matters of order, chaos, and the affairs of men and women, there is a
Balance, and a price to be paid for greatness and great accomplishments.
-The
Basis of Order
XXIX
Kharl
slept poorly on fourday night, even though they had not reached the Great House
until after sunset, what with the clouds and the downpour that had swept in,
seemingly from nowhere, turning the roads into muddy quagmires and extending a
journey of perhaps two glasses into one three times that long. By the time he
reached his quarters, he was soaked and shivering. Even before the fire in his
small hearth, a good glass had passed before he had been warm enough to climb
into bed.
Then,
after he had dropped off, uneasily, the image of the white sorceress appeared
before him, time after time, then vanished in a swirl
of chaos and ashes. Twice he woke, drenched in sweat, with every muscle in his
body aching. Even in the darkness of his quarters, when he opened his eyes, the
sight-daggers jabbed into his skull. In fact, in the darkness it was worse,
because each dagger exploded in a flash of light.
Morning
was not much better, although a visit to the bath chamber and breakfast improved his being somewhat. The
egg toast only tasted lightly of ashes. The pale ale might have helped as well.
Then he went back to his quarters, to rest. Outside the windows of his
quarters, the rain continued to fall, almost in sheets at times.
Rest
eluded him. Too many thoughts swirled through his skull. Why had the Emperor of
Hamor sent a white sorceress? She had been far more powerful than any of the
white wizards, and the emperor had risked her on a revolt in Austra? Did Hamor
have that many whites so powerful? Or had she been a danger to the emperor?
Every time Kharl thought he had learned something, he found that there was so
much more he did not know.
So far as Kharl knew, how he had applied order had seemed
straightforward. He'd read from The Basis of Order, then tried to work things
out. Some things hadn't worked. Some had, but had almost prostrated him, or
worse, and one or two others had worked well. In most magely things, Kharl had
just been middling, and only good in a few. That was life. The same had been
true when he'd just been a simple cooper.
"Ser
Kharl?"
Even without
much effort, Kharl could sense the blackness of Lyras beyond the door. His
order-senses were sharper than ever, but that sharpness was so clear that it
was almost painful. He did not want to think about what it might feel like to
deal with another white wizard.
"Come
in, Lyras. It's unbolted. Unbarred, too."
Lyras,
in the browns he always wore, opened the door and stepped inside.
Kharl
motioned to the other chair and watched as Lyras seated himself.
"You're
feeling better?" asked Lyras.
"Not
sure I could have felt worse ..." Kharl closed his eyes as the
sight-daggers jabbed into his skull even more sharply. "I feel
better."
Lyras
laughed. "The more powerful a black mage is, the harder it is to say
something that is not accurate. You have become very powerful, ser Kharl, and
in a shorter time than perhaps any mage since the great Cres-lin."
Kharl
wanted to deny the other's words, but... was there any truth in them? He
finally spoke. "I would not know. I do know that it is uncomfortable not
to tell... what is accurate." He was having a hard time with the word
truth and wanted to avoid using it, at least aloud.
Lyras
smiled. "You have not had the time to become accustomed to the results of
power."
"That
is so. Unfortunately." While Kharl still wasn't certain how much real
power he had, there was no doubt that he had not had time to become accustomed
to dealing personally and directly with those of power. He closed his eyes for
a moment.
"Too
much use of power, especially in dealing with chaos, often affects a mage's
sight. Creslin lost his, on and off, for much of his later life."
"When
I look at anything, there are daggers stabbing in through my eyes," Kharl
admitted.
"Hmmm
... that's one I never heard of. Then, everything about you is ... a little
different."
"I
wouldn't know."
"No
... you wouldn't," Lyras agreed cheerfully. "That's why I'm
here."
"Oh?"
"Lord
Hagen, he said ..."
Kharl
waited.
"You
said that you were far from the great mages of Reduce."
"I did.
I've been a mage something like a year, Lyras. I can do a few things passably,
and one or two fairly well. The great mages of Reduce certainly can do more
than that." Kharl felt confident about that statement, and his eyes
certainly didn't pain him any more than they had.
"I
hesitate to tell you this, ser Kharl, but what I have to say ... there is no
one else who has seen what I have and knows what it portends."
Kharl
didn't like the words, or the caution behind them. "What are you going to
tell me?"
"You
are the greatest mage-or the most powerful in what you do-in two generations,
and possibly among the handful of truly great order- mages."
"Me?"
"Not
since Fairven fell has a black mage faced the kind of chaos that I felt
yesterday."
Had it
been only yesterday? Just yesterday? Kharl shrugged, helplessly. "I
wouldn't know. I find that hard to believe."
"A
stretch of hillside almost a kay square was fused into glass. More than six
companies of lancers and two white wizards were burned to ashes. People will
ride by there for generations to come and marvel. Not many mages can handle
that kind of power." Lyras gestured to the rain outside. "Out of a
clear sky this torrent swept in. That happens when mighty order and mighty chaos meet. Crops all across
eastern Austra will be washed out if it continues."
"But...
I didn't create it. The white wizards did. All I did was turn it against
them."
"All?"
Lyras's laugh was warm, rather than hard, and somehow sad. "Those were
great white wizards. The greater one was, I think, perhaps even a chaos-focus.
He was probably sent here to keep him out of Hamor. No ruler likes that kind of
power too close."
"I
had thought about that." Although Kharl could understand that, he wondered
if he was the only one who had realized that the greater wizard had actually
been a sorceress, and if he should correct Lyras. He decided against saying
anything. What difference would it make whether the white had been man or
woman? Power was power. The more important point was the one about rulers
distrusting great wizardry too near to them. "I had hoped to return to
Cantyl as soon as I can."
"That
is a good thought." Lyras smiled again. "You need time to rest, and
to consider what you have learned and how it has changed you and how it will
continue to change you." He stood. "Until later."
"You're
going home."
"Lord
Ghrant does not need me. Nor does the lord-chancellor. They have you. I would
rather spend my efforts on my berry bushes."
"Give
my best to your consort," Kharl offered.
"Oh,
I will, and we'll send you some of the best preserves in the fall. It's the
least we can do." With those words, and another smile, the black mage was
gone.
Kharl
closed his eyes and leaned back in the chair.
Thrap!
He
jerked awake at the rap on the door. He'd dozed off, but from the light coming
through the window, it couldn't have been for long.
"Ser
Kharl?"
"Yes?"
The word came out as a croak. Kharl cleared his throat and tried again.
"Yes?"
"The
lord-chancellor wanted to know if you would join him for a private midday meal
in his study."
"Now?"
"He
had thought so."
"I'll
be right there." Kharl eased himself out of the chair and to his feet. He
walked slowly to the door, and the armsman who stood outside waiting.
Neither
spoke on the way along the corridor and down the stone steps, although Kharl
could sense the young man's gaze falling upon him more than once.
The two guards
outside the lord-chancellor's study stiffened as Kharl approached.
"He's
expecting you, ser Kharl," said the older one, half-opening the door.
"Thank
you." Kharl managed a smile he hoped was warm and friendly.
As Kharl
stepped inside
Set on
each side of the table desk was a platter, and a beaker of lager by each. As
Hagen seated himself, so did Kharl.
"How
are you feeling?" asked
"Passable,"
Kharl admitted. "A bit tired, too. How about you? How are things going
here? With Lord Ghrant?"
"For
some it was probably true." Kharl took a swallow of the lager, enjoying it
mainly just because it did not taste like ashes. "But what about lords
like Azeolis?"
"He
was one of the first to pledge allegiance and to offer reparations."
"And
Lord Ghrant will accept both, I take it."
"For
now, blaming the dead makes for a convenient apology and explanation."
Kharl
understood. Ghrant couldn't afford to lay low all the dissatisfied lords in
Austra, and they certainly didn't want to end up like Fergyn or Hensolas. Kharl
took a bite of the lamb cutlet in a white cheese sauce. He had to admit that
the food was welcome. He also ate several of the fried lace potatoes, dipping
them in the sauce as well.
Kharl
sipped some of the ale before replying. "I'd thought it might be best for me
to return to Cantyl. Quietly. Seems to me that I've done enough for now."
"That
might be for the best." A faint smile quirked the lips
of the lord-chancellor. "After Lord Ghrant's audiences with Lord
Deroh and a few of the lords who tacitly supported Kenslan, Malcor, Hensolas,
and Fergyn."
"After
the last audience ... you want me there? Lord Ghrant does?" Kharl found
that hard to believe.
"Want?"
Hagen laughed. "I doubt Lord Grant wants you there, but he needs you
there. He needs all of Austra to see that you stand behind him, and that you
are indeed a presence. Then he will doubtless grant you some other boon and
suggest that you rest and enjoy your lands."
Kharl
wasn't looking forward to another audience, but he could see the reasons for
"An eightday or so from now. It will take Lord Azeolis some time to
reach Valmurl, and somewhat longer for my scouts to report. In the meantime,
enjoy your food." Hagen smiled.
Kharl
returned the smile. He could use the time to recover more fully- and the lamb
was excellent.
XXX
On
sixday and sevenday, Kharl did little but rest, eat, sleep-and reflect. Trying
to read hurt his eyes too much. After two days, the torrential rain had
subsided into gray mist and fog that matched Kharl's melancholy. He told
himself that he shouldn't feel that way. He'd helped put down a rebellion that
would have left Austra in far worse shape. He'd stopped-for the time,
anyway-the Emperor of Hamor from taking the first steps to subdue Austra, and
he'd preserved his own lands and future, lands he would never have dreamed of
having a year before. He'd bested some of the most powerful white wizards seen
outside of Hamor in years. Weren't those worthy accomplishments?
Yet,
with each accomplishment, he felt more distant from those around him. The
guards stepped back and stiffened. Some people who once smiled bowed
thoughtfully. Others stepped into side corridors, as if they had errands
elsewhere.
He eased
himself out of the chair in his sitting room and turned to face the window, looking out into the gray
afternoon. He could still see the face of the white sorceress, and hear her
single word of protest, as if what he had done was not supposed to have
happened.
Was
Lyras right? Certainly, the older mage had believed he was telling the truth.
That Kharl had sensed. But.. . how could that be? How could a former cooper,
who had not even studied magery, have gained that much power?
Kharl
laughed softly. He had not gained that much power. He had mastered one or two
abilities well enough to turn chaos-power against its users. At the risk of
blinding himself, he could release some chaos by loosening order bonds, and he
could shield himself and a small group. That was power, but it was limited
power.
Lyras
disliked using power. According to legend, the mage who had brought down
Fairven had survived and vanished. Creslin had seldom used his powers in later
years. Kharl himself worried about what might happen if he faced more white
wizards. At some point, did a black mage become strong enough that the greatest
bar to his use of power was his understanding of what that power could do?
At the
same time, Kharl had seen enough to know that most people respected only power.
Was that why power so easily came to be abused, reflected the mage, and why the
great mages of the past had vanished, or become recluses? He paused. Did the
very name of Reduce signify something like that? Was that why it had a council,
rather than a ruler, because it had been created by Creslin, supposedly the
greatest air mage of all time? Because shared power was less easily abused?
Kharl
turned away from the window, closing his eyes to relieve them, his thoughts
still swirling within his skull.
XXXI
Not until
eightday did the weather clear fully, and by then Kharl was able to see more
distinctly, and the frequency of the sight-daggers knifing into his skull had
diminished, although each jab felt as painful as any of those he had endured
earlier. He had not seen Hagen, and he knew few within the Great House, and those he did not know
were both polite, friendly- and distant. That was to be expected, he had come
to understand.
Late on
eightday afternoon, Kharl strolled through the formal gardens on the south side
of the main building, gardens enclosed by a four-cubit-high redstone wall.
Despite the wall, the winds and rains had taken their toll on the flowers and
the more delicate shrubs. Stems and leaves littered the white gravel pathway.
Not a single one of the maroon bellflower stems remained erect, all flattened
before the buds had opened.
He
stopped before a bed of early pink roses. Beneath the plants was a carpet of
petals, still damp from the rain. A single bloom remained largely intact, if
with a disheveled appearance, and it drooped on a lower branch, slightly
sheltered. Kharl could smell but the faintest scent.
He
studied the bedraggled pink rose, still waterlogged. It might have opened into
a perfect blossom, once, but the wind and rain of the previous days had put a
stop to that. Even so, the rosebushes held the faintest of black auras, the
same order that had infused the red pear orchard. He stood on the path, sensing
that particular rosebush. He shifted his weight, and the white gravel under his
boots crunched.
He had
been able to sense the order and chaos within people for some time, an ability
that had begun almost the moment he had taken Jenevra's black staff and fled
from Egen's Watch. The feeling for other aspects of living order-he had become
aware of that only recently, and most dramatically, when he had drained the
pear orchard of its life order to stop the white wizard supporting Hensolas.
At a
cough coming from his left, Kharl straightened and turned.
"Lord-chancellor."
"Ser mage."
"Better, each day."
"That's
good. Lord Ghrant has set the first audience for fiveday. For Lord Deroh."
Kharl
remembered
"His
estates are midway between Dykaru and Valmurl. He didn't raise men or arms for
the rebels, but he did send golds to Hensolas. He has pleaded that he had to do
that in order to keep from having his lands ravaged."
"It
sounds like his lands were in no immediate danger," Kharl observed.
"I
doubt they were. I'd wager a few of the audiences will be like that. You will
be there, of course."
"This
time, I'll whisper what I think to you."
A
sardonic grin crossed
"Is
there anything else I should know?"
"No.
It's probably better if you don't know about the backgrounds of any of the
lords who will be appearing."
"You
don't sound like their backgrounds speak well for them."
"For them, perhaps, but not for their support of
Lord Ghrant."
"If
there isn't too much more rain," Kharl replied cautiously. With all the flattened
plants and stems he had seen, he had his doubts even if the summer days to come
were temperate.
"Lyras
said that there wouldn't be. Not unless you have to deal with more white
wizards. That appears unlikely." Hagen laughed sardonically, a trace more
bitterness in the sound than usual, even recently.
"Why
do you say that?"
"Lord
Ghrant received a message from a Lord Fynarak."
From the
sound of the name, Kharl suspected that the lord was Hamo- rian. "What did
it say?"
"It
was vaguely worded, something to the effect that he was conveying the
solicitude of the emperor about the internal difficulties that Lord Ghrant had
recently faced, but congratulating him on his fortitude and resourcefulness in
dealing with the rebel lords. This Lord Fynarak went on to say that the emperor
was committed to measures that would ensure peace between Austra and
Hamor."
Kharl
smiled, somewhat faintly.
"So
they sank a Nordlan ship to bury any evidence of Hamor's treachery?"
"Not exactly. Too much of the world already knows what
the emperor attempted. The sinking was another message of sorts. The first was
to his own people. He won't tolerate failure, and trying to escape to other
lands is futile. The second was to the rest of the world, suggesting that
interfering in Hamor's affairs can bear a heavy price."
Kharl
understood
"And
we paid a heavy price, did we not?"
"But a Nordlan ship?"
"Oh...
the Fleuryl has been a thumb-thorn for Hamor before,
and more than once. Her master barely escaped from Swartheld several years
back, something about dreampowder-"
The Fleuryl? Kharl could feel his entire body chill. The Fleuryl?
The Fleuryl? Why the Fleuryl? Kharl swallowed.
"There
.. . weren't any survivors?"
"No.
The missive made that most clear." Once more, Hagen waited.
Finally,
Kharl spoke, slowly. "My eldest, Arthal. He was a carpenter's assistant.
On the Fleuryl."
This
time,
"You
couldn't. I didn't tell her. He wasn't happy with me. Not after everything that
happened."
"I
lost one of my boys. Not something like this, though." Hagen reached out
and touched Kharl's shoulder, gently.
The mage
could feel the older man's concern. It helped-some. "I... I always worried
about him .. . going off because he was angry. Leaving . .. like that. Not
going to something, but from something."
Kharl
could feel a numbness inside. He didn't want to think
about it, and yet he couldn't not. After a time, he looked up at Hagen.
"I'm
sorry," the lord-chancellor said again.
"I
know. I know." Kharl swallowed. "I think I'd just like to be alone
... for a bit."
"You'll
have supper with me,"
"Thank
you."
The
lord-chancellor nodded, then stepped back.
Kharl
listened as
He
wondered if he could have accepted Arthal's death more easily if Arthal had
died in a storm or even a brawl. But to be killed ... as a result of what Kharl
himself had done? Even indirectly?
And the Fleuryl? It had been in the harbor at Valmurl not
days before. Arthal had been there, and Kharl had not even known, not even
suspected, so preoccupied had he been in dealing with white wizards and rebel
lords. So close ...
The mage
looked back at the single rose, drooping, above the carpet of fallen petals. A
single survivor, of sorts, of the storm that Kharl had created. Would that
Arthal had been so fortunate.
Arthal... dead. Because of Kharl. Because of a petulant
emperor.
Dead ...
Slowly,
Kharl walked back up to his chambers.
He took
his time washing up and preparing for dinner, not that
He still
thought about his son, even as he later walked down to meet
The
lord-chancellor was waiting.
Kharl
nodded, slipping into the chair opposite the lord-chancellor. "I hadn't
thought..."
"We
never do." Hagen went on. "People say that you need to be alone. It
could be that I'm mistaken, but there's more than enough time to be alone. The
nights can be long." He lifted a goblet. "It's a sad time, but to
better times ... and friendship."
Kharl
lifted his own goblet. "To better times and friendship." He was glad
for Hagen's friendship, and for the way in which the lord- chancellor had
immediately responded.
Even
from the first small swallow, the wine was warming. "This is good."
"I
hope so." Hagen smiled.
For a
long moment, there was silence.
"You
lost a son," Kharl said, wanting to talk about Arthal, and yet, not
wanting to.
"With
some boys, Kharl,"
Had
Kharl been too strict? "I didn't think that I was all that strict with
Arthal. I wanted him to understand that he had to do what was expected. People
don't pay unless you do the job and do it well." Kharl shook his head.
"Charee was always saying that he was just a boy, even when he'd reached
his double-eight."
"To
them, they're always boys." Hagen took the smallest sip of his wine.
"It was my second son. Narlan. Tall and strapping. He had a smile that
would melt any girl's heart-her mother's, too. He worked hard, and he learned
quickly." The lord-chancellor's voice softened. "He listened to
everyone but me."
"I
don't know who Arthal listened to," Kharl said, after a moment. "He
didn't listen to me."
Hagen
nodded for Kharl to go on.
"Everything
happened so fast," Kharl mused. "One night, I heard singing and loud
voices in the alley behind the cooperage, just as I was getting ready to go up
for supper. I went out. Two bravos were making free with my neighbor's
daughter, had her blouse half-ripped off. I stopped them and got her home. I
didn't think much about it, didn't even tell Charee or the boys. A few days
later, I heard moaning in another alley, found another girl. She was a
blackstaffer, and she'd been taken by force, beaten badly, and left to die. I
brought her back to the cooperage. Charee didn't want me to. She said it would
cause trouble. She was right, but how could I let the girl die?" Kharl
stopped and looked down at the wine goblet.
"What
happened then?" Hagen's voice was gentle.
"It
turned out that it was the same bravo, lord's second son. He hired an assassin. They set a fire in my
neighbor's shop. I went to help. The assassin killed the girl with one of my
shop knives. The Watch hauled me off, and put me up for murder. There were
witnesses, though. They came to the Hall of Justice and said I couldn't have
done it. One was well known to Lord West." Kharl shrugged helplessly.
"They found blood on Charee's blouse, said she'd done it. Hanged her and
flogged me. Arthal took it hard. He blamed me. He said that it was all my
fault, that I should have listened to his mother. Wasn't that long before he
walked out and shipped on the Fleuryl as a carpenter's boy. Lord West raised my
tariffs so high I would have lost the cooperage. Except I killed the assassin.
I didn't even know it was him until later. He'd murdered my neighbor for
speaking up for me at the Hall of Justice. I caught him coming out of the scriptorium.
Had to run then, and hid till you and the Seastag ported in Brysta. You know
the rest."
"You
did the honorable thing,"
"No
one else thought so. Not Charee, not Warrl, not Arthal." Kharl sipped the
wine. "Especially not Arthal. He said I never listened and that nothing
could be worse than staying with me. I should have stopped him."
"For
how long?" asked
"You
said . . . you lost him ..." offered Kharl.
"He
sailed with a Delapran merchanter-except it wasn't a merchanter. She was a sometime
pirate, and one of the black ships of Reduce sank her in less than a season
after he left."
"I'm
sorry." What else could Kharl say?
"It
was a good ten years ago. You don't ever get over it. It always hurts. It just
doesn't hurt as often." Hagen offered a faint smile. "You have to
remember, Kharl, hard as it is, hard as it will be, that young men make their
own choices. We did, and they will. When you've done your best-and you're a man
who always tries to do what's right-in the end, they have to choose for
themselves. The hard thing is when they don't choose well, and there's nothing
you can do about it."
What
could Kharl have done differently? He still couldn't see ignoring Sanyle or
Jenevra. Nor could he have not tried to help fight the fire that had
threatened Tyrbel's scriptorium.
After that... nothing would have changed, and Arthal would never have
understood, no matter what Kharl had said.
Yet...
He
looked at the wine. That was no answer, either. He was just glad that Hagen was
there.
XXXII
Each day
brought Kharl greater recovery, and by threeday, he was only occasionally
finding holes in his vision, and the sight-daggers had become infrequent, and
more like momentary wasp stings. He still brooded about Arthal, wondering if
there had been anything he could have done that would have persuaded his son
against leaving the cooperage. Even if Arthal had waited ... for a later ship .
.. anything ... Every time he recalled their parting, he came to the same
conclusion that Hagen had voiced. Arthal had been so angry that nothing short
of chaining the youth would have stopped him from taking the billet on the
Fleuryl.
And
then, to find after his death, that his son had been within a handful of kays,
and Kharl had not even known it.
Slightly
after midday, Kharl was sitting alone in the small dining room, sipping light
ale from a beaker and waiting for his meal when Norgen entered and walked over
to his table.
"Might
I join you, ser Kharl?"
"Please
do." Kharl gestured to the seat across the table from him. He was more
than glad to see the commander of Ghrant's personal guard. Everyone else,
except Hagen, had been most polite, most courteous, and most distant.
"Thank
you." As Norgen seated himself, he absently brushed back the thin and fine
hair that had once been far redder. He gestured to the serving girl. "An
ale, here, when you have a moment."
"Yes, ser."
Norgen
smiled at Kharl. "You're looking better. Your face was blistered all over
after the battle."
"An
eightday's worth of rest helps. Or almost an eightday."
"That
can be a long time. I imagine it's been rather quiet for you." Nor-gen
paused as the server set a beaker of ale before him. "Thank you," he
said to her.
The
server inclined her head and slipped away.
"Not
many people wish to talk to you, I'd think, and those few that do aren't the
ones you'd wish to exchange words with."
Kharl
raised his eyebrows. "Those words come from experience."
Norgen laughed,
a harsh sound, for all that the laugh was not that loud. "Commander . ..
surely you could have prevailed without losing so many lancers? Commander, if
you had been more effective, Lord Ghrant might not have had to rely so heavily
on the mage ..."
"That's
not the lord-chancellor," Kharl said.
"No.
It's lords like Vhint and Ferosyl. They had to supply lancers and armsmen to
replace casualties in the personal guard. Like all armsmen in a battle, some
didn't survive, and now the lords are complaining-as if casualties in battle
were a great surprise."
"I
did the best I could," Kharl said.
"Ser
Kharl... you'll get no complaint from me. If you hadn't prevailed, all of our
forces would be ashes, and I'm not sure that the ones with Hen-solas and Fergyn
wouldn't still have been as well."
Both men
looked up as the server returned and set platters before each, and a basket of
bread between them. Dark bread, and freshly baked, Kharl noted with
satisfaction. On each platter were three cutlets in brown gravy, cheese mashed
potatoes, and soggy-looking beans.
"Thank
you," Kharl said to the server, offering a smile.
"Yes, ser." The young woman's eyes avoided Kharl's,
even as she half bowed and backed away.
"The
terrible mage," murmured Kharl.
"It's
the same folk who want you-or me-to use whatever force is necessary so that
their lives can go on, undisturbed," said Norgen cheerfully. He broke off
a section of the dark bread and handed the basket to Kharl. "I've been in
service long enough to see how fickle folk are. When there's peace, they see no
use for lancers-or mages. When there's war, they'll promise you anything and
look the other way if what you do is too bloody for their sensibilities. But if
you suggest that a campaign will be too bloody, you're accused of cowardice or
sympathizing with the enemy. Afterwards, they all say that you didn't have to
be so brutal... or something like that."
After
taking a chunk of bread, Kharl set it on the edge of his platter.
"Gratitude doesn't last long."
"If
you get it at all," replied Norgen. "Most people are like small
children. They want things their way, and they don't like to be reminded of
their duties, or that they should be grateful to those who have protected them.
Children don't ever appreciate their parents, not until they have children of
their own. The problem with ruling-or fighting for a ruler-is that most people
never get that kind of responsibility. So they never understand the choices and
the costs." He took a sip of the ale before continuing. "There are
folktales that go back as long as people have told them. In them, most rulers
are evil and greedy. Ever hear one that talks about evil and greedy
subjects?" He laughed.
"You
don't think much of people, then?" asked Kharl.
Norgen
smiled, sadly. "I'm one of them. I get as greedy and as upset as the next
person when things don't go my way. You remind yourself of that, and don't
expect people to do more at their best than you at your worst, and you'll be
pleasantly surprised in life. People are people. Those who expect goodness from
everyone all the time-they're the ones who die bitter and unhappy."
"Do
most commanders think the way you do?"
"The
good ones do-like Casolan-not that I'm as good as he is."
"You
both believe in doing the best you can," observed Kharl.
"So
do you, ser mage. I've seen that." After a pause, the lean commander
added, "What else is there in life, other than doing your best? Youth
doesn't last. Neither does good fare or ale. Gratitude certainly doesn't. Fame
doesn't. About all that does is the satisfaction of knowing you did your
best."
"You
should have been a scholar," Kharl suggested.
Norgen
grinned sheepishly. "I was for a time. Don't tell people. Upset my folks
something awful. Couldn't stand all the older scholars arguing about things
they'd never known and couldn't prove. Far as I know, you only get one life.
Decided I'd rather live mine than study and write about the lives and acts of
dead men and women. Or about the way languages or laws have changed. Or
..." The commander shrugged.
"You
have any children?"
"Two daughters, one son. He's a scholar. Thinks his father's crazy,
but he's scared to say so. My daughters, they just shake their heads when they
think I'm not looking. Kasrina understands, and that's enough."
"If
she understands, you're a fortunate man," Kharl said, after finishing a
mouthful of a too-chewy cutlet. "None of mine did ... or have, not so far,
anyway."
"I
know that, too." Norgen took another sip from the beaker. "You had to
leave your family behind?" The word were not quite a question.
"My
consort died, and my eldest son ... he left. He blamed me." Kharl
swallowed. He'd wanted just to mention Arthal and let it go. He shook his head.
"The Nordlan merchanter, the one that had the Hamorian envoy on it. The
Hamorians . .. they sank it. He was a carpenter's apprentice."
Norgen
nodded slowly and gravely. "I'm sorry. I had wondered. You have been quiet
and withdrawn, even for a mage with much to think about."
"I
wouldn't have thought they would destroy an entire ship, just to punish a
failed envoy."
"They
are without compassion. I am sorry." Norgen lifted his beaker.
Kharl
couldn't help noticing that the commander, for all the number of times he had
sipped the ale, had drunk less than half. He swallowed and pushed away the
thoughts of Arthal, for the moment, at least. "Do you think there will be
any more rebellion?"
"There's
no one left to rebel-not with enough golds and armsmen to stand against even
what's left of Lord Ghrant's personal guard. No... things will be quiet here
for a while, maybe a long while. Hamor will go make trouble somewhere else,
Nordla or Candar, most likely. The lord- chancellor will keep Lord Ghrant from
being too vindictive and from tariffing too much. Lord Ghrant will try to
forget that you're around, except to summon you to the Great House now and
again, just to remind the lords of your power, and on those days, we'll get our
blades and harnesses polished and parade, and the young lancers will think that
they're getting paid for doing little-and when the next trouble comes, the ones
who learned the least will die, and we'll start all over again. But, by that
time, I hope, I'll be stipended or even long gone."
Kharl
found Norgen's cheerful cynicism refreshing-and depressing. Perhaps what made
his words even more depressing was the honesty behind them. The commander saw
life as it was, not as he wished it to be- and he didn't seem to hate those who
were cruel and stupid.
What was
it that the druid had said? Not to act out of anger and hatred? Kharl wished he
had listened to the druids more carefully. He half nodded, more to himself than
to Norgen. "I hope you're right."
"Oh
... things will go that way. Lord Ghrant's not the brightest who ever ruled, but he's far from the dimmest,
and he's come to understand that he'd do far worse with anyone else as
lord-chancellor."
Was
Norgen being too charitable to Lord Ghrant? Kharl couldn't say. So he took
another mouthful of the potatoes. Time would tell.
XXXIII
On
fiveday afternoon, Kharl stood to the right of
The
angular and dark-bearded Deroh stopped several paces short of the dais and
turned his head. He stared directly at Kharl, and his face seemed to narrow.
After a long moment, he spoke, in a hard and deep bass voice, "Are you
going to strike me dead, mage? The way you did Guillam."
The
sardonic words seemed to fill the chamber.
Kharl looked
steadily back at Deroh. He felt no guilt about what happened to the corrupt
chief factor, and his eyes did not answer.
"Lord
Deroh," said Ghrant, his voice thin by comparison, "you answer to me,
not to my mages."
"Of course, your lordship." Deroh turned and bowed deeply, then took
two more steps and bowed again.
Kharl
understood exactly what Deroh had done. In a way, he had to respect the lord
for making that statement, and in another way, it irritated Kharl, because it implied
that Kharl was just a tool of execution. The mage repressed an ironic smile as
he realized that irritation had also been planted by Deroh's question. Once
more, Kharl had gotten a lesson in the halls of power.
"I
am here at your request, your lordship." Deroh inclined his head after his
words.
"Your
presence was commanded because of your apparent support for the late and
rebellious lords. Rather than begin with questions, I give you leave to
explain, as I am most certain you will, Lord Deroh."
"My
support, as you termed it, my lordship, was more apparent than real. I did not
provide armsmen or lancers. Nor did I encourage any other lord to become
disrespectful of your lordship or rebellious."
Kharl
watched and listened. Only the last words bore a hint of untruth, but those
preceding them had felt accurate to Kharl.
The mage
leaned forward and murmured, "He tells the truth. So far."
In turn,
"Why
did you grant such apparent support, Lord Deroh?"
"What
choice did I have, your lordship? Malcor and Hensolas had armies at my door.
Your forces were far removed from my lands. I dared not profess open loyalty,
not after I saw what happened to Vertyn and Lahoryn."
"Would
you have provided such apparent support if you had not been so coerced?"
"Why
would any sensible lord do otherwise?" A touch of sardonicism edged the
dark and lean lord's words.
"I
do not believe you answered my question, Lord Deroh."
"No.
Matters as they had been were much to be preferred over what those rebelling
promised."
Again,
Kharl could sense some equivocation, and he definitely had the impression that
while Deroh probably had to have been coerced, it had not taken much pressure.
Still... the lord was being fairly accurate as to how he had acted and felt.
"That
is less than a ringing declaration of support for your lord." Ghrant's
voice dripped acid.
"It
is support, your lordship. I had great fondness for your sire, but I had not
had the chance to come to know you."
"I
did not notice you hurrying to Valmurl to pay your respects, Lord Deroh."
"No, your lordship. Before I could, I found Lord Malcor and
Lord Hen-solas on my doorstep."
That
statement rang as true as anything Deroh had said, if not more so, and Kharl
whispered that to
"Yet
you did not warn me?"
"Had
I risked sending a message such as that, your lordship, I risked everything.
They had four white wizards, and none knew then of the power of Lord Kharl."
"That
is true. None did. A sad thing it is when the lords of a land must weigh power over duty. We shall make sure
that none of you ever face that choice again."
Deroh
paled slightly at Ghrant's words, but did not reply.
"We
will consider your statements, Lord Deroh, and reflect upon them overnight. You
will remain here as our guest until I offer my judgment in the morning."
Deroh
bowed. "I await your judgment, your lordship."
"You
may retire."
After Deroh
had left the chamber, Lord Ghrant rose, without another word, and departed as
well.
Kharl
followed
"What
is your feeling about the most honorable Lord Deroh?" Hagen's voice was
dry.
"He
cares little for Lord Ghrant, but he cared far less for Malcor and Hensolas. He
was loyal, I would judge, only so long as it suited him."
"That
could be said of many lords over the history of Austra, indeed, of any
land." Hagen leaned back in his chair, just slightly, but his eyes never
left Kharl. "What would you do?"
Kharl
didn't want to answer directly. "All of those who joined the revolt are
guilty to some degree. That includes those like Deroh who provided golds. He's
less guilty, by far. I'm not a justicer or a ruler, but if you punish them all,
what reason is there for anyone to support Lord Ghrant? Yet, if he ignores
their guilt, he might appear either weak or stupid. Also, if he pardons them,
some might say that shows weakness."
"After
what you did to the white wizards and the four lords who spearheaded the
revolt, some form of mercy might not be considered as weak as it might
otherwise."
"Then
he should pardon them, but require some golds to repay
him for all the costs of the rebellion." Kharl offered a crooked smile.
"After all, if they were willing to part with golds to those they did not
support willingly, they should certainly be willing to help rebuild Austra and
support the rightful ruler."
Hagen
laughed. "For a former cooper, ser Kharl.. ."
"How
will Lord Ghrant deal with Deroh, do you think?" Kharl paused. "Or
should I ask what you will suggest as punishment?"
"What
of the others he will see?"
"Much the same. I would hope that he finds them all guilty,
then pardons all of them, save Azeolis."
"What
of Azeolis? The last I heard, he was harassing Casolan."
"Casolan,
once he heard of your victory, turned and crushed Azeolis's forces. He captured
Azeolis and brought him to the Great House, trussed like a fowl."
"I
thought Azeolis had pledged to Lord Ghrant?"
"He
did so in haste as Casolan was bearing down upon him." Hagen laughed.
"It is easy to do so when you fear worse."
"Does
he have heirs?"
"He
has two sons living, and a daughter. His consort died three years ago. I
imagine Lord Ghrant will be merciful and allow them exile. The lands ... Lord
Ghrant will grant as he sees fit."
"Perhaps to Norgen or Casolan? Or split them between the two?"
"That
might be too generous. The lands are extensive." Hagen frowned. "He
should keep some for a time. His coffers are near empty. Perhaps an eighth part
each to his faithful commanders."
"What
if he suggested that he was holding that part only for a time? Perhaps appoint
an honest custodian, but one not beholden to him. He could still take the golds
until he bestowed the lands, and by giving some to Casolan and Norgen ...
?"
"That
might be best." Hagen nodded. "Lord Ghrant will reward you, as well."
"I
have enough land, with Cantyl," Kharl replied.
"The
forest to the south of Cantyl is now Lord Ghrant's. It was Ilteron's, and so
seldom mentioned that I was not even aware that it had come to Lord Ghrant,
and"-Hagen grinned momentarily-"I understand that there are a few
squares where there are white oaks. Not enough for commercial timbering, but
enough for a cooper. There is also a cherry orchard, which has been neglected."
"I
leave that in your hands, ser. I have been well rewarded."
"A
modest additional reward, and the gratitude of Lord
Ghrant. That is not too much for the mage who saved a land for its ruler."
Hagen's tone was firm. "A ruler must always be seen to be fair." He
rose. "I am to meet Lord Ghrant. We will talk later."
After
leaving
His
steps were slow as he climbed to the top of the tower, then
crossed to the eastern side, from where he could see all of Valmurl.
He had
very mixed feelings about greater rewards. By the standards of what he had
done, what Hagen had proposed was fair. Yet Kharl couldn't help feeling uneasy
about it. He'd received what amounted to a fortune, albeit smaller than that of
a greatholder, for destroying Ghrant's enemies. He'd accomplished that through
the twisted application of order, uses which he doubted that true order-mages
would have approved. When he had been a cooper, providing honest crafting for
folk like himself, he'd needed to worry over every copper. If he had not had to
worry so much, then perhaps Arthal. ..
He shook
his head. More coppers would not have changed what had happened or what Arthal
felt.
Now he
needed to worry about coins little, provided he was even halfway careful,
although he had done little constructive, and great destruction. He paused in
thought. Yet. . . was not preserving a land from rebellion and chaos
constructive?
He shook
his head. It had been the lesser of two evils, and he disliked having been put
in that position. But was that what having power meant? In a way, he envied
Lyras, with his berry bushes. Yet... the white wizards would have killed Lyras
had Kharl not come to Austra and done as he did.
Kharl
looked out over Valmurl, the afternoon sun on his back.
XXXIV
The next
two days were filled with audiences. Standing beside Hagen, Kharl watched, and
occasionally made quiet observations to the lord- chancellor as Lord Ghrant
heard the pleas of those lords who had not been so loyal as they might have
been. The one guilty lord who did not appear before Lord Ghrant-and Kharl and
Hagen-was Azeolis.
Several
glasses after the last audience on sevenday, Kharl and Hagen were sharing a small evening meal in the
lord-chancellor's study. Kharl's thoughts went back to the last audience, the
one for a Lord Benin, a round-faced man who had seemed more ineffectual than
lordly to Kharl. As he had with the others, Ghrant had found Benin guilty of
not fully supporting his Lord, had pardoned Benin, and like the others,
required a slightly higher annual tariff from the lord for the next five years.
"How
much longer will he hold audiences?" Kharl asked, after taking a sip of
the lager he preferred over wine-at least the wine he had tasted at the Great
House. "There can't be many lords left, guilty ones who are still alive,
anyway."
"There's
only Azeolis,"
"Am
I to be there?"
Kharl
could see the need for that-unfortunately. "What about Azeolis?" He
had an idea, but he was still learning about the politics of governing, and he
felt more comfortable having Hagen explain than trying to guess.
"There
will be one long audience to deal with the dead rebel lords, and their
heirs-and with Azeolis. Lord Ghrant wants the most unpleasant aspects handled
at one time."
"Will
he take all their lands?"
"So that the heirs will leave Austra? Isn't he afraid that they'll plunder their
estates to raise golds?"
"There
are guards at all the rebel estates. If the heirs slip away ... so long as the
estates remain intact..." Hagen shrugged. "Most of the value is in
the lands and the livestock and equipment."
"He'd
prefer that they leave, rather than being exiled?"
"They
will be exiled, and if they try to remain, they face a lifetime in gaol."
Kharl
found that he had little sympathy for the rebel lords, or for their heirs. They
had all held great wealth and lands, and the heirs had enjoyed that wealth as
well. Lord Ghrant, while not the most prepossessing of men, had certainly not
acted cruelly or wantonly, not from what anyone had said. Nor had Kharl found
chaos or evil within the young ruler. He did worry that Ghrant was not so
strong as a ruler should be; but after having suffered under the cruel strength
of Lord West and his son Egen in Brysta, Kharl was willing to deal with a ruler
who did not rely solely on the iron fist or the whip.
At that
thought, his lips curled slightly. He had provided that sort of force, if only
against the rebels and the Hamorians. Force had its necessary place, but it was
a question of balance. He almost laughed. For a man who had never thought about
balance, he had come to consider its place in everything in recent eightdays.
"You
find the exile amusing?" asked
"No, ser. I was thinking about force, and how it
must be balanced. I was also wondering why men with so much wealth and such
great lands would revolt against a ruler who had done nothing to them."
"He
seemed to show weakness. Weakness-or the appearance of weakness- is an
invitation to some. That is why Azeolis's audience will be the last."
Kharl
sensed the darkness behind
"Yes.
It will be ugly-and unhappily necessary." After a pause, the
lord-chancellor asked, "How do you like the duck?"
"Very much. I've never had it before, not like
this."
"I persuaded
the cooks to try an old family recipe."
"It's
good." The mage could tell that Hagen was not pleased with the idea of
making Azeolis into an example, and yet that the lord-chancellor was convinced
that it was necessary. Or was it that Hagen was disturbed that such an example
was required?
He
hesitated to ask the next question, knowing the answer already. Still...
"You haven't any word from the Seastag?"
"No.
We won't unless they port in Lydiar at the same time as the Sea-sprite. You
worry about the boy, I know, but..."
Kharl
nodded. Warrl should be safe with his aunt and uncle, but Kharl would have felt
much better to have his son at Cantyl. Yet there was no way he could travel to
Nordla, not at the moment.
He
glanced down at the remaining portion of the duck on the green- bordered white
bone china. Finally, he took another sip of the lager, then slowly cut a thin
slice of the duck.
XXXV
On
sixday, Kharl stood in the audience hall beside
"His Lordship, Ghrant of Dykaru, Lord of Austra and
Scion of the North."
In
silence, Ghrant entered the hall from the rear door across from the one through
which Kharl had followed
"Summon
the traitor Azeolis," announced the chamberlain.
The hall
remained hushed, even after the doors opened, and two burly armsmen in the
yellow and black of Ghrant's personal guard marched in a stocky figure dressed
in nearly shapeless gray trousers and underrunic. Azeolis's hands were manacled
behind him. A wide and thick band of cloth was tied across his lower face,
effectively gagging him.
Before
the doors closed, Kharl caught a glimpse of a full squad of the personal guard
stationed outside the audience hall.
"Azeolis,
former lord and traitor," announced the chamberlain once the captive had
reached a spot a cubit or so short of the foot of the dais.
Azeolis
looked directly at Ghrant.
The
young ruler stood and began to speak, his own eyes fixed, not on Azeolis, but
on the group to the right and behind Azeolis. "Azeolis-you who were once a
lord, privileged and exalted above others-you were not satisfied with wealth
and power. You lacked the courage to be loyal and the wisdom to ignore the vain
promises of others. Have you anything to say for yourself?"
Kharl
noted that
Ghrant
motioned to the armsmen.
The
taller deftly unknotted the heavy gag.
Azeolis
cleared his throat, but did not speak.
In turn,
Ghrant waited.
Silence
weighed upon the entire chamber before Azeolis finally spoke. "I was
loyal-once. Before a weakling became Lord of Austra." The still-stocky man
did not bother to disguise the contempt in his voice. "Even now, you do
not rule. Your power lies in the judgment of a merchant with a title and a mage
from another land."
"That
may well be," Ghrant replied. "It shows that I have better judgment
about who serves me well than you did. I have chosen loyalty and talent over
privilege and position."
Kharl
caught several looks of surprise on the faces of those in the audience hall.
For a
moment, even Azeolis was silent. That did not last. "You admit you have
debased your heritage-"
"Silence
him." Ghrant's voice was not hard, but almost tired, the voice of a man
who recognized that Azeolis would not hear what was said.
"Yes
.. . silence me." Azeolis got no further before
one of warders wrapped a heavy gag across his mouth and lower face.
"I
silence you because you have already spoken," Ghrant went on calmly.
"You spoke when you joined a revolt that began with the despicable murder
of my sire. You spoke when you supported the pretender who wanted to usurp this
seat so that he could rule with fire and fear. You spoke when you joined with
those who murdered loyal lords and their families. You spoke when you tried to ambush
loyal lancers. It is said that actions speak louder than words. Your actions
have indeed spoken for you. And for those actions you will pay. You cannot live
long enough to suffer as did all those for whom you caused suffering, but you
will suffer. You will be flogged like the common criminal you have become. Then
you will have all the limbs in your body broken, and then you will be beheaded.
Even that is too merciful for someone who has betrayed his heritage and his
family. Your estates will be divided. Half will return to the Great House, and
half will be broken into holdings. Many of those lands will be distributed to
those who worked them, for they should not suffer for your treachery. All the
heirs of your body and all those consorted to them and all issue are hereby
banned from Austra. Their lives or their freedom, or both, are forfeit should
they be found within Austra at the end of the next eightday." Ghrant
gestured. "Take him away. Let his sentence begin within the glass, and let
it be carried out before sunset."
Once
more,
Raw
hatred blazed from the gagged former lord-hatred so intense that to Kharl it
resembled chaos. Was hatred the chaos of thought-corrosive and destructive, yet
with a power to move men to great deeds of devastation? If so, what was the
order of thought? Anticipation and thoughtful planning? Or merely good
judgment? Kharl wasn't certain that he knew.
Ghrant
did not seat himself, but waited until Azeolis had been marched out and the
doors closed behind the last of the rebel lords. Then he surveyed those
remaining, his eyes seeming to move from one face to another, letting the
silence drag out.
In time,
he spoke once more, slowly, carefully, with pauses at the end of each sentence.
"Your consorts and sires were disloyal. They were disloyal not because I
had inflicted harm upon them. Not because I had imposed excessive tariffs. Not
because I had abused my position and seized daughters for my pleasure. Not for
any reason except that I was considered young and because they sought greater
wealth and power. For that, they have paid. For that, all of you will also pay.
A mad boar begets other madness, both in the sows and the boars that come from
him. Such madness is not acceptable in Austra."
Again,
the young lord let silence fill the chamber before he continued, repeating his
last words before going on. "Such madness is not acceptable in Austra. It
will never be acceptable. All of you, save those from the household of the traitor Azeolis, have two
eightdays from oneday to leave Austra. You may take with you only what you can
carry in one bag. You may not sell lands or equipment, nor may you take more
than a hundred golds with you. All the lands that your consorts and lords held
have reverted to the Great House." Ghrant stopped and surveyed the group
once again.
No one
cried. Several swallowed. The children glanced from their parents to Ghrant and
back again.
"That
is all. You may go and prepare for your exile." Ghrant nodded to the
armsmen, then turned his back on the group, as if in another form of dismissal,
and walked from the dais.
Slowly,
silently, the group shuffled out of the audience hall.
Kharl
had to admit to himself that he had been impressed by the young Lord Ghrant, and by the clarity with which he had expressed
himself; but it was also clear that those words had not been crafted by Lord
Ghrant, or not just by the young ruler. Hagen's nods had indicated that the
audience had been as planned as a minstrel's song-or even a cooper's barrel.
But,
Kharl reflected, that was not necessarily bad. When words affected people,
should they not also be considered and crafted?
"Kharl?"
murmured
The mage
started, then turned, realizing that he had to precede
the lord-chancellor from the audience chamber.
XXXVI
After
the last audience, Kharl retired to his quarters in the Great House. There he
wrestled with all that had happened in the eightdays since he had come to
Austra, with all that he had done. Just before sunset, the bell tolled to mark
Azeolis's death.
Kharl
left his sitting room, quietly, and made his way to the top of the north tower.
First, he watched the sunset, a sunset without brilliantly lit clouds. For a
time, he looked to the hills to the north and west. Then he crossed the tower
and studied Valmurl, with the evening breeze at his back, as the city darkened and the first
lamps were lit. He had skipped the evening meal, neither feeling hungry nor wanting
to talk to anyone.
The
rebellion was over, the rebellion that his thoughtless words had sparked. The
clenching of his stomach and the uneasiness of his thoughts forced him to correct
his thoughts-the rebellion that his thoughtless words had helped spark far
earlier than might otherwise have occurred.
There
had been so many dead. So many. Nearly half of Ghrant's regular Austran lancers
and armsmen had perished, one way or another. A third of the personal guard had
been killed or wounded, many disabled for life. Kharl had long since lost count
of the lords and their heirs who had been killed by one side or the other-and
all too many had died from his own efforts. Ilteron, Malcor, Kenslan, Fergyn,
Hensolas-and that didn't count the loyal lords such as Lahoryn and Vertyn and
their sons and daughters, killed by the rebels.
And all
of it sparked over truth? Because Kharl had revealed that he could tell when
they lied? Did those in power fear so greatly their deceptions being made
known? Did being a lord or ruling require that much deception? Was justice a
charade?
He
laughed softly, bitterly. It certainly had been in Brysta. But did it have to
be? Could justice not be administered, if not impartially, at least with
greater understanding and fairness?
His eyes
surveyed Valmurl once more. Did it seem strangely quiet, or was he just
imagining what he felt it should be?
So many questions ... so few answers.
He
turned as he sensed someone else stepping out onto the open tower top-Hagen.
"I
thought I might find you here," offered the lord-chancellor. "The
servers said that you had not eaten, but no one had seen you leave the Great
House, not that they would, were you minded to leave without being seen."
"I've
been thinking."
"That
can be very dangerous." Hagen's words were without a trace of humor,
sarcasm, or mockery.
"I
had not realized how dangerous truth can be."
"Ah,
yes. We all tell our children to tell the truth, even as we conceal it
ourselves. Yet none can bear to admit that too much truth is as dangerous as
too little."
Kharl
frowned.
"Does
it do well to tell your consort that she is tired-looking or aging? Does truth
serve there, my friend? Do you tell a child that his first effort at...
whatever it may be ... is totally without merit? Does it serve to tell a people
that many of them are self-centered and lazy? Yet, at times, such is indeed the
truth."
Even
truth was subject to the Balance, it seemed, Kharl reflected. He took a slow
breath before speaking again. "You told Ghrant what words to say at the
audience, didn't you?"
"Yes.
What he said was important. He's not experienced enough to know what to say, but
he is bright enough to understand that he needed the right words. We worked on
them together." Hagen paused. "You don't seem surprised."
"Should
I be?"
"No.
You would have been surprised a year ago, but you are not the same man today as
you were then." The lord-chancellor laughed, softly. "Neither am
I."
"I
was thinking that I should return to Cantyl before long."
"You
should, but not until Lord Ghrant summons you. That is likely to be tomorrow,
but at the moment, I cannot press him."
"Did
today...?"
"Like
all young men of privilege, he is of two minds. Part of him is still furious at
the effrontery of the rebels, and part of him is grateful to have survived and
retained his hold on Austra. I am hoping that he will be the wiser for what he
has been through."
Kharl
could sense
"Nothing
will happen for years, possibly not until after his death."
"Or
yours," Kharl suggested.
"That
is possible,"
"I
can see that. Most would only see the power, and not the duty."
"There
are some who understand the duty, but they have not
the power to rein in a lord, and most who have some power either would not take
my position, or they would abuse it, as you have said." Hagen smiled.
"But... there will be time to talk of such for years to come. I had hoped
you would join me for a late supper, and if you are not hungry, at least to
keep me company."
Kharl smiled
in return. "I might have some supper, at that."
XXXVII
Lord
Ghrant did not summon Kharl until twoday afternoon.
In the
meantime, Kharl had taken the time to work out an arrangement with Hagen that, the
next time one of Hagen's ships ported in Brysta, he would pay for someone to
travel to Merayni's and Dowsyl's with a message for Warrl-and passage to
Valmurl, or if possible, to Cantyl itself. He still had no word on whether his
earlier message had reached Peachill.
"You
realize that my man can't force the boy?" Hagen said.
"I
know, but if his aunt knows I have lands here ..."
"They
may not agree."
Kharl
had taken a deep breath. "I know, but I have to try."
"We'll
do what we can,"
Kharl
could only hope that it would suffice.
After
taking care of that detail, all he could do was study The Basis of Order and
wait for the meeting with Lord Ghrant. When he was summoned, he was surprised to
find that their meeting was not in the audience hall, but in Ghrant's private
study, a room that was far larger than the sitting rooms of some mansions,
Kharl realized as he glanced around a chamber measuring a good thirty cubits in
length and twenty in width. Dark wood paneling covered the walls, except for
the ceiling-to- floor bookshelves on the long inside wall, shelves of the same
dark wood as the paneling. The outside long wall was mainly of windows,
separated by stretches of bookshelves, also floor to ceiling.
Ghrant
was seated at an ornate desk of black oak and lorken. The pedestal legs were
ornately carved with figures that Kharl did not recognize. Kharl sat in a
wooden armchair upholstered in dark green, directly across the desk from
Ghrant. None of the lamps in the study had been lit, despite the heavy gray
clouds and the sullen drizzling rain that had fallen most of the day. Ghrant's
face was in shadow as he looked at Kharl, although the mage could see the lord
clearly enough.
"Ser
Kharl... all of Austra should be most grateful to you. Most will not be, but I am a grateful ruler." A
faint smile crossed the younger man's face.
"I
did what I thought was best, ser."
"That
is to your credit, and to our benefit." The slender lord coughed once,
then cleared his throat. "The lord-chancellor has conveyed your concerns.
Those concerns also speak well of you. Still... I must honor you, if only for
my own sake, foremost as an upper lord, and with tangible reward as well."
Ghrant forced a laugh. "I cannot allow it to be said that I was a lord who
did not reward the mage who saved his land."
Kharl
nodded, knowing from whom those words had come.
"Your
actions in defense of Austra were greater magery than has been seen in generations,
and even I know that such magery risked your life- and more. Your skill and
courage kept Austra from falling under the mailed fist of Hamor. While I
respect your modesty and prudence, I must reward you. You have expressed
fondness for forests. I inherited a great woods from my late brother. I have
had little time to treat it as it should have been. In fact, until recently, I
was not even aware that it had come to me. Since it adjoins Cantyl, and I have
no other holdings nearby, it would seem to be a perfect match for me to
transfer that woodland to you."
"Your
lordship is most generous. Most generous."
"I'm
not generous at all, Lord Kharl. But these are hard times for Austra, as you
have recognized, and I am happy to be able to reward you in a manner that is
good for us both. Your modesty and forbearance are also received with great
gratitude. For those, not only will you receive my thanks, but also a purse of
five hundred golds to help you and your retainers in taking over and managing
the forest. Lord Hagen will provide that to you." Ghrant smiled. "And
I will listen most favorably to any reasonable request you put forth, either
now or in the future."
"Thank
you, your lordship." Kharl inclined his head.
"What
had you thought to do, now?"
"I
had thought to return to Cantyl, your lordship. I had scarcely time to learn of
the lands, before ... this."
Ghrant
laughed, more warmly than before. "That is true. You have been so great a
help that it is hard to remember that you are not from Austra. But your loyalty
is far greater than that of many whose families have lived and prospered here
for many generations."
"I
have seen justice abused, your lordship. I saw wrongs
committed because a lord had greater power than others. I could do nothing about it
in Nordla. I would not see that happen here in Austra. You should have the
right to rule justly."
Ghrant
smiled-faintly, once more. "Between you and my lord- chancellor, I doubt
that I will have much choice but to rule justly. I am fortunate that your
support has allowed me that ability."
Kharl
realized that Ghrant had read more into Kharl's words than the mage had meant.
"I fear you misunderstood, your lordship. I had only meant to say that
your heart told you to rule justly, but that others would have preferred an
unjust rule so that they could gain from it."
Ghrant's
smile widened slightly. "You speak as you believe, ser Kharl, and that is
rare indeed in dealing with rulers."
"That
is also dangerous, ser, and as I have learned, not always to your
benefit."
"You
have learned, and that is more than most in these days." Ghrant nodded and
rose.
Kharl
quickly stood, bowing slightly.
"I
wish you well on your return to Cantyl. I trust that will enjoy your lands
without interruption and hope that I will not soon need to call upon your
talents."
"Begging
your pardon, ser, I hope the same. I wish you and your family a warm spring and
a pleasant summer, and I thank you for all that you have provided for me."
Kharl could
feel the lord's eyes on his back as he left the study, but he did not sense
either anger or chaos.
Book 2: Scholar of Justice
XXXVIII
Summer
had finally come, and even right after an early breakfast, the day was warm as
Kharl stood just inside the east end of the cooperage. For a time, he surveyed
the work benches, the fire pots, and the tool racks. After more than an
eightday's worth of hard work on the interior, everything- including the white
and red oak he had ordered a season earlier-was finally ready for him to work
on his barrels. He'd even replaced the doors. At least the heavy flagstone
flooring had been laid and waiting for him when he had returned from Valmurl.
Dorwan and Bannat had done a good workmanlike job, and Kharl had paid them a
handsome bonus immediately after his return to Cantyl.
"Ser
.. . we were just doing ..." Dorwan had
protested.
"You
did it well, and I appreciate good work. I especially appreciate it when I'm
not here."
"Be
thanking you, ser. Kariana will be most pleased. She's been thinking about a
chest and a bed for Bannat. He'll be consorted to Fiana come fall."
"Fiana? I don't recall..." Kharl was well aware that he
knew less than he should about his tenants and retainers. Then, he hadn't
exactly been at Cantyl that much.
"Ah
.. . you wouldn't, ser. She's Chyhat's daughter."
"The
forester on the new forest?" asked Kharl. Those were the words Dorwan had
taken to using when referring to the forestland that Kharl had received from
Lord Ghrant. Kharl had only met with Chyhat twice, an older man, slim and wiry,
unlike the burly Dorwan, who stood even a span taller than Kharl, and few men
reached the mage's height and breadth.
"Yes, ser."
"How
are you two getting on?" Kharl had insisted that each forester retain
control over the forests that they had always supervised, but that they meet
and work out how much timber should be harvested as a total each year.
"Same
as we always did." Dorwan laughed. "We think the same about which
trees should be cut, and where lands ought to be thinned, and we don't talk
about much else except our bairns. Better that way."
Kharl
smiled at the recollection of Dorwan's words. He'd been fortunate. Speltar was a
good steward, and he'd kept the good people. Probably the wisest thing Lord
Estloch had done had been to leave Cantyl alone under Speltar's care.
The last
of the basic tools Kharl had ordered from Valmurl had arrived at Cantyl long
before he had been able to return to there. While the forge was adequate, he'd
need to do more over the next season or so. Still, he'd been able to forge some
of his cooper's tools, and he had two adzes, a chiv, three hollowing knives,
and his planer. The shaver had been the hardest because of the thinness
required, and he would have to forge his own hoops from scratch, rather than
just trimming and riveting the iron strips he'd bought at his cooperage in
Brysta. Still, he'd made three red oak barrels for slack uses, as much to renew
his skills as for use at Cantyl. But he hadn't wanted to start with tight
cooperage, not given the time since he had last worked on barrels.
Given
what it had cost to equip his new cooperage, he doubted that it would pay for
itself for several years, but he had wanted to do something productive and not
just live off the fruits of the land. According to Chyhat, there was indeed a
small stand of white oak on the western edge of the new forest, with enough
trees to supply billets for cooperage and cabinetry, but not enough for
consistent timber sales. That was fine with Kharl.
"Ser?" Speltar stood at the door to the
cooperage.
"Yes, Speltar?"
"I
should have the figures for the improvements this afternoon, ser."
"Improving
the sawmill here, and adding the cots? And the roads?
Chyhat agreed with you and Dorwan?"
"Yes, ser. He'd asked Lord Ilteron for golds to
improve the old mill there for years. Said it was too dangerous."
"What
about closing it?"
"He
said that was fine, just so the millmen kept their places." Speltar
grinned. "When I told him about the new cots, he asked if we'd consider
tossing in a few golds so he could add a room and fix his roof. I said I would
ask you."
"He
seems honest. I'd think so, unless you have a reason not to grant his
request."
"I'd
grant his request, ser, and add a gold for
furnishings."
"Then
do so." Kharl paused. "What about you? Have you ever received a bonus
for all your work?"
"I
have the house, ser, and it's far grander than what most stewards ever
see."
"That
may be, but when I compare what the new forest shows and what Cantyl shows ..."
"I
have been fortunate, ser."
Kharl
snorted. "Do you find a ten-gold bonus fair?"
Speltar swallowed, his Adam's apple bobbing in his thin throat.
"Let's
make it fifteen."
Speltar
bowed. "Thank you. I have never ... you are most generous."
Kharl
could sense the truth of his words. "I cannot be so generous with all, but
as part of your duties, I would request that you recommend a small bonus for those
on the lands who deserve it. We would pay it after harvest."
"Lord
Koroh did so, but that was before my time."
"Do
you think it is a bad idea?"
"No, ser. The lands were most productive under Lord
Koroh."
"Or his steward," Kharl suggested dryly. "Was the steward from your
family?"
"No,
ser. Lord Estloch brought me here fifteen years ago. I was the assistant to the
steward at Dykaru."
"How
did Lord Estloch end up with the lands? I'd heard that Lord Julon ..."
Kharl left the sentence unfinished.
"Lord
Julon spent far too many golds on his horses, and upon
pleasures in Valmurl. He owed over a thousand golds, it was said, and none of
the lenders in Valmurl would advance him more golds. Then, when he was
murdered, his lands reverted to Lord Estloch because his consort and heirs
could not pay off the debts. Lord Estloch settled the debts and set me
here." Speltar shrugged, as if his words explained everything.
"What
happened to his consort?"
"She
was most beautiful, and she became the second consort of Lord Malcor."
Speltar smiled sadly. "She died ten years later, of a mysterious illness,
and he consorted a third time. She had but two daughters by Lord Julon, and no
children by Lord Malcor."
Was everyone
in Austra tied to everything, or was that just the way of the noble families
everywhere? Kharl suspected the latter.
Speltar
cleared his throat. "If you don't need anything else, ser ..."
"Go
do what you need to, Speltar." Kharl grinned. "You know where to find
me."
The
steward bowed slightly. "Yes, ser."
After
Speltar had left, Kharl went to the racks on the left at the rear of his new
cooperage, somewhat smaller than the space he had had in Brysta but more than
adequate for his present needs.
After
several moments, he pulled down enough white oak billets for several standard
barrels. He'd try tight cooperage, this time. He was smiling as he set the
billets on the bench next to the planer.
XXXIX
Kharl
had just finished trimming the chime on a white oak barrel and was blotting his
forehead when he noticed Speltar standing in the doorway to the cooperage,
nervously shifting his weight from one foot to the other.
"Lord
Kharl?"
"Come
in, Speltar. It's a cooperage, not a bedchamber or a study. When I'm working
here, just come inside. I may have to finish something, but there's no reason
for you to stand outside."
As he
stepped into the cooperage, Speltar lifted a square of heavy paper with a
florid purple wax seal on one edge. "I have a missive from ser Arynal. His
man is waiting for a response."
A response? "What do you know of Arynal?" Kharl had run
across the name, but he didn't know where. He was fairly sure that Arynal had
not been among the collaborators with the rebels, but he couldn't recall why he
would have known a lord's name.
"He
holds the lands to the north and west of yours, ser .
.."
That was
where Kharl had seen the name, on the maps that Speltar had gone over with him
almost a season earlier.
"...
He is a minor lord, most properly."
"Like
me?"
"Ah.. . ser. If I read the proclamation correctly, you are a
lord of the upper level."
"Proclamation?" Kharl hadn't even realized that there was
such.
"Oh,
yes, ser. I thought you knew. A lord or a grant must be proclaimed. I thought
you had sent the proclamations to me. I have both the proclamation of your title as a lower
lord-that was when you received Cantyl-and the one at the end of spring when
you were elevated to an upper lord and received the new forest."
"Hmmm
.. ." Kharl recalled Lord Ghrant saying something
about an upper lord, but he had paid more attention to the grant of the lands.
Then, abruptly, he recalled Ghrant and several others addressing him as Lord
Kharl. He'd passed that off as a compliment, but he should have known that
Ghrant would not have addressed him as such through courtesy. Again... it
showed what he didn't know and the subtleties of lordship. The deliberate use
of the term lord by Lord Ghrant would have been so obvious to any lord, lower
or upper, and Kharl hadn't even noticed what it had meant. "What's the
advantage of being an upper lord? Is there one?"
"Well. .. ser ... if you do something wrong, like murder, they
have to behead you, rather than hang you." A faint smile crossed the
steward's face.
Kharl
laughed. "Is that all?"
"You
have the right to administer low justice on your lands."
"For minor things, like theft?"
"If the theft is less than ten golds."
That
wasn't such a small amount, Kharl reflected.
"And
you have to supply services or armsmen to the Lord of Austra." Speltar's
smile turned wry. "At times, in the past, the Lord of Austra has elevated
lords to the upper level only to require armsmen that the lord could not
support."
Kharl
could see someone like Lord West doing that.
"In
your case, that would not be a problem, I would judge," Speltar added.
"Not
any more of a problem than it already is." Kharl gestured toward the
missive. "I suppose I should read the letter."
The
steward extended it.
Kharl
took it and broke the seal, carefully. He didn't want purple wax on his new
flag floor. The note within was short, if written in an elegant hand that was
not Arynal's, since the signature differed from the text.
Lord
Kharl,
With the
deepest respect, and begging your indulgence, I would like to call upon you
late this afternoon to pay my respects to you.
I have
not wished to impose upon you, but as your nearest neighbor thought that I
should present myself and offer what information you might find useful.
Kharl
looked up. "Does he expect supper?"
"That,
or afternoon refreshments, would be in order."
"Am
I expected to invite his family?"
"His
consort would be acceptable." Speltar smiled.
"What
you are telling me is that I should invite everyone. How many?"
"He
has two consortable daughters, and a son who has already been consorted."
Kharl
took a deep breath. "Can Adelya handle that?"
"She
would be upset, ser, if you thought otherwise."
"Would
you write a response that says that I would be happy to have them all for
supper this evening? And tell Adelya to prepare as she sees fit." Kharl
shook his head. He could sense Speltar's concealed laughter at the resignation
in Kharl's voice.
"She
will be pleased that you've chosen to entertain, ser."
"And
you?"
"It
is always beneficial to be on good terms with neighbors."
Speltar's
words, once more, were dry.
"Are
you telling me that Lord Julon was not always on the best of terms?"
"I
would not know, not for certain, ser. There are stories, but one never can tell
how true they might be, and I would not be the one to pass them on."
Kharl
laughed. "I have my answer. You are most astute, and most tactful,
Speltar."
Speltar
did grin, if but for the briefest of moments. "And you, Lord Kharl, see
more than most lords."
To Kharl
that was a frightening thought, because Speltar meant it. Kharl knew how much
he missed. He'd even missed his own elevation. Part of that was because of his
unfamiliarity with Austra, and part was because he hadn't paid enough
attention. "I fear for them, then." He glanced around the cooperage,
then toward the open doorway where the midmorning sun cast an oblong of light
across the stone floor. "If you would write what is necessary and bring me
a pen? Your writing will be far better than mine."
"I
can do that." Speltar nodded slightly, then stepped away.
Kharl
wanted to shake his head. He supposed he was fortunate to have few neighbors,
or his lack of understanding of both lordly and Austran customs would have
become much more apparent far earlier. He glanced around the cooperage. He
could still get in most of a day's work before bathing and changing into his
magely finery, although he doubted it was as fine as whatever ser Arynal and
his family might be wearing.
Then, he
cautioned himself, Arynal and his consort might well be people he'd like.
Certainly, Kharl had liked Hagen from the beginning. He'd just have to see
about Arynal.
XL
Two
glasses before sunset, roughly, and barely after Kharl had bathed and finished dressing,
young Bannat had run up to the main house to announce that ser Arynal's coach
was less than a kay away.
Kharl
hurried from his study back to the kitchen. "They're about a kay away,
Adelya."
"I
know, Lord Kharl. Bannat told Heldya. You just greet your guests, and we will
have everything in readiness, ser."
Kharl
couldn't help but grin. "That's all you've left for me to do."
"That
is as it should be."
In the
corner, Heldya, barely eleven and dressed in gray trousers and tunic, nodded
solemnly, not looking up from the crystal wine goblets she was polishing a last
time.
Kharl
shook his head, ruefully, then left the kitchen and walked through the sitting
room and past the serving table laid out with refreshments for the time before
supper. From there he made his way out through the foyer and onto the wide
porch, from where he could look at both the harbor and the narrow road that
wound to the south of the barns before turning westward and past the mill, then
crossing the stream and eventually joining the inner coast road to Valmurl.
The dust
of the coach was visible before the four-horse team itself appeared coming down
the gentle slope to the millrace bridge. As the coach neared the main house,
Kharl walked out the flagstone walk from the front porch, then waited as the driver
pulled up where the walk ended at the lane. The coach was older, painted in
light and dark gray, bearing more than a few scrapes and worn places on the
bodywork. The grizzled coachman wore a faded burgundy jacket and brown
trousers. His boots were scuffed.
An older
man, with black hair greased back from the temples of his thin face, opened the
coach door and stepped out, pulling the mounting stool from its bracket and
setting it beneath the door. Then he straightened, smoothed his burgundy velvet
jacket, and looked at Kharl. "You must be Lord Kharl, from all that black.
I'm Arynal."
"I'm
Kharl. Welcome to Cantyl."
"I'd
forgotten how long the drive was. Two solid glasses." Arynal turned and
extended a hand to a long-faced but stout woman with striking gray-and-black
hair. "My consort, Jacelyna. This is Lord Kharl, my dear."
"You
met us, yourself, Lord Kharl," replied Jacelyna, in a thin and high voice.
"How charming."
"Who
else would meet guests?" ' -
"A
doorman or a retainer," suggested Jacelyna.
"I
have very few retainers, Lady," replied
Kharl. '
"Lord
Kharl has had these lands for but half a year, dear," interjected Arynal,
"and he has spent most of that time serving with Lord Ghrant." The thin-faced
lord turned to the younger women who had left the coach. "My daughters
Norelle and Meyena. Norelle is the elder, but only by two years."
Slightly
stocky, buxom, with shoulder-length jet-black hair, strong features, and a long
face, Norelle clearly took after her mother. Meyena was slighter in build, with
long brown hair set in ringlets. All three women wore ankle-length dresses in
various shades of green, a color that suited Meyena, but not her sister or her
mother.
Both
sisters inclined their heads to Kharl, almost together.
Bannat
reappeared. "I'll be taking care of the coach and driver, ser. Adelya will
have some fare for him, and we've grain in the guest barn."
"Thank
you." Kharl hadn't even thought about that, another aspect of being a lord
with which he had little familiarity. He nodded to Bannat and turned to Arynal.
"There are refreshments in the sitting room... before dinner." He
motioned to the three women. "Up the walk and across the porch."
"...
always called it a portico," murmured Norelle.
Kharl
ignored the comment and turned back to Arynal, letting the women walk in front
of them.
"I
always thought mages were little fellows," offered Arynal, his eyes
measuring Kharl.
"Some
are, and some aren't. That's like lords. Some are large, and some aren't,"
replied Kharl.
Lady
Jacelyna giggled, a high-pitched sound that grated on Kharl's ears. She turned
her head, and said, "He has you on that, dearest."
The
higher heels of the ladies' boots clicked on the stone tile of the porch. Only
the youngest, Meyena, turned before entering the house. She stepped aside and
looked out across the harbor. "The view is quite lovely, Lord Kharl."
The
late-afternoon sun had turned the harbor water, smooth because there was no
wind, into a silvered expanse that seemed to meld into the trees on the north
shore.
"It
is, and there are times when I have stood here and watched for almost a
glass." Kharl offered a polite smile, waiting for her to enter the foyer
that opened onto the sitting room to the right. On the left was the study,
where, out of prudence, he'd tucked the ledgers into the larger drawer on the
right side of the desk.
Adelya's
daughter Heldya was standing behind the serving table in the sitting room as
the five entered. She did not speak.
"This
is most elegant, if spare," remarked Jacelyna. "It reflects a man's
taste."
More
than anything, Kharl reflected, the house showed the absence of anyone living
in it for any length of time, but he merely nodded.
After Heldya
handed a delicate goblet filled with the amber Rhynn wine from the estate to
Jacelyna, the lady took a sip, then said, "This is quite good."
"Thank
you. Glyan is an outstanding vintner, and I'm fortunate in that. He claims that
the Rhynn is as good as that anywhere." Kharl stood back as Heldya offered
goblets to Arynal and his daughters as well.
"Arynal
had said that you have been serving Lord Ghrant most of the time since you
gained Cantyl," Jacelyna continued.
Kharl
noted that the lady had only made a statement, but decided to answer the
question that had not been asked.
"I
did what was necessary."
"Emelor-he's
Lord Vertyn's son," Arynal said, "and I guess that makes him lord
now, or will once Lord Ghrant proclaims it-he was saying that you took on
something like five white wizards."
Kharl
thought for a moment, then nodded. "I was fortunate."
Arynal
laughed, and his wine almost slopped out of the crystal goblet. "Most times,
white wizards turn black mages into charcoal. Been years since a black took on
so many whites and won. Leastwise, that's what Emelor said. Is that so, Lord
Kharl?"
"That's
something I wouldn't know. There haven't been many fights between wizards and
mages in the last few years. I don't know of any."
"Hmmm
..." mused the older lord. "Might be true at that. Not since the fall
of Fairven, anyway." He laughed again.
"Still.
.. it's good to know that our Lord of Austra has a mage of power. It can't hurt
to have you here, either, not that we've seen brigands in more than a score of
years."
"You
came from Nordla, did you not?" asked Jacelyna, before her consort could
say more.
"Brysta,"
Kharl replied. "It's very different. Lord West is not the fairest of
lords. Lord Ghrant, for all his youth, seems to me to be a far better
ruler." He really didn't want to discuss his past, not with people he'd
never met.
"Is
it true," asked Norelle, "that you were once in ... trade?"
Kharl
offered a laugh. "That's fair to say. I once had a cooperage in Brysta. It
was the best in the city-until I rescued a young woman who'd been attacked by
Lord West's son." He shrugged. "I had to leave Brysta, then."
Actually, he'd rescued three young women, if one counted Jeka as well as Sanyle
and Jenevra. He couldn't forget Jeka, or her fierce green eyes.
Meyena's
eyes widened. Norelle appeared unbelieving, and while Kharl was not attracted
to either young woman, he was rapidly developing a dislike for Norelle, little
as she had said.
"You
were exiled?"
"No.
I might as well have been. My consort died, and Lord West took my cooperage. My
eldest went to sea, and my younger boy went to live with his aunt. It was time
for me to leave."
"You
were an officer on one of the lord-chancellor's ships, I understand,"
Arynal said smoothly, after a sharp look at Norelle.
"I
was. After I joined the Seastag, I began to learn about being a mage."
"You
didn't know before?" Meyena's voice was gentle, and not critical.
Kharl
offered her a smile. "No. I was later told by other mages that I had
always had the talent, but I had not known I had it." After a pause, he
looked to Arynal. "I must confess that I know little about your lands.
Could you tell me a bit?"
Arynal
finished a sip of the wine. "Good stuff." He moistened his lips.
"Well. ・・ you've got mostly hills and timberlands
here, except for the valley and the vineyards. We're west of your hills, and
it's mostly rolling meadows. Sheep, that's what fits our lands best. Some cattle
as well."
"And
the peach orchards," added Jacelyna.
"Best
peaches this side of Bruel, they say, except they only grow well on the south
side of the ridge in the red soil there." The older lord took another sip
of the amber wine. "Meadows run about eight kays north-south, and ten
east-west. Not really, but that's close enough ..."
Kharl
listened, asking a question or two, for almost half a glass, until Adelya
slipped into place in the archway from the sitting room to the dining room.
When Arynal paused, she looked to Kharl. "Lord ... at your pleasure,
ser."
"Thank
you." Kharl inclined his head to his guests, gesturing toward the long
cherry table that dominated the dining room. The ancient bronze oil lamps in
the wall sconces had already been lit and supplied a golden glow to the
chamber.
Kharl
took his seat at the head of the table, with Arynal to his left and Jacelyna to
his right. Meyena was beside her father. Both Heldya and Adelya served. There
were two main dishes. One was the honeyed and cheese-stuffed fowl breasts, and
the other was flaankar-thin tubes of rar-ish beef filled with soft white cheese
and parsley and covered with a white butter sauce. Then came the cheese lace
potatoes, and the pickled beans- since it was too early in the year for any
fresh vegetables.
Adelya
set two pitchers of wine on the table, and looked at Kharl as she did.
"You
can choose between the white and the red wine," he said. "I like the
red, myself, but many prefer the white, especially with fowl. It's the same
Rhynn as you had earlier." He wouldn't have known that, but for Adelya's
words to him earlier in the afternoon.
"White
is always better with fowl," observed Norelle. "For those with
delicate palates."
"It
is a matter of taste, dear child," replied Arynal, emphasizing the word
child ever so slightly. "Tastes do differ."
"That
is what makes the world an interesting place," added Jacelyna.
"I
think I would prefer the red," said Meyena.
Kharl
managed to keep a straight face as he handed the pitcher with the red in it to
Arynal. "Lord Hagen is also quite fond of the red."
"The
lord-chancellor is known to be a man of good taste." Arynal half filled
Meyena's goblet.
When all
the goblets had been filled, Kharl lifted his glass. "It may not be
exactly proper, but I'd like to drink to you all, the first of my neighbors to
have shared a meal with me."
"Excellent
idea!" Arynal lifted his goblet as well.
For a
time, conversation lagged as Kharl had several bites of both fowl and flaankar,
as well as a chunk of the sweet dark bread that held juicy raisins.
"I've
not had flaankar this tasty in years," Arynal said, after several
mouthfuls.
"I'm
most fortunate in having Adelya."
"A
good cook is a gem. That's always been true."
"Pardon
me, Lord Kharl, but I've not seen anyone else here, and there is the rumor
..." ventured Jacelyna.
"I
am a widower, that's true." Kharl did not elaborate, especially since he
had indicated that earlier. Had Jacelyna missed that, or was she making sure that
he was single?
"Be
a shame if you had no sons to hold the lands," murmured Arynal.
"It
would be, but I'm hoping my ... younger son will be joining me before the end
of the year."
"Oh
. .. where is he?"
Once more,
Kharl ignored the fact that he'd already mentioned that fact. "He's in
Nordla, with his aunt and uncle. They have an orchard, mostly peaches, but some
pearapples."
"You
don't have that much in the way of fruit here, do you?"
"Besides
the berry patches, there's a small cherry orchard in the western lands, and a
handful of fruit trees on the south slopes here- apple, pearapple, and a
quince. Maybe two quinces," he added.
"Quinces
make good jelly," offered Meyena.
Kharl
laughed gently. "From what I've tasted, Adelya can make anything taste
good."
"What
are your plans for the summer, Lord Kharl?" asked Arynal.
"We'll
be improving the sawmill here, and making some other changes. I'll be seeing if the white oaks
on the new lands are suitable for barrels for the vineyard, and we may need
some better roads in places."
"You
don't plan to return to Valmurl... Lord Ghrant?"
"If
Lord Ghrant needs me, I will certainly attend him, but he and the
lord-chancellor have seasons' worth of work before them, I think, in repairing
the damage caused by the rebellion. For now, it is better that I remain here at
Cantyl. I have done what was necessary. For now, at least."
"Some
had thought, after the defeat of the Hamorian wizards ..."
Kharl
laughed. "Hamor sent five wizards. The emperor has scores, and hundreds of
iron-hulled warships with mighty guns. Austra can defend itself." He hoped
it could. "But waging war elsewhere would be foolhardy."
The
older lord nodded. "So you plan to be here for a time."
"I
do. There's much to do here."
"There
always is. The sheep ... you know that we have the best white wool in the east.
Some say that it is as good a white as Reduce produces black..."
From
that point on, the conversation turned to the lands, the weather, how Lord
Julon had wasted his inheritance on horses and women.
Kharl
managed to smile his way through the rest of dinner, and the sweets afterward,
then see his guests to their coach.
Once the
coach's side-lamps vanished from sight, Kharl walked back up to the porch. He
looked at the pin-lights that were the stars, then at the darkness of the
harbor. Arynal's motives-or those of his consort- were clear enough. Kharl was
a lord and a widower. They had two consortable daughters.
He shook
his head. Norelle was the better-looking, and he doubted if he could have
stayed in the same room alone with her for a glass without wanting to strangle
her. The younger one was sweeter, but he knew he would feel nothing for her .
.. except perhaps pity.
If he had
to consort, he would have taken Sanyle or Jeka-young as they were-over either
of Arynal's daughters, but that wasn't the question. He just hoped that Hagen's
men could get a message to Warrl.
After a
time, he walked back into the house, sliding the door bolt into place behind
him. It was quiet, and all the lamps had been wicked out, except a carry-lamp
in the study. He lifted it and headed for the stairs up to his chambers.
XLI
By the
end of another two eightdays, Kharl had the cooperage working the way he
wanted, in most fashions, although he needed a better hollowing knife, and he
was short on charcoal for the toasting and the forge. He'd ordered coal,
because he didn't want to turn his few hardwood trees into charcoal, but coal
came by ship from Colton, a good hundred kays north of Valmurl, and he had no
idea when it might arrive.
He had
already turned out a score of white oak barrels, as well as several of red oak
and spruce. The red oak and spruce were for slack cooperage around Cantyl.
Glyan,
the estate vintner, was looking over the white oak barrels, turning them so
that the morning light from the open door illuminated the insides of the
staves. "Good barrel, ser. I'd not be saying that because you made it,
either."
Kharl
could tell that Glyan mean it. The barrels were good, not his very best, but
that would come, once he got back into better form.
The
gray-bearded Glyan looked up from the barrel he had been examining, his deep
brown eyes fixing on Kharl. "Ser ... we'd make more golds by selling your
barrels and buying from Dezant, even counting the shipping costs."
Kharl
shook his head. "We wouldn't. People won't pay for the best barrels. They
say they will, but they don't. They buy barrels that are just good
enough."
"I
forget. You've been the cooper." Glyan scratched his head. "I've been
thinking, ser. I'd like to try a few barrels that are toasted different-like, a
touch darker for the Rhynn, and lighter for the red."
"You
think it will make a difference?"
The
vintner nodded. "Don't know as what the difference will be. Know that the
vintners in the Cetarn Hills like their barrels that way. Might not work here.
Grapes, soil, sun, they're all different, even on different sides of the same
hill. That's why I want to see."
"We
can do that. I can toast some scrap oak first, and you can tell me what
darkness you want." Kharl paused. "Maybe I should make them half
barrels or kegs, if you're going to try something new."
Glyan
furrowed his brow. "Half barrels'd be better. Keg might be too
small."
Kharl
could see that. "How many?"
"Just
four, I think." Glyan offered a slow smile. "Doesn't beat all.
Finally get a real say on the barrels, and that's cause the lord's making
'em." He laughed. So did Kharl.
Once
Glyan had left, humming under his breath, Kharl began laying out the billets
for some smaller kegs. He'd planned to do one for Speltar anyway, who asked if
it were possible because his consort had a weak arm and had trouble with a
full-sized flour barrel. Then Dorwan had mentioned that three of the smaller
kegs would be useful. That was as close as the forester would ever come to
asking. So Kharl would be making kegs for the next day or so, not that he
minded.
He'd
already discovered that he couldn't spend all his time in the cooperage-not if
he wanted to learn about Cantyl. He'd spent two full days walking the southern
boundaries of the estate with Dorwan and half a day for an eightday trailing
Glyan, watching and listening as the vintner explained everything from the
stone troughs that fed just the right amount of water to the grapes in times of
no rainfall to the need for Rona to inspect the leaves of every plant and use a
fine brush to sweep away the webs of the brown spider-just the brown spider.
Kharl
doubted that he would ever learn all that was necessary, but the more he
learned the better.
After
checking the oak billets, both with his eyes and order-senses, he moved to the
planer and began to rough shape the staves.
XLII
Almost another
eightday had passed, and, in addition to his travels around his lands with
Glyan, Dorwan, and Chyhat, Kharl had finished another score of various types of
barrels, as well as the six half barrels for the vintner, two each with
different amounts of toasting. Of course, the mage and cooper reflected, it
would be more than a year before Glyan would have any idea as to whether the
toasting mattered, and how much. Then, too, because the grapes changed some
every year, depending on the weather, it might well be years before they really
knew. He was just beginning to understand why Glyan was so cautious.
Kharl had blotted his forehead with the sleeve of his working gray shirt and
turned to reach for another stave when he noticed that Heldya stood just inside
the doorway of the cooperage, her figure outlined by the late-morning sunlight.
He stopped and stepped away from the bench. "Yes, Heldya? What is it? Does
your mother need something?"
"No, Lord Kharl. Ser Arynal's daughter is here. She's waiting for you up
at the main house."
"Which
daughter? Did she say?"
"Mother
said it was the younger one, the nicer one."
Meyena? Kharl took a deep breath. At least it wasn't Norelle. "If you
would
run back and tell her that I'll be there shortly." サ
"Yes,
ser." Heldya scurried off.
Kharl glanced at the staves for the unfinished hogshead, then shook his head.
He reracked his tools and left the cooperage, making his way up the last part of
the hill to the main house, where he entered through the rear service door.
"She is in the sitting room," Adelya said quietly from the kitchen.
"I will have a midday meal for you and your company."
"Thank
you. I didn't expect her," replied Kharl.
"You
are a widower, Lord Kharl," Adelya pointed out. "You are also thought
to be a powerful man, and you're handsome."
Handsome?
Kharl certainly didn't consider himself good-looking. He wasn't ugly, but
handsome?
"I'll
tell them you'll be with them shortly."
"Thank
you," he said again, before turning to take the rear stairs to the upper
level.
Kharl
undressed and washed quickly, using the basin and pitcher Adelya or Heldya had
set out for him-he didn't have time for a real bath. Then he dried and donned a
clean set of blacks, before heading down the front staircase.
Meyena
was still waiting on the love seat in the sitting room. Beside her was an older
woman who looked like Lady Jacelyna, but with a more pinched face, and totally
white hair. Both women rose the moment they saw Kharl. The older woman wore a
long gray traveling dress with a muted purple jacket.
Ser
Arynal's younger daughter wore flowing black trousers, a cream shirt, and a
dark maroon vest. "Lord Kharl."
"Lady
Meyena."
"You're
kind. I'm not the heiress. Only Mama is properly a lady." Her smile was
tentative. "This is my aunt Aylena."
Kharl
inclined his head to the older woman. "I'm pleased to meet you."
"And
I you, Lord Kharl. One seldom encounters a mage who is also a lord."
Kharl
wasn't quite sure what to say to that, but after a moment that felt all too
long and awkward, he managed to reply. "That was Lord Ghrant's choice, and
who am I to second-guess his decisions?" After another silence, he added,
"I must apologize. I didn't expect company, and I've been working in the
cooperage."
"It
was quite rude of us to come unannounced," the young woman replied.
"I know, but I brought you three bushels of redberries. We had so many of
them, and I just thought it would be a shame if you didn't have some. You can
make juice if you can't eat them all, and it will keep in a cellar for
eightdays." Meyena offered another tentative smile.
"Redberries-that
was very thoughtful of you, and to come all that way."
"No
one was using the coach, and Aunt Aylena was kind enough to accompany me.
Besides, it is a lovely day, and there are so few neighbors who are
close."
What she
meant, Kharl realized, was that there were few neighbors who were well-off or
lords. "There are few close to Cantyl, and not many, I would wager, close
to your father's lands."
"Yes,
Feldingdon is most isolated, especially in the winter. That is why I like to
visit when we can."
"I
can imagine." Kharl turned to the older woman, who was probably closer to
his age than was Meyena. "Do you live at Feldingdon, or are you
visiting?"
"Me?
Ser Arynal was kind enough to let me have a cottage there after Durulat passed
on. It is different. We had lived in Valmurl ever since we were consorted-in
Hilldale, you understand."
Kharl
assumed that Hilldale was one of the better areas. "I would judge that
Feldingdon is very different."
"That
it is, but Arynal has been most kind, as have the girls." Aylena smiled at
Meyena. "I was delighted to accompany her here. You know that it's been
years since a lord was in residence here?"
"So
I have been told. Would you like a short tour of the grounds near the
house?" Kharl smiled politely.
"That
would be-" Aylena turned to her niece. "This was your idea, dear, and
I should not be deciding for you."
"Oh,
no," protested the younger woman, "I would very much like to see what
you have done here, Lord Kharl."
"I've
only done a few things, but I'd be happy to show you around; then perhaps you two
would join me for a midday dinner."
"You're
most gracious, Lord Kharl," offered Meyena.
Kharl
could sense that the young woman meant what she said, and that she was a sweet
and sincere young lady. The only problem was that he did not have the faintest
interest in her, and that would make it hard on her, since her parents were
clearly hoping that he would. He smiled. "Then we should start by walking
down to the pier. You get a better view of the harbor from there ..."
Without
a doubt, Kharl reflected, as he opened the door to the front porch-or portico,
as Norelle had called it-the day would be moderately pleasant... and very long.
XLIII
A single
bronze lamp illuminated the study, spilling amber-gold light over the ledger in
front of Kharl. In the quiet of the night, his fingers brushed his short and
square-cut brown beard as he perused the entries and figures set out in black
ink on the pages before him. Speltar's figures went back more than a decade.
They were neat, and the entries clear-just another of the steward's many
virtues.
When his eyes reached the bottom of the last column, he nodded and closed the
ledger. For a time, he sat behind the antique desk. Then he stood and took a
last look at the closed account book he had been studying for the last glass.
By any
rendering he could imagine, he was well-off. Not wealthy, for the coins
necessary to operate Cantyl were not insignificant, but over the past ten
years, the lands, the vineyard, and the sawmill had produced an annual income
above expenses of almost two hundred golds. He didn't have many of those golds.
They'd gone to Lord Estloch, but the strongbox in the cellar counting room now
held almost seven hundred golds-one hundred remaining from the previous wine sales
and the timber loaded on the Seastag from the time when Kharl had first come to
Cantyl, the hundred remaining from the hundred and fifty Kharl had received
initially from Lord Ghrant, and the most recent five hundred.
Even
with the year's timbering and planting costs ahead, and the wages for the
retainers and the sawmill, there would have been some golds remaining out of
the original hundred, and that was without sales of the aged red wine scheduled
for the fall, and the payment for the timber consignment being readied for
midsummer.
The new
forest produced far less in golds, showing a profit of twenty to thirty golds a
year after costs. That suggested another reason why Ghrant had been happy to
settle the forestlands on Kharl. Chyhat, while a good forester, had not been
the best of stewards and had been happy to relinquish those duties to Speltar,
especially after Kharl had explained that his stipend would not be reduced. Speltar had
recommended building several roads, closing the ancient sawmill in the new
forest, improving the Cantyl sawmill, and adding another drying barn. Those
changes were likely to run close to a hundred golds, including the costs of
building several cots for the sawmill workers to be moved from the old sawmill
to the one at Cantyl. Despite Glyan's fears, they would actually save some
golds through Kharl's barrels. Kharl also hoped that, with the better barrels
and changes in the toasting, Glyan could improve the red wine enough that they
could get a better price in Valmurl, one equal to what the Rhynn received
already.
He moved
around the desk and stood at the window, looking out into the darkness, out at
the hillside leading down to the thin black line that was the narrow pier
where, little more than a season before, he had stepped off the Seastag to
become ser Kharl. His eyes, with a night sight sharpened by order-magery, took
in the small, nearly enclosed bay, its entrance less than a kay in width. The
water was black and calm on the early-summer night, with a silverlike sheen he
suspected only he-or another mage-could have seen.
For
reasons he could not fully explain, Meyena's visit had nagged at him. Yet she
and her aunt had been pleasant, certainly not pushy, and the amount of redberry
that they had brought had been closer to five bushels. With that, Adelya had
been pleased.
"You
should eat some in the morning. Plenty for juice, too. It keeps off the summer
fevers," she had told him more than once.
He had
tried the juice, but it was almost too sweet for him. The apple-and-redberry
pie had been more to his liking.
Meyena
was less than ten years older than Arthal, he had discovered.
His lips
tightened. How could he ever have foreseen that his actions in saving Lord
Ghrant would have led to Arthal's death? Was that the cruelty of the Balance-or
just his own terrible misfortune? If Arthal had stuck with Kharl, it wouldn't
have happened. Jeka would have said that. Kharl knew that from the way Jeka had
talked about her own mother. He'd seen the love, the pain, and the devotion in
that gamine face. Yet Jeka was also practical-and honest-even after the years
on the streets of Brysta.
Had his
efforts to place her as a weaver with Gharan worked out? That had been the best
he had been able to manage, and he wished he could have done more. Without her
guidance, when he'd had to flee from Egen, he doubted that he would have survived long
enough to have caught the Seastag. In a way, he owed everything he had to three
people-Jenevra, the dead blackstaffer, Jeka, and Hagen.
He'd
done his best to repay Hagen, although he doubted he had done near enough, but
there would never be a way to repay Jenevra, and he doubted that he would be
headed back to Brysta anytime soon. Not with Lord Ghrant needing him, and not
with Lord West and Egen still in power in Brysta.
So why
did Kharl feel so restless? Because he'd righted wrongs-or tried to-for
everyone but himself and those he had loved? But how much had he loved them? Or
was it as the druids of Naclos had told him-that he could not decide his future
without facing his past and the land where it had occurred?
He
turned back to the desk, gently blowing out the lamp, before walking up to his
bedchamber in the dark.
Tomorrow,
he would begin work on a simple chest for young Heldya. Adelya had hinted that
every young woman needed a dower chest, and while it would be more than several
years before the young woman was consorted, it was something he could do.
In the
dimness of the staircase, he laughed. That was a problem he could address.
XLIV
Kharl
stood on the narrow harbor pier in the midday sun, watching as a vessel he had
not seen before-the Seahound-eased to the pier at Cantyl. With that name, and
the side paddle wheels, even if he had not seen Hagen near the bow, he could
have guessed that the ship belonged to the lord-chancellor's merchant fleet.
His stomach tightened as he wondered what problems Hagen's presence signified
because the lord-chancellor would not have left Valmurl for anything
insignificant.
"We were expecting the Seafox and not for another eightday." Standing
at Kharl's shoulder, Speltar brushed back his wispy reddish hair, although it did little to cover his bald pate.
"The lord-chancellor's there. I'd wager that they didn't come for the
timber." The steward paused. "You think they'll take the timber, and
that they'll stay long enough for us to get the timbers from the mill? The
timber is ready to load."
"All we can do is ask," said Kharl. "How long will it take to
get the timber up here?"
"Less
than a glass, and a glass to load."
The two watched as Bannat caught the first line and snugged it to the inshore
bollard, then ran out to the end of the pier, where he caught the second.
Before long, the fenders were in place against the hull, and the Sea-hound was
tight to the pier. Hagen was the first down the gangway.
Kharl
stepped forward. "Welcome to Cantyl."
"Thank
you."
"What
brings you here again?" asked Kharl, smiling.
"You,
of course," returned Hagen. "It was a short trip, but thirsty."
"You'd
like some of my red wine? Is that it?"
"I'd
not turn it down."
"Before
you tell me why you're here?"
"Kharl..." Hagen counterfeited mock surprise. "Do you think so
uncharitably of me?"
"As a friend, as a captain, and as a factor ... no. As lord- chancellor, I
have some doubts."
The lord-chancellor laughed. "You understand the difference too well, lord
mage."
Kharl gestured to Speltar. "We have some timbers. They were supposed to go
on the Seafox on her next pass."
Hagen tilted his head. "Let's see. That'd be outbound from Valmurl."
He nodded. "We can take them. The Fox would port in Valmurl first anyway.
We'll save Nysat a port call. Tell Captain Haroun that I said you could load
them."
Kharl
looked at Speltar. "There's your answer."
"Thank you, ser." Speltar inclined his head to the lord-chancellor.
"If you lords will excuse me ..."
"Go."
Kharl and Hagen spoke almost simultaneously.
"We might as well walk back to the house and get that wine," Kharl
suggested. "So you can soothe your throat before you tell me what I don't
want to hear."
Hagen
grinned. "It's the best wine anywhere I port."
"I
am glad that you think so."
"How are you liking Cantyl?" asked Hagen, as they turned up the lane
from the pier to the house.
"I'm finding a lot to do. I've got the cooperage working, and I've made
some different barrels for Glyan. He wants to see if the amount of toasting
changes the wine."
"Don't
change what's already good," warned Hagen.
"Oh
... he's only going to try it on a few half barrels."
"Doesn't work, and you can turn it to vinegar, I suppose. Be a waste of
what could have been good wine."
"If he doesn't try, how will we know if it could be better? And if it
doesn't work, then we'll know what not to try. And ..." Kharl drew out the
word, "if it's better, we can raise the price."
Hagen chuckled. "You learned something besides ship's carpentry on the
Seastag."
"Some,"
Kharl admitted.
After the two men reached Kharl's study, and Adelya had brought up a pitcher of
the red wine, drawn from the barrel in the cellar, Kharl closed the study door.
He half filled two goblets and let Hagen take his choice.
The lord-chancellor took a sip, then a healthy swallow. "Almost worth the
trip for the wine."
"Almost? Has someone else revolted? Or misled Lord Ghrant?" Kharl
looked directly at Hagen. "You wouldn't have come here if it weren't a
matter of import."
"Nothing like that," Hagen protested. "Not exactly,
anyway." He held up a missive. The seal had already been broken. "I
received this yesterday. From Furwyl through Jeksum-he's the master of the
Seasprite. It's about your boy."
Kharl
could feel every muscle in his body tighten.
Hagen
shook his head. "No. It's not bad news."
"Then
.. . what?"
"It's no news. Furwyl apologized for not trying to send a messenger or one
of his crew to Peachill, but he felt it would have been most unwise. There has been
brigandage and murder of travelers on the roads outside Brysta, especially to
the south, and the harbor inspectors suggested that the crew remain close to
the harbor. They were most insistent, particularly about the south roads.
Furwyl also noted several large Hamorian trading vessels in the harbor."
"They trade everywhere you do, don't they? Or did Furwyl think that they
were there for other purposes? That they might be connected to the unsafe
roads?"
"He did not say, other than that the Hamorians had ported two eight- days
before the Seastag and had not yet made preparations to set to sea when he was
about to cast off."
"Do you think that the emperor has turned his eyes on Nordla? So
soon?"
Hagen shrugged. "I do not know. Not for certain. From your experiences in
Brysta, I would wager that those who would support Lord West-or his sons-might
be fewer than the lord imagines. Or perhaps the son you ran afoul of is
plotting something. Or Lord West is trying to enlist Hamorian support for some
venture or another." He took another sip of the red wine. "Most
prefer the Rhynn, but for me, the red is far better."
On that,
Kharl had to agree with Hagen.
"You're
worried about your boy, aren't you?" asked the lord-chancellor.
"Wouldn't
you be? He's all I have. I've already lost Arthal."
"You
must have mulled over going back to Brysta," suggested Hagen.
"I've given it some thought," replied Kharl warily, not certain he
liked the direction the conversation was turning. "Lord West would not
like to see me back."
"Lord
West-or his younger son?"
Kharl smiled, faintly. "Egen, most likely. Lord West has probably
forgotten that there was a cooper named Kharl who ever lived in Brysta."
"If
you could go back ... what would you do there?"
"I still have the feeling that things ought to be set right." Kharl
shook his head. "Before I... became a mage, I'd thought about taking the
Jus-ticer's Challenge."
Hagen
laughed. "You wouldn't have to now."
"I think I would. Still. Or do something about justice. Unless you are a
ruler, people don't much care for others using force or magery to get their
way. Besides, unless you replace the justicers, how do you get better
justice?"
Hagen
cocked his head.
"You're
thinking about something, honored lord-chancellor."
"I
am. Would you consider being Lord Ghrant's envoy in Brysta?"
"Me? Why me? What could I do? I've barely been a lord for half a year, if
that. What if Lord West found out who I am?"
"There are good answers to your questions/' Hagen replied calmly, then
paused and took another swallow from the goblet.
Kharl refilled it. As he did, he realized that he'd never seen Hagen drink so
much so quickly. In the past, the lord-chancellor had barely drunk a full
goblet.
"First," Hagen went on, "you know more about Brysta than anyone
else Lord Ghrant or I can trust. Second, Lord Ghrant has received some
disturbing reports from Brysta, about Hamorian mercenaries being added to Lord
West's regular lancers, or something like that-and that they are being paid
with Hamorian golds. Third, envoys traditionally cannot be held accountable for
actions taken in the past. Fourth, there are reports of Brystan troops being
moved southward."
"Toward
Lord South's lands?"
"We do not know, and that's part of the problem. There's much we do not
know."
"Lord South is old ... and he has no sons ..." ventured Kharl.
"Lord West and Egen are ambitious."
"Lord South rejected an offer to consort his youngest daughter to one of Lord
West's sons, the one you encountered."
"Lord
West was offended?"
"We do not know, but what we have heard from other merchanters and factors
suggest that the mercenaries began arriving after that."
"Why does this concern Lord Ghrant?" Kharl asked, although he had a
good idea.
"Lord South has never been a strong ruler, and the south is the weakest of
the four lands of the Quadrant. All too easily, between the west and the south,
half of Nordla could fall to Hamor. Once Hamor held half of Nordla, the rest
would soon follow. Nordla's ports are far closer to Bruel and Val-murl than
Swartheld is." Hagen took another swallow of his wine. "As envoy, you
could find out more than others. Also, Kharl is not an uncommon name, and it is
most unlikely that Lord West or his sons will connect an Austran lord from a
small estate with a former cooper. If you shaved your beard, I doubt anyone
would recognize you, save perhaps your son or a close friend."
"This
will take some thinking," Kharl stopped. "Who was the envoy?
What
happened to him?" He recalled Hagen telling him once, but he didn't
remember who it had been.
"Lord
Estloch had recalled Lord Hensolas,"
"Do
you think that Ilteron was planning to topple his sire? That Hensolas was part
of the plot?"
"That
well might have been. Ilteron certainly resented Ghrant being named as heir,
and many lords were not that happy under Lord Estloch."
"You
were not pleased with the way he ruled," Kharl pointed out.
"No,
I was not. I advised him against many things he did. He told me I did not
understand what ruling was." Hagen laughed, bitterness in the sound.
Kharl
had another thought. "I have a few golds laid by, but you had told me that
being an envoy was costly."
"Lord
Ghrant will send you with a purse, and with a draw on the Factors' Exchange in
Brysta."
Kharl
looked at Hagen blankly.
"On your signature, you can draw up to a thousand golds over each year,
but never more than a hundred an eightday. Only for matters befitting an envoy,
of course."
Draw or
take a hundred golds an eightday?
"Now ... if you wish to consider this, you would need some education, and some
protection."
"Education?
I'll need much of that."
"You know more than enough about most things. But, in addition to being
Lord Ghrant's envoy, it would be good for you to be a scholar of the law. That
way, you can present yourself as a scholar as well as an envoy ..."
"Since I know little about either," Kharl pointed out, "it will
seem as if Lord Ghrant appointed me to repay a debt."
"That perception will be to your advantage," Hagen said. "Also, if
you do choose to undertake the Justicer's Challenge, you will be prepared. If
not, you will still be able to quote from the law as an envoy, and that is
useful. Also, as a scholar, you can frequent the Hall of Justice in Brysta.
Often more can be discovered there than in bedrooms or salons."
"I
still don't see why Lord Ghrant..." Kharl shook his head.
"After
all that has happened here, he feels that he needs to know what
is
happening in Brysta. He cannot send an envoy who might join forces with Lord West,
or even Lord South, and he needs someone who can protect himself. You will, of
course, have a secretary with you, and several lancers. I understand that
Undercaptain Demyst is an excellent blade."
"He
is not bright enough to be a captain?"
Hagen shook his head. "He is more than bright enough. He will be devoted
to you, and he is as honest as it is possible for an officer to be."
"I
have not said that I wanted to be an envoy," Kharl pointed out.
"I have proposed to Lord Ghrant that you spend the next season studying
with one of the justicer's clerks in Valmurl."
"But..."
Kharl couldn't help but protest.
"Lord Ghrant owes you everything. He didn't pay you nearly what he owes,
especially after the way you settled the rebel lords, and he would like to
settle you with more. He could do that, if you acquitted yourself well as an
envoy. He also needs you, because ..." Hagen paused. "There is no one
else he can trust."
"No
one?"
"You sat through the audiences. Did you see a single man you would trust
in Brysta? One who is even a lesser lord? Or a factor?"
Kharl didn't even have to think to answer that. "No. The good ones were
probably the ones Malcor and Kenslan killed at the beginning."
"Vertyn would have made a good envoy, I think, and so would have Lord
Lahoryn's eldest son." Hagen looked bleakly at Kharl. "Do you think I
like asking this of you?"
Kharl sat there for a moment, realizing why Hagen had drunk so much wine and
why the lord-chancellor had come himself.
"I do worry about you," Hagen said. "I would not wish you to
return to Brysta without being fully prepared. Law is not the same as magery.
You would not leave immediately. You would be in Valmurl for a good season, and
you would have quarters in the Great House."
Kharl understood. He was perceived as one reason behind Ghrant's success. If he
departed Valmurl too soon, there was the possibility of more unrest. Later,
some might be relieved to see him go. What the lord- chancellor said made sense,
and both Hagen's concern and his desperation were real.
"Also," Hagen added, "you should tell no one that you are a
mage. Word and rumor will filter to Brysta, but the longer it takes, the better
for you. And
... a power never mentioned is far more fearsome than one discussed
openly."
Kharl was not certain about that, but Hagen had far more experience in dealing
with lords and rulers and their retainers. "How long is one an
envoy?"
"Usually
it is for two years."
"Two years?" asked Kharl involuntarily. Two years away from Cantyl?
Then he found himself smiling involuntarily. Already, he was thinking of it as
home. What did that tell him?
"I
doubt you will need to be there that long. Not nearly that long."
That meant, Kharl thought, that one way or another, he was expected to solve
the problems at hand sooner than in two years. Still... that would give him
time to find Warrl.. . and to help Jeka ... if he could. Kharl had worried
about his younger boy, but with his own guards and abilities, he could
certainly travel to Peachill directly, although it might be wise to wait an
eightday or longer after his arrival before undertaking such a journey. As in
the case with battles against the rebel lords, the guards would provide a
certain cover for his use of his magely talents, if he even needed them.
Then...
outside of the need to recover Warrl, did he really want to return to Brysta
and Nordla?
Another
thought crossed his mind, words he had not considered for a
time.
"You
haven't said much, Kharl,"
"I
was thinking. Do you remember the druids in Diehl?"
Hagen's brow wrinkled in puzzlement. "The ones who healed you? Yes."
"They told me that I could never really leave Brysta behind, not until I
returned. So ... that is perhaps another reason I should become an envoy. If
that is what Lord Ghrant wishes."
"I do not know that it is what he would wish in his heart, were there
other choices," Hagen said evenly, "but there are none." He
offered a faint smile as he fingered his chin. "I also don't think I'd
argue against a druid."
"Two
druids," Kharl said dryly.
"That's
even worse." Hagen took another sip of the wine before speaking.
"Does that mean that you will accept Lord Ghrant's offer?"
Kharl
nodded slowly. "It's as much for Warrl as for Lord Ghrant."
"I
would not have thought otherwise."
Kharl
glanced out through the window toward the harbor and the Sea- hound. The wagon
with timber had not yet reached the pier. "Do I return with you?"
"You
can."
"I
might as well. I've little enough to pack, and Speltar and Dorwan will need
time to load the timber."
"You'll
have much more. You'll have to have a full wardrobe as an envoy."
Kharl
hadn't even thought of that, and he wondered how many other matters he hadn't
even considered. But... with what had happened to Warrl already, did Kharl have
that much choice? And did he dare to continue to disregard the advice of the
druids?
XLV
Threeday
morning was cloudy, and a fine warm drizzle drifted from the low gray clouds that
hung over Valmurl. Kharl glanced around his new quarters in the Great House,
larger than the ones he had used before, still on the second level, but on the
north wing, not far from the staircase to the tower. The sitting room was set
in the northwest corner of the building and had windows on both sides. The
evening before, Kharl had seen how that arrangement had provided a cooling
breeze for both the sitting room and bedchamber.
He had not
seen Lord Ghrant, but on the short voyage back from Cantyl to Valmurl,
"He's
heard all the old stories about how his great-grandsire fell under the spell of
a mage,"
Kharl
could understand the young ruler's concerns, but he also worried that Ghrant
might worry too much about what his people thought and not enough about what
needed to be done. Still, Kharl reflected, the rebellion had proved that a
ruler could not ignore what people thought.
The mage
and lord stepped up to the tall mirror in its stand beside the single chest in
the bedchamber. He took in his own reflection-broad shoulders, squarish chin,
dark hair thinning in front, dark green eyes ...
He paused. Had his eyes always been that dark? He didn't think so, but he
hadn't really looked at himself in the mirror that much.
After several moments, he turned from the mirror, with its faded gilt frame,
and walked into the sitting room. There, he looked out through the window, down
at the lawns and fountains. With the misty drizzle falling he could not see
westward much beyond the stables and barracks, and the long sloping lawn that
extended from the terraces.
Well beyond the fine warm rain, across the breadth of the land, and across the
Gulf of Austra, lay Nordla-and Brysta. In some ways, his life in Brysta felt as
though it had happened to someone else-and long ago. Until he thought about
Arthal. .. and Warrl.. . and even Jeka. Yet, even if he'd had no sons, he
needed to go back, if only to see the city once more. Would it look different
after all he had been through?
Why did he now feel so impelled to return to Brysta? Had Charee still lived,
she would have settled into Cantyl, and she would have called him a fool for
ever going close to Lord West again. Maybe he was a fool to agree to be an
envoy. But there was Hagen . .. who would far rather have been upon the
Seastag, than standing behind Ghrant, advising and maneuvering, and risking
displeasure day after day. And the image of Tyrbel remained in Kharl's mind.
The scrivener had in effect given his life for Kharl when no one would have
been the wiser if he had not. Kharl would not even have blamed the scrivener
had the older man not chosen to speak up. But Tyrbel had, and he had been
murdered by Egen's assassin. It didn't matter that Kharl had killed the
assassin. Tyrbel was dead.
He half turned from the window, his eyes falling to The Basis of Order. There
wasn't anything in the book about envoys, nor about serving a ruler, not
directly, anyway.
On fourday, he was to present himself to the lord justicer's chief clerk in
Valmurl to begin his hurried study of law. He had to wonder whether it would be
of that much use. But then,
Kharl
looked back out through the window. The rain was beginning to fall more
heavily.
XLVI
Kharl
rode down
"Quiet
this morning, ser. Always is this time of day."
"Most
are at work or doing chores, I'd imagine." Kharl could sense more than a
few eyes on him, although they had to have been trained on him from behind
window hangings or shutters, for he saw no one actually looking at him. He did
not sense any large amounts of chaos, but Valmurl, like any city, was filled
with small pockets of chaos-and order.
He did
catch, through his order-sense boosted hearing, a few words and phrases here
and there.
"... that's him ... all in black ..."
"...
mages everywhere wear the black .. ."
".
.. big fellow .. . more like an armsman ..."
"...
good at that, too ... some say ..."
"...
Lord Ghrant... fortunate ..."
"...
we're the lucky ones ... lords still be fighting .. ."
Kharl
couldn't keep a faint smile from his lips. Whoever the speaker had been, he had
been right. Through luck, some limited skill, and arrogance-both his and that
of the white mages-he'd stopped the white wizards. If he had not, he had few
doubts that the fighting would still be continuing, if only because that would
have best suited Hamor.
"The
square's just ahead, ser, past the silversmith's on the left."
Kharl
nodded. He hadn't wanted an escort, but Norgen and Hagen had insisted. The Hall
of Justice was too far from the Great House to walk, and there were no stables
nearby. So Dorfal was escorting Kharl.
As the
two turned at the silversmith's, the morning sunlight glinted off the puddles remaining
in the lower sections of the stone-paved square that fronted the hall of
Justice. The gray stone structure was longer and narrower than the Hall in
Brysta. Its double doors were of dark oak rather than light, and there were no
guards posted either outside or immediately inside.
Kharl
reined up outside the doors and dismounted. From the gelding's saddlebags, he
took out a small leather case, which contained only blank paper and a
markstick.
"I'll
be back at noon, ser."
"Thank
you." Kharl smiled at the young lancer, then turned and headed for the
doors, conscious of Dorfal's eyes on his back.
Inside
the doors, a series of polished brass lamps set in wall sconces illuminated the
hall-like foyer, and the white plaster walls had been recently painted. There
were no decorations.
Kharl
glanced around. The foyer was empty.
A thin
white-haired man in a green jacket appeared from a narrow archway to the left.
"Ser? Might I help you?"
"I'm
looking for Jusof, the clerk for-"
"You
must be Lord Kharl, I'd imagine." The man bowed. "Most pleased to
meet you, ser. Jusof is expecting you, ser. If you would take the narrow stairs
to the left over there, the library and his study are just at the top."
"Thank
you." Kharl bowed his head.
"Oh,
no, ser. Thank you."
Kharl
followed the directions and took the stairs, so narrow that his shoulders
almost brushed both walls at once. At the top was another foyer, with three
archways set in an arc. The archway in the center had a single door, open into
a small chamber. Kharl could see someone seated at a table desk on which were
stacked piles of books and papers and that half filled the chamber. The ancient
oak door set in the archway to the right was closed. The leftmost archway had
no door and opened into a long chamber that seemed to run the rest of the
distance to the back of the structure. It was filled with shelves, and on those
shelves were rows and rows of leather-bound volumes, and all the volumes seemed
to be the same size- at least from what Kharl could see.
Kharl
strode forward toward the occupied chamber. By the time he stood at the
doorway, the occupant was standing.
"Lord
Kharl, I presume?"
"Yes.
You're Jusof."
"None
other." Jusof was even thinner, if but slightly younger, than the man who
had offered directions. His eyes were gray, large, and luminous, and his hands
were enormous, with such long fingers that each hand resembled a spider.
"I
had no doubt you were Lord Kharl, the mage." The warmth of the clerk's
smile erased immediately the severity of his appearance.
Kharl
laughed slightly. "Everyone seems to know who I am, and yet I've not met
any of you. It's very strange."
"That
will pass, I am most certain, but you not only are attired as befits a mage,
but you carry yourself as such. There is a power there .. . one who looks
cannot mistake it." The elderly clerk smiled at Kharl. "You look like
a mage, not like a cooper, or a carpenter, but I've been assured that you've
been successful at all three occupations. I've also been assured that you can
read and write with proficiency. Is that accurate?"
"Yes."
Kharl wasn't so sure about his proficiency in writing, at least compared to the
justicers and advocates who frequented the Hall of Justice.
"The
lord-chancellor has stated that he wishes me to guide you in learning as much
about justice and its procedures as possible in the season ahead. Lord Justicer
Priost has no objections, so long as you do not disrupt the proceedings of any
case, and I am willing to do that, if you are willing to apply yourself. It
will mean working as hard as at anything you have done, for wrestling with the
many-headed beast that is law is more tiring than most would imagine."
A faint
smile crossed Kharl's lips as he listened.
"First,
I will offer a precept, and an observation. The precept is: Never mistake law
for justice. Justice is an ideal, and law is a tool. Absolute justice would be
as unjust as applied injustice. Now . .. the observation is that justice is the
wellspring of chaos. That is because those who are guilty will do anything to
avoid justice, as will most of those who are innocent." The clerk's tone
turned even more dry. "The innocent fear justice because of what they
might do, or because of what might be done to those they love. The only ones
who pursue justice with great vigor are those who would use the law as a
weapon, and they are to be more feared than either the innocent or the
guilty."
Kharl
only had to think about the clerk's words for a moment.
Jusof
cleared his throat and asked, "Does that surprise you?"
"No.
I can't say that it does," Kharl replied reflectively. "I could not
have said it as clearly as you did, but I have wondered about the very ideas
you expressed."
"You
speak well for a former craftsman. Have you read widely?"
"I
have read. Not so widely as I should, I fear."
"That
is true of all of us." The clerk coughed. "I will summarize in
practical terms what I just told you. Law is a necessary evil. With it, matters
are never what they should be. Without it, they are inevitably worse."
Kharl
had to wonder, if the clerk of the head justicer in Austra happened to be so
cynical, how fairly the judgments of his justicer were arrived at.
"The
law is something that is always changing, but its roots date to antiquity.
Hamor has an actual code of laws, set forth in great detail by the third
emperor. These are periodically updated and recodified. We do not do this in
Nordla. The laws of both Austra and Nordla derive originally from the Code of
Cyad, such of it as remained, and largely from the ensuing case histories, by
precedent, and as amended by any proclamations of the lord, provided that the
lord justicer does not issue an opinion suggesting the legal invalidity of such
a proclamation ..."
What was
a case history? What did Jusof mean by precedent? And how could a lord justicer
invalidate a lord's decree? Kharl feared that what was in The Basis of Order
was simple in comparison to the arcaneness of law.
"We
will need to get you settled. The lord justicer suggested that you spend some
time studying the simplified procedures first, then the most important
precedents. After that, as there is time, you can look into other cases and
observe some of the cases that come before the lord justicer." Jusof smiled.
"There is a large table in the northwest corner of the library, right
under one of the clerestories, so that on most days you won't need a
lamp..."
The
chief clerk slipped around the table desk, the sleeve of his short jacket
brushing a pile of books, which teetered but did not fall.
Kharl
took his case in hand and followed the justicer's clerk.
XLVII
Jusof
stood beside his table desk, overflowing with the piles of papers and volumes that
seemed to have grown even in the two days since Kharl had first seen them.
"Now that you have read through the basic clerks' guide, and the summary
of important laws, I thought you should learn to use the library while you are
studying some of the cases."
Kharl
nodded. His head was already spinning after two long days of reading through
documents that made The Basis of Order seem simple indeed.
"I
have listed here some representative cases of each of the major classifications
of law." Jusof extended three sheets of paper filled with his precise and
small script. "The criminal sections are simple enough. There are crimes
against persons, either common or noble; crimes affecting property; and crimes
against the Lord-those are effectively crimes against Austra itself, since its
lord represents the land. Crimes against the Lord fall into three categories.
The first category comprises minorities, such as public drunkenness, vagrancy,
disturbing the peace. The second comprises majorities. These are greater
offenses, such as destroying public property, begging or soliciting on the
streets without a permit from the Lord-"
"I
did not know that one could get a permit for begging," Kharl said, recalling
the time when he had seen one of the Watch patrollers take away a child for
begging.
"There
is a precedent for the Lord to grant such, but no lord has granted any since
before the time of Lord Esthaven. Generally, they are not given. Begging and
street soliciting, if not forbidden, lead to greater offenses."
"What
kinds of soliciting are allowed under the law?"
"There
is little restriction on soliciting from one's own property or property rented
when the owner has consented in writing to the purposes to which the property
is put."
"Hmmmm
..." Kharl could see a few problems there.
Jusof
laughed. "Most young advocate scholars don't see that. There is a
recommended consent form laid out in the Salaharat case. That is a very famous
decision by the lord justicer under Lord Isthel."
"I'm
supposed to find these cases ... and read through them?"
"Exactly."
"Ah
. .. the library is large."
"Oh
... I must not have explained. One takes so much for granted. The cases are
laid out by section here in the library. Each set of shelves is labeled on the
east end. The cases in each set of shelves are arranged alphabetically by the
name of the defendant, and the sections correspond generally to the
classifications."
"What
if a case has more than one classification?"
"Good
question. The case will be filed under what we thought was the major issue at
law, but a sheet will be filed in the other sections telling where the actual
decision and abbreviated proceedings are filed." The clerk pointed to the
sheet. "If you search out each of these cases, then read through them, you
should gain a very basic understanding of how the law is applied and decided.
Please remember that in many instances the situation does not fit the law as it
stands, and the lord justicer must decide what aspects of the law and various
precedents apply. If you have questions, write them down, in reference to the
case, and we will discuss them each afternoon before you leave. I would judge
that it will take you close to an eightday to study all those on the list, even
if you read quickly."
An
eightday more of reading? Most of the daylight hours? "I see that I will
be very busy."
"You
will, indeed. I only wish that more lords would spend some time trying to
understand the law. If they did, there would be fewer cases before the lord
justicer."
"People
are people," Kharl replied. "They only accept the knowledge that
suits them." He'd seen that often enough as a cooper. No one wanted to
understand the advantage of a tight red or white oak barrel when they were
after cheap cooperage, even when the slightly more costly oak barrel would save
them twice the difference over in a few years.
"You
are most probably right," Jusof said with a sigh, "but one
hopes."
"I
had best begin," Kharl said.
Jusof
stood watching, a faint and sad smile on his thin face, as Kharl turned away.
Jusof
and the clerks were well organized, Kharl thought as he headed for the corner
table in the library that had become his immediately two days earlier. Several
of the advocate students still looked up from the smaller wall tables when he
passed, but fewer did so each day.
Kharl
set his case on the table. He wondered if the detail pursued by Jusof and the
clerks was that necessary. Then he shook his head. That detail was necessary
for a good set of laws, just as the same kind of attention to detail made
crafting better barrels possible, and greater magery successful. Did Nordla
have a similar system? Jusof had indicated that the legal systems had come from
the same general background, but, if they did, how could Lord Justicer Reynol
of Brysta have accepted the abuses of Egen and Lord West?
Kharl
smiled. Anyone could twist anything. That was something he would have to watch
in himself. Perhaps studying the law would help. He just hoped it did not make
him too much more cynical about people.
XLVIII
/liter
the first eightday in the Hall of Justice, spent entirely in the library
reading, Kharl wasn't sure that he understood any more than when he had first
walked inside. He knew more, but the knowledge had not yet deepened his
understanding. At least, he didn't think so. His routine was simple. He spent
the morning there, rode back to the Great House for a midday meal, then
returned and studied some more until close to sunset. The last half glass or so
was spent with Jusof.
On fiveday evening he walked slowly into the dining chamber in the Great House.
For a moment, he did not recognize anyone. Then he saw Norgen and Casolan
seated at the larger table. They had ales before them, but no platters.
Casolan
gestured. "If you would join us, Lord Kharl. .."
"I
would not intrude."
"You'd
not be intruding,' said the square-faced Casolan. "In fact, we
insist."
Norgen
nodded agreement.
Kharl sat
down, gratefully. He hadn't been looking forward to eating alone. He'd been
doing that too often, of late.
"An
ale"-Norgen glanced from the serving girl to Kharl-"it is an ale,
isn't it?"
"Pale
ale, please."
"A
pale ale for Lord Kharl."
"Yes,
sers."
"You
don't get to choose tonight," Casolan said. "It's stew. Only stew.
They had problems in the kitchen."
"That's
fine." Kharl looked at the two commanders. Both had circles under their
eyes and appeared thinner than when he had left Valmurl. "How are matters
with you both?"
The two
officers exchanged glances. Then Casolan burst into a laugh, and Norgen shook
his head, his lips twisted into a wry expression.
"We've
had to recruit more armsmen and lancers, and retrain most of those who remained,"
Casolan finally said.
"Half
the new lancers think horses are wasted on anything but plowing. Half the
junior officers have had full stables and have no idea about the need to pace a
mount."
"Not
half," suggested Norgen. "Just too many."
"The
ones who know blades fancy themselves duelists, and those who don't treat a
sabre like an ax." Casolan took a swallow of his ale, almost finishing the
beaker.
"None
of them think that they really need training, because wars don't happen often,
and we've just finished one," Norgen added. "They don't see that
training and discipline are necessary for more than just fighting. Some of them
don't even see the need for training to fight. They just think that you charge
with your mount and swing wildly at anything in sight."
The
three paused as the server returned with another round of ales, and with three
bowls of the stew-and two baskets of bread, only rye.
"No
dark bread," observed Casolan. "What's stew without it?"
"I'm
so sorry, ser," offered the serving girl, "but the molasses ran
out..."
"It's
not your fault," Casolan said politely. "It's probably not even the
cook's fault."
"No,
ser. It's not. Thank you." Before anyone could say anything else, she
bowed and hurried off.
"What's
the problem?" asked Kharl.
"The
lord-chancellor discovered that the provisions steward for the Great House was,
shall we say, taking a small portion of the accounts for his own uses. Some of
the holders had not been paid in eightdays for supplies delivered here.
Everything below the stairs is being looked at, and not everything has been
ordered as it should have been because the steward kept it all to
himself."
"So
that no one would know what he was doing?" suggested Kharl.
Norgen
nodded. "When someone wants to do everything by himself, it's a good wager
that he either doesn't trust those working for him or that he's up to no good.
Neither is a good sign."
Kharl
understood that. Even as a cooper, if he couldn't train his sons or apprentices
to be trusted, he wouldn't have been much of a crafter. "So the Great
House has a new provisions steward, and he's having trouble finding
everything?"
"So
I hear. It doesn't help that some of the holders were favored with a few extra
coins, and not because their provender was of better quality."
"It's
going to take a while before the lord-chancellor can work things out,"
interjected Casolan.
Kharl
did not envy Hagen.
"Where
have you been?" asked Norgen.
Kharl debated
momentarily about what he should say, then replied. "I've been studying
law at the Hall of Justice."
"Law?"
Casolan frowned.
"The
lord-chancellor thought it might be helpful. I'm not sure yet, but I think I've
learned a bit more about how Austra really works."
"I
can see how that might be helpful for a mage," observed Norgen.
"Whatever you do may affect someone."
"Glad
it's not me," said Casolan, after a mouthful of stew. "Just as soon
stay away from the Hall of Justice. You have to settle things there, and it's
already more trouble than anyone should want."
"What
have you learned?" asked Norgen.
"Mostly,
that clerks and advocates and justicers write down everything, and that their
writing is very small."
Both
commanders laughed.
XLIX
Late on
fourday afternoon, Kharl stepped out of the Hall of Justice and looked across
the square toward the tavern. After almost another eightday in the library,
Kharl's eyes and brain were weary. His initial impression had not changed that
much. The law was a tool, as Jusof had stated; but it was a tool that, while
varying between the bluntness of a cudgel and the focused deadliness of a
stiletto, generally served the interests of those with property and wealth,
especially the Lord of Austra. Still, like all tools, it depended on who was
using it for what. That had also become clear from his readings.
He had
decided that he needed a break from the fare at the Great House and arranged
for Dorfal to meet him much later than usual in the square, after having asked
Jusof about places to eat nearby.
"A tavern that would be appropriate for a lord? There are few of those." Jusof had
paused, mulling over the thought. "The Silver Horse is said to be the
best. It is just across the square. I suppose one would not find much trouble
with an establishment but a few doors from the Watch Patrollers'
headquarters."
Kharl
had repressed a laugh at that. His experiences with the Watch in Brysta had
left something to be desired.
Dorfal
had not been exactly pleased when Kharl had told the young armsman that he
would be eating at the tavern and to meet him later, but Kharl had insisted
quietly. "I don't know enough about Valmurl, and where people eat tells
something. Besides, I need to get out of the Great House more, and not only to
the Hall of Justice."
At the
recollection of Dorfal's glum agreement, Kharl smiled momentarily. Then he
lengthened his stride and crossed the square. The Silver Horse stood out from the
brick-fronted buildings on either side, neither of which bore signs identifying
them, because its front was of dark timbers framing white plaster. The door was
of time-blackened oak. Kharl opened it and stepped inside, closing it behind
him.
A muscular
woman in nondescript blue, with a gray apron, hurried up to Kharl, then slowed as she took in the
black jacket, trousers, and tunic. "Ah ... ser ..."
"I'm
looking for a meal and a good lager," Kharl offered cheerfully. "I'm
told you have both."
The woman
smiled. "Yes, ser. Plain fare, but good. No ale any better." She
looked over her shoulder. "Early enough we got a corner table." She
turned.
Kharl
followed her, then sat in the corner chair against the
wall, the one from which he could see most of the crowd. "A lager or a
light ale, if you have it. What do you suggest for fare?"
"Light
ale's better, ser. Tonight, ser, the burhka's pretty
good. Hot but not too hot."
Kharl
hadn't had burhka in seasons. "That sounds fine. Dark bread?"
"Yes, ser. Five for the fare and bread. Three for the ale. When you please,
ser." She hurried off.
She
hadn't gotten more than a few cubits away, when another serving- woman,
gray-haired, stopped her. "Who's that? Some advocate .. . ?"
"...
think it might be Lord Ghrant's mage ... you want to ask him?"
"...
think not... don't question mages. You keep serving
him."
Within
moments, the first server returned with Kharl's ale.
"Thank
you."
"Yes,
ser." She nodded and slipped away, glancing toward the other corner of the
tavern.
Kharl's
eyes followed hers. Opposite him was a small group of men, young but fairly
well dressed. After a moment, he smiled. No wonder Jusof knew about the Silver
Horse. Kharl could recognize the faces of several of the student advocates, not
that he knew any of their names.
One of
the advocates-to-be lifted a guitar and began to strum and sing. After a
moment, the others joined in.
Kharl
concentrated on the words.
"Our
brave Lord Ghrant, he ran away, came back to fight another day.
His
found mage fought wizards and even more, whupped 'em all in the age's shortest war.
"Our
brave Lord Ghrant, he loved his land, ran and showed it but his left hand.
His
brother lost his mages and his head,
and Lord
Ghrant came back from the almost dead.
"Our
brave Lord Ghrant, he knows so well when to fight and when to run and tell. But
better a lord who knows where to flee than his brother who'd slaughter you and
me!"
Several
of those at the tables in the tavern laughed, heartily, but Kharl could only
shake his head. Humorous as the song was, the point applied to him, and, like
Lord Ghrant, it was more than clear that his running days were done, and that
he needed to return to Brysta before Egen became yet another Ilteron-and before
something happened to Warrl.
He
paused, thinking. Just how likely was it that such a song could have been sung
in Brysta about either Egen or Lord West? He doubted that the singers, wellborn
students or not, could have sung such words about the ruler of the West Quadrant
of Nordla-not without ending up either in gaol or suffering some other form of
Egen's displeasure. In that sense, Austra was much to be preferred to Nordla.
Yet...
even without his debts to Ghrant and Hagen, Kharl knew he would have had to
return to Nordla. Was it just because of Warrl? Or because he needed to see
Brysta with fresh eyes? Or because he worried that he had not done enough for
Sanyle and Jeka-especially Jeka?
"Your
burhka, ser." With the burhka came a small loaf of dark bread in a basket,
still warm.
"Oh
... thank you." Kharl slipped the server a silver and a copper.
"Thank
you, ser." With a pleased smile, she gave the slightest of bows before
leaving Kharl to his evening meal.
Across
the tavern, the students were singing another song.
"Oh,
clerks and justicers, justicers and clerks,
all that
they love are their cases and their perks ...
With
their ink-stained noses as black as a rook's,
their
only pleasures lie in their files and their books ..."
Kharl smiled
again and began to enjoy the ale and the burhka.
Kharl
made his way through the double doors of the Hall of Justice. He hoped to spend
some time reading through the next-to-last section of Aus-tran Justicer Cases,
suggested strongly by Jusof because Jusof had wanted him to finish those cases
before they observed the day's proceedings in the Hall of Justice.
The mage used his sight shield to slip by the open chamber door of the lord
justicer's chief clerk because he really didn't feel like another long lecture
by Jusof on the law as a tool. Kharl had understood that the first time, and he
doubted that he could keep from showing some impatience. Kharl knew Jusof was
trying to help him, but sometimes what Jusof said lasted a full glass. Kharl suspected
that was because Jusof was lonely, and because the older man knew that Kharl
was honestly trying to understand the law for itself and not as a way to wealth
or fame or both.
He released the sight shield as he neared the corner table, hoping that none of
the student advocates happened to be looking his way.
"...
see that?" whispered one of the young men.
"See
what?"
"That's
him ... the mage ... just appeared out of nowhere ..."
"How'd
you know? You were dreaming about Juhlya. Besides, if he's a mage, what does it
matter? They do things like that."
"...
say he's studying the law with Jusof ..."
"A
mage . .. studying law?"
"Maybe
he figures he needs to, now that he's a lord ..."
"...
don't know that a mage needs the law ..."
"...
big fellow, for all the fine clothes ..."
"...
carried Lord Ghrant three kays on his shoulders .. . killed two wizards and
that scum Ilteron .. . gave him a small estate ... then turned a whole mountain
into glass ..."
Kharl
winced at the exaggerations. In the fight in Dykaru, which had brought him
Cantyl, he'd been fortunate rather than skillful, and glad enough to have survived. As for the
so-called glass mountain, the powers of the two white wizards had been the
reason why part of one small hill was glassy. He pushed aside the whispered
words, settled himself at the table, and opened volume nine of Austran Justicer
Cases.
He'd
actually read through two of the cases before he sensed Jusof walking into the
library and heading toward him.
He closed
the volume and rose, then walked past the young advocates toward Jusof.
"You
must have been here early, Lord Kharl. I didn't see you come in." Jusof
carried a large case under his left arm.
"Not
that early. You looked rather intent when I passed."
Jusof
sighed. "That must have been when I was copying out Lord Justicer Priost's
decision on the rendering case .. . rather involuted, if impeccable
logic." The clerk turned toward the narrow staircase leading down to the
main floor.
"Are
you ready to observe?"
"I
am." Kharl followed the clerk. "Do you agree with most of the lord
justicer's decisions?"
"It
is not a clerk's place to agree or not to agree. I would say that I would
rather serve under Lord Justicer Priost than any others in recent years."
"Austra
doesn't have that many justicers-just one here and one in Bruel. There are that
many just in Brysta."
"There
are town magistrates and two subjusticers as well, in Vizyn and Dykaru. The
decisions of the subjusticers have the same standing as those of the lord
justicers, except that their decisions, in cases involving death, must be
reviewed by Lord Justicer Priost. Some excellent decisions have been set forth
by Subjusticer Dhorast. Those are in the library as well. As you well know, the
powers of lords and magistrates are limited to low justice."
At the
base of the steps, Jusof turned and crossed the lower foyer toward the double
doors.
The
bailiff opened the left-hand door to the hall as the two men approached. "Good
morning, ser Jusof, Lord Kharl."
"Good
morning, Henolt," said Jusof.
"Good
morning," added Kharl.
Beyond
the double doors was a long and narrow chamber, far more stark than the
corresponding hall in Brysta-and smaller. The width was about twenty cubits,
the length no more than forty, and the ceiling height but seven or eight. At the south end of the
chamber was a single dais, raised but half a cubit. On it rose a podium desk of
dark wood, possibly walnut, thought Kharl. The desk was empty. There was no
podium for the lord, as there was in Nordla.
A center
aisle split eight rows of low-backed wooden benches, and there was a space of
about two cubits between the stone walls and the end of the benches. Between
the first row of benches and the dais was a space of perhaps a rod, but in that
space on each side, set out from the walls about four cubits, were two thin
narrow black tables, behind which were straight-backed chairs. The two tables
and chairs were parallel to the sidewalls, so that those who sat at the tables
would face each other, and not either the lord justicer at the podium desk or
the audience in the benches.
Both
side tables were empty, and Jusof walked to the narrow black table on the right
side, where he seated himself in the chair closest to the dais. Kharl slipped
into the wooden straight-backed chair beside Jusof, his eyes running across the
narrow hall. No more than half a score of people sat in the benches, and none
in the first two rows.
From his
case, Jusof took out a portable inkpot, two pens, and several sheets of paper,
laying them out before him. "The case at hand this morning concerns
Tellark, a tanner accused of murdering a tariff farmer."
Even as
the bells from the tower above began to strike the glass, the rear door opened,
and the bailiff stepped into the hall. At the south end of the chamber, a small
side door opened, and the lord justicer stepped out onto the dais.
"All
rise!" intoned the bailiff.
Kharl
rose with Jusof, his eyes on the lord justicer.
Priost
wore a robe over his own garb, and the robe was almost shapeless black, trimmed
in green. From what Kharl could tell, the lord justicer was neither lean and
angular, nor large and corpulent, but a man of moderate height with black hair
tinged with gray. He walked briskly, but not hurriedly, to the podium desk,
where he seated himself.
"You
may be seated."
After a
moment of silence, Priost cleared his throat. "Before we begin, is there
one who would take the Justicer's Challenge?" He looked around, waited,
then went on, "There being none, bailiff, bring forth the defendant."
The rear
door opened once more, and two armsmen in green and black escorted a thin, wiry
man with lank red hair into the chamber.
"Tellark,
the tanner, step forward!" called out the bailiff.
Kharl
noted that the tanner wore a clean gray undertunic and trousers, boots, and
that his hands were not tied or chained. He did not look to be bruised. Kharl
could not sense any hints of chaos about the man, and there was no feel of
injury. The mage waited as the tanner approached the dais, then halted several
cubits short of the lord justicer.
"You
are Tellark, the tanner, and your home and business are located at the
intersection of
"Yes,
Lord Justicer." The tanner's response was hardly audible.
"You
are charged with the murder of Yeson, the tariff farmer for the southwest
quarter of Valmurl." Priost waited several moments. "Did you kill
Yeson?"
The wiry
tanner looked down at the polished gray granite of the floor, then straight at
Priost, but did not reply.
"The
accused being mute, and without an advocate, the justicing enters a statement
of denial."
Kharl
nodded to himself. He approved of the Austran practice of assuming a person
charged was innocent until the evidence was provided. According to Jusof, that
was supposed to be the code for both Austra and Nordla, but Kharl certainly
hadn't seen it in his own case. Nor had Charee.
He
glanced to his right, where Jusof was writing quickly, but in a clear, if
small, script.
Without
a word, the armsmen escorted Tellark to the table opposite the one where Jusof
and Kharl were seated and had the tanner sit in the middle chair. Both armsmen
remained standing, their backs to the wall, a cubit from Tellark.
"The
first witness," ordered Priost.
The hall
doors opened, and a large figure of a man, seemingly overflowing his maroon
tunic, slouched inside.
"Bebarak,
step forward!" commanded the bailiff.
The big
man lumbered forward, and Kharl noted that the scabbard at his right side was
empty, as was the knife sheath at his left. Bebarak halted short of the dais.
"You
are Bebarak, chief guard to the tariff farmer Yeson?"
"Ah
... yes, your honorship. Well... I was."
"Ser
or lord justicer will suffice."
Bebarak
looked dumbly at Priost.
"Just
call me ser."
"Yes,
ser."
After
several more questions establishing who Bebarak was and that he had seen the
incident, Priost asked, "After you entered the tannery, what
happened?"
"Well,
ser. .. Master Yeson, he walked up to him-the tanner over there-and he told him
that his time was up. He said he'd best come up with the ten golds, or it'd be
hard on him-"
"Did
he say 'ten golds'?"
"Yes,
ser. He'd been saying that we needed the ten golds earlier- like, too. Anyway,
Master Yeson told him his time was up, and the fellow said no he wouldn't
because Yeson was overcharging, and it wasn't right, and that he'd been taking
too much for years."
"Then
what happened?"
"Well,
ser ... Master Yeson, he laughed. He told the tanner to stop complaining, that
everyone paid the tariff farmer.
He said
he'd be paying like he did every year, and he told him to stop whining, and
just like that the tanner bent down; then he straightened up, and he had this
hammer. He hit Master Yeson upside his head, and Master Yeson fell over. He weren't
breathing, either, pretty soon."
"What
did the tanner do?"
"He
just stood there."
Priost
asked a number of other questions, but the guard's story remained essentially
the same-and truthful, Kharl noted. When the guard was finished, he was escorted
from the hall. All through the process, Jusof kept writing.
The next
witness was Keromont, Lord Ghrant's tariff steward. Even as he stopped before
the dais, his eyes darted from the lord justicer to Kharl and back to the lord
justicer.
"Steward,"
Priost said firmly, "so long as you tell what is so,
I doubt you have much to fear from Lord Kharl. He is hear to learn how justice
is done."
"Yes,
ser."
"Now
... according to your records, what was the tariff assessed on Tellark the
tanner?"
"Five
golds, Lord Justicer."
"Five."
Priost nodded. "Were you aware that Yeson was insisting on ten
from
Tellark?" .
"Ah
... sir. Not.. . precisely. Might I explain, ser?"
"Go
ahead."
"Tariff
farmers collect tariffs for the Lord of Austra. They have been allowed to
require somewhat more than the assessed tariff in order to cover their
expenses. If a tariff farmer has to make many visits to someone, or cover the
tariffs due themselves until they can collect, that excess can be larger. I did
not know how much more than five golds that Yeson was charging, but it is
always more."
"How
much more?"
"Usually
... and this is only what is considered customary, Lord Jus-ticer, the excess
is roughly one gold for every ten of tariff. That is, if large sums are not
past due."
"So
you would not consider it unusual for Yeson to have charged Tel- lark, say five
and a half golds, even six?"
"No,
ser."
"Did
you know if Tellark happened to be habitually late in paying his tariffs?"
"From
what Yeson told me, it would have been unlikely. If what he said was true. He
had said that he was fortunate in having no great delinquencies."
"To
your knowledge, had Yeson misled you in the past on this fact?"
"No,
ser."
Once
more the questions went on, but Kharl didn't see that they added that much.
After
Keromont came a series of witnesses, including the tanner's wife. She claimed
she had not seen the murder, that her consort was a good man, that he would not
have murdered any good person, and, in response to Priost's questioning, that
her consort had been aware that Yeson was overtariffing, but had not known what
to do about it. Then came the other two guards of the tariff farmer and a
neighbor who had summoned the Watch patrollers.
Jusof
kept writing, scarcely looking up from the growing sheaf of paper that he had
created.
Finally,
some time near midday, the lord justicer called no more witnesses and instead
looked to his right. "Tellark, rise and come forward."
The
tanner did not speak as the armsmen escorted him to a position in front of the
dais.
"You
have heard the evidence against you. Do you have anything to say that justicing should know? Have any of
the witnesses said anything that is not true?"
Tellark
remained silent.
"Master
tanner, this is your last chance to say anything in your own defense."
Kharl
could sense Priost's frustration. At least, he thought the thin miasma of
order-bounded chaos around the lord justicer was frustration.
"Won't
change nothing, ser."
"Let
me be the judge of that. You stand accused of murder. All of the witnesses save
your consort have testified that you committed this murder. If you have
anything to say in defense of yourself, you should speak now."
Tellark
shuddered, but did not speak.
Priost
waited, far longer than Kharl would have.
Then,
finally, the tanner spoke. "He was cheating everyone, ser. Taking golds in
the name of the Lord, but keeping 'em. Everyone knew it. Even the steward knew
it. No one did nothing. Some years, I could pay it, hard as it was. I couldn't
this year. Emela, she lost the baby and couldn't help none, and I had to hire
Balsat's boy. I told Yeson that, and all he said was that everyone had a story,
and iffin I knew what was good for me, I'd be paying. I knows what he was
saying. His guards, they burned down that cooper's place. Kundark couldn't pay,
neither. No one did nothing then, neither. Everyone said it was an accident.
Wasn't no accident." Tellark closed his mouth sharply, as if he had said
too much.
Kharl
could sense that the tanner was telling the absolute truth, and he would have
wagered that Priost knew it as well.
"Did
you come to the Great House and tell anyone this? Did you come here?"
"Wouldn't
done no good."
"Did
you try?"
Tellark
did not look at the justicer. "Got nothing else to say."
"You
may be seated."
The
guards escorted Tellark back to the other table.
When Jusof
had stopped writing, seemingly for the first time since the trial had begun,
Kharl cleared his throat, gently.
"Yes,
Lord Kharl?"
"What
happens next?" Kharl kept his voice low.
"He
will decide. There is nothing more to be heard."
"Now?"
"Shortly."
Lord
Justicer Priost never left his podium desk, but neither did he look up. Upon
occasion he wrote something down, but he did not appear to have written that
much. After less than a quarter glass he looked up.
"Master
Tellark, come forward."
The
guards flanked Tellark when he stopped before the dais, and this time, they
were far closer, and far more alert.
"Call
forth Steward Keromont."
Kharl
wondered about that, but said nothing as the tariff steward returned to the
hall and stood beside Tellark. Keromont kept glancing at Kharl.
"Master
Tellark and Steward Keromont, here is what the justicing has found. First, the
tariff farmer Yeson had made a practice of excessive tariffing. He had used his
guards to intimidate those tariffed so that they would not protest. The tariff
steward was not aware of the degree of such abuses. Such a practice is not
conducive to an orderly collection of tariffs, nor is it to the benefit of
Austra." Priost looked hard at Keromont.
The
steward swallowed, but did not speak.
"Second,"
the lord justicer continued, "the tanner Tellark did in fact murder the
tariff farmer Yeson with a hammer, and the tanner did so in a manner that
showed that he knew what he was doing." He paused and looked at the
tanner.
Tellark
did not look directly at the justicer.
"Therefore,
with regard to the questions of the tariff, this justicing sets forth the
following. First, the tariff steward will review the rolls and records of all
tariff farmers on a regular basis and, where necessary, require a tariff farmer
to explain any tariff that the steward judges as excessive. Second, those rolls
will henceforth show both the Lord's tariff and the amount collected. Failure
of a tariff farmer to keep accurate records will be deemed a crime against the
Lord. Third, the tariff for this year for the tanner Tellark will be deemed
paid on the rolls of Yeson's successor and upon the accounts of the Lord of
Austra." Priost looked at the tariff steward. "Is that clear, Steward
Keromont?"
"Yes,
Lord Justicer."
Kharl
almost opened his mouth in astonishment that the lord justicer could impose
requirements on the Lord of Austra-and expect compliance.
Priost
turned his eyes back on Tellark. "Master Tellark, with regard to the murder of the tariff farmer Yeson, you
are found guilty of that murder, and hereby sentenced to be hanged at sunset
tonight."
Tellark
did not move as the two armsmen each took hold of him.
"Let
justice be done," Priost stated, rising.
"All
rise!" ordered the bailiff.
Priost
did not turn and leave the dais until both Keromont and Tellark had been
escorted from the hall. Then, without a word, the lord justicer turned and
walked to the small doorway from the dais. The few spectators in the hall began
to file out in silence.
After
several moments, Kharl turned to Jusof.
"You
are most agitated, Lord Kharl," suggested Jusof, in the silence of the
nearly empty chamber as the clerk straightened his papers and closed the
portable inkpot.
"He
killed the tariff farmer, but the tariff farmer was charging him far more than
he owed. For that he'll be hanged? Not put in gaol or flogged, but
hanged?"
"It
is true that Yeson was not known to be the most scrupulous of tariff farmers.
He had been overtariffing the tanner well beyond his costs and pocketing the
difference. There were reports that he had done the same with others."
Jusof paused. "In none of those cases did anyone come forward or
complain."
"They
were afraid," suggested Kharl.
"Doubtless
they were, but the law cannot reward fear. It cannot guess what people may
think or feel or need. If no one speaks, the law cannot act. Tellark could have
come to the Hall of Justice and protested. He could have gone to Lord Ghrant's
tariff steward."
"But...
how would he know that?" Kharl certainly hadn't known that such
possibilities existed. Then, in Brysta, he doubted that protesting would have
changed anything, because Egen had ordered Fyngel to increase the tariffs on
the cooperage so that Kharl could not pay. Kharl had to admit that Tellark had
not faced quite as great an injustice-but it was still injustice.
"Did
he ever ask? There is no evidence that he did. Rather than try for a better
solution, he killed a man. The tariff farmer was not a good man. We know that,
but the law must frown on people deciding on their own whose life to take and
whose to spare."
"But
hanging?"
"What
would you have the lord justicer do? Tellark did kill Yeson. Regardless of the
reason for the killing, except in self-defense, or in defense of family, a
justicer cannot excuse a killing. In a brawl or an accident, the death penalty
is not required, but Tellark knew full well what he was doing. The law cannot
excuse willful and knowing murder. If the lord justicer allows attacks on
tariff farmers, who are not the most beloved of men, that weakens Lord Ghrant
and all of Austra. Who would then pay their tariffs? Justicer Priost did what
he could under the law. He insisted on an accounting of all the tariff farmers'
rolls. He mandated a change in accounting, with penalties, and he dismissed the
tanner's tariff for this year, presumably on the grounds that the tariff farmer
exceeded the authority granted by Lord Ghrant and that the tariff steward did
not exercise adequate supervision. That will ensure that the widow will retain
the tannery. The other tariff farmers will receive the message that excessive
zeal is not acceptable."
"That
does not seem totally fair."
Jusof
smiled sadly. "Totally fair or just it is not. You might recall, Lord
Kharl, what I said about the law when you came to the Hall of Justice. Law is a
tool. It is not justice. Sometimes it can be close to it. At other times, while
the law is the best we have, it cannot be just, not without destroying Austra
itself." The clerk slipped the papers and inkpot into his case, then
withdrew a single sheet, which he extended to Kharl.
Kharl
took it.
"The
lord justicer has suggested that you write an advocate's brief. You've read
enough of them-on a forthcoming case. I have the file in my chamber. Your brief
will remain, of course, private to me and the lord justicer."
Kharl
looked at Jusof. Write a brief? He'd never written much of anything, except a
few letters, one or two short statements when he bid on barrels for the harbor
fort at Brysta, and his statement of candidacy to become a master cooper.
"Just
use the same format as all the others," Jusof offered. "It's a simple
enough pattern. Make it short. Most are too long." The clerk smiled
briefly, then stepped away from the table.
As he
followed Jusof, Kharl was silent. Write a brief? Why? He wouldn't ever be an
advocate. Could he even write three sentences that made sense?
Even as
he pondered the lord justicer's request, Kharl was still wondering about
Jusof's words about Tellark's fate. The law could not be just without
destroying the land? He'd thought he had understood what Jusof had said on the
first day, but Priost's death sentence for Tellark cast that understanding in a
different light. Was it fair to require people to act when they might suffer?
That was what Priost's decision had said, in effect. But Kharl could see what
Jusof had meant as well. For years, the tanner had done nothing. Then ... he
had murdered the tariff farmer. Priost had crafted a sentence to reduce the
abuse, but did not excuse the murder.
Kharl
took a deep breath. Without even the struggle that trying to write a brief
would entail, he had more to think about, because what he had seen went far
beyond the Hall of Justice.
LI
As Kharl
stepped into the lord-chancellor's chamber, he saw standing beside Hagen a
young man, one who looked like he'd scarcely reached his first score, for all
that his shoulders were broad, and he was less than half a head shorter than Kharl.
His hair was a rusty red, and his face was lightly freckled. He was clad in
gray trousers and a dark green tunic that brought out the paleness of his skin.
Upon
seeing Kharl, even before the door had closed behind the mage, the young man
bowed. "Lord Kharl."
"Lord
Kharl, this is Erdyl,"
Kharl
had recalled something about a secretary, but seeing the young man brought home
the point that he would scarcely be traveling alone, not when he would be
accompanied by Undercaptain Demyst, Erdyl, and guards. He also understood that
Hagen had told Erdyl about Kharl's future duties as a form of test. If Erdyl
said a word, Kharl suspected he would have a new secretary.
"Lord
Hagen had told me I would have a secretary"-Kharl offered a
smile-"but little more."
Erdyl
stood respectfully, waiting. His eyes appraised Kharl, but the mage could sense
no chaos.
"Erdyl
is the youngest son of Lord Askyl of Norbruel,"
Kharl
could detect neither untruthfulness nor sarcasm in the older man's words.
"Erdyl, with the lord-chancellor's word, I am most certain you'll do
well."
"I
would hope to do my best and to support you in all that you require."
"Except
magery,"
"Oh,
yes, ser. I did not mean such," Erdyl said quickly.
Erdyl
nodded solemnly.
While
Kharl could sense the young man's acquiescence, he also had the feeling that
"In
addition to his duties as envoy, Lord Kharl will also be studying the laws of
Nordla while he is in Brysta, as he has been doing with those who serve the
lord justicer here."
That,
Kharl sensed, was a definite surprise to the young man.
"The
way the laws are administered can tell much to an envoy,"
"Yes,
ser."
"When
we are alone, you may ask why I do something," Kharl added, thinking that
was something he should have handled better with Arthal.
"But
only when you are truly alone,"
"Yes,
ser."
"You
will also be tasked with organizing anything that Lord Kharl wishes done. While
he is finishing his work at the Hall of Justice, you will be learning a few
matters here at the Great House, from me, and from the commanders, and from the
stewards ..."
Almost a
glass passed before
Kharl
repressed a smile. Hagen was stretching the truth there a little.
Once
Erdyl had left them, the lord-chancellor turned to Kharl. "Erdyl writes
well, and quickly. Despite his age, he sees much, and his mind is also
quick."
"He
has enough older brothers that he has no chances of seeing any coins from the
family lands," suggested Kharl.
"His
father has been loyal to both Lord Estloch and to Lord Ghrant,"
Kharl
smiled. He understood that Hagen wanted someone who could help Kharl, but whom
he could also reward, and someone who would be regarded as very traditional by
doubting lords. It made great sense. "Is there anything I need to worry
about with him?"
"Don't
disappoint him. If you plan to do something to upset his high opinion of you,
explain why."
Kharl
also understood that. "I'll try."
"Go
have your meal with him." Hagen gestured toward the door.
"Yes,
most honored lord-chancellor." Kharl grinned.
"Out,
troublesome lord mage."
Kharl laughed
and made his way out of the lord-chancellor's chamber.
Erdyl
was standing outside in the corridor. "Ser?"
"We'll
just go to the smaller dining hall," Kharl said, turning down the
corridor. "I only have a glass or so before I need to get back to the Hall
of Justice."
Erdyl
looked quizzically at Kharl. "Ser .. . might I ask ... ?"
"I'm
trying to learn how to write an advocate's brief." Kharl stopped at the
archway into the dining chamber, then saw that the smaller table was empty and
headed toward it.
Erdyl
followed, but did not speak until they were seated. "Is that part of being
a mage, ser?"
"In
a fashion, I guess." Kharl motioned to one of the servers.
"A
lager, Lord Kharl?"
"Yes,
please, and whatever you think is best for the meal." Kharl looked to
Erdyl.
"Ah
. . . red wine, please, and whatever Lord Kharl is having."
"I'll
have your lager and wine in a moment, sers." The woman smiled pleasantly
and headed for the back staircase down to the kitchen.
"You're
from somewhere near Bruel?" asked Kharl.
Erdyl
smiled, seeming almost embarrassed. "It's not so close that I'd call it
near. Father's lands lie nearly a hundred and fifty kays north of Bruel along
the coast. It takes an eightday by the roads to get to Bruel. That's in good
weather in the summertime."
Kharl
laughed at his own misunderstanding. "And in the winter?"
"You
can't use the roads. The Sudpass is snowed in within a few days after harvest is
over, an eightday or two at most. There's a fair harbor in the town. That's
Norbruel. The holding house is on the hill to the north of town. We can see the
harbor and Seal Island from the terrace."
"Did
you want to come to Valmurl? Or was it your father's idea?"
"I
asked, ser. He had no objections." Erdyl's voice was even, almost flat.
"He
really didn't think it was a good idea," suggested Kharl.
Erdyl
looked at Kharl, then shrugged, smiling sheepishly. "No, ser. He said
that, if I wanted to make my way among strangers, I might as well try. He sent
a letter to Lord Hagen, even before he became lord- chancellor, asking if Lord
Hagen might find me a position."
Kharl
nodded. "How long have you been in Valmurl?"
"Just
three eightdays, ser. Once Commander Casolan sent word that it was safe, Father
put me on the Seafox. He's known Lord Hagen since they were young, and the
lord-chancellor had sent back a letter asking Father if I'd be willing to serve
Lord Ghrant."
"I'm
scarcely Lord Ghrant," Kharl pointed out.
"You
are one of the most loyal lords serving him, it is said."
Kharl
still found it jarring to be called a lord, and he wasn't quite certain what to
say to Erdyl's statement. He pondered for a moment before answering. "I
came to serve Lord Ghrant because Ha- Lord Hagen served him, and Lord Hagen is
the most worthy man I have met." He stopped as the server set a pale lager
before him and a goblet before Erdyl.
"Did
you really turn a mountain into glass?" Erdyl asked.
"Not
exactly," Kharl replied. "Order doesn't work like that. A white
wizard tried to use chaos to burn up all our forces, and I turned the chaos
back on the wizard. Part of a hill behind the wizards turned into glass."
The
young man nodded slowly. "I didn't see how a black mage would do that, but
everyone kept saying that you had."
Kharl
took a sip of his ale before saying more. "I've been told that I'm not
exactly like other order-mages. I seem to be a little better with shields, but
I don't seem to have much talent for healing or things like that." He felt
that he was being truthful in what he said.
"Shields?
Like an old-style lancer?"
"No.
A way of stopping chaos-fire and, sometimes, things like crossbow bolts. That's
if I know they're coming." Kharl took another sip of lager. "Have you
ever been in Nordla, or anyplace else besides Norbruel or Bruel or
Valmurl?"
"I
went to Vizyn once with Clandal." Erdyl shrugged. "It was even colder
than Norbruel, and that was in the summer."
"Nordla
can be a dangerous place," Kharl said. "Lord West and his sons have
killed many who made the mistake of talking about them in public. The less we
speak about ourselves and about them, the better."
"The
lord-chancellor said that I was only to say that you were the lord of Cantyl
and that you had once been a merchant officer."
"That's
right." Kharl nodded. "You should say only that your sire is the lord
of Norbruel." He could sense a quiet solidness about the young man, and he
had the feeling that Hagen had picked well. "We should let others
talk."
Erdyl
laughed. "Father is always saying that. He said you couldn't hook the
smallest gilly in the brook if it kept its mouth shut."
Kharl
found that he was enjoying talking to young Erdyl, and regretted that, after he
ate, he would have to go back to the Hall of Justice to work on the brief
suggested by Jusof. He supposed he would learn from that, but he was not
looking forward to that learning. Writing anything was a chore, and a laborious
one at that.
LII
Kharl
walked down the main floor corridor of the Great House toward the
lord-chancellor's chamber, for the private midday meal to which he had been
invited by a messenger. Had his brief for Jusof and the lord- justicer been so
bad that Hagen had reconsidered sending him to Brysta as an envoy? Kharl
frowned. He knew what he had written had been simple, but all he could write
about the law and the case was simple.
As he
neared the chamber, the guard on the left opened the door. "He's expecting
you, Lord Kharl."
"Greetings,
Kharl." Hagen smiled. "I'm glad you could join me." He gestured to
the place set across from him. Only a goblet and a beaker were on the polished
wood surface, and Hagen's goblet held red wine, the beaker for Kharl a lager.
"I
appreciate it. Not too many wish to eat with me, except for Casolan and
Norgen."
"That's
not surprising,"
Kharl
settled into the chair, studying
The
lord-chancellor looked tired, with blackish circles under his eyes. His face
was thinner, and one eye twitched.
"You've
met several times with Erdyl now."
"We've
talked over meals," Kharl replied. "I've told him what to expect in
Brysta, a little about how it's laid out... that sort of thing."
"Good."
Hagen paused. "You've now been studying under Jusof for almost four
eightdays. How have you found it?"
Kharl's
lips twisted into a wry smile. "I have found that I write poorly. The more
I learn about the law, the less I like it. Yet the less I like it, the more I
understand how necessary it is for a land."
"You
already understand more than some advocates." Hagen paused to take a sip
from his goblet.
Kharl
doubted that, but did not say so.
"Be
that as it may, I've talked with Lord Justicer Priost and with Jusof. Jusof
feels that within the next eightday, it is likely that you will have learned as
much as is necessary for an envoy to know. He and the lord justicer are also
willing to provide you with a letter of introduction to the lord justicers of
Brysta. It will state that you have been a most diligent scholar of the law in
Valmurl, and that they hope that their peers in Nordla will extend you every
courtesy in allowing you to pursue your studies there, as your other duties
permit."
Kharl
took a sip of the lager. "You need me to go to Brysta soon, I take it. Are
things bad there?"
"Not
yet, but they will be, I fear. We had received word that Lord West had fallen
ill. That happens. Then we later heard indirectly from a Sarronnese trader that
Lord West was poisoned, but will recover." Hagen paused. "When there
is an attempt such as this, there is most likely to be another one. From what
you have said, I would wager that young Egen has enlisted some Hamorian
assistance in the matter of his sire's illness. We do not know this, but as you
have seen here, there is a certain pattern to the way the emperor and his
minions work. As you can, we need you to discover what is really happening and
how deeply Hamor is involved."
"You
said you had spies ..." ventured Kharl.
"We
did. That is another reason for concern. Two are dead, and one has vanished. That
is why we must rely on indirect reports. That also concerns Lord Ghrant."
"The
Hamorians seem to be moving quickly after their defeat here."
"The
emperor does not admit defeats. He suffers but temporary setbacks. That is what
his late envoy Joharak once told me. I would also imagine that they would like
to make such an effort before Lord Ghrant can rebuild Austra."
"Lord
Ghrant has no designs on Nordla, does he?"
"Of
course not."
"Your
dinner, sers," came the voice of one of the guards.
"Come
on in."
One of
the serving girls from the kitchen stepped into the chamber carrying a tray.
She inclined her head. "Lord-chancellor, Lord Kharl."
The
platters both contained ascalyn-veal thinly sliced, marinated in a mint sauce,
braised quickly, and served with a browned butter sauce and fried pearapples. A
large basket of bread came with the meal. Kharl had only tasted ascalyn once,
and that had been at the consort feast of Charee's cousin Vertya.
Once the
server had left, Hagen raised his goblet. "To better days."
"To
better days."
They
both ate silently for a time. Kharl found the veal far better than he had
remembered it, but he suspected that his memory had been accurate, and that the
preparation at the Great House was far better.
"How
else do you think I should prepare? Is there anything else I should know? Can I
tell Erdyl?"
"You
can tell young Erdyl. He has said nothing to anyone, except that he is learning
what he can at the Great House. There is little else that we can provide,
except that Lord Ghrant will have to proclaim you as an envoy. That will be as
late as possible, the day before you depart on the Seastag. But you cannot be
recognized as an envoy without the audience and proclamation. It will be a
short ceremony." Hagen added, "There is one other thing. I shouldn't
have to tell you, but we all overlook things. The Hamorians will not wish you
in Brysta. I would not put it past them to attempt some action against
you."
"How
would they find out if the ceremony is just before I leave?"
"We
have spies in Swartheld, and they have spies here. Most spies know that it is difficult
to kill a mage who is forewarned or alert. I would doubt that you will have
much difficulty in such a fashion, but. .. many spies are good at indirection.
I know you can detect poison ... but that ability does little good if you do
not realize that even food prepared by close friends can be poisoned without
their knowing it. Crossbow bolts kill if you do not see them coming. Even
cliffs have been toppled on mages, I've been told." Hagen shook his head.
"Are
you trying to tell me not to go to Brysta?"
"No.
I want you to come back ... And one last thing, Kharl. About that beard
..."
"I
know. It would be foolish to go to Brysta looking the way I once did."
"You
might also want people here to see what you look like without it, before the audience."
"Do
you want me to shave it off tonight?" Kharl asked. "Would that be
soon enough?"
"No,"
parried the lord-chancellor, "tomorrow morning would be most
suitable."
They
both burst into laughter.
LIII
It was
hot the midsummer morning, even before the second glass after dawn, that Kharl
was blotting his forehead even before he dismounted outside the Hall of Justice
and handed the gelding's reins to Dorfal. He had to admit that on days so warm,
he didn't miss having a beard. Winter might be another story.
"I'll
just be waiting, ser," offered the young lancer.
"Thank
you." The day was to be his last with Jusof, and it would be short, since
Kharl's audience with Lord Ghrant was set for the glass before noon.
Kharl
walked through the double doors into the cooler main foyer and headed up the
narrow stairs to the upper level.
Jusof
rose as Kharl entered. "Good morning, Lord Kharl."
"Good
morning," returned the mage. "It's hot out."
"It
will be warm in here as well by afternoon." Jusof nodded.
"Congratulations on your appointment to Brysta as the envoy. We received
the proclamation for posting just half a glass ago, not that we had not heard
in secrecy several days ago." The clerk smiled. "The lord-
chancellor's motives in having you study law are most clear."
"I
think I know just enough to be wary of any laws and those who administer
them," Kharl replied. "Especially when they are not of such honesty
as Lord Justicer Priost."
"That
is wise, even for advocates," said Jusof. "Still, you know more than you allow yourself credit for. You
seem to have mastered the basics of jurisprudence, the very basics, but many
who call themselves advocates often know less."
After
almost four eightdays, Kharl hoped he had learned something, but doubted that
he had learned much more than to apply what he had already known to the law.
"There
is little point in your studying more unless you plan to become an
advocate." Jusof smiled. "You must indulge me if I point out that
such seems most unlikely. You have a talent for the law, but I cannot see Lord
Ghrant-or your own talents-restricting you to the Hall of Justice."
The mage
nodded.
Jusof
handed Kharl two elaborately sealed letters. "The lord- chancellor had
requested that the lord justicer and I both draft and sign these letters
commending you as a scholar of the legal system to whatever clerks and
justicers you may need to approach in Nordla or elsewhere. Lord Justicer Priost
was most impressed with your brief on the Lendyl case. It might have used some
more polish, but the logic and the precedents were sound. He did say that you
might well be wasted as a mage." Jusof laughed softly.
"But...
I've never met the lord justicer," Kharl observed, slipping the letters
into a jacket pocket.
"That
is true, and that is as it should be. Were the Lord's mage ever to have met
with the lord justicer, many would think that Lord Ghrant might be pressing for
something in the Hall of Justice. Lord Justicer Priost has not met with Lord
Ghrant, except at very public dinners at the Great House, or at his blind
briefings of Lord Ghrant, since he became lord justicer." Jusof cleared
his throat. "That does not mean, in regard to you, Lord Kharl, that he has
not been apprised of all you have done, and he was most impressed with your
diligence, as well as your understanding."
"I'll
accept the diligence," Kharl replied. "I hope the understanding will
come."
"As
I am most certain you know," Jusof said with a dryness just short of the
pedantic, "understanding is the virtue most often claimed and least often
exhibited. Since you have already shown it elsewhere, I have no doubts it will
surface in the law as well." He smiled once more. "I will not keep
you, Lord Kharl, but it has truly been a pleasure to work with you."
"Thank
you." Kharl inclined his head. "You have been most
understanding."
After
taking his leave of the chief clerk and heading back down to the main level,
Kharl was still mulling over his surprise that Jusof had been pleased to work
with him.
Even
after such a short time, the square was even hotter than when he had entered
the Hall of Justice, and he was once more blotting his forehead as he and
Dorfal rode back toward the Great House.
"You'll
not be coming here any longer, ser?" asked the lancer.
"No.
Today was the last day."
"Will
you be heading back to your lands, then, ser?"
"That
is up to the lord-chancellor and Lord Ghrant." Kharl felt uncomfortable
with the answer, true as it was, because it was misleading, but he also did not
wish to announce what he would be doing on the open streets of Valmurl.
"Yes,
ser."
"Are
you going to stay a lancer?" Kharl asked.
"I
don't know, ser. I've another two years. Then, I have to decide whether to go
for five or leave." Dorfal laughed.
"Undercaptain
Demyst was saying that I ought to stay on. Told me that fighting like we been
through only comes every double handful of years, and that I ought to take the
easy years that follow."
"Do
you want to go back to crabbing?"
"Not
really, ser. Don't know as I see myself as a lancer for years either,
though."
Kharl
smiled faintly. He'd never thought about it at Dorfal's age. He'd just assumed
he would be a cooper. Then, that might have been because he'd liked being a
cooper, liked the smell and feel of the wood, and the sense of having done
something right when a barrel or keg or hogshead had been finished. He didn't
presume to offer Dorfal advice. "I'm sure that when the time comes you'll
do fine."
Dorfal
smiled uneasily.
When
they reached the Great House, Kharl dismounted in the front entry and let the
young lancer take the mounts. He made his way to his quarters, where he washed
up again and changed into his newest magely finery, garb that had been paid for
by Lord Ghrant, along with five other sets of clothing deemed suitable for an
envoy.
Then he
made his way down to the hallway outside the main audience hall, where
"You
look most impressive, Lord Kharl," offered the lord-chancellor.
Kharl felt
more like a traitor bird dressed in the plumage of a raven. "I'm not
certain I'll ever get used to wearing end-day finery all the time."
"It
looks good on you." Hagen's smile dropped away. "The ceremony will be
very short. Afterward, there will be a midday dinner with Lord Ghrant, Lady
Hyrietta, and a few others."
"You
didn't mention that."
An
impish smile crossed
Kharl
shook his head. "If Glyan's experiments with the new wine barrels don't
work, I'll send a half barrel to you."
Kharl
stood in the side hallway, away from the audience hall doors, where he could
not see who entered the hall nor be seen by them, for another quarter glass.
"Lord
Kharl, ser ... you've been summoned," called one of the arms- men in the
yellow and black of the personal guard.
Kharl
walked around the corner and toward the doors. When he was in place, one of the
armsmen opened the door, and Kharl stepped through it. The hall had but perhaps
a score of people in it, and slightly less than half of those Kharl knew. He
had half expected to see Norgen and Casolan, and he did, but he had not expected
to see Lady Hyrietta standing behind Lord Ghrant's shoulder as her consort
waited for Kharl to reach the dais. Nor had he expected to see Lyras standing
beside Casolan, nor Jusof and Lord Justicer Priost.
He
squared his shoulders and walked deliberately forward, halting several cubits
short of the dais, as he had seen all the others do at various audiences. There
he bowed slightly, and waited.
Lord
Ghrant smiled, and Kharl could sense that it was a friendly smile, albeit one
with a hint of nervousness behind it. "Lord Kharl of Cantyl, are you a
true and faithful subject of Austra?"
"I
am, your lordship."
"Are
you willing to serve, to the fullest and best of your abilities, as an envoy of
Austra?"
"I
am, your lordship."
"Then,
Lord Kharl of Cantyl, you are hereby appointed as the envoy of the Lord of
Austra to the West Quadrant of Nordla, governed by Lord West, with all powers and privileges
accorded such envoys, and with the responsibilities required by such
powers."
"Thank
you, your lordship."
"Thank
you, Lord Kharl, for taking on those responsibilities and duties. We wish you
well." Ghrant nodded.
Kharl
bowed twice, then turned and walked from the audience chamber.
Outside,
a messenger was waiting. "Lord Kharl, ser, if you would follow me?"
They had
traveled but twenty cubits when
"I'll
escort him from here," the lord-chancellor suggested.
"Ah
... yes, ser."
"How
do you feel as an envoy?" asked
"Not
that different," Kharl admitted. "A little more worried. What about
this dinner?"
"Oh,
it will be very social. Just don't talk about Brysta or magery unless you're
asked. Otherwise, you can talk about anything."
Kharl resolved
to listen more than talk.
After
the private dinner, which was completely social and without a word of either
Brysta or what Kharl would be doing as envoy, Kharl accompanied
Two
years in Brysta? It could be much less, Hagen had said. However long it might
be, Kharl supposed that it wouldn't be all that bad, certainly not so bad as
living between the walls of a renderer's vats and a tannery as he had before
escaping Brysta. He did have to find Warrl and make arrangements to get him to
Cantyl. He could see what else he might be able to do for Sanyle and Jeka. He
hoped that Gharan had been able to keep Jeka on as a weaver.
Once the
door to the lord-chancellor's chamber closed,
Kharl frowned
momentarily, then nodded. A good mage or wizard could doubtless discover the
truth, as could Kharl.
"You
are to send back dispatches, but only upon my vessels and only if you or Erdyl
hand them personally to the captains. If you feel that a particular captain has
been suborned, let me know by a message through another captain. All dispatches
are to be sent to me, and you should never mention Lord Ghrant either directly
or by reference. Lord Ghrant will read every one, but if they are intercepted, a
message addressed to me is less damaging than one directly to Lord Ghrant. He
can always claim that he knows nothing..."
Kharl
could also understand that, little as he liked the idea.
"...
we have already discussed the token gift you will present to Lord West and your
purse and your draw upon the Factors' Exchange for the expenses of the envoy's
residence and staff. Do not be extravagant, but also do not be foolishly
frugal. .."
As
Book 3: Envoy
LIV
Kharl
had never thought he would be leading an entourage, but as he walked down the
pier in the hazy early-morning sunlight of fiveday toward the Seastag,
Undercaptain Demyst walked before him, Erdyl beside him, and two armsmen from
Ghrant's personal guard followed. Cevor and Alynar wore plain gray, rather than
yellow and black, while Demyst wore a gray tunic and a darker gray jacket.
Erdyl wore his usual dark green and gray.
Behind
them came horse drawing a cart filled with baggage. Much as Kharl had tried to
limit what he had brought, he still had three bags. He'd never owned so many
garments in his life. His fingers strayed to his bare chin. He still wasn't
used to not having a beard.
"Hadn't
thought I'd ever be leaving Austra, ser," Demyst said, glancing back at
Kharl for a moment. "You think we'll be in Brysta long?"
"Envoys
are sent for two years, I was told, unless they get in trouble."
"Guess
we'll be in Brysta for two years, then. Master Erdyl and I'll have to keep you
out of trouble."
Erdyl
suppressed a smile.
Kharl
doubted that two years would pass, or pass uneventfully, not the way his life
had been lately, but it could be a year or more. As he neared the gangway to
the Seastag, Kharl glanced back over his shoulder. A heavy wagon had turned
onto the pier. He frowned. There was something about the wagon ...
"Lord
Kharl!" boomed a voice.
Kharl
turned to see Furwyl, who had been the first mate when
"Bring
your crew on board."
Even before
Kharl had reached the gangway, three crew members were on the pier, beginning
to unload the baggage cart. Kharl was first up the gangway, followed by his
young secretary and Undercaptain Demyst.
"Every
time I see you, you've come up in the world. Gives a man hope," declared
the captain.
"You've
come up as well. You're master of a fine ship." Kharl turned.
"This
is my secretary, Erdyl, and Undercaptain Demyst, and Cevor and Alynar."
"Pleased
to meet you all. Crew's already getting your baggage on board," Furwyl
said. "Lord Kharl, you'll be in the master's cabin, and the undercaptain
and your secretary will share the bunks in the first passenger cabin. Your
guards'll have to share the small passenger cabin, but that's better than the
fo'c'sle."
"I
couldn't take your cabin."
"You
don't have a choice. That's what the lord-chancellor ordered, and he owns the
ship." Furwyl grinned.
"I
still feel strange about taking the master's cabin," Kharl said.
"Strange
or not, that's the way it is. Besides, I wouldn't feel right having the Lord's
envoy to Brysta in that small cubby for passengers. You can do me a favor
someday." Furwyl was grinning broadly.
"You'll
have to come to Cantyl for that," Kharl said.
"I'll
hold you to that, Lord Kharl. Best get yourself settled into your spaces. We'll
be off once we finish loading this last set of pallets. They just arrived.
Last-moment cargo." Furwyl gestured toward the winch and hoist gang, then
toward the pier, where the heavy wagon that Kharl had noted earlier had halted.
The
first pallet swung up off the heavy wagon and over the railing.
"Easy
there!" called Bemyr, still the bosun. "Forward more."
Kharl's
eyes and senses focused on the single long crate in the hoist sling-and sensed chaos-tightly
bound within iron. "There's something wrong with that crate in the
sling."
"Lord
Kharl?" asked Furwyl.
"Don't
let Bemyr load that crate," Kharl said tightly. "Swing it back onto
the pier. There's something dangerous in it."
"Bosun!
Swing that back to the pier! On the double!"
"Bring
her around! Back to the pier. Don't ask questions!" Bemyr hurried down the
gangway toward the pier. "Where's that teamster?"
"Stay
here!" Kharl ordered Erdyl, before rushing back down the gangway after the
bosun, but Demyst immediately turned and followed Kharl. The undercaptain had
his blade out at the foot of the gangway.
As he
neared the crate, Kharl could sense the chaos within it, massive but
restrained. He'd never felt anything quite like it. He turned to the wagon
before him, whose driver had vanished, but none of the other crates seemed to
contain anything like the first one.
Bemyr
approached the crate where it sat on the pier. He turned to Kharl, who had
stopped halfway back along the side of the wagon. "This one, right?"
"That's
the one. Don't touch-"
Bemyr
kicked it with his heavy boot. Nothing happened. "Looks all right."
"It's
not. There's something in it."
"It's
just this crate, right?" asked the bosun. "Just dump it in the water.
That'll take care of it."
"No!
Leave it-"
Before
Kharl could say anything more, Bemyr had hoisted the heavy crate, grunting as
he did, and pitched it off the pier. So heavy was the crate that it splashed
into the water just beside the pier, sinking so that the top edge was only a
handspan above the water within moments. Bemyr stepped forward, looking down at
the water, three cubits or so from the top of the pier.
Kharl
could sense chaos building within the crate and threw up a shield, but Bemyr was
too far from the mage-too far if Kharl had to cover Demyst and himself.
Chaos
flared up from the top of the crate.
"Back!"
yelled Kharl, too late, as a wave of destruction and flame roared over the
bosun.
Pieces
of iron slammed into the sides of the pier. The two horses screamed-if but for
an instant-as flames seared them.
Bemyr's
charred figure toppled onto the edge of the pier, then dropped into the water.
The horses reared, trying to escape both the pain and the wagon traces. Kharl's
senses swept over the animals, and his stomach twisted. With so much chaos . ..
there was no way to save them.
For a
moment, he just stood there. What.. . what could he do?
The
wagon lurched as the dying horses tried to escape.
Kharl
moved forward along the side of the wagon, then reached out with his
order-senses. After a moment, he hardened the area under the nearer horse's
chest, around where he felt the heart was. The gelding dropped in the traces.
Sweat began to stream down Kharl's forehead as he did the same for the second
horse.
Slowly,
he looked up, blotting his forehead with the back of his hand.
No one
seemed to have moved. Demyst stood to his right, blade in hand. Everyone on the
deck of the Seastag moved so slowly, as if their feet were anchored in near-solid molasses. The
front half of the wagon smoldered, wisps of gray smoke rising from the seared
wood and paint. Foglike steam rose from the puddles of water on the pier in
front of the wagon.
Kharl
swallowed, then turned to look back along the pier. He could not sense any
chaos.
"Rhylla!
Ghart!" ordered Furwyl. "Get a net. Do what you can for Bemyr."
"He's
dead," Kharl said, loudly enough for his voice to carry. He turned slowly
back toward the ship.
Erdyl's
eyes were wide, fixed on Kharl as he walked up the gangway. So were those of
Cevor and Alynar.
Kharl
stopped short of Furwyl and looked at the captain. "I'm sorry. I had no
idea something like this ..."
"Wasn't
your fault, Lord Kharl." Furwyl moistened his lips. "You told him to
lay off. Heard you." The captain looked at the carnage on the pier, then
turned to a mate Kharl did not know. "Hysen. . . soon as they get Bemyr in
canvas, we'll be casting off. Quick-like. Single up and make ready."
"Yes,
ser."
Furwyl looked
back to Kharl. "Safest place for a ship in times like these is at
sea."
"How
long before we cast off?" asked Kharl.
"Less'n
quarter glass, if we cast off at all." '
Kharl
understood that.
Undercaptain
Demyst stood at the top of the gangway, his blade out. He jerked his head for
the two guards to join him.
Furwyl
studied Kharl. "Don't think someone wants you going to Nordla, Lord Kharl.
Best we get you there before they try something else. The lord-chancellor
warned me."
"Is
there anyone who could take a message to him?"
"Cargo-master
for all his ships hasn't left with the manifest yet."
"Good."
Kharl turned to Erdyl. "Get ready to take down what I say. We've only a
few moments." He could already hear the heavy steam engine beginning to
turn over, and the smoke from the stacks had begun to thicken.
Without
speaking, Erdyl had opened his case and taken out a portable inkpot.
"Best
in the cabin," suggested Furwyl.
"Thank
you." Kharl glanced to Erdyl. "This has to be quick so that we can
give it to the cargomaster within a few moments.
"Yes,
ser."
Kharl
hurried into the passageway leading to the master's cabin, Erdyl following.
Once his
secretary was seated at the narrow desk along the inner bulkhead, Khari began
to speak, trying to organize his thoughts.
"Honored
Lord-chancellor,
A crate
exploded in chaos at the pier when Bemyr threw it into the water. I had felt
chaos in the crate as it was being loaded. I told him not to, but my warning
was perhaps too late, and he was killed by the chaos. It was the kind of chaos
that comes from white wizards. It was set off by water when the bosun threw it
into the harbor. I would judge that it was built to do the same thing when
bilgewater or seawater seeped into the crate when we were at sea....
As he
talked, Kharl could not help but wonder why someone did not want him to arrive
in Brysta-and how they had been able to act so quickly-and without a white
wizard seemingly nearby. What sort of device had they used, that stored chaos
in such a fashion?
Hagen
had been right, again.
Dy
midday, the Seastag was well away from Valmurl and had long since passed the
low headlands marking Cantyl. Bemyr's burial at sea had been swift and quiet,
and already Reisl, whom Kharl had known when he had been ship's carpenter under
Tarkyn, had taken over as bosun.
"He'll
do a good job," predicted Furwyl.
Kharl
thought so as well, but he worried that he hadn't been quick enough to warn
Bemyr. Still, he'd never seen or sensed anything like the chaos in the crate,
and there was little he could do now.
"
"That
he did, Lord Kharl. Told me not to let anything stop us." Furwyl scanned
the horizon to the south before continuing. "He looks tired-like. Older,
too."
"He
has to worry about all of Austra," Kharl replied.
"Thought
that was what Lord Ghrant was supposed to do." Furwyl shook his head.
"He's too young to understand everything that can go wrong. Same thing
happens when a ship's master is too young. That's why he needs Lord Hagen.
Needs you, too."
"He
needs
"Hope
we don't see any Hamorian warships this crossing. You think they're the
bastards got Bemyr?"
"I don't
know, but if I had to wager, that'd be where my coins went."
"Mine,
too."
After a
time, Kharl eased away, to the railing beside Erdyl. "I'm going below for
a bit."
"Do
you need me, ser?"
Kharl
glanced at the young man, sensing his discomfort. "No. Just stay up here
in the fresh air. It helps."
"Did
you ... ?" Erdyl swallowed.
"It
takes a while to get used to, especially when we're running with the wind in
the long swells."
Kharl
did not go to the master's cabin, his temporary quarters, but took the ladder
down to the main deck, then headed forward and down the inside ladder to the
carpenter's shop. He peered through the open hatch. Tarkyn was working on a
carving, his relaxation when the carpentry tasks were light.
"Tarkyn?"
"Lords
don't belong in the carpenter's shop." The older man's voice was gruff.
"Ser."
Kharl
could sense that, despite his tone, Tarkyn was pleased. "They do if they
were once carpenters."
"Knew
you should have been a mate, at least." Tarkyn laid aside the carving.
"Told you that. I didn't think I'd see you as a lord and an envoy."
"I
didn't, either," Kharl admitted. "I didn't ask for it."
"Might
be why you got it." Tarkyn shook his head. "Terrible thing with
Bemyr."
"I tried
to protect him, to warn him. I wasn't fast enough."
"Good
man," Tarkyn said. "He always did want to do things his way, though.
One time, made me replace a capstan bar with spruce. Told him it wouldn't work.
It didn't. Broke the first time they used it. Captain Hagen reamed him
good."
"How
are you doing?"
"I'm
getting up there. Told Furwyl to start looking for another carpenter. You
hadn't gone and saved Lord Ghrant, and it'd be you." Tarkyn looked up at
Kharl. "Best second I ever had."
"I
liked working here," Kharl said. "I never thought it would turn out
this way."
"Better
for you that it did."
Kharl
nodded thoughtfully. It might have been better for him, but it hadn't always
been better for those around him. Not at all. Charee and Arthal were dead.
Warrl had lost his mother and the birthright of the cooperage that had been in
the family for generations. Kharl had had to leave Sanyle and Jeka, and he
could only hope that they were all right. The young undercaptain who'd been
with him on the first attack against the rebels was dead, and so were half of
the lancers who'd supported Lord Ghrant.
When he
left the carpenter shop, Kharl made his way back up to the main deck, then into
the master's cabin. There he sank into the chair beside the built-in desk.
He
needed to sort out what he'd been told and what he knew.
Lord
Ghrant was worried about what was happening in Nordla. He had few people he
could trust to find that out, and none who were experienced as envoys. Hensolas
had been the previous envoy, and immediately after he had returned, even before
Estloch could talk to Ghrant, Estloch had been murdered, and Hensolas had ended
up as one of the lords rebelling against Ghrant, but only after Ilteron's
death. Had he been involved with Ilteron from the beginning? What was going on
in Nordla that would cause an attack against Kharl? Or did the attack have
anything to do with Nordla? Could it have been a scheme merely to kill Kharl in
a way in which he could not use his abilities?
If the crate
had merely exploded in the hold once the Seastag was well
at sea,
the explosion would not have hurt Kharl, but it would have blown
out a
chunk of the hull, and set the ship afire. Once the Seastag was sunk-
or
aflame-Kharl's magery could not have done much against the ocean,
not for
long.'"
The mage
and envoy shook his head. In some ways, the reasons did not matter. It was
clear that someone, most probably the Hamorians, wanted him dead. But it would
help to know for what reason.
It
might, Kharl corrected his thought.
LVI
The rest
of the crossing, on a route south of Ihe Gulf of Austra, then up the west coast
of Nordla, was uneventful for the entire passage-more than two eightdays.
At various
times, he'd talked with both Ghart, the first mate, and Rhylla, the second, as
well as Furwyl. While all three were friendly, and clearly happy for Kharl,
there was a definite reserve, an understanding that while they had once been
shipmates those times were past. That reserve saddened Kharl, because the
officers of the Seastag had been welcoming and helpful when he'd had nowhere to
go.
Kharl
also had kept thinking about the chaos explosion in the harbor at Valmurl.
While he could imagine a number of reasons for the attack on the Seastag, he
just didn't know enough to be sure what was behind it. He'd have to assume that
no one was to be trusted until he found out differently. That was definitely
the safest attitude for an envoy anywhere, but not one that Kharl liked.
In
midafternoon on fourday, Kharl and Erdyl stood at the port railing on the poop
deck, watching as Furwyl brought the Seastag toward the breakwaters that marked
the entrance to the harbor at Brysta.
Even
with the light breeze off the water, the day was clear and hot- but damp.
Clearly, the easterlies were remaining strong over the west of Nordla, and the
patches of brown on the hills suggested that there had been little rain in
recent eightdays. Kharl glanced at the fair weather banner on the pole on the
northern outer breakwater-a green oval against a white background, almost limp.
The pole itself rose from the tower on the southeastern corner of the north
harbor fort. Something about the fort nagged at him. It took him a moment to realize
that there was a concentration of chaos there, somewhere behind the walls. It
wasn't the kind that meant a white wizard was present, but more like one
had been there. One of Lord West's mages? He shrugged. Lord West had both
types, and he'd certainly learn soon enough. He hoped he would.
"Those
are both forts, aren't they?" asked Erdyl, glancing from one side of the
Seastag to the other, his eyes taking in the two structures that faced each
other at the mouth of the harbor-the south fort at the end of one breakwater,
and the north fort at the end of the other.
"Those
are the harbor defenses. There are two chains that lie on a stone channel under
the water. Each chain is attached to a capstan in each fort. When the capstan
is turned, it raises the chain, and the chains block the harbor. They used to
raise the chains once every four eightdays and inspect them." Kharl knew
that from the year he had served as an assistant to the cooper at the south
fort and had been pressed into the work gang that turned the capstan. "I
have some doubts that the chains would work that well against the iron-hulled
ships of Hamor or Reduce ... but those are the harbor defenses." Kharl
could see several figures on the battlement in uniforms he did not recognize-maroon
and blue, rather than the blue and burgundy of Lord West's armsmen. Or had the
uniforms been changed since he had left Brysta?
"Would
you say that Brysta is somewhat backward?" asked Erdyl.
"Not
in most things," Kharl replied. "Ships and guns and iron cost golds.
I don't think that Lord West wishes to spend them."
"That's
true," mused Erdyl. "Golds spent on a ship cannot be spent on food or
goods or other things."
As the
Seastag steamed slowly into the harbor proper, Kharl studied the piers, then
the city beyond, slowly and carefully. From what he could tell, as the Seastag
eased toward the three deepwater piers, only four vessels were tied up. A
single schooner was at the outermost of the two coastal wharves. Once fall
arrived, almost every berth would be taken.
He
looked at the two vessels at the innermost deepwater pier. Both looked to be
Hamorian merchanters, although he could only see the ensign on one. He'd have
wagered that they were the same pair that Hagen had mentioned.
After
several moments, Kharl pointed once more. "You can see that all the piers
are north of the River Westlich, except for the ferry pier over there. That's
for folk who want to cross to the southwest road. Costs a copper each way.
North of the piers, over there, where all the ragged tents are, that's the
lower market, mostly for poorer folk." He paused for a moment, thinking of the times that he and Jeka had
used his few coppers to buy food there, and the first time when he'd saved her
from the white wizard.
"Ser?"
"Oh
.. . just thinking. Over there is the slateyard." He paused. A new
structure had been constructed where the slateyard had been. It looked like
some sort of barracks. "It used to be the slateyard. I don't know what
that building is." After a moment, he went on. "The main road to the
harbor is Cargo Road. Most of the low hill to the west here, that's for
crafters and shopkeepers. The grander places are on the east side, overlooking
the river and the back bay."
Furwyl
eased the Seastag toward the first ocean pier, empty on the inshore side.
"Back her down! Engines full stop! Lines out!"
"Lines
out!" echoed Reisl.
The
Seastag barely touched the fenders between pier and ship before she was fast to
the bollards, the lines doubled up.
Kharl
looked at the pier, then toward
Rhylla
scrambled up the ladder to the poop deck, said something to Furwyl, who replied
and nodded toward Kharl. The second hurried toward the mage. "Lord
Kharl... there's some harbor inspectors headed down the pier. They usually
don't hit so soon."
"Thank
you." Kharl grinned. "Erdyl and I will stay here, discussing the
harbor and the weather."
"It's
hot and likely to stay so, Lord Kharl. If you would excuse me ..."
"Go
be friendly to the harbor inspectors," Kharl suggested, knowing that no
ship's officer cared much for the tariff collectors.
Once
Rhylla had headed down to the main deck, ahead of Furwyl, Kharl looked at his
secretary. "I don't think an envoy should worry about inspectors, do
you?" He blotted his forehead. Now that the Seastag was tied to the pier,
the faint breeze he had felt earlier had vanished.
Erdyl
barely managed to keep a smile from breaking out. "Ah ... no, ser."
"How
many ships are at the deepwater piers?"
"Four,
ser."
"How
many could the piers hold?"
"That
would be hard for me to say, ser, but I'd guess three, four times that many,
could be more."
"What
do you think about the two closest to shore?"
"They
look almost deserted, ser. Are they Hamorian?"
"I'd
judge so."
"Are
you thinking...." Erdyl glanced in the direction of the quarterdeck, where
two men in dark blue tunics stood in the hot afternoon sun, talking to Furwyl.
Rhylla stood back slightly from the three men.
"We'll
have to see," Kharl said.
After perhaps
a quarter glass of talking, then going over manifest lists, seemingly line by
line, the two harbor inspectors left the Seastag, but one remained on the pier,
watching the ship. Shortly after that, a covered carriage painted in green and
black and drawn by two grays rolled up the pier. Behind it was an open
teamster's wagon.
"Our
carriage has arrived," Kharl said.
"Let
me check, ser."
Kharl
nodded, and Erdyl hurried down the ladder. He was met on the main deck by
Undercaptain Demyst. The two made their way down the gangway.
Furwyl
made his way up the ladder and joined Kharl. "A carriage yet."
Kharl
almost laughed. There had been a time, not all that long ago, when he'd walked
from the piers to his cooperage to save two coppers. "It's not mine. It
belongs to the envoy's residence, or so they tell me."
"From
cooper to carpenter to mage to lord. All in less than two years."
"It
seems longer." Kharl didn't mention the flogging or the time in gaol or
the season in hiding. "Thank you." He paused. "What did the
inspectors want? Why's the one waiting?"
"They
insist on watching the cargo being off-loaded," replied the captain.
"They didn't say what they were looking for. Just said that we wouldn't
have any trouble if the manifest was right."
"Crossbow
quarrels and blades, you think? Lances? Rifles?"
"Something
like that, I'd guess," replied Furwyl. "Or maybe iron pigs."
Kharl
nodded. "Could be. There's no iron in the West Quadrant. Smythal had to
buy his rough stock from one of the factors. Came from Reduce or Lydiar, I
think." He also wondered if someone had been told that the ship would not arrive-and worried
about how it had. Still, it seemed unlikely that the Hamorians would confide in
Brystan customs inspectors.
"Don't
envy you, Lord Kharl. You can have the carriage and finery and all that."
"That's
because you love the sea."
"Could
be. Treacherous as she can be, she's not half so treacherous as most lords and
rulers, excepting you and Lord Hagen. But you two aren't like most lords."
"You're
kind." Kharl wondered if that happened to be because Hagen had been a
captain and factor more than a lord, and because Kharl himself had not had a
chance to learn treachery.
"I
see what I see."
Kharl
laughed. "I'd best be getting my gear. I see young Erdyl heading this way.
Thank you again for surrendering your cabin."
"For
you, I'd do that anytime." Furwyl glanced toward the main deck, where
Reisl was directing the deck crew on opening the main hatch and setting up to
unload. "Best watch the new bosun."
Kharl
thought Reisl would do well, but he just nodded, and let Furwyl head down the
ladder. He followed, but went to the master's cabin.
Cevor
was waiting in the passage. "Thought we'd be taking your bags, ser."
"They're
ready."
Kharl
let the guards lead the way off the Seastag. He followed, carrying only the
large leather case that held documents, letters, and his credentials. Around
his waist, inside his tunic and jacket, was a shimmersilk bodybelt that held
golds, over five hundred. He felt as though he wore lead. That much gold was
heavy.
Furwyl
turned from where he watched the deck crew. "You take care, Lord
Kharl."
"You,
too." Kharl turned and headed down the gangway to the waiting carriage, a
carriage that the driver had turned, carefully, on the wide pier, so that it
was headed off the pier and toward the city.
Undercaptain
Demyst was waiting at the foot of the gangway. "Cevor and Alynar will go
with the baggage cart. Don't want your things disappearing."
"Thank
you." Kharl looked up at the driver, a small man neither young nor old, with a weathered face, who wore a
coachman's jacket of green trimmed in black.
"Ser?"
"I'm
Lord Kharl. You're the driver?"
"Yes,
your lordship. I'm Mantar. Been with Fundal for near-on half a score."
"You've
seen a few envoys come and go, then."
"Yes,
ser."
Kharl
smiled. "Well... I'm pleased to meet you."
"Yes,
ser. Thank you, ser."
Kharl
stepped into the coach, where he was joined shortly by Erdyl and Demyst. In but
a few moments they were under way.
"Brysta
looks bigger than Valmurl," Erdyl said.
"Valmurl
is more spread out," Kharl suggested. "There are more towns nearby.
Not everyone lives in the city, like in Brysta."
"Brysta
looks older," added the undercaptain.
"I
think many of the buildings and dwellings are."
Kharl
cleared his throat.
"Ser?"
asked Demyst.
"I'd
like to remind you both not to mention .. . my talents with order. Not to the
steward or the retainers at the residence. Not to anyone."
"Yes,
ser."
Kharl
turned to Demyst. "You will remind Cevor and Alynar, as well."
"I
have told them both that they will answer to me, to you, and to Lord Hagen if
they so much as hint."
"Good.
Thank you." It might not help, but Hagen had made the suggestion, and
usually what the lord-chancellor suggested was wise.
The
carriage rumbled up
From the
carriage, Kharl took in the residence, a structure a good three times the size
of the main house at Cantyl. The walls were of a rough brown-stone, with wide
mullioned windows, trimmed in dark green. The pitched roofs were of dark slate,
and the front wall was of dark red brick, with two gates, the carriage gate,
and a smaller gate with a brick archway above it.
A
gray-haired man, wearing a black-trimmed green tunic, hurried down the brick
walk. He stumbled on a protruding brick, but caught himself.
Erdyl
opened the carriage door and stepped out, holding the door for Kharl. The mage
and envoy eased through the narrow door and stepped onto the ancient brick
pavement.
"Lord
Kharl?" The man took in Kharl slowly.
"I
am Lord Kharl." Kharl hated to announce himself as a lord.
"Yes,
Lord Kharl. I'm sorry I did not recognize you, but no likeness was sent. I am
Fundal, the residence steward."
"I
understand. This is Erdyl, my secretary and this is Undercaptain Demyst. The
two guards I brought are with the baggage wagon. It was following us."
"Ah
... two guards?"
"I
thought guards were customary."
"Yes,
ser. Lord Hensolas brought half a squad, added more later, and two secretaries,
and his ... cousin . .. Genya, of course."
Kharl
smiled. "Then we should have plenty of room."
"More
than enough, ser. More than enough." Fundal bowed. "Let me show you
the residence."
Undercaptain
Demyst smiled politely. "I'll be going first, if you will, steward."
He stepped toward the side steps leading up to the covered porch that wrapped
around the front of the dwelling.
"Of
course, undercaptain, of course."
His case
under his arm, Kharl followed the steward.
"This
is the front porch. Lovely in the morning. Lord Isel always took breakfast
here. The rear porch, of course, is more private. It has seen many summer
functions ..."
Kharl
said little as Fundal took Kharl through the main sitting room, the front
salon, the library, which also served as the envoy's study, the long dining
room, the adjoining breakfast room, the rear salon, which opened onto the
covered rear porch, which, in turn, overlooked the small formal garden, the
kitchen, and the various pantries. Then Fundal led them to the basement, which
held various cellars, as well as a strong room. They returned to the main foyer
and climbed the wide grand staircase to the second level, which held five large
bedchambers, and two bath chambers, one of which was attached to the envoy's
bedchamber and sitting room. The third level held six smaller chambers,
including those for Erdyl and the undercaptain.
"Your
guards ... now there's a barracks quarters over the stable ... and that adjoins
the other staff quarters," ventured Fundal.
"With
only two, it would be better to have them on the third level," Kharl
suggested. "They'd be closer."
"Yes,
ser," interjected Demyst.
"Third
level, it is," affirmed the steward.
"Do
we have mounts for riding?" asked Kharl.
"Why,
yes, ser ... but for your guards and your secretary. That is, when you need the
carriage. The past envoys ... they have not ridden in Brysta."
"I
imagine not." Kharl nodded, but was glad to know that the mounts were
available.
While
the bags were being carried to the various quarters, and before he did more,
Kharl drew Fundal aside into the library.
"Yes,
ser?"
"I
was led to believe, Fundal, that you were concerned that the residence accounts
were short of coins?"
"Yes,
ser. I can show you the ledgers. We have less than twenty golds on account at
the Factors' Exchange. Prices ... well, for everything .. . they've been higher
this year. Almost no produce coming from the south, they say. The brigands ...
or something. You hadn't come in the next few eightdays ... I can't say that I
could see how we'd have lasted."
"Leave
the ledgers out on the desk here. I'll look them over after we get settled, and
we'll take care of the accounts first thing in the morning."
"Yes,
ser." The steward smiled tentatively.
Kharl
was glad that he could solve one problem. He had the feeling that, while he
didn't know what others he faced, not in detail, setting Fundal's mind at ease
would be one of the easier tasks before him.
LVII
Kharl
should have been tired, he supposed, after the long trip to Brysta, but he
hadn't been. So after unpacking and hanging out his clothes in the capacious
wardrobe in his chambers, he had made his way down to the study and gone
through the ledgers, line by line. From what he could tell, Fundal was honest, relatively frugal, and
probably without imagination or more than modest initiative. Several of the
suppliers of provender and other goods for the residence were not sellers Kharl
would have chosen, even with unlimited golds, and over time those would need to
be changed.
Nowhere in
the residence library were there any records of what previous envoys might have
done as envoys, nor was there a history of recent events in Brysta. Even the
leather-bound volumes on the dark oak shelves were old and stiff enough that
Kharl doubted most had ever been read, even when new.
He,
Erdyl, and Demyst had taken an early supper, and Kharl had gone back to the
library afterward. There, he had drawn up a listing of what he thought needed
to be done, based on what he recalled of the verbal instructions Hagen had
given him. Doubtless he would miss things. He'd not been raised as a lord.
Then,
for a time, he had just sat in the darkness and thought, wondering about Warrl,
Jeka, and Sanyle . .. and, always, there was the sadness about Arthal.
His first
inclination was to deal with Warrl and the young women as soon as possible,
preferably on the morrow, but, as Taleas the scrivener had pointed out, acting
before thinking had been his undoing more than once. Painful as it was, he
would do better to proceed carefully. If Warrl remained safe with Merayni and
Dowsyl, then rushing in would do no good. If something had happened because of
the so-called brigands, whatever Kharl might do was already too late. That
thought nagged at him, and he had to force it away.
The same
held for Jeka. If she was still working for Gharan as a weaver, then she was
safe. If not, he could scour the city for her-or even all of the West
Quadrant-and never find her. As for Sanyle, he hadn't even known where she had
gone before he'd left Brysta.
Could he
employ Erdyl to look around?
Kharl
shook his head. The secretary was likely to be watched in some ways even more
closely than Kharl himself, and if Kharl gave any premature indication of
interest in his son or the young women, Egen or Lord West would not be above
using them against Kharl and Austra, even if they had no idea what the linkage
was. Nor would the Hamorians. After Kharl had sent Erdyl on various errands, he
might be able to work things in, but not first off. That also meant that, when
Kharl acted, he would have to act decisively and quickly.
He did
not sleep well. He woke early, washed, dressed, and ate, then went to his
study-library.
Erdyl
was still yawning when Kharl summoned him into the library.
"Have
you eaten yet this morning?"
"Yes,
ser. I just finished. What would you like of me?"
"You
get to scour the hoops," Kharl said. "The dirty work. Write out a
fancy letter to Lord West saying that I've just arrived from Valmurl as Lord
Ghrant's appointed envoy to the West Quadrant of Nordla and would like to pay
my respects to Lord West and present my credentials to him in person, as is
usual and customary."
"Ah
... you shouldn't say it's usual and customary."
"But
I can say that I wish to present myself and the credentials in person?"
"Yes,
ser."
"Then
... you write it as you think best, and I'll sign it, and then you get to
deliver it. When you do, be charming, but most insistent that Lord West see it.
Listen for names. While you're writing that, I'll be at the Factors' Exchange,
first, arranging for the transfer of golds to the residence account. After
that, we'll come back. I'll sign the letter. Then I'll have the driver take me
to the Hall of Justice. I'll introduce myself as a visiting scholar. The driver
can take you to deliver the message, and then come back and find me."
"You're
not going alone, ser?"
"No.
I'll take Undercaptain Demyst. You take either Cevor or Alynar with you."
Erdyl
nodded. "Yes, ser."
"You
can use the library here to write out that letter." Kharl picked up the
leather case that held his credentials and the authorizations to draw on the
account at the Factors' Exchange, then walked out into the main foyer, catching
sight of himself in one of the full-length mirrors set into the wall. Without
the beard, his hair cut short, and wearing the dark gray tunic trimmed in
Austran green, and the black jacket, he looked like a different man. Then, in
many ways, he was.
"Fundal!"
Even
before Kharl's call finished echoing through the main foyer, the steward
appeared.
"Ser?"
"We're
heading to the Factors' Exchange. They should be open on fiveday."
"Yes,
ser. They close on sevenday afternoon and on eightday. You want me to accompany
you?"
"They
know you. They don't know me."
"But
everyone has heard that a new envoy has arrived from Valmurl."
"What
else have they heard?"
"Just
that you are a strong supporter of Lord Ghrant and that you were effective in
the battles that ended the rebellion."
Kharl
looked hard at Fundal. "How would they know that?"
"Ser
... you are the envoy. Lord Ghrant is the ruler. Anyone he sent would have to
be a supporter who had been effective."
Kharl could
detect no sense of deceit or chaos ... or even something withheld. Still... for
some reason, Fundal's statement bothered him. Was it because everyone who dealt
with power would draw similar conclusions? Or that Kharl would have to accept
such sharpness, even in secretaries and stewards-and even greater perception
among those whom those underlings served? Those thoughts were disturbing
enough, and once Lord West and the other envoys heard from their spies in
Austra, more would be known about Kharl than he would have preferred.
"Ser?"
"Let's
go. The sooner we get this done, the sooner you have the golds to resupply the
residence and pay the retainers, and the sooner I can get on to what I need to
do."
"Ser?"
"I'm
also a scholar of justice. You can tell people that."
Fundal's
brow crinkled, but the steward did not say more.
The trip
to the Factors' Exchange was short, less than a kay downhill and south to an
old structure above the now-unused and marshy waters that had once been the
back bay. Not all that far from the White Pony, Kharl reflected although it was
farther to the east.
When
they alighted from the carriage, Kharl was vaguely surprised to see a pair of
Watch patrollers on the opposite corner, wearing maroon- and-blue uniforms of a
type he had not seen when he had left Brysta. Yet neither appeared to be
watching the Factors' Exchange.
At the
Exchange, Fundal introduced him to the bursar and head clerk. Kharl produced
his credentials and authentications, then transferred one hundred golds from
the drawing account into the residence account. At that, Fundal looked
noticeably relieved. Kharl hoped the relief was from normal worry, but he
resolved to watch the accounts closely.
By the
time they returned to the residence, Erdyl had finished a draft letter, but it
took almost a glass before Kharl and Erdyl were both satisfied, and Kharl
signed the missive, somewhat more flowery than he would have preferred, but the
minimum necessary according to Erdyl.
Then
Kharl and Erdyl set off in the residence carriage, accompanied by Undercaptain
Demyst and Cevor.
Mantar
drove at a measured pace. Demyst kept looking out the carriage window.
Occasionally,
Kharl nodded. Mostly, he frowned, especially when he saw the burned-out ruins
of what he recalled had been a large factor's warehouse. He couldn't remember
the factor's name, because he'd never dealt with the man, but the faint sense
of chaos lingering within the burned-out structure bothered him.
Somehow,
the Hall of Justice appeared less imposing than Kharl had remembered it,
although it was larger than the Hall in Valmurl. After he stepped out of the
carriage, his eyes went to the walled courtyard to his left. Behind those
walls, Charee had been hanged, and he had been flogged. The leather case under
his arm almost forgotten, Kharl studied the walls for a time.
"Ser?
Lord Kharl?"
At the
sound of the driver's voice, Kharl started, then turned. "I'm sorry. Go ahead
and attend to Erdyl's business. We'll be here for a time, at least several
glasses."
"How
will I know when to come for you?"
"The
second glass past noon, unless Erdyl needs me sooner." That was a guess,
but as good as any. If he had troubles in getting access to the library, he and
Demyst could always walk back to the residence. It wasn't that far, and Kharl
had certainly walked far greater distances without even giving it a thought.
"Second
glass past noon. Yes, ser."
As the
carriage pulled away, Kharl started for the open double doors. Demyst kept pace
with him. Once inside the doors, Kharl paused in the foyer, a good thirty
cubits long and half that in width. At the end of the foyer was a single set of
double doors, guarded by two patrollers, also in the newer maroon uniforms.
Before, when he had been at the Hall, where he had been tried by Reynol, the
guards had been armsmen.
Kharl
decided that viewing the justicers inside the Hall of Justice could wait. He
needed to get his introductions and begin his studies in the library.
He had
his own plans for Lord Justicer Reynol... and for Egen.
One of
the patroller guards hurried across the foyer.
Kharl
turned and fixed the man, a good head shorter than he was, with his eyes.
The
guard stopped. "Blades, weapons are not allowed in the Hall, ser ...
?"
"This
is Lord Kharl, the Austran envoy to Brysta," Demyst announced, his hand on
the hilt of his sabre.
Before
the guard could protest, Kharl cleared his throat. "We're not going into
the Hall itself. I'm here to see the lord justicers' chief clerk."
"Fasyn
is the overclerk, ser. His chamber is on the upper level, off the front stairs.
I suppose the blade would be all right there .. . but not in the Hall
itself."
"Thank
you," Kharl said politely. He turned toward the narrow staircase to the
left, a stairwell he had not even noticed when he had been in the Hall before.
"No
blades..." murmured the other guard to the one who had stopped Kharl.
"Austran
lord ... says ... envoy to Lord West... you want to tell him?"
"So
long as he doesn't bring it into the Hall..."
".
.. what I say ..."
At the
top of the staircase was a long and narrow foyer. The first chamber held a
table desk piled with papers and volumes, but no one was within. Kharl moved to
the doorway of the second.
An older
man with sunken cheeks and jowls looked up from the narrow table set against
the right sidewall.
"Yes?"
"You're
Chief Clerk Fasyn?"
"None
other, ser." ,
"I'm
Lord Kharl. I'm here from Austra to study the records. Lord Hagen felt that
such a measure would be useful."
"Lord
Hagen?"
"He's
Lord Ghrant's new lord-chancellor."
Undercaptain
Demyst cleared his throat. "Lord Kharl tends to be too modest. He is also the Austran envoy to the
West Quadrant."
The
elderly man rose, almost laboriously. "An envoy and a lord from Austra, up
here?"
"I
am also a scholar of the law, in a fashion," Kharl said. "I have
letters from the Lord Justicer of Austra." He opened the leather case and extracted
the heavy envelope.
"Most
properly, that should go to one of lord justicers ... ser."
"I'm
sure that your hands are most trustworthy." Kharl smiled.
Fasyn
opened the envelope and began to read. Then he looked up. "Most unusual...
only seen one other of these, and that was years back, some young captain from
Certis. He only stayed an eightday or so."
"I'm
likely to be here far longer than that."
The
elderly man studied Kharl. "What exactly are you looking for, ser?"
"The
divergence in case law over the past three centuries, particularly in how it
defines the role of the lord justicers." Kharl was very glad for the study
with Jusof. He hadn't even known of legal divergence.
"So
... this Lord Hagen wants greater control over his justicers." Fasyn
laughed, with almost a cackling sound.
Kharl
smiled politely. "I would not be so bold as to make such a guess."
"I'm
sure you wouldn't." After a moment, the clerk added, "Lord or not,
ser, you'll need to sign the scholars' register." He took a bound volume
from the shelf beside him, opened it, and extended it, nodding toward the
inkpot and pen on the forward part of the desk.
Kharl
wrote "Kharl of Cantyl, Austra."
The
clerk took the book back and read. "Are those lands yours, or is that where
you're from?"
"They're
mine."
"Well.
.. Lord Kharl, we'll do what we can to help you."
"You
must be kept busy, Fasyn."
"At
times ... at times. What volumes ... or cases ... do you wish first?"
"Is
there an interpretive guide that outlines current procedures? I would like to
review that, if it exists. That way, I will not be led into false
assumptions."
"There
aren't that many differences ... Both Austran and Nordlan justicer codes derive
from the Code of Cyad .. . the same as Lydiar and Delapra. They're so close
that sometimes merchanters, in civil cases, tariff adjustments and claims, you
understand, they bring in their own advocates."
"Could
they do so in criminal cases?"
"There's
no bar to that." Fasyn tilted his head. "I don't know that it's been
done in years. You have someone ... ?"
"No.
I just thought that, as an envoy, it might be useful, if the matter ever came
up." Kharl smiled politely. "About the guide?"
"Oh
... yes, there is a guide of sorts. It's incomplete. My predecessor did not
finish it... but there are a number of precedents, established since . ..
still..."
Kharl
waited.
"I
cannot imagine that there are significant differences, though ..."
Kharl
smiled apologetically. "Small differences in past years can lead..."
"You
advocates ..." The clerk shook his head. "We'll go into the library.
There's a table in the middle of the back wall. It's handy to most of what
would be of the greatest interest to you."
Kharl followed
Fasyn, as did Demyst, his hand still on the hilt of his sabre, his eyes
checking every shadow in the ancient and musty library.
Unlike
the library in the Hall of Justice in Valmurl, there was not a single advocate
or student in the library.
"If
you would wait a moment..." Fasyn walked slowly around one of the
freestanding shelves and toward a locked cabinet. From the ring on his belt he
took a small key and unlocked the cabinet, extracting a folder and a thick
volume bound in faded green leather. After relocking the cabinet, he carried
both back, setting them on the table.
He
looked to Kharl. "The folder here holds Ghasad's guide. It is not
complete, as I said ... and here is the Code of Cyad. It's not original,
course, but it is the first-the only-version, and it's a copy. The original,
well, it would be more than a thousand years old, more like seventeen hundred,
really, but every new chief clerk has it copied, and I am most certain it is
accurate. The first part has the original Cyadoran text. Most of you don't know
that, but the translation is in part two, and it's an honest transcription.
Honest, but awkward." Fasyn smiled.
"You
must be one of the few that know Cyadoran," Kharl said.
"There
are not many, and fewer every year."
Kharl looked
at the folder, then at the ancient volume. Would they help in his plans, or
would they be little more than a cover? He could only read them and see.
LVIII
Again,
Kharl, Demyst, and Erdyl ate the evening meal together, using but one end of the
long table in the formal dining chamber. Supper was a stew, although Khelaya,
the cook, had called it ratouyl. To Kharl, it was a stew, and not bad, but not
so good as what Adelya had prepared. Khelaya's brown bread was good, and that
helped.
"Tell
me again how you were received." Kharl took a swallow of his ale, then a
last bite of the bread.
"I
presented myself and was shown to Mihalen, Lord West's secretary." Erdyl
broke off a chunk of bread, then passed the silver bread tray to Demyst.
"He was pleasant, but not warm. He left me in his chamber for several
moments while he went into the adjoining study to talk with someone else. The
door was ajar when he walked in, and I caught the name ... I thought he said
Lord Osten."
"It
might have been," Kharl said. "Osten is Lord West's older son. The
youngest is Egen. There's another one, I think, an overcaptain, but no one
talks much about him. Does something with the tariff farmers, or he did several
years ago." Kharl couldn't help frowning. Was Osten making decisions for
Lord West? What was Egen doing? He pushed those thoughts away. He needed to
know more. "What did they say?"
"I
couldn't hear any more because they closed the door, and I didn't want to get
up and try to listen through the door itself. Mihalen came back and said that
he expected that Lord West would receive you formally within the eightday, but
that it had been noted that you were the representative and envoy for Lord
Ghrant. He asked me to convey Lord West's greetings and welcome." Erdyl shrugged.
"That was all that happened." Abruptly, he looked down.
"What
is it?"
"I
am most sorry, Lord Kharl. I had forgotten. There is a missive. I left it on
your desk in the library. I was told that it contained an invitation for you to
have refreshments with the Sarronnese envoy on threeday afternoon.
I'm most
sorry, ser. I meant to tell you as soon as you returned this afternoon."
"That's
all right." Kharl smiled. "A few glasses' delay won't matter."
Sarronnyn? That was one of the northwestern lands in Candar. Kharl thought it
was one of the places that still followed the Legend. The ruler was called the
Tyrant, or something like that. But why would he get such an invitation so
quickly?
"If
it is an invitation," Erdyl said, "you will need to send an
acceptance."
"First
thing in the morning, then." ' i
"Yes,
ser."
"What
do you think of Brysta?" Kharl looked to his secretary, then to the
undercaptain.
"Sort
of... old ... run-down," offered Demyst. "Didn't see many ships in the
harbor. Not when we ported. Looked at the docks from the hillside yesterday,
and there weren't any more, either. Valmurl's smaller, and there are more ships
in the harbor, all the time."
Kharl
had noticed the same, but he just nodded. "What struck you, Erdyl?"
The
young secretary swallowed, then blushed, but did not speak.
"Erdyl?"
"Well...
ser." He swallowed again. "I didn't see any girls out. Not any young
women. Most places I've been, at least in Austra, you see a
few." ・
Kharl
frowned. Now that Erdyl had mentioned that, he couldn't recall seeing any
younger women, either.
"I
say something wrong, ser?" '
"Oh,
no. I think you're right. I just hadn't thought that way." Was he getting old
before his time, not noticing comely young women? Did dealing with order do
that?
"More
than a few Watch patrollers out, too," added Demyst. "In pairs,
mostly."
More
patrollers and no young women, Kharl reflected. That suggested that matters
were not well, but, again, in what fashion he could not say. "Anything
else that either of you saw or thought about?"
"People
don't wear bright colors," offered Erdyl. "Everyone was in gray or
brown or maroon." He looked down.
"Perhaps
that is the custom here. I haven't seen much of the world."
Kharl
tried to recall what it had been like when he'd been younger.
He'd had
a crimson jacket once, and Charee had often worn a brilliant purple shawl.
"We'll have to look more, but... folks used to wear brighter colors."
"Could
be because of the season?" Demyst asked, then shook his head. "Can't
be. Bright garb is for spring and summer."
"What
will you be having us do tomorrow?" blurted Erdyl. "Besides the reply
to the Sarronnese envoy, I mean."
Kharl
smiled, sheepishly. "I'll have to think about that this evening. We've
really only a half day tomorrow. Sevenday afternoon is part of the end-day.
Many of the shops close in the afternoon, and the Hall of Justice is closed on
both sevenday and eightday."
"That's
not so different from Austra," ventured Erdyl.
"Some
things aren't," Kharl admitted. But some things were very different, and
he had the feeling that those differences had gotten worse. He needed to remind
himself to be careful, and to think out what he did. He definitely did not wish
to repeat his mistakes-not in Brysta.
LIX
Sevenday
morning was quiet, and after writing a reply to Luryessa, the Sarronnese envoy,
Kharl dispatched Erdyl with the missive. The fact that the envoy was a woman
confirmed in Kharl's mind that Sarronnyn, along with Southwind, was a land that
still followed the Legend of ancient and vanished Westwind. The invitation,
merely for afternoon refreshments, also raised the question of what the envoy
wanted. Did she wish merely to learn more about Kharl and what was happening in
Austra? Somehow, Kharl doubted that. The invitation had been too immediate.
Once
Erdyl had left to tender the acceptance, Kharl went looking for Undercaptain
Demyst and found him inspecting the unused barracks section of the space over
the stables.
"What
do you think?" Kharl asked.
Demyst
turned, slowly. "They kept the place clean. Not much wear. Even has an
armory off the back hall."
"Ah...
ser ..."
Both
Kharl and Demyst turned. Fundal stood at the end of the hallway.
"Yes,
Fundal?" said Kharl.
"I
couldn't help but overhear what the undercaptain said, Lord Kharl. I'm
gratified that he finds the barracks space here clean."
Kharl repressed
a smile. "It wasn't clean when Lord Hensolas left?"
"No,
ser. It was more like a hog pen." The steward shook his head. "Too
many armsmen."
At
Fundal's expression, Kharl had another thought. "Did you do the cleaning
up and the painting by yourself?"
"Mostly,
ser. After they all left, things were quiet. Thought it was best to put matters
to right. No sense in having someone else do it. Besides, I was worried about
the coins."
"You
did a good job. We couldn't even tell there were so many here."
"Far
too many," Fundal replied. "At the end, there were almost threescore
armsmen packed in here. Some of them couldn't even speak properly. Mercenaries.
I suggested to Lord Hensolas that it might be wiser to quarter some of them
elsewhere, but he just put me off. 'We'll talk of that later, Fundal.' Then,
one twoday, they all left, and Lord Hensolas with them. He didn't even leave
any extra golds in the residence account. Drew out all the golds he could. The
armsmen left some blades and a half score of rifles in a crate that they hadn't
even opened. I sold all that and put the golds in the account. Even with that
being so, it barely lasted till you got here."
Kharl
could sense that the steward was telling the truth-and that he felt strongly
about the situation. "Did they leave anything else? Other weapons?
Tools?"
"Just
an unopened keg of cammabark." Fundal shook his head. "Cam- mabark,
in a place where folk live. Didn't get a bad price for it, though, but half of
that went to Guarlt because I had to go through the Armorers' Guild."
Cammabark?
A keg of it? In quarters over a stable where it could explode and burn down
both the stable and the envoy's residence? That bothered Kharl, not because it
confirmed Hensolas's treachery, but because it was so at odds with everything
he had heard about the lord's caution. "I'm glad you took care of all
that."
"That's
what a steward's for, ser." Fundal smiled, if faintly.
"Did
you ever find out where all the mercenary guards came from?"
"Seemed
like they came from everywhere. I heard one say he was from Jellico, and
another was talking about being glad to leave Analeria. The others ... they
could have come from anywhere."
"Thank
you."
"If
you'll not be needing me ..."
"I'll
let you know if there's anything," Kharl promised.
He moved
on toward the back hall. As Fundal had said, the armory had been repainted
recently, and there was but the faintest sense of chaos in the space. In less
than half a glass, Kharl finished going through the barracks and retainer
quarters, and he and the undercaptain made their way back to the library in the
main residence.
Kharl
closed the door before speaking. "What do you think about what Fundal
said?"
"He
was telling the truth, wasn't he?"
"Yes."
"Cammabark?
Be an idiot to keep that except in an underground and stone-walled armory, even
with what it's worth."
"He
didn't take it with him," Kharl mused. "I'd wager he didn't buy it,
either."
"Why
didn't he sell it, then, the way Fundal did? Why did he leave the rifles?"
Those
were good questions, especially since Hensolas had taken out all the golds he
could. Kharl could only shrug. He walked to the study window, the one nearest
the rear of the dwelling, and looked out at the corner of the formal gardens.
The white roses were in bloom, as were the lilies. One of the gardener's boys
was following his father, picking up the clippings that fell from the shears as
the older man trimmed the boxwood hedge.
Beyond
the garden and the grounds, through the trees, Kharl could just make out a far
larger dwelling. For all that he had lived in Brysta most of his life, this was
a section of the city about which he knew little.
"Ser?"
asked the undercaptain.
"We
need to take a ride," Kharl said. "A carriage ride through and around
Brysta. Mantar can tell us everything he knows. We need to learn more about
Brysta." Especially the parts that Kharl had never frequented.
"I
suppose so, ser."
"We
might not have time, later."
Demyst
nodded.
"If
you would tell Mantar to ready the carriage, then find Erdyl."
"Yes,
ser." Demyst bowed, then turned.
Kharl
had his reasons for the ride. First, he did want Demyst and Erdyl to see more of
the city. Second, he wanted to see what had changed. Third, he wanted to see if
he could sense any more concentration of chaos. And finally, he wanted to see
where the other envoys were, as well as where the lord justicers and others of
power and wealth lived. As he'd realized, looking beyond the residence gardens,
those were parts of Brysta he'd never known, because the wealthy buyers of his
barrels had always sent their retainers to pick up the cooperage- and what
cooper ever had time to walk around the city?
LX
The ride
on sevenday had proved useful not only to Demyst and Erdyl, but, as Kharl had
hoped, to himself as well. Mantar had been happy to show off his knowledge of
Brysta, and to point out everything from the Quadrancy Keep-the walled hilltop
keep of Lord West and his family and retainers-to the various enclaves below it
on the hill, the largest of which was the Hamorian. It had also been recently
enlarged. At least, several of the outbuildings and walls looked new, and felt
that way to Kharl. He had not sensed a chaos-wizard there, and that had worried
him, in some ways, more than if he had, although he could not have said why.
Also, in
addition to the new barracks building in the old slateyard, there was another
set of barracks and stables on the south side of Brysta, beside the road south
to Surien, the same road Kharl had walked to Peachill. Patrollers guarded both.
Kharl
had the feeling that they had been followed, but not by wizardry or wizards,
and supposed that was to be expected. Only a single additional merchant ship,
from Suthya, had ported in the harbor, and the coastal schooner had departed.
One of Lord West's two gunships had also ported, looking old, small, and
insignificant compared to the Hamorian warships Kharl had seen on the high seas
and in port at Swartheld.
Kharl
had requested that Mantar take them down Crafters' Lane, but while his old
cooperage now bore the name of Mallamet, he had not seen the cooper, nor had he been able to make
out the inscription on the adjoining building that had once been Tyrbel's
scriptorium. Gharan's shutters had been closed-not at all unusual for a crafter
on sevenday afternoon- so that Kharl could not tell whether Jeka still worked
for the weaver. The drive itself was all he thought prudent for the present,
until he had a better idea of how matters stood-but he wished he had been able
to see and sense more.
After
returning, Kharl had sampled the leather-bound books in the library, going
through and opening them, reading sections at random. Several were merely
compilations of folktales. One was called History of the Ancients, and Kharl
read several pages. One paragraph caught his attention.
All
across Candar, there are people, usually women, who talk about the
"Legend." Yet there is no evidence to support this Legend, save for
the ruins of Westwind itself, and the ruin of a black tower and a walled keep
on the Roof of the World tells nothing of its inhabitants or how they lived ...
They are no written histories dating from that time, except those reputed to be
in the archives in Nylan, and no one not of Reduce has ever been granted access
to those, if they even exist...
So far
as Kharl could tell, most of the pages before and after that paragraph were
written in the same vein-claiming that years of tales passed down meant
nothing. They had to mean something. They just couldn't be dismissed, although
what they meant Kharl wasn't certain.
The
other volumes were even drier. One was a manual on tanning, and another dealt
with rendering. At that, Kharl recalled Werwal, the Tenderer, who had been one
of the few crafters in Brysta who had not turned against Kharl. Another was a
thin volume that offered a guide to bookkeeping. There were several hundred
volumes on the shelves, and Kharl did not see a one that he found interesting,
or likely to be of immediate use, except perhaps the one that dealt with
accounts. But he did not wish to spend more time looking through all of them,
one at a time, some were so old he could not even make out the titles on their
fronts or their spines.
After
his brief perusal of the volumes on the shelves, most of which were stuck to
the wood on which they rested, Kharl had begun to study the residence ledgers
and accounts in greater detail-much greater detail. He continued that effort on eightday. By late
afternoon, he was convinced that Fundal was relatively honest. He also felt
that the steward was a timid man at heart, and one fearful of changing
providers or asking firmly for a better price.
So he sent
Erdyl to bring the steward to the library.
Fundal
entered, his eyes downcast.
Young as
he was, Erdyl clearly understood, because he slipped away, closing the door
behind him.
"Ser?
Is there something wrong?"
"You
haven't done anything wrong," Kharl replied. "I have been studying
the accounts."
"Yes,
ser." Concern and puzzlement warred on Fundal's face.
"There
are some things that trouble me ..."
"Ser?"
"You've
been buying linens from Soret, I see."
"Yes,
Lord Kharl. We've always purchased from him."
"Do
we need any more?"
"Not
soon."
Kharl
nodded. "The weaver Gharan does better work, I've heard. Ask him for a
price and get a sample of his work before you see Soret."
"But...
ser ... we've always ..."
"Fundal.
I've some experience in trade. I'm sure you have heard that. If Gharan does
better work or does the same work at less cost, our golds go farther."
Fundal
swallowed.
"Now
. .. about the flour. I'd like you to consider Wassyt, the miller to the north
..." Kharl did not explain in detail, either about Wassyt or the other
crafters whose names he mentioned in turn, but every name he mentioned was a
good and honest provider, the best that Kharl had known. He didn't actually
tell Fundal to change providers, but he did suggest very strongly that the
steward learn about each man before purchasing more from the current provider.
".
.. we're charged with spending Lord Ghrant's golds wisely, and I intend that we
should. Is that clear?"
"Yes,
ser."
"If
you have any ideas that would help, I'd like to hear them."
"I'd
have to think about that, ser."
Fundal
was almost trembling when he left the study.
Kharl
followed, using his sight shield, and listened, with his order-boosted senses,
as Fundal talked to Khelaya.
"...
practically told me who to buy provender and the like from ..."
"That
doesn't sound like any lord I've known, but he's a new lord. Maybe he came from
trade."
"He
might have, but how could he know all those names?"
"You
said he was an officer on one of Lord Hagen's ships. They meet everyone. Been
on one long enough, he'd know who was good, I'd wager. 'Sides, I told you
myself that Soret was cheating you. Told you to go to Chyrent, too."
Kharl
smiled at the cook's tone.
"...
weren't for the golds, almost wish we didn't have an envoy." Fun-dal's
voice carried resignation.
"Like
him a lot better than Hensolas. Mean-assed bastard. Barely got Sysena off to
her aunt's before he ruined her, and him havin' that woman, too. Called her his
cousin." The cook snorted, then laughed.
"I
don't know as I like him. Seems honest, but he looks right through you, like as
he could see your heart."
"Can't
take blooms and fruit from the same tree, Fundal. You didn't like Hensolas 'cause
he paid no attention and treated you like dust under his boots. You don't like
this one because he watches you and wants you to do better."
"Go
fix supper." The rear door to the kitchen closed firmly as the steward
left.
Kharl
frowned as he eased back to the study. Fundal wasn't stealing from the
residence, but he certainly didn't want Kharl watching him too closely.
In the
kitchen, Khelaya hummed happily as she chopped nuts.
LXI
Kharl
glanced around the library that was his to use while he was envoy, then blotted
his forehead. Although it was well before midmorning on one-day and the walls
of the residence were thick, the rooms were already warm, and the day promised
to be more than unpleasantly hot. Too hot to visit the harbor and the Hall of Justice?
Kharl shook his head. He needed a better feel for what was happening, and he
didn't want to talk to anyone who might recognize him, certainly not just after
he had arrived in Brysta. No one he knew closely was likely to be in either
place.
"Ser?"
Erdyl appeared at the half-open library door. "You have another message,
another invitation of some sort, I would judge."
"Do
you know who it's from?"
"The
messenger who rode up with it wore the black and crimson of Hamor," Erdyl
said, extending the envelope that was sealed with black- and-crimson wax.
Hamor?
Kharl didn't want to deal with the Hamorians, but he supposed that, so long as
he met with their envoy in a relatively public place and kept his guard up, it
was as safe as anything else he had been doing- not at all safe, but
unavoidable. He broke the seal and extracted the short missive written on a
heavy cream-colored paper, a paper more like parchment, but paper nonetheless.
He read
the words slowly.
Most
esteemed Lord Kharl,
On behalf
of His Mightiness Sestar, Emperor of Hamor, and Regent of the South, I bid you
welcome to Brysta and to the community of envoys gathered here to serve their
rulers.
The heat
and damp of summer are scarce the best time to arrive in Nordla, and for that
reason, we would like to tender an invitation for refreshments on sixday
afternoon, the fourth glass past noon, here at the residence. With so many of
those of interest and power in Brysta gone until the weather returns to a more
temperate state, the afternoon will offer time to become acquainted ...
As the
envoy of Lord Ghrant, you represent a young ruler who has proved that he has
resources and wisdom beyond his years, and I look forward greatly to meeting
with you.
The
letter bore the signature of Whetorak, Lord Councilor. Kharl
handed
the invitation back to Erdyl. "What do you think?"
After
reading it, the secretary looked up. "Ser?"
"He
doesn't expect me to say no," Kharl said dryly.
"For
a social occasion, ser, it might not be-"
"Oh,
I know. Telling him I don't want to see him isn't wise. I learn nothing, and I
just make him mad."
"And
curious," suggested Erdyl.
There
was another aspect to the letter. Whetorak had apologized for there being few
others, if any, that he could invite. He was also suggesting that Kharl was
unfortunate or unwise for arriving when he had, because so few remained in
Brysta during the summer. That was something Kharl never thought about when he
had been a cooper. Coopers didn't retreat to the hills or to anywhere else
during the heat of summer. They just kept working.
"I
suppose you should write a response to Lord Whetorak," Kharl said.
"Something like the last one, not too flowery."
"Right
now, ser?"
"Please.
Use the desk."
While
Erdyl began to write, Kharl made another attempt at perusing the books on the
library shelves. The third book was entitled On Philosophy. He read the first
page three times before setting the book back on the shelf. It made The Basis
of Order seem simple and practical.
Kharl
walked to the window and looked out for a time. The green-blue sky was
cloudless, but already showing heat haze, and there was not even a hint of a
breeze.
"Ser
... if you would read this?"
Kharl
walked to the desk and took the short reply from Erdyl. He read it carefully
before speaking. "That's fine. I'll sign it, and you can seal it."
"Yes,
ser."
After
signing the reply and watching Erdyl apply the envoy's seal, Kharl cleared his
throat.
"Erdyl...
if you would have Mantar ready the carriage."
"Yes,
ser. Where are we going?"
Kharl
grinned. "The undercaptain and I are going to swing by the harbor to check
the ships, then go to the Hall of Justice. You are going to come in the
carriage so that Mantar can take you to deliver my reply. After that, you'll
locate the residences of the other envoys and make a short call on each,
introducing yourself to their secretaries, or whoever acts as such, and finding out what you can. Then you'll come
back here and make some notes on what you find out. After that, if you have
time, go through the books in the library and make a short list of any worth my
reading. You can also see if there is anything inside any of them that I should
know about."
"Yes,
ser." The young secretary looked glumly at the shelves.
"You
have more learning than I do," Kharl said. "You can do that far
faster."
Erdyl
only looked slightly cheered by his envoy's words.
"The
carriage .. ." Kharl prompted.
"Oh
... yes, ser." The redhead turned and was gone.
Kharl
went back to the window, taking in the formal gardens in the bright light
outside. At times, where he was and what he was doing seemed almost unreal, as
if he were in a dream. Coopers didn't become mages and envoys, not in the world
in which he had grown up. Except that he had, and the world in which he was
living was even more dangerous than that of a cooper had been, perhaps because
he'd been raised to be a cooper, not a mage or an envoy.
After a
quarter glass or so, Kharl gathered the case he was using for notes, the one
that held a portable inkpot, paper, and pens, then left the library.
"Lord
Kharl?" Fundal stood in the corridor. "Will you be here for the
midday meal?"
"A
late midday meal, I'd judge." Kharl had already decided not to spend the
entire day at the Hall of Justice, not as hot as it was looking to be.
"Thank
you, ser. I'll tell Khelaya."
"Thank
you, Fundal."
The carriage
was waiting. So were Mantar, Erdyl, and Undercaptain Demyst. Cevor sat outside
in the seat beside the driver.
"Mantar,"
Kharl said with a smile, "we'll start with the harbor, just for a quick
look, then to the Hall of Justice. After that, you can take Erdyl to the
Hamorian envoy's residence."
"The
harbor, Lord Kharl, then the Hall of Justice, that it is."
Kharl
settled into the carriage, which, spotless as it seemed, bore a faint odor of
mold and age. He rubbed his nose, which had begun to itch, then slid open the
side window. Perhaps the movement of the carriage would provide some faint
semblance of a breeze, despite the heavy still air.
"You
think we'll see more ships in the harbor?" asked Erdyl.
"This
isn't the time of year for heavy trading," replied Kharl. "Still, I'd
have expected a few more vessels."
Kharl
recalled what Erdyl had said about younger women, and he studied the streets
and walks, but he saw none. Then, it was fairly early on oneday, and Kharl
didn't recall ever seeing that many young women out, particularly alone. Had
they always had to fear Egen and others? Had Kharl just not noticed that? He
didn't have an answer for that question, and no real way to find out. Not now.
As
Mantar turned the carriage onto
Kharl
studied the ship, then nodded. "It's another Hamorian."
"They've
got four in the harbor now," observed Erdyl.
"No
ships from any other lands here," added Demyst.
Kharl
had noted that the Suthyan vessel had not stayed long, either. He liked what he
saw not at all.
Mantar
slowed the carriage and turned in the small square short of the piers, to the
south of the new patroller barracks, before heading back up
Before
long, the carriage slowed outside the Hall of Justice. Demyst opened the door
and stepped out, glancing around, his hand on the hilt of his sabre. Kharl
followed.
"When
should I return, ser?" asked Mantar.
"A
glass past noon."
"A
glass past noon," repeated the driver. "Very good, ser."
As the
carriage pulled away with Erdyl looking glumly from the open window, Kharl
turned toward the main doors of the hall. Undercaptain Demyst hurried forward
and opened the left one. Inside was cooler than outside under the hot morning
sun, but not all that much so, despite the dimness of the main foyer.
One of
the two patroller guards in maroon and blue stationed outside the double doors
of the inner hall stepped forward, then stopped, as if he recognized Kharl.
"Lord
Kharl is going up to the library," Demyst announced.
The
guard watched, but said nothing as Kharl and the undercaptain turned and made
their way up the narrow staircase.
Neither
Fasyn nor the other clerk happened to be in his chambers, although one chamber
had a wall lamp lit. They might have been in the Hall of Justice or conferring
with the lord justicers.
Just
before the library archway, Kharl stopped, recalling the rifles in the
residence barracks and
"Ser...?"
"If
you're out here, you can see if anyone is headed my way. You can check the
library first, if that will make you feel better."
Demyst
frowned, then nodded. "Put that way, it does make sense, ser." He
paused. "There aren't any other entrances, are there?"
"No.
There used to be a back entrance, but it was walled up years ago, it looks
like."
Once
inside the library, Kharl began to look through the shelves. Very quickly, he noticed
that there were no volumes of cases that appeared to have been bound recently.
He searched until he found one that seemed to be the most recent and checked
it. There were two dates, a Cyadoran date of 1898 A.F. and a second date. The
second date was stated as the 27th year of Ostcrag, Lord West. For a moment,
Kharl frowned, then nodded. Every ruler of the West Quadrant was Lord West.
Ostcrag was Lord West's personal name, as Osten was that of his eldest son.
From what Kharl recalled, Lord West-or Ostcrag-had celebrated his thirtieth
year as Lord West only a year before Kharl had left Brysta. That meant that the
newest volume was almost four years old.
After
almost half a glass of perusing volumes, Kharl could find no newer compilation
of cases. By comparison, he was fairly certain that the newest case volumes in
Hall of Justice in Valmurl were little more than a year old, if that.
He
turned as he sensed Fasyn heading toward him.
"How
are you finding things?" asked the chief clerk.
"I think
it will take a little while before I know where everything is," Kharl
admitted. "I couldn't find any recent cases."
Fasyn
did not quite meet Kharl's gaze. "We're somewhat behind in compiling
those. There are only the two of us."
"It
takes a great deal of work," suggested Kharl, "and a good hand."
"I've
heard that the role of the bailiff is different in Austra," suggested
Fasyn quickly.
"I
haven't seen a case tried here," Kharl replied. "So I couldn't say.
There's no difference in the guide you provided and in how it's done in
Valmurl. There's generally only one guard at the outer doors, though. Also, the
Lord of Austra does not preside in any cases."
"What
about the dating?"
Fasyn
was clearly going to avoid commenting on Lord West's role in justicing, Kharl
reflected.
"From
the cases I've read here ... I've only read a few," Kharl replied.
"You're using two dates. All the dating in Austra is from the founding of
Valmurl, and that was some sixteen hundred years ago. Only the old cases have Cyadoran
dates."
"Hmmm
... I didn't know that."
Kharl
managed to conceal his surprise, because Fasyn was lying. "I'm sure I'll
find other differences, especially after I see how the lord justicers handle
matters."
"You
plan on observing?"
"How
else will I see the differences?"
"There
is that," murmured the overclerk.
Kharl
could tell that Fasyn was not pleased with that thought.
"Do
you still follow the Justicer's Challenge?" asked Fasyn.
"The
offer is made, but I don't know of a time that it's been taken. What about
here?"
"Some
would-be advocate who wanted to be lord justicer tried it, I'd say fifteen
years back." Fasyn paused. "No. Sixteen, because one of the cases was
the Asolin case. He came close, won four out of five. That was right after Lord
Justicer Reynol took the dais."
"What
was the case he lost? The challenger, I mean, if you recall."
"Oh.
.. that was an assault on a tariff farmer." Fasyn laughed. "The
challenger claimed that, when a tariff farmer exceeded the authority delegated
by the Lord of the Quadrant, he could not act under the mantle of the Lord, and
therefore an assault was not a crime against the Lord, but against a person,
and therefore, merited but a flogging, since no weapons were used. The
precedents state clearly that tariffing is a sole privilege of the Lord, and
that when delegated, anything that interferes with that privilege constitutes a
crime against the Lord." Fasyn shrugged. "He ended up getting eighty
lashes. It took him three days to die."
"He
followed the Code of Cyad, and not the more recent precedents?"
asked
Kharl.
Fasyn
frowned.
Kharl
decided to explain. It was one of the few cases where he did know something
because he'd seen and followed a tariff farmer's case in Austra, and because
he'd researched some to find out what would happen if he'd done something to
Fyngel, the tariff farmer who had cost him his cooperage. "The Code of
Cyad made that an absolute law, but that was when the tariffs were collected
directly by officials appointed by the Emperor of Cyador. The Lords of both
Nordla and Austra have asserted that precedent, but I never did find a
proclamation or a case that actually confirmed that authority." He laughed
softly. ''Not that I'd challenge a Lord on that point."
"You're
a wise advocate in that, Lord Kharl."
Kharl
did not correct the clerk's assumption that he was an advocate.
"I
can see that you're busy." Fasyn nodded and turned.
As Kharl
followed the overclerk with his eyes, he noticed the robed figure of a lord
justicer in the hallway outside. Kharl walked around and behind the shelf, out
of sight of the two Nordlans and Demyst. There he raised his sight shield and
turned back to follow the overclerk.
Both men
walked to Fasyn's chamber. Kharl had to hurry to slip inside before Reynol
gestured for the overclerk to close the door. The mage had to flatten himself
against the wall between two bookcases.
"What
more did you find out about this envoy?" Reynol cleared his throat.
"He is an envoy. I checked with Overcaptain Osten."
"He
knows his way around the cases. He has a recommendation from the lord justicer
of Austra. The way it is written, it would be hard to forge. From all that, and
the way he speaks, I'd say he's an advocate, or close enough that it makes
little difference. He's not lord-born, but not low crafter. He's not practiced
much. It could be that he was trained, then was granted lands by Lord
Ghrant."
"Payback
for supporting Ghrant in the revolt, no doubt." Reynol's words were
sneering.
"Why
would Ghrant send an advocate and call him a scholar of the law?" mused
Fasyn. "Do you think he really might be?"
"I
don't know, but Captain Egen says that Lord West will want to know,"
replied Reynol. "We don't wish to displease Captain Egen."
"No,
ser."
"Watch
him closely. Find out anything more that you can."
"Yes,
your lordship."
"Let
us get back to the Hall. We need to dispose of that cabinetmaker." Reynol
turned.
Kharl
did not move until the two had left. Leaving his sight shield up, he moved back
to the library and out of eyeshot from Demyst before releasing it. He doubted
he would find much more of immediate interest to him in the library, but he
needed to make sure of that.
LXII
Kharl
finally returned to the residence sometime closer to two glasses past noon.
Before finding Erdyl, he washed up, then came back down the front staircase.
Erdyl was
seated at the desk in the library with a stack of books beside him, jotting
down notes. He stood quickly. "Ser?"
"You
can tell me what you found out while we eat," Kharl said.
"There's
not much, ser. No one seems to be in Brysta." Erdyl looked directly at
Kharl.
That was
a lord's reply, Kharl reflected, meaning no one felt to be of power and real
import, for the city still held crafters, servers, tanners, scriveners, and even
justicers. Kharl decided against calling that to Erdyl's attention, not at the
moment, at least. "Let's go eat, and we can talk at the table."
Kharl
was hungry, and a little frustrated. As he'd suspected, the case files in the
library not only were old, but there were missing volumes and files in every
section. While some of those might well have been stacked on the desks of Fasyn
and the other clerk, that still would not have accounted for all the missing
documents and volumes.
As Kharl
headed for the dining room, both Demyst and Erdyl followed.
Khelaya
stood at the door from the service pantry to the dining area. "The bread
is not so warm as it should be, ser," she began. "A glass past noon,
that was what I was told."
"The
bread is not your fault," Kharl said as he seated himself at the end of
the dining room table. "I spent more time than I'd planned. I'm sure
everything will be fine."
"And
the fowl-"
"I
was late," Kharl said, taking one of the sauce-covered slices, then adding
lace potatoes from the casserole dish. "That wasn't your fault."
Khelaya's
knowing glance confirmed that.
Kharl
filled his beaker with lager, taking a long swallow, before turning to Erdyl.
"Tell me about each one-in the order you visited them."
"First,
I went to the Lydian residence. The secretary was there. That was Lyelt. The
envoy is Kyanelt, but he returned to Lydiar to meet with the duke, and he isn't
expected back for at least three or four eightdays."
"What
did you find out from him?"
"He
told me that I shouldn't fail to make sure you and I went pheasant hunting in
the uplands after harvest, and to take in the ice festival at Kofal at the turn
of the year."
"What
did he say about Lord West and the Hamorians?"
"Lord
West is most charming. The Hamorian envoy never says anything, and what he does
say tells you nothing. Lyelt knows that the Hamorian merchanters are selling
goods. At least, they're unloading them, but he doesn't know who's buying them.
There are usually Lydian iron factors selling iron pigs here, but he hasn't
seen any of their vessels all summer ..."
Kharl
nodded. In time, he asked, "Who else did you see?"
"There
isn't a secretary at the Sarronnese residence, but the envoy has an assistant.
Her name is Jemelya, but she just welcomed me, and said that she'd be most
happy to meet with me after you met with Envoy Luryessa." Erdyl took a sip
of his white wine, then a mouthful of bread.
"Did
she say anything at all beyond pleasantries?"
"She
said I would have an interesting year. I didn't like the way she smiled when
she said it."
Kharl
laughed.
"The
residence of the envoy from Hydlen was closed. Not even a steward, just a
caretaker. The same was true for Spidlar and Certis."
"Did
you meet any others from Candar?"
"The
Gallosian secretary was curt. Dour fellow. His name was Ustark. Told me that
nothing ever happened here, that the functions all combined second-rate food
with third-rate conversation. Not like being an envoy in Cigoerne, where the entertainment and food were
outstanding. He also suggested that, outside of his envoy and the Hamorian
envoy, none of the envoys were of particular import or ability. I just
listened. That part was hard, but I just listened."
"Good."
Kharl waited.
"The
Delapran secretary, that was .. ." Erdyl frowned. ". .. Gosperk. All
he did was go on and on about how hot and damp Brysta was in the summer, and
how cold and inhospitable Lord West and his sons were."
"Did
he say why?"
"His
envoy had inquired about a Delapran vessel that had been sighted south of
Brysta but had never ported. Osten met with this Gosperk and told him that,
after all of the problems with Delapran pirates, the Delapran envoy certainly
could understand that sometimes ships just didn't make port. Gosperk said that
Osten was practically smirking. He didn't have much else to say ..."
Kharl
glanced to the undercaptain, who had remained silent.
"I
wouldn't know, ser," said Demyst.
Kharl
looked back to his secretary. "What about the Hamorians?"
"I was
refused entrance. Both the secretary and the envoy were out. They were
conducting business in the south."
"They
said that they were in the south?"
Erdyl
nodded, then paused. "No ... it wasn't quite like that. The lancer who met
me said that they were in the south, and I made some comment about envoys
having to travel, but that it was likely to be hotter in the south. He said
that they weren't in the south, that he didn't know exactly where they were,
but that they wouldn't be back for several days."
"He
wasn't supposed to let anyone know they were in the south." Kharl fingered
his bare chin. He was still unused to not having a beard. "Lord South,
problems with brigands to the south, piracy or missing vessels, Hamorians in
the south ... hmmm ..." He took another swallow of the lager. "Anyone
else?"
"Far
as I could tell, there's no envoy here from Montgren or South- wind, and the
Suthyan residence is closed until the first day of fall."
"What
about Reduce?"
"They
don't have envoys, ser. Not anywhere. They never have had."
"Oh."
Kharl hadn't known that, not that it surprised him. Reduce did things its own
way, and didn't seem to care what anyone else thought.
After a
moment, and another bite of the lace potatoes, which were cold, and that was definitely his fault, he
looked to the undercaptain. "You've been listening. What do you
think?"
"Doesn't
sound like most envoys and their folks want to stay in Brysta in the summer.
Also sounds like the white worms from Hamor are up to something-in the south."
"I
don't think it's just the Hamorians," mused Kharl. "We'll have to
listen and watch closely." He glanced at Erdyl.
"Did
you look through any of the books in the library?"
"Twoscore
or so, ser." The secretary grimaced. "Most of them are pretty
bad."
"I'd
thought so. The good ones probably disappeared over the years."
"There
are two or three decent histories ..."
Kharl
nodded and helped himself to more of the fowl. He needed to find out more about
what was happening in the West Quadrant, but he wasn't sure just how else to go
about it.
LXIII
Twoday
proved very quiet, and even hotter than oneday. Kharl spent only the morning at
the Hall of Justice. Already, he was discovering the apparent truth of what
both Jusof and Fasyn had said. In terms of the law itself, the proclamations,
and the precedents, there was not that much difference between Austra and
Nordla. Not to his partly trained eye, anyway, and that told him that the
difference lay in its administration, something he'd already half concluded
even before returning to Brysta.
After
several glasses poring through cases and records, he had Mantar take him and
Undercaptain Demyst on another brief tour of the harbor, which still held only
the four Hamorian ships. By the time he returned to the residence exactly a
glass after noon, to Khelaya's satisfaction, he was soaked in sweat. After
eating and taking a cool bath, he studied a history of Brysta that Erdyl had
found. The words were less straightforward than many law briefs, and Kharl had
to struggle, but he found much of what was in the history fascinating.
Although
he had grown up in Brysta, he'd never heard or read about what had happened much before the time of
his father. Then, he supposed, that was true of most crafters. He'd been among
the few who could actually read and write, only because his sire had
insisted-and that because he wanted Kharl to become a mastercrafter. That had
not happened, because Kharl had never managed to save enough golds, but the
reading ability had made all the difference, if not in the way his father could
ever have imagined.
He'd
worked in the harbor forts, but he'd never realized that they had been built
after the burning of Brysta in the time of Elzart, the fourth Lord West, by a
punitive expedition from Sarronnyn, because a Sarronnese trading ship had been
sunk at the pier and the crew abused by Elzart and his men.
"Ser?"
Erdyl stood in the library door.
"Yes?"
"You
have a message from Lord West, ser." Erdyl raised the envelope.
Even
from halfway across the library, Kharl could see the blue ribbons and gold wax
of the seal. "Let's see when I meet with him-or if he's putting me
off."
"I
would judge that he will meet with you. It costs him nothing." Erdyl
crossed the library and tendered the missive.
Kharl
took it. He wasn't that inclined to be charitable to Lord West-or his sons-but
Erdyl was probably right about that. The name on the outside was impressive:
Lord Kharl of Cantyl, Envoy of Lord Ghrant, Ruler and Potentate of Nordla.
Kharl
slit the envelope with his belt knife. Before opening the envelope, he paused,
looking down at the knife. It felt strange, as though it were pushing away from
his fingers. He looked at the blade with his order-senses. It was ordered
enough, and yet.. . there was a sense of something, not quite like chaos. He
sheathed the knife before extracting the short but heavy parchment, also sealed
at the bottom.
Lord
Kharl of Cantyl,
His
mightiness, Ostcrag, Lord of the Western Quadrant, will receive you and your
credentials at the third glass of the morning on twoday, an eightday from
today, in the small receiving room of the Quadrant Keep.
Except
for the signature and seal, that was all. Kharl studied the signature-Osten,
for his sire, Lord Ostcrag. Kharl nodded. After Erdyl's visit to the Quadrant
Keep, he wasn't surprised, and he wouldn't be at all surprised if Osten were
there. He'd have to consider what to do if Lord West- or, more properly, he
guessed, Ostcrag, Lord West-were not there. He handed the missive back to
Erdyl.
Erdyl
swallowed. "The brevity, that's almost a snub ... an insult. So is the
early-morning time, and the signature."
"I'm
not insulted. So long as I present my credentials to Ostcrag, it doesn't matter
to me."
"I
suppose not," replied the secretary. "It's not as though they'd tell
anyone. It would make them look small. But they're counting on your not saying
anything."
"Of
course." Kharl laughed. "If I say anything, then I'm the one who
looks small."
"That
is true."
"Make
sure that the silver box is polished just before I leave on the morning of the
audience. We should not forget the token of Lord Ghrant's esteem." Not
when so much thought and care had gone into it.
"Yes,
ser. It will be ready."
Kharl
set Lord West's reply aside. "Do you know how close to today this history
goes?"
"It
was written close to thirty years ago, ser."
"Too
bad there isn't a more current history, but I suppose writing about any ruler
is dangerous while the ruler is still alive. At least one that is
accurate." Kharl's lips twisted into a crooked smile.
"Any
history written about the near past would have to curry favor."
"Why
else would it be written?" asked Kharl.
"You
are a most cynical envoy, Lord Kharl."
"Most
realistic, young Erdyl. I've seen men considered most honorable murder
innocents when they were stopped from having their way with unwilling women, and
I've seen so-called equally honorable men look the other way."
"That's
something I wouldn't know, ser."
"Have
you looked that closely?" Kharl fixed his eyes on his secretary.
Erdyl
looked away.
Kharl
half regretted pressing the young man, but for all his upbringing it was clear
that there was much he had not seen, or had chosen not to see.
Then,
that was true of all young men. It had been true of Arthal, and Kharl had not
been so understanding as he might have been. He moistened his lips, and paused.
"There are matters we would all choose not to see," he added more
gently, after a moment, "but the cost of doing so here is far too high.
Then, it's high anywhere."
Erdyl
nodded, if hesitantly.
"Tell
me about the other history, the one on Hamor," Kharl said cheerfully.
LXIV
On
threeday, which dawned cloudy, and slightly cooler, Kharl did not attempt to
visit the Hall of Justice, but took a longer and slower carriage tour of
Brysta, one that lasted until almost noon. The streets and lanes were not
empty, but neither were they bustling, and there were few young women about,
and none without escorts of some sort.
Had the
word about Egen's proclivities come to circulate through the city, or had
enough people observed the actions of Lord West's youngest that it was unspoken
and common knowledge? Kharl suspected the latter.
Likewise,
he saw no beggars, and no one idling on the streets or visible in the alleys
and serviceways. While there had always been few, there had been some. For a time,
Kharl had been one of them. Now there were none ... or they were most well
hidden.
After
returning to the residence, Kharl summoned Erdyl.
The
secretary hurried into the study. "Ser?"
"I have
another errand for you. I'd like you to stop by several of the cloth factors
and weavers. There are two on Crafters' Lane around Fifth Cross. Those are
Derdan and Gharan. Then there's Soret. Fundal can give you directions for
him."
"Yes,
ser." Erdyl paused. "Am I to order something?"
"No.
You're to ask about cloth, about the special maroon color used in the
patrollers' uniforms, and anything you can find out about who wove it or where
it came from."
"Ser?"
"Those
uniforms are new in the last year, and there are a lot more patrollers than
there used to be. If we start asking about that..."
"Yes,
ser. But if I ask about the cloth and color ... and ask who could supply so
much ... that sort of thing."
"That's
right. Look and see if any of them have added weavers or let them go. If the
cloth came from Hamor, then it might have an effect."
"Yes,
ser. You want me to start this afternoon?"
Kharl
nodded. "After we eat. You'll have to ride. Try to notice as much as you
can."
"Yes,
ser."
"Let's
go eat."
After
eating a light midday meal, Kharl checked the ledgers once more, then read
sections of the History of Hamor, a thick book that began with the legends of
the founders who fled the demons of Candar in search of a better life.
"Why
is everyone who opposes a people a demon?" mumbled Kharl to himself.
"Or is it just whoever opposes the people of the writer?"
From
what he had read so far, the founders of Hamor had fled the ancient
chaos-wizards of Cyador, then promptly created a land modeled on Cyador, while
denying it all the while-and that was if the writers of the history happened to
be accurate. Kharl had his doubts, long before he laid aside the history to get
ready for his foray into refreshments with the Sarronnese envoy.
At slightly
before the fourth glass of the afternoon, Mantar halted the carriage under the
portico of the Sarronnese envoy's residence as the four bells from the back bay
tower finished echoing across the upper hillside.
Demyst
held the carriage door as Kharl stepped out.
"We'll
be waiting with the carriage, Lord Kharl," Demyst announced.
"Thank
you." Kharl walked toward the wide white marble steps, where a footman or
some sort of attendant in a blue-and-cream uniform waited.
As he
neared, he saw that the attendant was a muscular woman, not a man, wearing the
twin shortswords of Southwind-or of Westwind, if one believed the Legend. She
opened the door, and announced, "Lord Kharl of Cantyl, honored Envoy of
Lord Ghrant of Austra."
Kharl
stepped inside the high-ceilinged and marble-walled foyer, decidedly cooler than the afternoon
outside, to find a silver-haired woman awaiting him.
But a
half a head shorter than Kharl, she wore long, flowing trousers of green
shimmersilk, a tunic of the same fabric, and a short jacket of a darker green,
also of shimmersilk. Despite the silver hair, he doubted that she was much
older than he was.
"Envoy
Luryessa?" Kharl bowed. He could sense chaos all around the woman, but
chaos under tight control-chaos that might be called even orderly. He tried not
to show any surprise at learning that the Sarronnese envoy was both a woman and
a chaos-wizard or sorceress.
"Lord
Kharl, I am most pleased to see you and welcome you to the residence."
Luryessa smiled. "Refreshments will be ready shortly. Before that, I would
like to show you the public rooms of the residence if you would not mind."
Kharl
smiled politely. "I would appreciate that." Even the rooms might tell
him something.
She
turned through the archway on the far right, walking a good thirty cubits to
open double doors set under a square arch, stopping there. The chamber was an
oblong a good forty cubits by twenty. The ceiling was ten cubits high, and both
walls and ceiling were a creamy off-white, plain plaster finish. The only
ornamentation on either walls or ceiling were the crown moldings and a wide but
plain chair railing, both painted Sarronnese blue, a brighter color than the
dark navy blue of Brysta. The floor was of white marble tiles, but most was
covered by thick carpets with designs tending toward green. The chairs and
settees were upholstered in dark green, and the wood of the tables and
furnishings was all a light cherry. The mirrors-flanked by lamps in wall
sconces-were framed in cherry as well. There were no paintings hung on the
walls, but ornate green tapestries were suspended from the crown moldings. The
hangings did not show scenes, but curved and patterned designs in green and
gold.
"This
is the formal drawing room, for use in the evenings before large dinners."
Kharl
nodded, since he'd never seen a chamber that seemed so cold and formal.
Luryessa
continued down the corridor, also marble-tiled, with thin brass strips between
the tiles, to the next set of open double doors, where she stopped, without
speaking. The dining chamber was larger than the formal drawing room, with a
single long table, also of cherry, and flanked with straight-backed wooden
chairs, their seats upholstered in dark green. A quick count suggested to Kharl
that the table could seat at least fifty people.
Luryessa
smiled and continued to the cross corridor, where she turned right, coming to a
stop at another open door. "This is the personal dining chamber, and it's
used most often."
The smaller
chamber held a table that seated close to twenty, but the western-facing
windows, the hearth on the south wall, as well as the mauve-and-blue hangings
and the cherry-paneled walls, gave it a warmer feeling.
Next
came the library, which was almost the size of the main floor of Kharl's house
at Cantyl, with oak shelves covering most of the walls. Here, Luryessa stepped
inside.
"Some
of these volumes date back several centuries."
"So
do some in our residence," Kharl said. "I doubt anyone has read most
of them in all that time."
The
Sarronnese laughed. "There are several thousand here. I've read perhaps
two or three hundred, mostly the histories, and some of the essays. Jemelya has
read another hundred or so."
Kharl
recalled the assistant's name, but did not comment.
Luryessa
gestured toward a door set in the middle of the south wall, between the wall
cases. "Would you like to see my private study, Lord Kharl?"
Kharl
understood. The message was not an invitation to dalliance. "I would be
honored, Envoy Luryessa."
After
they entered, Luryessa closed the heavy door behind her and turned. "Lord
Kharl... or should I call you mage?"
"Envoy
Luryessa ... one could also call you sorceress."
The
muscular silver-haired woman nodded. "One could. It would not be accurate
in many fashions. Shall we fence, or be direct? We are private here, and all of
my retainers in the residence at the moment are trustworthy."
Kharl
shrugged helplessly. "I cannot fence. My weapons are staff and cudgel, and
both are most direct."
"Are
you at liberty to tell me why Lord Ghrant sent a powerful mage as his envoy?
Has he so many that he can spare one of your strength more than a thousand kays
from Valmurl?"
"I
cannot look into Lord Ghrant's mind, Envoy Luryessa-"
"Just
Luryessa in private, please."
"I
know that he is greatly concerned about the intentions of the Emperor of Hamor.
All I have seen in the harbor are Hamorian vessels, and there are no other
merchanters. That concerns me."
"It
would concern all with any intelligence. Your secretary was most polite with
Jemelya, but you would not have sent him so soon after your arrival had you not
been concerned about matters here in Brysta."
"You
are most observant."
She
smiled. "Has Lord Ghrant so many mages?"
Kharl
smiled, politely. "Does the Tyrant?"
"No.
Sorcery and magery are frowned upon in Sarron. I am seldom welcomed home, but
find myself honored in my positions as envoy to other lands ... so long as I do
not return home too often or for too long."
Kharl
could sense the absolute truth of Luryessa's words ... and the hidden sadness
behind them.
"And
what of you?" she asked.
He
paused, then said carefully, "Lord Ghrant is wary of mages, but one other
of longer service to the Lords of Austra remains in Valmurl." That was
certainly true.
"You
are most cautious, yet truthful in what you have said." A smile containing
a hint of impishness, incongruous in the stately envoy, crossed her lips.
"You have not said much, though."
"I have
never been an envoy before. I must feel my way with care. Great care."
"Envoys
must always be careful. They send us where there are neither fleets nor lancers
to support us."
"And
some lands have few of either."
Luryessa
nodded, then said, "Magery is an acceptable substitute. Great magery was
used to defeat the Hamorians in Austra, although Lord Whetorak has claimed that
there were no Hamorians in Austra, except for a handful of mercenaries."
"That
may be, but those mercenaries wore Hamorian uniforms," Kharl said.
"Did
the emperor also send chaos-wizards?"
"I
cannot say who sent all of them. Not for certain. Some did arrive on Hamorian
ships, and they were chaos-wizards who supported the rebel lords."
"Our
envoy reported that Lord Ghrant had a powerful order-master.
No one
knows much about what he did or how, except that there are claims that he
turned a mountain into solid glass, and when all was over, there were no rebels
left living, and no chaos-wizards."
Kharl
shrugged. "I can say that he did not turn a mountain into glass."
"I
thought not. That is something of chaos. Still... a powerful order-master might
be able to deflect such forces, and that deflection might turn part of a
mountain into glass."
"I
suppose that could happen," Kharl admitted. While he suspected that
Luryessa was probably more trustworthy than either the Hamorians or Lord West
and his retainers, he was uncomfortable dealing with such an astute woman.
"I think it is best that I not speak of how Lord Ghrant was able to
overcome the rebels and the Hamorians."
"Then
we will not. I would not wish to place you in an uncomfortable position."
Another smile appeared. "Overcaptain Osten and the Hamorians may wish
that. Sarronnyn does not."
"My
secretary met with a secretary for Lord West, and he gained the impression that
young Osten is greatly involved in governing the West Quadrant."
"In
practice, Overcaptain Osten, who is the eldest of Ostcrag's sons, rules Brysta.
The youngest, Captain Egen, rules the southern lands of the West Quadrant.
Vielam rules the others outside of the south and Brysta, but he defers to his
brothers."
"I
thought that Egen was the youngest."
"He
is, but Vielam defers to him, nonetheless. That has become more true and more
frequent since Klarsat departed."
The name
meant nothing to Kharl. "Was he a councilor or advisor to Vielam?"
"Of
sorts. He was an order-mage. Of moderate abilities. He departed in the spring,
on a merchanter from Reduce."
"He
supported Vielam, then."
"Let
us surmise that he disliked Vielam less than his brothers. He left after the
first of the Hamorian white wizards arrived."
The more
Kharl heard, the less he liked what he felt was happening in Brysta. "I have
heard reports of brigandage. One of our merchanters told the lord-chancellor
that his men were prevented from traveling south for goods for that
reason."
Luryessa
laughed. "All the would-be brigands are working in the quaries that Egen
has reopened. Do not have any of your retainers walk the streets alone,
particularly at night."
"Every
man not a lord and not likely to be missed is a brigand?"
"Or
a beggar or a thief."
Kharl
could easily believe that of Egen. "Why does he need that many?"
"They're
building a road to the south, following the old road to Surien."
"For
trade?"
"That
is the claim, but work on the road did not begin until Lord South refused to
consort his daughter Estelya to young Egen."
"And
the Hamorians?"
"They
are providing tools and knowledge. So they say."
Kharl
snorted.
"You
doubt the honorable intentions of Hamor?"
"From
what I have seen, Hamor has no intentions that are honorable. Although I have been
told that the Emperors of Hamor are patient, I have doubts about this
emperor."
"His
mightiness Sestar reached his majority less than two years ago. He is little
older than your Lord Ghrant. As you surmise, he is not considered
patient." The Sarronnese laughed, sardonically, yet good- naturedly.
"You have been to Cigoerne, then?"
"Only
to Swartheld. Have you seen Cigoerne?"
"I
have. It is most beautiful, most cultured, and terrifying in what it
represents."
"Oh?"
Kharl did not know exactly how to respond to that statement.
"The
city is pleasant and beautiful, as is all around it. But, two hundred kays to
the north is Luba, where the sky is black with soot and dust and ashes, and
where thousands of furnaces and steam engines roar day and night. To the west
stretches the Great Highway, a white stone road that will reach all across
Hamor to Atla in the east. It, too, is proud and beautiful, and few see the
quarries where thousands labor endlessly." Luryessa gave the smallest of
shrugs.
"Beauty
built on misery and slavery?"
"The
Hamorian philosopher Aurelat wrote that most men live lives of misery, and that
is indeed the human condition. Since misery has always existed, continues to
exist, and always will, he posited that a ruler's task was to harness that
misery in the most productive of ways, creating structures of beauty and
providing adequate food and lodging for all so that their misery could be most
effectively used to improve the land and the world."
"That
serves the lords and the emperor most effectively."
"Aurelat
has been a favorite of the emperors, especially after he drowned in his bath a
hundred years ago."
"I
see."
"Do
Lord West or his sons know that you are an order-master?"
"I
am to present my credentials on twoday. I have not said anything about my small
abilities."
"Most
wise. Still, it will not be that long before it is rumored that you are a mage.
Lord West retains a chaos-wizard, and anything known in that keep does not
remain there. Once that becomes known, those who favor greater alliance with
Hamor will claim that your presence signifies an alliance between Nordla and
Reduce."
"Reduce
has never allied with anyone. It is not likely to do so now," Kharl
pointed out.
"What
is in fact has never changed the minds of those who wish to believe
otherwise."
Kharl
could not argue that. "Is it known that you are a sorceress?"
"No,
but all women envoys of the Legend-following lands are considered sorceresses.
So we never affirm or deny it. What good would it do?" Luryessa's lips
quirked. "It is said that you have been studying the laws of Nordla. I
would not have thought that of much use, since the lord justicers neither know
them nor follow them."
"I
had heard such," Kharl admitted. "I am hopeful that the way in which
they do not follow them might prove helpful in understanding Brysta."
"You
have greater hopes than do I." Abruptly, she turned, her hand on the lever
of the closed study door. "Come, let us have some refreshments, and I will
tell you what I know of Brysta and Ostcrag, Lord West."
"And
about Sarronnyn. I know little of Sarronnyn," Kharl confessed.
"We
can help with that." Luryessa opened the door to the private study, then
led him through the main library and farther down the corridor to a smaller
parlorlike room. The chamber held a circular table of black lorken, inlaid with
a floral border of white oak. Five chairs were set around the circular table.
The only other furnishings were chest tables set against the inside walls. Wide glass windows
stretched the length of the outside wall, overlooking a garden, except the
garden was almost entirely of stones arranged in a pattern that Kharl thought
he should recognize, but didn't.
Luryessa
gestured toward the windows and the garden beyond. "The stone garden is a
copy of one I once saw in Viela. I tried to have it laid out from my memory,
but you never know. The druids are good with sand and stone, for all that they
prefer the forest." After the briefest of pauses, she added, "Please
sit down. Ziela will be bringing the refreshments. I've taken the liberty of
offering you Shyrlan. It's a light white wine, very refreshing on hot sultry
days like these. If you don't like it, we can offer other vintages, or pale ale
or lager, as well."
"You
know more of it than I do." Kharl smiled.
A
slender girl, wearing a blue shirt and matching blue trousers, appeared with a
tray. Deftly, she set a fluted crystal goblet before Kharl and another before
Luryessa, followed by a small blue porcelain plate. Then came three platters,
each with different kinds of pastries, which she placed equidistant from the
two envoys.
"Thank
you, Ziela," said Luryessa.
"Thank
you," echoed Kharl.
They
received a slight bow, and then Ziela was gone. As the serving girl slipped
away, Kharl realized that he had not seen a single boy or man since he had
entered the Sarronnese residence.
Luryessa
lifted her goblet. "To your success as an envoy, Lord Kharl."
"And
to your continued success." Kharl could detect no hint of chaos or
anything untoward in the nearly clear wine, nor in the miniature cakes and
pastries on the oval platters of blue-tinted porcelain. He took a small sip.
While he was no expert on wines, the Shyrlan was light and cool, as Luryessa
had promised, with a slight sweetness and a hint of a fragrance that was
fruitlike, but not like any fruit he had ever tasted. "This is good."
"You
doubted me?" Her voice was light.
"I
did not doubt you, but I am no expert on wines."
"You
have great knowledge in other matters, I am most certain, else you would not be
here."
"I've
never heard of a name like Luryessa," Kharl said, not wishing to discuss
his expertise or lack of such and hoping that comments about her name were
harmless enough.
"You
may never hear of it again. It's an old name, and in the tongue of the Legend,
it means 'of Ryessa,' or of the lineage of Ryessa."
Having
no idea who Ryessa might be, Kharl just nodded and took a sip of the white
wine.
"Ryessa
was the Tyrant of Sarronnyn and the older sister of Megaera. Megaera was a
powerful white sorceress in the days of Westwind. I don't know if you're
familiar with the founding of Reduce, but she ..."
"That
Megaera? You're related to her?"
"More
to her older sister, according to family stories, but that was hundreds and
hundreds of years back." Luryessa grinned. "Seven hundred and eight,
actually."
Kharl
took another sip of the wine, then followed Luryessa's example and lifted one
of the white-glazed pastries onto his small plate.
"Sarronnyn
went into a period of great decline after Megaera's departure," Luryessa
went on. "It was gradual, so gradual that few noticed until just before
the great cataclysm. Then the Iron Guard of Fairven and the white wizards began
to build the last of their great highways. That was the one through the
Westhorns so that they could bring Sarronnyn and all the west of Candar under
their rule."
"But
that didn't last long," Kharl pointed out, recalling what Tarkyn had once
told him. "Only for a few years."
"Less
than that, actually, but that was only because Fairven and most of the wizards
were destroyed, not because of any strength of Sarronnyn."
"No
one knows who did that, do they?"
The
faintest smile crossed Luryessa's lips. "It is a fair guess that a
renegade black wizard and engineer from Reduce did so. There were ... artifacts
. . . left, and they were of black iron. There were also bodies, but to this
day, no one knows more than that."
"I'm
sorry. I was asking about your name."
"The
name of the Tyrant who let Sarron fall was expunged, never to be used again,
according to her heir. So was the name Ryessa."
"Why
Ryessa? She didn't have anything to do with the fall of Sarronnyn. She was long
dead."
"The
thought was that her handling of Megaera created Reduce and made the rise of
Fairven possible. My grandmother disagreed. I was named for Ryessa as a
protest. Now . .. names that suggest that lineage are frowned upon."
"Just
frowned upon?"
"In
Sarronnyn, that is as good as an outright prohibition."
That
said much to Kharl. "So you still have a Tyrant?"
"Absolutely.
And we still follow the Legend."
"How
long have you been the envoy here?"
"Six
years."
"Isn't
that long for an envoy?"
"It
is, but.. . everyone feels more comfortable with me being here. That includes
me."
"What
can you tell me about Brysta that you think I should know?" Kharl took a
bite from the pastry. The inside held a pearapple-almond filling. He managed
not to lick his lips.
"It
seems clear enough that the Hamorians are behind the road- building and the new
patroller barracks. They seem to meet mostly with Captain Egen..."
That
made great sense to Kharl, knowing what he did of Egen.
"They've
also been overcharging for the goods they bring to Brysta, and refusing to buy
Brystan wares unless they can get them at prices that beggar the sellers."
"But.
. . people won't buy then, and they won't sell."
"Oh
.. . where will the smiths and factors get iron stock? Or copper? Why do you
think Egen has his men patrolling the roads to the south, and why there are
some white wizards with his forces? Or why Vielam's road patrols to the north
and east are levying road tariffs on all merchant traffic?"
"It's
that bad?"
"No.
It's worse. More than a half score merchanters have vanished in the past two
seasons, all of them nearing or bound for Brysta or Sagana. They were all from
smaller lands, places like Suthya and Spidlar."
"I've
heard little of that, and neither has the lord-chancellor."
"He
and Lord Ghrant doubtless suspect something. Otherwise, why would you be
here?" Luryessa smiled once more, knowingly.
Kharl
could not argue with either the logic or the smile, and he had no doubts that
everything she had told him was true. He could only worry about what she had
not said-or did not know.
"While
there are details I may have glossed over, Lord Kharl, that is what we face
here in Brysta."
There
were more than a few details missing, but they wouldn't change the overall
view, Kharl suspected as he took another sip of wine. "Could you tell me
about the other envoys?"
"I
could, but I'd rather not share that information until after you have met them. Then, you can invite me for
refreshments, and we can compare what we have seen."
Once
more, Kharl could detect no evasions, and none of the chaos that generally
signified lying or dishonesty. That was more disturbing than a lie would have
been. "Then, if you will not share that information with me now, perhaps
you could tell me about Sarronnyn, and about how people conduct their lives
under the Legend ... and how you came to be an envoy."
"You
do not ask for much. Histories have been written about Sarronnyn."
"But
I have not read them." Kharl smiled. "I have not seen any in Aus-tra,
either."
"That
is less than surprising." Luryessa took a sip of her Shyrlan before
continuing. "Sarron is the capital of Sarronnyn, and it is both an old
city and a new one. It was founded by the last of the original angels to leave
Westwind. That was nearly thirteen hundred years ago. Once it was a craft and
trade center, through which flowed all the trade north of the Stone Hills and
west of the mountains. In time, the rulers of Lornth decided that Sarron was
too powerful and independent. They attacked. They were right. The women
warriors of Sarron destroyed the forces of Lornth. From those battles came
Sarronnyn..."
Kharl
listened intently.
LXV
Threeday
night, after refreshments with Luryessa that had lasted until past sunset,
Kharl had returned to his envoy's residence-and to the library, where Erdyl was
waiting.
"What
did you find out from the weavers?" asked Kharl.
"The
cloth didn't come from Brysta. It was made on steam looms in Hamor. That was
what Derdan told me. He said that none of the weavers here in Nordla can make
cloth that cheaply. The Hamorian cloth isn't as good-that's what he says-and
it's all cotton that wears out sooner."
"It's
probably more comfortable in summer," mused Kharl, "but they'll
freeze in a hard winter. Egen wouldn't care about that."
"That's
what the factor said, not about Captain Egen, but about the cotton. He said
that he'd tried to suggest summer and winter uniforms, but the patrollers said
those would have to wait."
"What
about the other weavers?"
"That
fellow Gharan-he's got some quality cloth there. It's a small place, just him
and his consort and one other girl. She looks young, sort of sandy hair. First
pretty young woman I've seen in Brysta. Good smile."
Kharl
stiffened inside, but managed to reply, keeping his tone wry, "I'm sure
there are others." Even as he spoke, he had to wonder at his reaction. Was
it just that he didn't want young Erdyl thinking of Jeka as just another pretty
young thing? She'd saved his life, and she deserved more than being a fleeting
pleasure to a young lordling.
"I
haven't seen any others, ser."
"I'm
sure you will," Kharl replied. "What did Gharan say about the
cloth?"
"He
said it was decent cotton, but not much more, and that the patrollers would
wish for warm wool come the turn of winter. He wanted to know if we were
thinking of trying to ship cloth here. I told him that I didn't know of
anything like that. I also said that we didn't grow cotton or much flax in
Austra. Then he wanted to know if we'd like to buy anything."
"Did
you see anything that caught your eye? Besides the girl?" Kharl wished he
hadn't said the last words, but they'd burst out by themselves.
"He
has some wools, lambs' wool, very soft, and some striking weaves, ser."
"We
should visit, then, if we have some time." Kharl nodded. "What about
Soret?"
Erdyl
frowned. "There was something about him. I didn't like him. He didn't look
at me, not straight. He kept asking why I wanted to know all this. I hope you
didn't mind, ser, but I told him that envoys tell their secretaries what to do,
and we don't ask too many questions, not if we want to keep being secretaries.
I did tell him that you'd once been in trade and liked to know what was being
traded where. That seemed to settle him some. He didn't say much, except that
the cloth was Hamorian cotton and not up to the standard of good Nordlan
linen."
"Is
there anything else I should know?"
Erdyl's
brows narrowed in concentration, and he cocked his head slightly, almost
squinting, before he finally spoke. "There is one thing. Der-dan ... he
said something about having trouble meeting prices when harbor tariffs had been
lowered on cotton. It was almost under his breath, but when I asked him, he
just shook his head."
"Did
it look like any of them had added or lost weavers?"
"I
never saw Derdan's back room, but I didn't see new looms or empty looms with
either Gharan or Soret..."
After
another quarter glass, Kharl stood and led the way to the dining room.
There,
he didn't say much at supper, his thoughts partly on the cotton from Hamor.
Given how many patroUers he'd seen already, there must have been hundreds, if
not thousands of yards of the cloth, and all of a uniform dye. If none of the
three weavers were complaining too much about lost business, then Kharl judged
that not much cloth besides that had been shipped from Hamor ... but that was a
guess.
He was
still concerned about Jeka, glad as he was that she was still with Gharan. He
could still call up that gaminelike smile, infrequent as it had been in the
cold days between the walls.
After
supper, he retired to the library, where he tried to sort out all that he had
learned since he'd arrived in Brysta. It didn't seem to help. Finally, he
turned out the lamps and headed up to the overlarge bedchamber. He doubted that
he would sleep all that well, but pacing around the library wasn't helping,
either.
LXVI
Kharl
had been right. On threeday night, he had not slept that well, worrying about
what Luryessa had said, about what all the cotton for uniforms meant, about why
he had reacted so strongly to Erdyl's almost casual observations about Jeka. He
also found his thoughts swirling over the question of whether he was hopeless
as an envoy.
All the
matters that Luryessa had brought up did not surprise him.
Hagen
had prepared him for the worst concerning Hamor's intentions. Nor had
Luryessa's wealth of knowledge surprised him. She had asked nothing, but had
learned more than Kharl would have liked to reveal. Yet he knew he could not be
a hermit. He also knew that within another eight-day or so, Lord West and the
other envoys would learn more about him once they received word from the envoys
and spies in Valmurl and elsewhere in Nordla. That was, if they had not already
learned it. He doubted that he had more than another eightday at most before
word would be everywhere in Brysta that he was a mage-or might be one.
When Kharl
woke on fourday, he was still worrying, but he had some ideas. He washed and
shaved, and dressed quickly, before making his way down to the smaller
breakfast room, where a mass of egg toast and ham and breads awaited him, with
both cider and ale-more of everything than either he or Erdyl or Demyst would
ever be able to finish.
Erdyl
was already eating, heartily, with all the zest of a growing young man. He
looked up with a contented smile. "Good morning, Lord Kharl."
"Good
morning." Kharl seated himself. After he had several bites, and some
cider, he looked across the breakfast table at Erdyl. "We will need to
offer entertainment to the other envoys."
"It
is summer, Lord Kharl." The secretary looked puzzled. "One does not
entertain before late harvest."
"Harvest
will be here before that long, and it will take time to plan out such an event.
I would like you to contact other secretaries once more and work with Fundal
and Khelaya. We need to host a party or reception, or whatever they are called,
as soon as it is acceptable to do so."
"Yes,
ser."
"You
will contact the other secretaries. Explain that you have never done this, and
that is why you are talking to them so soon again. Pretend to be what they
think you are, a younger son of a lord who knows little."
"You
want me to find out everything I can?"
"Yes.
But make sure that you keep talking about our reception."
Erdyl
nodded brightly. "I can only be stupid for a while before I should have
learned something."
"That
is true. Also, if you seem not to know much ..."
"They
won't expect as much of me."
"Or
of me." Kharl hoped that was so. "I'm going to watch Lord Justicer
Reynol this morning, and then, this afternoon after we eat, the undercaptain and
I are going to take a walk. That will leave the carriage for you to use this
afternoon, if you need it."
"Yes,
ser."
"A
walk?" asked Demyst. "Not even a ride, ser?"
"We
won't be learning much about Brysta if we don't look at it. We'll walk down Crafters'
Lane. We can go into shops and talk to people. A ride may come later."
"Ser,"
began Erdyl, "envoys don't usually-"
Kharl
just looked at Erdyl. Doing what other envoys did would only make matters
worse. They had spies and retainers and knew how to use them. Kharl didn't.
"Yes,
ser."
"You
put it that way, ser, sounds like a good idea," added Demyst.
Kharl
thought so, but that depended on what they learned.
"I
was looking through the armory, and I found something that might be useful,
ser."
"You
know I'm useless with a blade, and carrying a staff would mark me." He
snorted. "Envoys don't carry cudgels, either."
"Ah
.. . ser ... I found a long truncheon. Must be years old, but it's sound, and
it's got a scabbard. Looks like a shortsword, but it's heavy. Lorken or black
oak, I'd say."
That
brought Kharl up short, but only for a moment. If it looked like a blade, at
least from a distance, the truncheon might serve several purposes. It certainly
couldn't hurt. "That's a good thought. I'll wear it this afternoon."
"Not
this morning?"
"I'm
going into the Hall of Justice itself. They won't allow weapons inside. They
don't care if I am a lord and envoy. You can leave your blade behind, or you
can wait outside for me."
"Outside,
ser."
Kharl
finished eating quickly, then went upstairs to finish getting dressed while
Demyst and Mantar readied the horses and carriage.
In his
large bedchamber, Kharl pulled on the black jacket, then fingered his chin as
he looked into the floor-length mirror. He still had trouble recognizing
himself without the beard. He hoped others in Brysta did as well. Then he
descended to the library, where he picked up the leather case he had been using
for his studies.
Mantar
had the carriage drawn up beside the residence by the time Kharl stepped outside, into what promised
to be another hazy, sultry day. He'd forgotten how steamy Brysta could be
before the late-summer rains finally arrived.
"Let's
go." Kharl climbed up into the carriage.
Demyst
followed.
The streets
of Brysta looked no different on fourday than they had on any other day. There
were still fewer people than Kharl remembered, and neither beggars nor
unaccompanied young women. He could still recall Charee running through the
streets before they had been consorted, and Tyrbel's daughters coming and
going-until the time Egen had attacked Sanyle. Had things changed that much in
little more than a year?
Just
before Mantar brought the carriage to a stop outside the Hall of Justice, Kharl
realized something else. Not only were there Watch patrollers on almost every
block, but he had not seen a single regular arms-man or lancer since he had
returned to Brysta. There had never been many, but there had been some.
"Have
you seen any armsmen or lancers?" Kharl turned to Demyst.
The
undercaptain frowned, tilting his head slightly. "Just the Watch
patrollers."
"I
haven't either."
"You
wouldn't see many in Valmurl."
"But
you'd see some."
Once he
left the carriage, Kharl walked swiftly to the outer double doors of the Hall
of Justice, then through them and into the foyer. He could sense the eyes of
the two guards turning toward them.
"I'll
wait here, ser," said Demyst, halting just inside the foyer and stepping
back against the stone wall, taking a position from which he could watch both
the doors out of the building, the staircase, and the doors to the main hall.
"I'll
likely be a while."
"Yes,
ser."
Kharl
made his way toward the double doors at the end of the foyer, doors he had only
been through once before-as a prisoner accused of a murder he had not
committed. He swallowed, then smiled as he neared the two patrollers.
"Please
be quiet, ser... The hearing has already started," said the patroller on
the left.
"What
is the case?"
"Some
fellow disturbing the peace now. Murder after that."
Kharl
slipped inside the doors and took a seat on one of the benches in the fourth
row back. He repressed a smile. Had he been dressed as a cooper, he doubted
that entry would have been so easy.
The hall
chamber was larger than the one in Valmurl, with a width of thirty cubits, a
length of fifty, and a ceiling height of ten. At the end of the chamber away
from Kharl were two daises, one behind the other, each holding a podium desk of
age-darkened deep brownish gold oak. At the seat behind the lower dais sat a
round-faced, blocky, and gray-haired man- Reynol. The square-bearded justicer
wore a blue velvet gown, trimmed in black.
The
single seat on the upper dais, its high carved back gilded and upholstered in
blue velvet, was vacant. In the single seat before the benches on the right
side of the chamber sat a dark-haired figure. Once more, on each side was a
Watch patroller, and not the regular armsmen Kharl recalled from his own trial.
At the long
narrow table on the left side between the benches and the dais sat Fasyn, along
with a younger man. Both Lord Justicer Reynol and Fasyn glanced at Kharl, but
their eyes returned quickly to the patroller who stood before the dais,
speaking slowly.
"...
picked up a stool and tried to break it over Hunsal's head ... had too much
ale, I wager, 'cause it just banged his arm, not all that hard-"
"He
attacked one of the Watch, then?" asked Reynol.
"I
wouldn't say that, your lordship. He'd drunk so much that he didn't much know
who was even around. He just went down without any of us touching him. Had to
put him on a cart to get him to the gaol."
"If
he had not attacked anyone, why did you put him in gaol?"
The
patroller looked down.
"Answer
the question, patroller."
"...
'cause, your lordship, Serjeant Quant said we had to ... said it was an order
from Captain Egen, and we didn't want to go against that..."
"Enough."
Reynol
gestured to the man sitting in the armless chair. "Senekyt, stand and step
forward."
The man
stood. Even from behind, Kharl could tell that he was young, probably not more
than eighteen. The man trembled as he straightened and waited.
"You
stand accused of disturbing the peace and of attacking the Watch.
You have
heard the accounts and the charges against you. Do you have anything to
say?"
"Ser
... your lordship ... sure as I'm standing here, I drunk too much ale. I know
that, ser, but also sure as I'm standing here, I didn't attack no Watch. I'd
never do that, ser. I know what comes of that. That's work in the quarries. I
didn't attack no Watch, ser. I didn't."
Kharl
could sense both truth and desperation in the words.
"Senekyt.
You are a foolish young man, but there is some question about all that happened.
You are hereby found guilty of disturbing the peace. Your sentence for
attacking the Watch is suspended."
"Ser
... your lordship? Suspended? What does that mean?"
"If
you are brought into the Hall of Justice at any time in the next year, you will
be found guilty of attacking the Watch, and you will be sentenced to a term in
the quarries."
"If
I do anything at all?"
"That
is correct." Reynol cleared his throat. "You are sentenced to five
lashes for disturbing the peace, and one silver for costs." He turned to
the patrollers. "Have him lashed and released."
"All
stand!" ordered the bailiff from behind Kharl.
Kharl
stood with the others and watched. Young Senekyt lowered his head as he was led
out of the Hall.
The bailiff's
staff rapped on the stone floor three times. "Is there one who would take
the Justicer's Challenge?" The bailiff did not even pause before
continuing. "There being none, the felter Myondak is here, accused of
murder, to be brought before justice!"
"Bailiff,
bring forward Myondak the felter."
The same
pair of burly patrollers marched a graying man past Kharl and up to the dais.
The man limped, and Kharl could sense the chaos of injuries that had not
healed.
"You,
the felter Myondak, have been charged with the murder of your consort Salynia.
What you say or believe is not a question. We are here to do justice, and that
justice is to determine whether you killed your consort." The justicer
seated himself.
From
behind Kharl came a rap of the staff. "All may sit."
The
hearing was brief, and unlike the first, there was no question of the felter's
guilt, not even to Kharl, but he forced himself to watch the entire proceeding,
until after the felter had been marched away and after Reynol had left the
chamber.
Then he
made his way out and rejoined Undercaptain Demyst in the foyer.
"Mantar
has the coach outside, ser. Been waiting near-on a glass."
"It's
still well before noon."
"He
said he'd rather wait here than fret."
Kharl
shook his head as he made his way to the carriage. The sky was brighter, but
still hazy, and Kharl was dripping sweat from his forehead by the time he was
seated in the coach. Even with the windows open, he was even hotter by the time
they returned to the residence.
Erdyl
was waiting inside. "I have a listing of the envoys and their secretaries
and assistants, and the possible dates in harvest that we could host a
function, ser."
"Have
you talked to anyone yet?"
"No,
ser. I had to go over the calendar. One cannot have a function on eightday or
oneday, or on any of the Lord's holidays, and I checked with Khelaya to see
what produce and fruits might be coming ripe when ..."
"After
we eat, and after I've had a lager." Kharl blotted his forehead with the
back of his hand, before belatedly recalling that he had a handkerchief tucked
inside his jacket. He almost hated to use the fine linen, but he pulled it out
and blotted both hand and forehead.
"Dinner
is ready, ser," announced Fundal, from the back of the foyer. "The
lager and white wine are chilled."
Kharl
led the two others into the dining chamber, where Khelaya had set out three
bowls of cold gourd soup. On one platter were cold fowl breasts, with a
pearapple glaze. Three different wedges of cheese sat on cutting boards, with
baskets of both rye and dark bread. A bunch of red grapes was also on each
man's platter, beside the cold soup. The pitcher holding the cool lager already
had droplets of water on it, a good measure of the dampness of the air.
After
seating himself, Kharl filled the crystal beaker with the lager, then handed
the pitcher to Demyst. Erdyl was having white wine.
"What
is the Hall of Justice like, ser?" asked Erdyl. "You've spent much
time there."
"In
some ways, I imagine they're all alike. Everyone wants something, and they all
can't have it."
"Ser?"
"The
accused doesn't want to be there, and he wants to be acquitted. The accuser
wants the accused convicted. The clerks would rather be reading than watching
and giving advice. If the lord justicer is fair, he wants to hand down
something as close to justice as possible, and if he's not, he wants to do
whatever benefits him." Kharl shrugged, then took a spoonful of the soup,
slightly peppery and tart, but not too heavy.
"You
don't sound like someone who wanted to study the law, ser." Erdyl's tone
was almost accusatory.
"I
needed to learn about the law, Erdyl. That's not the same as liking it."
"Aye,"
added Demyst. "A good lancer knows his blade well, but he'd rather not use
it. If he uses it well, he lives, and the other fellow dies. If he uses it
poorly, he dies. I'd wager that an advocate is like a blade."
Kharl
found himself surprised by Demyst's observation. Then, Hagen hadn't actually
said that the undercaptain had been stupid, just that he'd never make a good
captain. There were many reasons for that besides lack of brains.
"Do
you think magery-" Erdyl broke off his words with a wince.
"That's
a question we don't discuss." As he spoke, Kharl repressed a smile. He'd
heard Demyst's boot strike the secretary's shin. "Not now."
"Ah
.. . yes, sir."
Little
was said for the rest of the meal, with Erdyl's eyes jumping back and forth
between Demyst and Kharl.
Finally,
Kharl took a last swallow of ale and rose. "I'll be in the library.
Demyst, if you would tell Mantar to ready the carriage?"
"Yes,
ser." The undercaptain inclined his head slightly and departed.
Erdyl followed
Kharl into the library, closing the door behind them.
He
squared his shoulders and looked at Kharl. "Ser . .. I'm sorry."
Kharl
looked squarely at the red-haired young man. "Erdyl. There are times when
an apology means nothing. It might make you feel better, but the damage has
already been done. This was not one of those, but it could have been, had
anyone else been present. Even so, one never knows who might be
listening."
"Are
you going to dismiss me?"
"Demons,
no. Everyone makes mistakes. Just don't do it again." He wanted to add
something about not making the same mistake over and over, the way Arthal had,
denying it every time. There was no point to that. Kharl had learned that
people either learned from their mistakes or didn't, no matter what was said.
Erdyl's actions would tell which kind he was.
"About
the function, ser ... We need to decide on a date ..." ventured Erdyl.
Kharl
laughed. "Pick the earliest date that you think is possible. Make it a
date that will get others to wonder, but still attend."
Erdyl
nodded. "Do you want just the envoys or the envoys and their principal
secretaries?"
"See
what you think after you talk to the other secretaries."
"What
do I say if they ask about the magery in the rebellion?"
"Just
tell the simple truth. That Lord Ghrant has two mages, and that you really
don't know that much about either one, and that your envoy has suggested most
strongly that you not discuss what you don't know."
A faint,
if worried smile, appeared on Erdyl's face.
"That's
the truth, isn't it?"
"Yes,
ser."
"Good.
I'll send Mantar back with the carriage after he drops us off. I suppose you
could ride one of the mounts, but the carriage might be easier."
Erdyl
nodded dubiously.
There
was a rap on the library door.
"The
carriage is ready," called Demyst.
"I'll
see you later," Kharl told Erdyl, "and we'll talk over what you've
discovered." He nodded and opened the door.
Undercaptain
Demyst followed Kharl to the carriage.
Neither
spoke until they had left the drive of the envoy's residence.
"I'm
sorry, ser. The young lord wasn't thinking."
"You
were right. He wasn't thinking. I had a word with him."
"I
thought so, the way he looked when you left the library."
Had
Kharl been that hard on Erdyl? Or was the young man too sensitive?
"Never
make a lancer officer," Demyst went on. "Frets too much about what
others think. That stuff about what other envoys do. Had Lord Ghrant wanted
someone who did what other envoys did, it'd not be you, begging your pardon,
ser."
Kharl
burst into laughter. "You're so right." He was also beginning to see
more clearly why Hagen thought Demyst would be helpful to Kharl and not
necessarily that good a senior lancer officer. A properly deferential officer
would never have put a boot on Erdyl's shins.
"He'll
learn," the undercaptain went on. "Not like he's stupid or anything.
Just hasn't seen enough."
Kharl
wondered if he himself had.
Before
that long, Mantar stopped the coach at the head of Crafters' Lane. "You sure
you don't want me to meet you somewhere, ser?"
"No.
I need the walk, even in this heat." He also needed a better feel for what
was happening in Brysta. It almost didn't feel like the same city he had left.
That could reflect the changes in him, but he didn't think so, not with what
Erdyl and others had said.
Kharl
stepped out, at the intersection of Fifth Cross and Crafters' Lane. He stood
almost directly in front of the shop of Zabyl, the tinsmith, and he turned to
take in the small leaded-glass windows, but, clean as the glass was, the
display space was empty, as it had always been. Zabyl had never displayed any
of his work.
"Tinsmith
doesn't show anything," said Demyst. "Must be good, or real
cautious."
"Probably
both." Kharl could smell the odor of hot metal, despite the closed front
door. He also had the feeling he was being watched. Slowly, he turned as if
surveying the shops. A young Watch patroller in his crisp maroon-and-blue
uniform on the opposite corner made no secret of his observations.
Kharl
smiled politely before turning and walking past Zabyl's to the adjoining shop.
There, Kharl stopped to study the bolts of woolen cloth shown in the square
window. One was a muted plaid of blues and greens. Kharl frowned. The cloth
looked more like something that Gharan might have woven. Was the weaver doing
so well that he could sell in his own shop, and place cloth in Derdan's small
factorage as well? Even with the cotton from Hamor? Beside it was a bolt of
black wool, clearly from Reduce, along with another of white. Had the white
come from Austra? From his neighbor, Arynal, who had boasted of his fabled
white wool? Kharl shook his head. That, he doubted.
He
studied the window again, then leaned forward and looked down, then up. Derdan
had added brackets to hold bars behind the heavy shutters.
"Not
bad wool," offered the undercaptain. "Black has to be from Reduce.
Wouldn't be surprised if it cost a good silver a half yard."
"It
costs a half gold a yard." At least it used to. Kharl regretted saying
that much, but the words had popped out because he had once asked, when he had
been thinking that it would have made a warm and stylish coat for Charee.
"That's
right. You'd know. You were on a merchanter. Everything from Reduce costs a
lot."
"It
does." Even the knowledge, Kharl reflected. He turned away from the woolen
factor's and looked across the lane, taking in the two shops, side by side
there, that of Hamyl the potter on the left, and Gharan's weaving shop on the
right. Gharan had never used a window to display his work, just a sample board
at eye height beside the doorway.
Kharl
wanted to see Gharan-and Jeka, he had to admit. But with the patroller watching
so closely, and after Erdyl had visited just the day before, he wasn't sure
that was wise. Still...
He stood
there for a long moment, before finally deciding against it, then wondering if
he were being too foolishly cautious.
Absently,
as he used his handkerchief to blot his forehead, before turning to head toward
the cooperage, he noted the barrel of sand to the left of Derdan's window. It
was the same barrel of sand he'd used to put out the fire in Tyrbel's
scriptorium on the day that his whole life had finally changed.
The
cooperage was no longer boarded up, as it had been the last time he had seen
it, and the paint on the sign that proclaimed MALLAMET, COOPER looked faded,
although it could not have been much older than a year. A year? Just a year? So
much had happened, since Charee .. . since Arthal had left... and Warrl had
gone off with his aunt. For a long moment, Kharl just looked.
Then he
straightened and studied the cooperage. The windows were dusty on the outside,
and Kharl could see that sawdust clung to panes on the inside. Sawdust? A good
cooper didn't create that much sawdust. Either Mallamet wasn't that good, or he
hadn't cleaned in a long time. From what Kharl knew of Mallamet, both were
doubtless true. The door was open, inviting a breeze that had not appeared.
Kharl
kept walking, slowly, until he came to the scriptorium. Heavy iron shutters
were drawn back from the inside of the small display window, shutters that had
not been there before. The display area held several books on pale blue wool,
but not, of course, Tyrbel's masterpiece, the red leather-bound Book of Godly
Prayer-a work that Tyrbel had done as an offering to his faith. That had been
destroyed in the oil fire Kharl had fought that fateful morning.
The sign
on the scriptorium had changed as well. While it had once borne Tyrbel's name,
now it now announced one Dasult as a scrivener. Kharl had never heard of
Dasult. He wondered what had happened to Sanyle. Did he dare risk asking? If he
had not heard of Dasult, scrivener, it was unlikely that the scrivener would
recognize him.
"Just
wait here at the door," Kharl told Demyst.
"Ser
... that'd be dangerous."
"There's
no one inside but the scrivener, and you'll be out here in case anyone else
comes along. Keep your eye on that patroller. He's been following us."
"Thought
so," murmured the undercaptain. "You sure about inside?"
Kharl
nodded, then opened the door and stepped into the scriptorium, ready to use his
sight shield to vanish, if need be.
A young
man, more like Erdyl's age, stepped forward. Kharl thought he had seen him,
recently, but he could not say where.
"Ser
.. . could I be of service to you?"
"It
is possible," Kharl replied. "It would not be quite ..." He
paused. "You're Dasult?"
"Yes,
ser."
"I have
not been in Brysta in some time, and I recalled that there was a scrivener
here, but he was much older. Your father, perhaps?"
Dasult
shook his head. "No, ser. That was Tyrbel. He was a most noted scrivener,
but he was murdered, I'm told, on the street outside. I purchased the building
from his daughter. She wished to leave Brysta."
"Hmmm
... sad when those sort of things happen. I suppose she went off elsewhere in
Nordla or to somewhere in Candar."
"Vizyn
in Austra, I believe. She said she was going to help an older scrivener, a
friend of her father's."
Kharl
nodded. If Sanyle had reached Taleas, then she was in good hands. For the
moment, he could only hope that she had. "I saw her once. She seemed a
most sweet child."
"My
consort said she was, and that she had suffered much."
"How
do you find business?"
"It
is improving. I have been accepted as a recorder at the Hall of Justice, and
that has helped."
That was
where Kharl had seen him, that very morning, but he had not connected the man
to the scriptorium. "How do you find working there?"
"It
is most exacting, but it pays well. Are you certain I could not interest you in
one of these? Here is an illustrated rendition of Tales of Cyad. And here, I
have the verses of Lenchret, a near-perfect copy of the one in Lord West's
private library."
"You
must have been privileged indeed to copy that."
"No,
kind ser. Lord West wanted a copy, and allowed me to make a second in return
for my charging but half what I told him."
"He
got a bargain."
Dasult
laughed. "In silvers, he did, but I always wanted that book, and I made a
second copy for myself, as well as this fair copy. I hope not to lose too
much."
"He
must have quite a library."
"He
does indeed, but I fear many of the volumes have not been read in years."
"That
is often the case. How did you find him?"
"He
was charming, but.. . preoccupied. I could not help but notice that he and his
eldest had many visitors, even at the beginning of summer, when I was finishing
the copying."
"Lords
must deal with envoys and trade, and lancers, and all manner of people, I would
wager. Even in summer. I'd wager, though, that you saw none from Reduce."
"No,
I did not. They were never announced, but many were clad as are Hamorians, and
more than a few were in uniforms I had not seen before."
"There
are several Hamorian merchanters in the harbor, and there was a Nordlan trader
an eightday or so ago."
"The
Hamorians laughed at my work." Dasult stiffened. "They claimed to
have built a machine that can make hundreds of copies of a book. Of what use is
that? There are not that many people who would buy so many." He forced a
smile. "Did you see The Art of Healing?"
Kharl
ignored the sales effort. "Perhaps the Hamorians did not understand the
craft that goes into creating a book the way you do?"
"They
do not. Books, especially those such as the verses of Lenchret, they should be
read and treasured. What about The History of the Ancients? It is rare, but I
can let you have it for a mere gold."
Kharl
smiled. "It is not a bad book, but what would I do with two?"
Dasult's
eyes widened, then he laughed. "I cannot sell you what you already
have."
"I
am not buying today," Kharl said, "but I may be back."
As he
left, Kharl wondered if he could have discovered more. Possibly, but he was not
a spy, and he didn't think he could have learned more without making Dasult
wary. He also doubted that what else he could have learned would have added
much.
"Did
you see any interesting books?" asked Demyst, as Kharl rejoined him.
"He
had one that I've been reading. He wanted to sell it to me for a mere
gold."
"A
gold?"
"Some
books are costly."
Kharl did
not glance at the Tankard, the tavern whose doors had not yet opened, as he
passed. He did study quietly the shops and narrow dwellings as he headed
downhill, passing a white-haired laundress with her wash in a tall basket on
her head, then a teamster with an empty wagon headed uphill. Behind them, the
Watch patroller followed.
The two
continued down Crafters' Lane. Less than a block farther west, Kharl saw
Dhulat's cabinetry shop. He'd bought a modest chest from the crafter years
before, but, like most folk, Dhulat had turned away from Kharl once Egen had
put out the word that he was after the cooper.
Another
two blocks toward the harbor, and they reached the upper market square. With
the heat, few of the peddlers and vendors remained, and the low stone wall that
surrounded the near-empty square was vacant. Topped with redstone with rounded
edges, the wall was a good place for sitting and resting, and there had always
been a beggar or two there. Today, there were none.
Past the
square another hundred cubits or so was Hyesal's apothecary shop, clearly
marked with the crossed pestles above the door. But the door was boarded shut.
Kharl
wondered if the apothecary had died, or had fallen victim to Egen and the
Watch.
He kept
walking, turning southward at the next corner, so as to head back in the
direction of the envoy's residence. For the moment, he had seen enough.
LXVII
Halfway
through the early-evening meal, Kharl cleared his throat, then waited.
"We're
going to the White Pony tonight," he finally announced. "Right after
we eat."
"Sounds
like a tavern or an inn, ser," offered Demyst.
"A
tavern, mostly, and it's not all that good. Cevor and Alynar will come with
us."
Demyst
nodded. Puzzlement warred with curiosity on Erdyl's face.
"I'd
like to hear what people are saying." Kharl paused. "We'll walk, and
I'll need to find or borrow an old tunic. I will wear the truncheon."
"You
forgot this afternoon," Demyst pointed out.
"You
had your blade," Kharl countered.
"Best
one of us did, ser."
"That's
true." Kharl smiled and went back to finishing his cutlet.
Less
than a glass later, the five walked toward the open door of the White Pony.
Kharl mopped his brow with his sleeve. The sun had been down for over a glass,
but the evening was still too warm for his liking, and harvest was a good three
eightdays away, although some fruits were appearing in the market, according to
Khelaya.
"Five
of you ..." said the red-faced man who greeted them. "You'll not be
making trouble, now?"
"We're
looking for a cool ale," Kharl said. "It's hot out."
"That
it is. Best you take the round table off the wall there."
Kharl
led the way. A third of the tables were empty. Most of those in the White Pony
were men, and most of those were men older than Kharl, men with leather faces,
rough-cut beards. There were a few women, but all three of those were graying
or white-haired, and they were with older men. So were the handful or so of
younger men.
Kharl
and those with him had barely taken the wall table when the murmurs began,
mumblings that Kharl could hear through his order-senses, despite the louder
conversation and bustle. Still, he had to concentrate.
"...
who they are?"
"...
who cares ... long as they got coins ..."
"...
big fellow .. . follow him ..."
"...
others .. . look like a clerk and three guards ..."
"...
more like meres ..."
".
.. all those Hamorians pissprick Egen's got wouldn't like that..."
"Careful...
don't know who's listening ..."
"Sides
... what could four meres do ..."
"Fellows!"
called an angular server, who had appeared at Demyst's shoulder, "what you all want?"
She brushed back a lock of short black hair, her eyes darting around the table
before centering on Kharl.
"Pale
ale," Kharl said, recalling that lager in most taverns was merely watered
ale.
"Lager's
a lot better. Doesn't cost any more. Everything's three coppers a mug. Wine's
five."
"...
silver for bad wine?" murmured Erdyl.
"Look,
fellows ... times been hard ... especially in the south."
"Lager,
then." Kharl offered a smile.
"Make
that two," added Demyst.
"Four,"
added Alynar.
Erdyl
shrugged helplessly. "Five."
"Any
eats?" asked the server.
"Got
any dark bread?" replied Kharl.
"Cost
you. Rye's one for a loaf, two for a basket. Dark's two and four."
"Basket
of dark," Kharl said, showing a pair of silvers.
"You
got it. Five lagers and a basket of dark."
The
lower murmurs continued.
"...
got coins .. ."
"...
all of 'em got blades, and the two big 'uns'd break you in half..."
"...
always that way ..."
".
.. right it is ... why they got coins and you don't..."
The
server returned with five brown crockery mugs, setting them quickly on the
battered wooden tabletop, so deftly that despite her speed, not a drop slopped
onto the wood. "Lagers." Then she set down the basket of bread.
"Be three silvers and four."
Kharl
handed over four silvers, as well as two more coppers.
"Thanks."
The broad smile was both warm and professional.
Before
she could step away, Kharl spoke. "There used to be armsmen in here all
the time, didn't there?"
"Haven't
been any since spring. Say they all went south to get the brigands out of the
hills. Said that was the reason we didn't get no produce and stuff from
there." The server shrugged, tossing her head to flip the errant lock of
black hair back. "Miss the coins. Don't miss the rest of it."
"Looks
slow, even for mideightday."
"Slow
all the time now, except when the patrollers get off." She glanced toward
the door.
"They're
as bad as the armsmen?" suggested Kharl.
The
server just shook her head. "Check on you fellows later." She moved
to another table, where three white-haired men and a woman sat. "Need a
refill, gramps?"
"Hain't
finished what I got, Selda."
"Way
you're drinkin', gramps, you never will..."
Kharl
smiled.
"She
didn't want to talk about the patrollers," observed Erdyl.
"Seemed
that way," added Demyst.
Kharl
said nothing, but studied the lager with his order-senses. There was no obvious
chaos in it. He took a sip. He'd had better. He'd seldom had worse. After a
second sip, he broke off a chunk of the bread and chewed off some. Warm,
crusty, and flavorful, it was far better than the lager. He hated to think what
the ale tasted like. He held the mug as though he would continue to sip, but
concentrated on hearing what was being said at the other tables.
"...
sent Gorot home last fiveday ... said wasn't enough work for two ..."
"...
Melanya . .. thinks her Fradol's got eyes for Jaela ..."
"...
knocks her up and looks elsewhere ... Ought to knock him up..."
"She'd
come home then, and your coppers'd be flowing then ..."
"...
have children ... always keep paying ... they never notice ... good times and
bad ..."
"...
seen better times ..." *
"Haven't
we all?" i
Kharl
had been slowly studying the servers as they passed, but he hadn't seen Enelya,
from whom Kharl and Jeka had wheedled, begged, and bought food. The long-faced blond
server handing the tables in the far corner was familiar-but he couldn't recall
her name. He gestured to her, holding up a silver.
"Yes,
ser?" She glanced toward the kitchen nervously. "Selda's your
server..."
"Not
about servers," Kharl replied. "A silver for you, if you can answer a
question or two. Nothing more.'
"A
silver?" Clearly, she didn't believe him.
He
beckoned for her to lean down. "When I was here, a year ago, there was a dark-haired girl, very friendly.
Enelya, I think her name was. She had a sister, too, except something terrible
happened to her."
"Right
awful it was. She drowned in the harbor. The sister, I mean. Poor thing."
"Does
Enelya ...?"
"Left
here, not more 'n eightday ago. Couldn't say where."
Kharl could
tell she was lying. He added a second silver to the first. "You might know
where she went."
"Couldn't
say, ser." Her voice wavered.
"Is
she in trouble?"
The
server glanced to the door. "Please, ser."
"Egen?"
Kharl added another silver.
Her mouth
opened. "She told him no." Her eyes darted away. "Said she had
to go. Knew a place to hole up, wasn't bein' used. Didn't say where."
"The
urchin's place?"
The
girl's eyes widened. "Don't tell."
Kharl
pressed the silvers into her hand. "I won't. Tell the others that you're
meeting me later." He smiled. "Then sneak away and get some
sleep."
"Ser..."
"Go..."
She
darted away, but Kharl noted that she had kept the silvers-out of sight.
"Ser?"
asked Erdyl.
"Later."
Kharl took another small swallow of the lager. He kept listening, but he heard
nothing new.
After
another half glass, he nodded to Demyst. "Time to go." He stood and
could feel eyes turning to watch him and the others as they walked from the
White Pony.
Outside,
Kharl walked to the first cross street, Second Cross, and turned westward.
"Ah,
ser," murmured Erdyl, "the residence is back that way."
"I
know," Kharl said cheerfully. "We need to investigate
something."
"You
know where the missing server is, don't you?" Erdyl's tone was almost
accusatory. "What does she know?"
"I
don't know, but I'd like to find out. I'd also like to repay a favor, if I can." Kharl lengthened his stride. The
air had cooled some while they had been in the White Pony, and a slight breeze blew
out of the north, mixing the scent of harbor and dead fish with smoke, cooking
oil, and other odors. A year before, he would not even have noticed the smell.
As they
neared where Second Cross met Copper Road, Kharl could not only see but sense
the Watch patrollers coming up the darkened Copper Road, even before he heard
their boots on the yellow brick pavement of the street, not that he could tell
the color in the darkness, but he recalled it all too well. "Patrollers
are coming."
Demyst,
Cevor, and Alynar all checked their sabres. Belatedly, so did Erdyl.
Kharl
stopped at the intersection, waiting.
"Where
are you headed?" The lead patroller barked at Kharl. Then as his eyes took
in Demyst, Erdyl, and the two guards, he added, "Ser."
"I
was taking an evening walk, patroller," Kharl said politely. "I was
told it was unwise to walk alone. So I brought some friends."
The
patroller looked at Kharl, then at Erdyl and the others. "Can be, ser.
Take care. Best to avoid the area just above the harbor."
"Thank
you." Kharl watched as the patrollers turned and headed back along Second
Cross.
"...
hate that... have to tell the serjeant... five of 'em ... three guards .. .
think I'm going to take on that..."
"...
serjeant understands ..."
"Captain
doesn't.. ."
"Serjeant
won't tell him ... never does ..."
Only
when the patrollers were a good five rods away did Kharl turn onto
Kharl
could smell the rendering yard long before they reached it, except the pungency
was not what he had recalled. "That's the Tenderer's."
"Looks
like the gate's boarded up," Erdyl said, stopping momentarily.
Kharl
tensed momentarily, then took a deep breath. Werwal had been known for speaking
his mind. "Is there a proclamation or anything posted there?"
"No,
ser."
Werwal
would have to wait. There was little Kharl could do now. There might be little
enough he could do for Enelya, but if the other server at the White Pony knew
where she was, she would not be safe from Egen long. Kharl kept walking.
Uphill
from the Tenderer's was the serviceway off the alley, and Kharl recalled both
all too well. He stopped and studied the short serviceway beyond the alley.
"You
going in there, ser?" asked Demyst.
"There
aren't any brigands or beggars here," Kharl replied softly. He eased
forward along the alley, then turned into the serviceway, stopping short of the
brick wall. Behind it were hidden two walls less than four cubits apart, one
the brick wall of the renderer and the other stone wall of Drenzel the tanner.
Even in the dim light the ancient and worn yellow bricks of the wall directly
before him stood out from the newer red bricks paving the serviceway. He cast
his order-senses beyond the wall that was but a head or so above his own
height. One person crouched in the hidey-hole that had been Jeka's. Enelya? Who
else could it be?
"She's
alone," Kharl whispered to Demyst. "I'm climbing over."
"Ser!"
hissed the undercaptain.
"I'll
be careful."
Kharl
scrambled up to the top of the wall, then used his order- senses to harden the
air just outside where Enelya crouched in the hidey-hole Jeka had made-or
found. He stumbled slightly coming down off the wall, but caught his balance.
There was no sound from behind the worn burlap that concealed the hidey-hole.
"Enelya,
I'm someone Jeka sent."
Still no
sound.
"You
stay here, and Egen'll find you, sure as I'm standing here."
She
lurched from the hole, half-staggering, half-lunging at him, using a sabre
broken off a span short of the tip-but with a sharp and jagged edge that almost
came to a point.
Clang!
Fragments of metal sprayed off the hardened air shield onto the summer-hardened
clay between the two walls. Enelya went down in a heap.
Kharl could
sense the knife.
"The
knife won't help. You can either trust me, or wait for Egen to find you."
"Won't
go ... no one ..."
Kharl
stood there. What could he do? He didn't know the gentler uses of order. After
a moment, he tried again, speaking softly and trying to use his order-senses to
project a sense of truth and calm. "I'm trying to help you."
"No
one can."
"I
can." He dropped the air shield, but remained ready to call it up again if
he needed to.
"Sure
. .. and I'm Lady of Brysta." Enelya sat up, her eyes taking in Kharl.
Abruptly, she swallowed, looking at the fragments of metal on the clay, then at
Kharl. "You some kind of mage?"
"I
know a little."
"Why
didn't you . .." She shook her head.
"It
doesn't work that way. It's better for defense." Kharl didn't like
mentioning magery, but he didn't know what else to say.
"You
... you coulda killed me."
"I'm
trying to keep you from being killed."
"Why
me? You're some sort of mage ... or a lord. Easier to buy a girl from the Bardo
..." Enelya slowly stood, her eyes glancing past Kharl to the wall behind
him.
"I'm
not looking for that. I'm trying to pay a debt."
"Think
I'd pay a clipped copper for that?" The woman snorted.
"For
a friend. Jeka helped him, and he said you helped her. He said that you'd been
through hard times. You lost your sister. Everyone thought she drowned in the
harbor. Jeka told my friend that she almost drowned as a child. She was afraid
of water, and wouldn't go near it."
"What
do you want?"
"I
want to give you a position in my house, as a helper to the cook and as a
server for dinners. I'll pay you well, maybe not so much as you get at the
White Pony, but you'll keep every copper, and you'll have a room of your own in
a place where Egen won't find you. Even if he did, he'd have to cross his
father and his brother to hurt you."
"He
would? How's that?"
"I'm
the Austran envoy here in Brysta. I've been here less than two eightdays."
"Sure..."
Kharl sighed.
"Do you think that I'd go to the White Pony, and climb over Tenderer's
walls just to find someone for bed? Besides, you need a bath."
Abruptly,
Enelya laughed, if softly. After a moment, she said, "How are you going to
get me to your place safe-like?"
Kharl
gestured to the wall. "I have three guards and my secretary waiting to see
if you'll accept the offer."
There
was a long sigh. "Guess I've got little choice."
"Ah . .. the knife ..." Kharl said. "If you want to
keep it, then you go over the wall first."
"I'll
keep it."
Kharl
stepped back until he was almost against the stone wall. "Then you may go
first."
Enelya
nodded, then nimbly climbed the wall.
Kharl followed,
half-amazed that the woman was waiting in the ser- viceway when he descended.
Then, the four men had stepped back.
"This
is Enelya. I've offered her a position as a retainer at the residence. You're
not to mention her name to anyone except to people in the house."
"Yes, ser."
Kharl,
his order-senses half on Enelya, led the way back to the residence. He did make
one detour, to avoid another set of patrollers, but in half a glass, they stood
in the back hall of the residence as Kharl rang the bell for Fundal.
The
steward appeared, dressed in his trousers and boots, and in a hastily donned
tunic.
Fundal
looked from Kharl to the bedraggled Enelya. "Ser?"
"This
is Enelya. She's going to help Khelaya ... and you, when she's not working in the
kitchen. She has some experience serving, but it's mostly in taverns."
"Ah
... ser," stammered the steward.
"It's
not like that," Kharl snapped. "She once helped someone I knew.
Someone I owe a lot to. There's a man after her who'd kill her if he could. I'm
paying a debt, and I don't want a word about her going out of the residence. It
does, and you go with it." Kharl's last words were cold.
Fundal
took a step backward and swallowed.
"She'll
need some better clothes, but I imagine Khelaya can help with that, and she's
to have something to eat and a chance to clean up."
"Ah
..." Fundal kept glancing from the woman to Kharl, then back to Enelya.
"Fundal..."
Kharl sighed.
"You
seen what's happening to women here?" asked Demyst, glaring at the steward.
Surprised
by the undercaptain's statement, Kharl glanced at Demyst.
"I
have," came another voice-Khelaya's. The cook
stepped into the foyer. She nodded to Kharl. "Begging your pardon, Lord
Kharl, but I was checking the marinade." Her eyes went to Enelya. Her voice softened.
"You need a bath, woman, and some clean clothes. We'll take care of
you." She looked back toward the men. "There won't be any words out
of the kitchen, and it's about time we got more help around here, ser, especially
if you want functions."
Kharl
suppressed a grin.
Khelaya
looked at Kharl. "Lord Kharl... best you lay out that set of garments for
cleaning. Look like you've been crawling through alleys."
"We
have," Kharl replied. "And I will."
He was
smiling as he headed upstairs. He only hoped that Enelya would realize that she
was safer in the residence than anywhere else.
LXVIII
Kharl
woke on fiveday to a gray drizzle outside his open windows. The air was so warm
that he was covered in sweat, even though he had thrown off the light sheet
sometime in the night. He struggled to his feet and to the bath chamber. There,
after shaving, he splashed his face with cool water, knowing that the relief
would be momentary and the afternoon would be even steamier.
Had
Enelya stayed or sneaked off? He'd already decided that he would not pursue her
if she had. One chance was enough. Still... he wondered what she really felt.
After
dressing, but not with either waistcoat or jacket, he slipped down the back
stairs to the kitchen, using his sight shield to conceal himself. There, in the
rear washroom, off the kitchen, Enelya was scrubbing something, actually
humming to herself. She wore a faded maroon shirt and gray trousers. Her dark
hair was tied back.
Khelaya
moved to the door, less than a rod from where Kharl observed through his
order-senses. For a moment, she stood watching the younger woman, unaware of
the concealed mage. Then she cleared her throat. "How's that coming?"
"Need
more pumice, but it'll be clean. Hasn't been in a while, looks like."
"Way
it ought to be, but never have enough people here to do things right."
Khelaya snorted. "You stay here, and you'll be a big help. Don't really
have enough retainers here for a proper envoy's residence. Lucky we are that
Lord Kharl's a practical sort."
"Lord
Kharl. .. that was Lord Kharl that found me?"
"Large as life."
"He's
really the envoy from Austra?"
"Don't
know of none other. Good enough sort, but don't mess with him. Set Fundal right
about who had the best goods. I'd been telling Fundal that for years. Never listened
to me. Lord Kharl had him straightened out in less 'n day."
"What
kind of lord is he?"
"Can't rightly say. He's Lord Kharl of Cantyl, and he did a
lot for Lord Ghrant when some of the lords rebelled. He's some sort of advocate
or something, too. Say he was an officer on a trading ship when he was
younger."
"I
wonder..."
"What's
that?"
"He
knew about me. He said that he was paying back a favor because I'd been good to
someone else. But... he knew where I was."
"He
just showed up where you were hiding?" asked Khelaya.
"Like he knew all about it."
"Someone
musta told him. Do you know who?"
"I'm
not sure ... there was an old man, a beggar ... he was with a girl I grew up
with in Sagana ... I was hiding where she'd been. She got a better place here
in Brysta. Never said how ... Told me not to say where. Haven't. Won't."
"I'm
not askin'," Khelaya said with a laugh.
Behind
his sight shield, Kharl winced. Old man? Maybe he'd just looked that way when
he'd been hiding from Egen while he had been waiting for the Seastag to return
to Brysta.
"Tellin'
you like it is."
"Just
count yourself fortunate." Khelaya sniffed. "Sun doesn't always shine
down the alleys." After a moment, she added, "There's more pumice in
the storeroom. You can get it."
Enelya
rose from beside the scrubbing tub. "I'll be right back."
Kharl
slipped away and up the rear stairs before releasing the sight shield. Then he made
his way down the main staircase and to the breakfast room. Old man?
He had
barely seated himself before both Fundal and Khelaya entered the breakfast
nook, almost behind Kharl.
"Lord
Kharl, ser?" began the steward.
"Yes?"
"About
Enelya, ser?" asked Fundal. "You never said ..."
Kharl
studied the two. Fundal shifted his weight from boot to boot. Khelaya wore a
faint smile above the batter-stained apron.
"How much to pay her?" Kharl frowned. "Isn't there a
standard wage for servers? Or wasn't there?"
"Last
one we had was Chovara," Khelaya said. "She got a silver an eightday.
That was two seasons back, though."
Kharl
reflected. Khelaya received three silvers an eightday, as well as a large room
in the rear quarters. "She's getting a room and food."
"Better
than she had," said Fundal.
"She
needs better clothes," added Khelaya, "if you want her to serve at
functions."
"What
do you two think?" Kharl nodded at Fundal.
"Silver
an eightday."
"Silver
and three," suggested Khelaya.
"How
about a silver and two?" Kharl said. "But
she gets three silvers for better clothes. Just this one time."
The two
exchanged glances. Then both nodded.
"Why
don't you both tell her?" Kharl paused, then added, "I checked the
ledgers. You've both been paid the same amount for over two years. Isn't that
right?"
"Yes, ser."
"Starting
this eightday, you each get more. A silver an eightday more. Each. For
now." Both smiled.
"And
you can promise Enelya that she can look forward to more if you are both
satisfied with her work."
"Yes, ser."
After
Fundal had left, Kharl reminded himself that he also needed to raise Mantar's
wages, but less than those of Khelaya and Fundal. From what he could see,
Fundal and Khelaya were doing most of the work, although the steward did the
dirty cleaning when he thought Kharl would not be needing him, something Kharl
had become first aware of when he and Demyst had inspected the empty barracks
spaces. He didn't know about the gardener. He'd have to talk that over with
Fundal and perhaps Mantar.
Khelaya
returned with a platter of fresh egg toast and ham slices, and a small pitcher
of redberry syrup. "Here you are, ser."
"Thank
you." He paused. "Do you think she'll work out?"
"I'd
say so, ser, but the proof's in the pie."
Kharl
laughed softly. Wasn't that always so?
After
breakfast, he ushered Erdyl into the study, closing the door behind him.
The secretary
waited, a faintly quizzical look on his unlined face.
"Erdyl...
I have another task for you."
"Ser?"
"The
Tenderer's place we passed last night. .. there's a
tannery just above it."
Erdyl's
quizzical smile faded.
"My
neighbor raises cattle and sheep. I'd like to know what the rates are for hides
here. See if you can get an idea from the tanner."
"Ser?"
"You
have cattle at Norbruel, don't you?"
"Well... yes, ser."
"Then
use that, too. Complain that I don't know anything, if you have to, but see
what you can find out, about how their prices are, about what they see in the
city, but get them to talk about anything, the more the better. And see if
he'll tell you anything about why the Tenderer's place is boarded up. I've
never heard of anyone shutting down a Tenderer. Brysta doesn't feel right,
but..." Kharl did not want to explain. "Keep your eyes open, for just
about anything. Oh ... take Alynar or Cevor, but leave them outside and out of
sight when you talk to the tanner. The tanner's name-I had it here somewhere
..." Kharl walked to the desk where he shuffled through the small stack of
papers, before looking up. He hadn't looked, but didn't want Erdyl to know
that. "Drenzel, that's it."
"You
want me to do that now?"
"The sooner the better. I'm going over to the Hall of Justice for
a while. I'd have you come with me, but it would be better if you and Alynar or
Cevor rode."
"Yes, ser."
Kharl
could sense that Erdyl was puzzled, but Kharl didn't want to tell him much, not until he'd talked to
Drenzel and reported back to Kharl.
Kharl
had to wait half a glass before Mantar had the carriage ready, because he'd
forgotten to tell anyone.
After a
glass or so that morning in the Hall of Justice library, Kharl slipped back
downstairs into the Hall, to hear several trials held by Lur-tedd, the other
lord justicer, who, as he recalled, was supposed to be more closely tied to
Overcaptain Osten. After two very long glasses in the hot Hall, when the second
trial was completed, and one Astolan had been convicted of disturbing the
peace-and sentenced to a season in the quarries-Kharl had come to two
conclusions.
There
was little difference between the two lord justicers, and he was not about to
find out any more than he already knew from studying what went on in the Hall
of Justice.
He left the
Hall, and he and Demyst made their way outside, finding a shady spot to wait
for Mantar.
"They
do it much different here, ser?" asked the undercaptain.
"The
procedures are almost the same. I think the sentences are harder." Kharl
really didn't wish to say more, not where anyone could hear.
Despite
the shade, the day was hot, and Kharl was perspiring profusely by the time
Mantar returned with the carriage less than a half glass later.
"We'll
take another ride through Brysta, starting at the harbor and working up through
all the cross streets," Kharl told the driver.
"Be
a long trip to go a short ways, ser."
"That
it will be, but we need to see some things." Kharl opened the door and
stepped into the carriage, making sure the windows were open.
As they
rode, Kharl counted Watch patrollers. In addition to the harbor inspectors,
there were four patrollers at the foot of the piers, although there was only
one non-Hamorian ship, and that had to be from Reduce, flying as it was an
ensign of the black ryall on a white background. There were four patrollers at
the lower market square, and two were mounted, the first time Kharl had seen
that-ever. The two around the upper square were also mounted, and there seemed
to be a pair on foot at practically every other corner of a cross street and
road. By the time they returned to the residence, Kharl had counted over a
hundred patrollers in an area that amounted to less than a quarter of Brysta
proper.
Erdyl
was waiting when Kharl returned and entered the library, followed by Demyst.
The young secretary stood immediately. "Ser."
"What
did you find out?" Kharl blotted his forehead once more.
"The
tanner wouldn't say much, except that it all depends. Good bull leather, that
will take splits, a good hide might fetch almost a gold. Sheep fleeces are
cheap, three coppers, maybe a silver."
"Did
he say anything about the Hamorians or Lord South?"
"Said
that with the trouble in the south, lots of herders were selling off part of
their flocks, those they couldn't keep under roof at night, and that was
driving down prices. Might be why wool prices were going up, too. He claimed he
didn't know anything about the Hamorians, and Lord South, except that Lord
South was a doddering old fool."
"What
about the renderer?"
"His
place has been closed for an eightday, or thereabouts. The tanner said he was
in gaol. Something about tariff farmers. He didn't let one in, and in the night
the patrollers came and smashed up things." Erdyl shrugged. "That's
what he said. I couldn't believe that he said the patrollers did that."
"The
tanners and the Tenderers usually will say more than other craf-ters,"
Kharl said.
"No
one else wants to do what they do," suggested Demyst.
Kharl
turned and walked to the desk. Should he? If he didn't... He looked at Erdyl.
"I'm sorry to have you riding all over Brysta, but I have another errand
for you, after we eat. You'll need to go to the Hall of Justice, and see if you
can find out what will come before each justicer in the next eightday, or the
next two. If Fasyn or the clerks ask, tell them that I'm interested in
listening to certain cases, but that, as an envoy, my time is limited. So I
wanted to pick those of most interest to me."
"Ser . .. will they tell me?"
"They
might." Kharl forced a grin. "They're supposed to post the dockets,
but I've never found out where. You could say that, if you need to. Take some
paper and a markstick. You'll probably have to copy them, or take them
down."
"Ser...?"
"A
listing of those cases could prove very useful." One way or another, Kharl
thought. "It's too bad they haven't kept the case files up to date. It
doesn't help that the newest records are more than four years old."
"Do
you think that's because the lord justicers don't want anyone seeing the
records of the way they decided things?" asked Erdyl.
"The
records only matter if the law means something," Kharl replied, "and
if there's a way to make sure that the justicers follow the law. If the
justicers are twisting the law to do what Lord West wants, they won't want
recent records. Not accurate ones, anyway."
"You
think they're doing that?"
Kharl nodded, a wry smile on his lips. "We can't do much
about that. Now ... let's get something to eat."
LXIX
After
the midday meal on a hazy sixday, Kharl retreated to the library, waiting for
Enelya. He would have liked to have waited longer to talk to her, but he needed
to know more about what was happening in Brysta, and he would have felt odd
trying to contact other envoys and immediately questioning them. He'd taken off
his jacket and was debating whether to shed the waistcoat when there was a
timid rap on the doorframe. The door was open.
"Come
in, Enelya." Kharl gestured to the chair across from the desk, then settled
into his own chair.
The
serving girl sat down on the edge of the straight-backed chair. Her hair was
drawn back from her face. She did not look at Kharl, and for the moment, that
was fine with the mage. He waited to see what she might say.
"Ser
... I'd been meaning to thank you ..."
"I'm
just returning a favor you did for someone else," Kharl replied, "and
I'm glad that I could. Is your room all right?"
"Oh,
yes, ser. Khelaya's been teaching me cooking, too." She still did not look
at the envoy.
"Enelya
... I'd like you to tell me what's been happening in Brysta."
"Ser?"
"The
last time I was here, I saw girls and women on the streets. There were a few
armsmen here and there, and a handful of Watch. Now, there are no girls on the streets. There are no
armsmen, and there are scores of patrollers." Kharl waited.
"I...
never thought 'bout such, ser."
"You
were a server at the White Pony. You must have heard something. Something
happened to your sister. Was that part of the reason why few women walk
alone?"
"How'd
you know that?"
"I
heard it from a friend of mine." That was absolutely true, if not in the
way Kharl intended the woman to take it.
"Not
many folk knew about Josarye."
Kharl
waited again.
"Ser
... I served 'em. Sometimes, I listened. Most times I didn't want to stay close
..."
"Especially to Captain Egen?"
Enelya
shuddered. "Girls at the Bardo'd hide if they heard his voice. Liked the
little ones, and the young ones. Always was hurtin' 'em. Got him excited."
"Was
he the one who had the armsmen sent south?"
"...
what Lecy said ... told her the south would change everything
. .. told her she wouldn't want to cross him 'fore long. 'Just wait.
You'll see.' That was what he said."
That was
suggestive, but it could have meant anything, or could have been Egen's
boastfulness. "Did he ever say anything, that you heard, about his brothers?"
"Never heard about the middle one. Folks said that Kolanat's place burned
'cause he was closer to Osten."
"The
factor who had the big place off
"That
was him. Packed up and took a ship to Lydiar, heard tell. Late spring, I think
it was."
"Did
you ever hear anything about the patrollers ... why there are so many?"
Enelya's
laugh was bitter. "Even me, I know that. Tariffs. Lord West's been pumping
up the tariffs. Patrollers come see folks who don't pay. They pay, or they go
to gaol. Sometimes ... heard tell, they busted into places at night."
Kharl
suppressed a frown. While Enelya was doubtless right about what the patrollers
were doing, Egen didn't need so many patrollers to collect tariffs. A year
before the patrollers had worn blue and gray, almost shapeless, tunics and
trousers.
Abruptly,
Kharl stiffened. Now they wore uniforms. Egen was building a personally loyal
army that could hold-or take-Brysta. Were he a wagering man, Kharl would have
bet that all the armsmen, especially those who might have other allegiances,
were in the south, being readied for the invasion of the South Quadrant. There
had never been mounted patrollers before. Were they the beginning of another
corps of lancers? One personally loyal to Egen? Why hadn't he seen it sooner?
He
concentrated on Enelya. "Do the patrollers ever talk or complain about
drills or practices?"
She
looked up, then down. "More than a few times ... always talking about
drills and formations, and even practicing with rifles. Folks'd think that was
all they did."
"Why
don't the girls feel safe on the streets?" Kharl pressed.
"Ser . .. saw where I was ..."
"Captain
Egen ... does he ... ?" Kharl let the words hang.
"Not
just him. .. some of the patrollers .. . and heard
tell that white wizards made off with some girls, too ... say they take their
lives to keep them young..."
"Wizards? Like the demons of Fairven?"
"Don't
know about that, ser. Just know what the girls were sayin'. Just safer not
goin' places alone, 'specially after dark."
Kharl
could sense that Enelya had told him what she could, at least what she could
unless he revealed far more than he felt he should. "Do you think you'll
like it here? That you'll want to stay, at least for a time?"
"Oh,
yes, ser ... please ..."
The
abrupt pleading note in her voice tore at Kharl. "You can certainly stay,
so long as Khelaya and Fundal are satisfied with your work."
"Thank
you, ser. Thank you."
After
Enelya left, Kharl stood, then stretched. Slowly, he paced back and forth
across the library. He had the feeling that, except for the meeting with Lord
Whetorak, he had learned all he was likely to in Brysta for the next few days.
He also felt that he was running out of time. On the end-days, he and his small
entourage would take a ride southward, to Peachill. With luck, he could find
out more about the new south road, and also reclaim Warrl. He'd waited long
enough, and there was little enough he could do in Brysta in the next few days.
He
walked to the desk, looking down at the listing of cases that Erdyl had copied.
For the coming two eightdays, there were over one hundred cases on the dockets
for the two lord justicers. From what he recalled, Lord Justicer Priost seldom
heard more than fifteen cases an eightday, if that, and never more than twenty.
His eyes dropped to the sheets again.
Werwal's
case was set for fourday of the next eightday-before Lord Justicer Reynol. That
was just two days after Kharl was to present his credentials to Lord West. The
docket only showed that the renderer was charged with both a minority and a
majority against the Lord of the West Quadrant. Kharl would attend the trial.
What more he did would depend on what he saw. He might be able to do something
for Werwal.
What was
certain was that Egen was positioning himself to follow his sire. Then, Kharl
reflected, Osten probably was as well, and the Hamorians were doubtless
planning to take advantage of the coming conflict, perhaps even encouraging
both sides in one way or another. He took a deep breath, then blotted his
forehead.
At a quarter
before the fourth glass of the afternoon, after having washed up once again,
Kharl stepped out of the residence, down the ancient brick walk, and into the
carriage. Demyst followed.
"Can't
say I like you going into the Hamorian residence," the under- captain
said, settling himself onto the bench seat facing Kharl, but more to Kharl's
left, to allow each some legroom.
"It
shouldn't be as bad as a battle. At least, I hope it won't be." That would
most likely come later.
The
Hamorian residence sat on the upper slopes of the hill less
than a quarter kay below the ancient walls of the Quadrancy Keep, just off the
Lord's Road that angled downhill to join
Mantar
slowed the carriage but did not fully stop. "Lord Kharl, the Austran envoy."
"Up to the lower portico." The shorter armsmen gestured.
The
drive rose on a gentle incline, but leveled out some hundred cubits farther
eastward, at the edge of an expanse of grass. The residence was fully three
times the size of the Austran envoy's, and the walls were of creamy marble,
with a roof of split gray slate. The entire lower level was surrounded by a
covered porch, easily twenty cubits deep. The drive extended to a courtyard on the north side
of the dwelling, where the porch joined a covered portico with long mounting-block
steps. Beyond was a large courtyard, clearly designed to hold a score or more
of waiting carriages. Beyond that were outbuildings, one of which looked like a
barracks large enough to hold more than a company of armsmen. Yet it felt empty
to Kharl's order-senses.
Mantar
eased the carriage to a halt.
"Good
fortune, ser," murmured Demyst, before opening the door and exiting, to
hold the door for Kharl. "We'll be waiting here."
"Thank
you."
Rather
than a footman or a steward, there was another Hamorian armsman, but this one
wore a uniform of black and crimson. Possibly a dress uniform, thought Kharl,
who felt very plain in his black and silver, trimmed with the dark green of
Austra.
"Lord
Kharl, Lord Whetorak awaits you in the fountain court," said the armsman.
"If you would follow me, ser?"
Kharl
nodded. As he followed the man, he extended his order-senses once more, but he
could discern no strong impression of chaos, although there were faint traces of
whiteness that suggested that chaos had been present at some time in the past.
The
fountain court was exactly that, a walled courtyard set behind and below the
covered porch at the rear of the residence. The walls were also marble, but
barely visible behind the greenery. The residence shielded the courtyard from
the late-afternoon sun, and a good half score of fountains played, spraying
water skyward and cooling the shaded space.
"There,
Lord Kharl." The armsman stepped aside at the top of the steps off the
porch.
"Thank
you." Even before he was halfway down the steps to the marble tiles of the
courtyard floor, Kharl was appreciating the coolness.
Lord
Whetorak had been standing before the central fountain, a sculpture depicting a
man on horseback. Although he was not quite so tall as Kharl, the envoy
conveyed both height and angularity as he turned. His hair was a golden brown,
his eyes black. He did not wear a sabre or a belt knife, but a covered holster
that had to have held some sort of small pistol. Kharl could sense that the
weapon held several iron-jacketed cartridges.
Whetorak
stepped forward, inclining his head slightly and smiling with his mouth alone.
"Lord Kharl."
"Lord
Whetorak." Kharl smiled. "I can see why you prefer this courtyard.
Especially on days like today."
"It
is most pleasant. But you have had a warm journey, I am most certain. Let me
offer you something to drink. What would you like? We have a wide selection of
various wines, and lager, ale, or even icenyl."
"I
must confess that I know little of icenyl."
"Few
do, save those in a small town in the north of Suthya, north even of
"I'll
stick with lager, even in this heat."
"The choice of a wise and cautious man."
"Cautious,"
Kharl conceded. "I'm not yet old enough to be wise."
"The good lager and icenyl." Whetorak glanced at a serving girl who had
appeared from somewhere.
Kharl
had to admit that the girl was beautiful, and the filmy shirt and skirt she
wore left very little to the imagination. He forced his eyes back to the other
envoy. Whetorak moved gracefully toward the sole table in the courtyard, one
set with just two chairs. Each chair had a thick black cushion.
"You
must tell me of your trip from Valmurl," said the Hamorian as he seated
himself. "You did come from Valmurl, and not your own lands, did you
not?"
"My
lands are not that far away, but I came from Valmurl. Are you from
Cigoerne?"
Whetorak
laughed. "All envoys are from Cigoerne. We are trained there, and we first
serve as aides to other envoys, then return for more training. We are lords only
so long as we serve. If we serve well and faithfully for more than twenty
years, we remain lords."
"It
is almost a lordly craft for you, then?"
"A
lordly craft... I like that." Whetorak waited as the serving girl set a
pale crimson crystal beaker before Kharl and a goblet of the same crystal
before him.
Kharl
studied the lager with his order-senses, but it appeared to be lager and
nothing more.
Whetorak
lifted his goblet. "In thanks for your safe arrival in Brysta."
"To
your hospitality," replied Kharl.
"Your
posting to Brysta was rather sudden," observed the Hamorian.
"We
had no idea when a replacement for Lord Hensolas might arrive. A most
impressive envoy. I was personally sorry that he found it necessary to oppose
his lord. Doubtless I will receive full information from Cigoerne within an
eightday or so. Until then . .."
"It
was sudden to me as well," Kharl admitted. "I had hoped to get on
with several projects on my lands .. ." He shrugged. "It is hard to
refuse a request from the lord-chancellor."
"Ah,
yes. Lord-chancellor Hagen, an interesting figure. I understand that he was
once arms-master to Lord Estloch, but that there was a falling-out. Most
interesting it is that the son has turned to him."
"Lord
Hagen is quite able," Kharl said politely.
"Ah,
yes." Whetorak laughed. "In times of trouble, rulers turn either to
friends or to those of ability. Those who turn to friends usually lose all
their power immediately. Those who turn to ability lose it more
gradually."
"That's
if a ruler lacks judgment."
"Most
times, if a ruler faces great troubles, he has poor judgment."
Kharl
couldn't argue with that. He took another sip of the lager.
"There
were also tales of a mage who appeared from nowhere," Whetorak went on, after
a sip of his icenyl. "And who could tell who was lying and who was
not."
"Most
order-mages, even the least skilled, can do that, I understand," Kharl
replied.
"No
one seemed to know much about him. Some say that the lord- chancellor
discovered him and that he was made a lord."
"Lord
Ghrant has rewarded those who served him," Kharl agreed. "He would
have been remiss not to reward a mage who served him well."
"I
must confess that I have not heard of Cantyl," Whetorak went on.
"Most
have not. It is a small estate, as they go, on the coast and to the southeast
of Valmurl. We produce mostly wine and timber. There are enough fields and
orchards and berry patches to feed all those on the land. I've recently
improved the sawmill and added a cooperage."
"Those
are improvements most would not make."
"I
inherited what my grandsire and sire had improved," Kharl said, "and
I would hope that I could improve what I hold for my son." He had
inherited the cooperage in Brysta, and he did want to hand on more than he had
obtained, and he certainly hoped that the truthful, but misleading, statements
would also mislead Whetorak.
"You
did not bring your consort and son here, then?"
"No.
I thought it better that my son remain with relatives until I was more established
here. My consort died a year ago."
"I
am sorry to hear that."
"It
is still a painful subject."
"I
imagine so."
"Your
consort?" prompted Kharl.
"She
is spending some time with friends near Eolya, in the green hills there. It is much
cooler there at this time of year."
"You
did not go with her?"
"No.
These days, an envoy's work is never done. That you must also know, for Lord
Ghrant would not have sent you in the summer were it not so."
"He
felt that Austra needed an envoy here. That is true." Kharl forced a
smile. "I had heard that Hamor was providing assistance to Lord West in
building roads." That was a guess, but Kharl felt comfortable with it.
"We
do have much experience in building such roads. Already the Great Highway from
Cigoerne nears the eastern port of Atla. It is the longest paved road in the
world."
"It
must have taken years to build and mountains of stone."
"Anything
great takes time." Whetorak shrugged.
"And
your engineers and experts are helping Lord West?"
"Hamor
can spare an engineer or two. That, we can do."
"I
have noticed Hamorian merchanters in the harbor. Have they brought tools for
Lord West's road?"
"Who
could say? No one tells an envoy of all the cargoes that pass through a
port."
Kharl
could sense that Whetorak was definitely lying. But why? What the other envoy
said made sense, but it wasn't true. That meant Whetorak did in fact know what
was being shipped into Brysta.
"How
long have you been here ... as envoy?"
"Just less than a year. A most pleasant place, and somewhat warmer
than your Valmurl, I think. We of Hamor prefer warmth to cold."
"How
have you found Lord West and his sons?"
"Ah. .. Lord West, a most charming man, and his sons are most devoted
to seeing his heritage continue."
Kharl
smiled. He was quite certain that the sons wanted to continue the heritage of
ruling, personally and immediately, but he couldn't see any point in pressing
that, or questioning Whetorak about it. It was more than clear that Whetorak wasn't about to reveal
anything-except by forcing Kharl to reveal even more, because asking specific
questions required revealing knowledge.
"I
notice you do not wear a sabre, as do so many Austran lords."
Kharl
laughed. "I bear weapons when necessary. Certainly not in company such as
yours."
"Yet...
what if you were attacked?"
"Brysta
is most safe these days, I have been assured. My guards are also quite
accomplished." Kharl shrugged. "If necessary, I will go armed."
He glanced at Whetorak. "Don't you worry about chaos setting off the
cartridges in your pistol?"
"It
is most unlikely." Whetorak smiled. "It is no secret. The cartridges
are formed of soft iron; the bullets are lead. There is more wear on the gun
that way, but only the strongest of chaos-mages could set off the cartridges,
and"-he shrugged again-"in such a case, those would be the least of
my worries."
Not to
mention that most of the chaos-mages were under tight Hamor- ian
control.
Kharl
just hoped that he could keep smiling-and not reveal too much to the
Hamorian-until he could leave gracefully.
LXX
The
first light of sevenday had barely touched the tallest oak on the hill above
the Austran envoy's residence when Kharl swung up into the saddle of the
chestnut gelding, awkwardly because he bore the long truncheon in its slightly
oversized scabbard. He wasn't used to riding that much, especially not wearing
a weapon. He wore his black jacket and a gray cotton shirt, good garments, but
not necessarily lordly ones. Demyst, Erdyl, and the two guards were already
mounted, and all bore sabres, but a sabre would have been worse than useless
for Kharl.
"Are
you sure you would not rather take the carriage, Lord Kharl?" asked
Fundal, standing on the end of the brick walkway from the portico.
He
looked across the five mounted riders, and the sixth saddled but riderless
horse.
"The
carriage wouldn't work. Not all the roads outside of Brysta are that good. We
may have to ride where the carriage would not go."
"Yes, ser." Fundal looked at the envoy glumly.
"You don't know when you'll be back, I suppose?"
"Sometime before twoday, when I present my
credentials to Lord West. It could be late today, or tomorrow, or oneday."
"Yes, ser."
Kharl turned
his mount and headed down the brick-paved drive toward the open iron-grilled
gate. Demyst pulled his mount alongside Kharl's. Alynar and Erdyl were directly
behind Kharl and the undercap-tain, while Cevor brought up the rear, guiding
the riderless mount, which also held provisions. The loudest sound as the party
rode eastward and down the hill toward South Road was that of hoofs on brick
pavement.
There
were few souls out and about, although Kharl could see the haze from chimneys
and smell cooking oil and smoke.
"How
far are we going, ser?" asked Erdyl, from where he rose behind Kharl.
"As far as we need to. No one wants to talk about roads or about
what's happening in the south."
Erdyl
was silent, as were the others. Kharl concentrated on riding and not bouncing
in the saddle, although his riding was far better than it had been when he had
first been required to ride at Dykaru two seasons earlier. He also kept
checking the streets, and roads, and the area through which they rode for signs
of chaos. He found none; but he was well aware that, even so early in the day,
several uniformed patrollers had been watching them.
As they
passed the last dwellings of Brysta on the southeast side of the city and began
to ride through the small plots that were neither true holdings nor just
gardens, the ground grew somewhat more hilly to the
east of the road, low hills that were more like rocky meadows, dotted with
wood-lots and irregular fields. Then the road swung due south-or mostly so in
its winding path-to avoid a long ridge that rose a good fifty cubits above the
road and angled to the southeast.
A half
kay farther south, the packed-clay track turned back southeast, following the
curve of a hill below the rocky ridge. At the end of the low hill the ground to the east of the hill
flattened, and Kharl saw more clearly the barracks he had seen from the
carriage earlier and heard about-four new plank-sided buildings-and two long
stables. On the flat between the base of the ridge and the stables, Kharl could
see at least two companies of mounted patrollers drilling.
"Those
are lancer drills," said Demyst quietly.
"I
thought they might be. I saw some mounted patrollers the other day-first time
I've seen them in Brysta." Kharl had half expected it, but it was still a
surprise.
Just
past the barracks, the south road was joined by another, narrower road from the
east that cut through a low spot in the ridge farther east of the barracks and
stables and ran due west on the south side of the patroller buildings, ending
where it met the south road.
As they
continued south on the main road that would eventually lead to Surien-if
hundreds of kays farther to the southeast-the holdings and cots became far less
frequent, and the road itself was often bordered by hedgerows and holder
fields. Yet they encountered almost no one, except an occasional cart.
Then,
less than two kays south of the barracks, the road abruptly changed from packed
clay into a gray stone highway. The paving stones were large, two cubits by
one, and the road was a good rod wide, with gravel and pebble shoulders.
"This
looks new," Kharl said. It was new, at least since the time a year before
when he had walked southward to Peachill to see Warrl.
"It's
cut off sharp as with a knife. Right here. Doesn't run all the way into Brysta.
That doesn't make sense," replied Erdyl.
"They're
probably still building it," Kharl offered.
"There's
no sign of 'em doing any more, but maybe they don't want folks to know about it
yet," suggested Demyst.
Kharl
stood in the stirrups of the chestnut gelding, looking ahead, but the pavement
stretched out at least three kays ahead before disappearing over a low rise,
cutting through the wide curves of the old road like a crossbow quarrel, in
places running through meadows and fields. "We'll see how far it
goes." He eased his mount forward.
On the
west side of the road was a stone wall that ended abruptly near the shoulder of
the new road, which cut through an irregular corner of what had been a pasture.
The stone wall had not been rebuilt along the shoulder, something Kharl certainly would
have done to keep in grazing livestock.
He
glanced at the cot immediately ahead and to his right. Despite the cool of the
early morning, the shutters were closed when they should have been open. So was
the door to the small barn to the south of the cot. He could sense no one in
the buildings or nearby. Had they protested the loss of their land to the road?
Kharl
shook his head, imagining what Egen would have done to anyone who protested. He
was just glad that Dowsyl's orchards were well back from the old main road, and
he hoped that they were also well back from the new road.
For the
next two kays, they were the sole travelers on the gray stone high road.
Perhaps half a glass passed before Kharl saw riders coming from the south,
wearing the traditional blue-and-burgundy uniforms and moving in formation.
"Looks
like lancers, ser," said Demyst. "What do you want us to do?"
"Let's
stop here and wait for them. I'd like to see what they have in mind."
Kharl didn't have any illusions. The only question in his mind was exactly what
sort of trouble the lancers posed. He reined up, then
turned in the saddle. "Close up. As close as you can get."
"Ser?"
asked Erdyl.
"You
heard him," hissed Demyst.
The
others moved in.
Kharl
watched carefully as the lancers rode toward them, double file, in good order. The
half squad of lancers reined up less than two rods away. All the riders carried
not only sabres, but rifles in saddle cases-Hamorian rifles from their
order-feel, Kharl sensed. Their undercaptain reined up to one side.
Kharl
eased the chestnut forward.
"Hold
it right there, fellow!" snapped the undercaptain.
"I
didn't want you to have to yell." Kharl reined up slowly, so that he was
almost a rod closer to the officer.
"You're
not supposed to be here," announced the undercaptain. "The south road
is closed."
"There
were no signs or barriers," Kharl replied politely. "Might I ask
why?"
"That's
ser, to you, fellow, and no, you can't ask why."
"No
one in Brysta said that the road south was closed," Kharl said, his eyes
and senses on the ten lancers, all of whom had their hands on their rifles,
clearly waiting for a command. He'd wondered about riding south, but, since no
one had been able to tell him anything, he'd felt that waiting would not be
wise. Now he was seeing why. He almost smiled at the thought. He'd never liked
waiting.
"Well,
it is, and the question is whether you fellows will hand over your golds and
head back peaceably, or whether you end up in the quarries."
"I
thought the justicers or Lord West decided that," Kharl said, even as he
extended an order-probe to the rifle the undercaptain was pulling from its
case. He began to untwist the order-locks in the iron.
"The
lancers decide here, and I've decided-"
Kharl
untwisted the last of the order-ties, then flung up a
shield around his group.
Crrummmpttt!
The blinding white glare and heat of chaos flared over the undercaptain and the
ten suddenly hapless lancers.
Despite the shield, Kharl felt as though he had been
thrust inside a furnace, then shaken. He just grabbed the rim of the saddle with
his free hand and braced himself, trying to stay in the saddle as the chestnut
jerked sideways. He managed to hold both his mount and the order shield until
the tumult and chaos had dispersed.
Even so,
a good tenth of a glass passed before Kharl's eyes stopped watering, and he
could see clearly. Except for an irregular patch of darkened gray stone in the
center of the new road, and a number of fine cracks in the paving stones, there
was no sign of the eleven lancers, except ashes as fine as mist drifting in the
light breeze.
"Light-demons
... burned 'em to less 'n ash ..."
"Mean
bastards ... woulda shot us dead on the spot..."
Kharl
had no doubts of that, or that the undercaptain had been ordered to act just
that way.
"Now
what?" asked Demyst.
"We
keep riding. We still don't know why they don't want anyone here." And
Kharl wanted to get to Warrl before things got worse-if they hadn't already.
"...
no sign of 'em .. . nothing but a blackened patch on
the road ..." murmured Erdyl.
Neither
guard answered his comments.
Kharl
eased the chestnut forward at an easy walk. He had to keep blotting his
forehead. They covered another two kays before he began to cool off. When he
began to feel light-headed, he took out some cheese and bread from the
provisions in his saddlebag, an awkward task for him because he still wasn't
that good a rider. He ate slowly and drank almost half the water in his bottle.
The light-headedness
departed, and as they continued southward, Kharl used his order-senses to study
the road and the holdings. Occasionally, there were traces of chaos-wizardry,
seemingly in places where stony outcrops or rises had been removed or lowered, but
most of the road had been built without wizardry. Along the way, there was only
a scattering of empty dwellings, and those were where the road had been built
across the land belonging to that cottage or hut-at least from what Kharl could
tell.
Still, no
one anywhere close to the highway ventured out as they passed. Twice, a more
distant peasant holder scurried into his hut when he saw the five riders.
The
second time, Demyst cleared his throat. "Doesn't look like they like
riders, ser."
"After
the way those lancers tried to kill us, I'm sure that they don't."
"Don't
see why they were acting like brigands ..."
"So
that anyone who escaped would add to the stories about brigands dressed as
lancers." Kharl wondered exactly what Egen was hiding.
Another
glass passed. They saw no one else on the new highway, and the gray stone
pavement still stretched before them, arrowing southward. They continued
riding, and Kharl kept looking, trying to sense the lancers he knew had to be
somewhere ahead. Yet he sensed nothing but the remnants of older chaos.
Just
before midmorning, on the east side of the road, Kharl saw the burned remnants
of a cot that looked familiar. He thought it might have been the one where he
had persuaded the elderly woman who lived there to feed him.
"The
well here should be good," he said to the others, riding though the open
side gate.
Demyst
glanced at Kharl.
"There's
no one here." The mage reined up short of the well.
"Eerie,"
murmured Erdyl. "There's no one in these cots real close to the road, none
of them. This is the first one that's burned, though. What happened, do you
think?"
"They
didn't want to give up their land, or part of it, to Lord West's road." Kharl dismounted and tied the
gelding to the dead limb of a tree that had been charred by the fire and stood
leafless between the burned cot and the well. He walked to the well. A bucket
and rope still remained.
After
drawing the water, he let his order-senses check it, but he could detect no
chaos-natural or wizardly-in the water. "It's good."
"Mounts
could use water. So could I," said Demyst.
After
watering their horses and letting them rest for a half glass or so, Kharl and
the others remounted. As he rode on, Kharl's stomach grew tighter and tighter.
While there were no more burned cots, and only a handful of empty cots and
pastures, with untended fields that lay fallow, they saw no more holders
outside. At times, Kharl could see others in the distance, and carts and wagons
on back lanes, but none on the gray stone highway.
A good
glass before noon, Kharl could see, off to the west of the new gray stone road,
a curving section of the old road-and the kaystone that announced Peachill.
"We'll
cross to the older track now." He turned the chestnut and let his mount
pick his way over the uneven ground until they reached the original road. Even
the ruts were old and worn down by rain and weather. Merayni and Dowsyl's
orchards were off a lane on the west side of the road, short of the hamlet
itself. The small hutlike cottage where he had asked directions was also a heap
of charcoal, burned at least a season before.
As he
guided the chestnut westward along the narrower lane, his eyes looked for the
other cots and dwellings. He could see none, only another heap of burned ruins.
His stomach clenched even more tightly.
"Ser.
.. ?"
"I
need to see someone-if they're here. If they're not. .." He forced a
shrug.
"Doesn't
look like they left anyone here," ventured Demyst. "Must have done
something."
Kharl could
only hope that the destruction remained near the old road, as he rode westward
on the lane. Dowsyl's orchard and house were a good two kays from the road,
with the dwelling and storage barns set amid the orchard, between the
pearapples and the peach trees.
Less than a quarter kay farther westward, he came to another burned- out
cot and barn. He swallowed, moistening his lips.
"...
worried, I think ..."
"...
be worried, too ... no one on the roads, empty cots, burned cots ..."
Kharl
glanced down the lane, toward the rolling hills to the west, hills covered with
the full summer green of broadleaf trees, mixed with the darker green of the
pines and firs. Ahead, to his right was the old stone wall that marked the
beginning of Dowsyl's lands and orchards. The pearapples and the peaches were
in full leaf, and he could see the gold of the peaches amid the green. His guts
twisted as he rode closer. He could not see the thatched roof of the house
above the stone wall, nor the roof of the barn in the space between pearapples
and peaches. Dreading what he knew was beyond the wall, he eased the chestnut
through the gateless opening in the stone wall.
At the
other scenes of destruction, where the houses had been burned or just left
deserted, there had been no indication of what had happened to the holders. At
Dowsyl's, that was not so. In the garden to the south of the charred ruins, six
clear graves had been dug-and filled-heaped high with extra loam so as to leave
no doubt that they were graves.
For a long
time, Kharl just sat in the saddle and looked. He could sense that they were
indeed graves, with the faintness of old death. The graves were not new. They
could have been dug within eightdays of when he had last visited Warrl. Within
eightdays. Eightdays ... and Kharl had not even known. Had not sensed it, even.
Egen had
traced Warrl somehow, and because he could not touch Kharl, he had killed them
all-Merayni and Dowsyl and their three children . ..
and Warrl. Warrl. Kharl's youngest.
He did
not know how much time had passed before he finally turned the chestnut and
headed back out eastward on the lane, back through the ruins of Peachill.
"Ser?"
asked Demyst, gently. "You knew them?"
"My
consort's sister and her consort, their children." He did not want to
mention Warrl. "He was a good man. An honest man." He knew he could
not say a word about Warrl, not and hold himself together.
"Lord
West's men, you think?"
Kharl just
nodded, although he had no doubt that it was Egen's
doing. His throat was dry. He wanted to swallow, but he couldn't. Beneath the
grief, rage seethed, and his jaw kept tightening.
How
could anyone be so viciously cruel? For Kharl, it was beyond explanation. Four children,
helpless, and one of them had been Warrl, who had only gone to Merayni's to be
safe.
The mage
shook his head. Merayni hadn't been Kharl's favorite, but she'd done what she
had thought best-and it had led to her death. Kharl had tried to rescue Sanyle
and keep Jenevra from Egen, and for that Egen had killed Charee, and tried to
have Kharl flogged heavily enough that he would not survive. That had driven
Arthal to sea on the Fleuryl-and to his death. Then Egen had used overtariffing
and Tyrbel's murder to drive away Warrl and send Kharl into hiding and
eventually into flight from Brysta. Beyond that, Egen had burned every cot in
Peachill.
And that
hadn't been enough-all that because Kharl had stopped Egen from abusing one
girl and rescued one of his victims?
Thoughts
kept swirling through Kharl's head. Egen . .. always Egen. Bastard was too
generous a term for Ostcrag's son. So was pissprick... or anything else Kharl
could think of.
The
other thing that bothered him was that, at least for a time, Jeka had not been
harmed. Kharl frowned, then nodded. Egen had never known that Kharl had hidden
with Jeka. That had to be the only reason. When Kharl had walked to Peachill to
see Warrl, he had not gone as a beggar, but as himself. Had that pride doomed
Warrl?
And why
hadn't Egen done the same to Sanyle? Or had she fled to someone who could
protect her? Kharl wondered if he'd ever know, but he just hoped that she had
gotten safely to Vizyn. She had certainly known that it was not safe for her to
stay in Brysta. Kharl shifted his weight in the saddle.
No one
said a word on the ride back toward the gray stone highway.
As they
neared the burned-out hut beside the old road, Demyst cleared his throat.
"Ah ... we headed back, ser?" asked Demyst.
"Not
yet. We'll keep heading south. We know what they're doing. We don't know
why." Especially now, Kharl had to know. What was Egen doing that required
such cruelty, not just to Kharl, but to the holders he'd driven from their
homes?
Not
until they were a good kay south of Peachill did Kharl call another rest halt,
once more at an abandoned-but not burned-cot-and one where they were shielded
by a short hedgerow and not visible from the new highway. They ate and watered
and fed the mounts, then rested for almost a glass.
No one
said much to Kharl, respecting his silence and grief.
Finally,
he cleared his throat. "We need to get riding."
"Ser,"
ventured Erdyl, "what are we seeking?"
Kharl
laughed harshly. "If I knew that, we wouldn't have to be here. Lord
West-or his sons-don't want travelers here. They've built a new stone road, but
no one is using it, and they don't seem to want anyone using it. There aren't
any armsmen in Brysta. They've been replaced by patrollers in new uniforms.
There are no ships in the harbor except those from Hamor, and no one seems to
know what's on them. The Hamorian envoy avoided telling me that. The Sarronnese
envoy doesn't know. We can't even find most of the other envoys or their
secretaries. Those secretaries that Erdyl's talked to don't know any more than
we do. Or they aren't saying." He shrugged. "So we'll keep riding for
a while."
"Yes, ser. I didn't mean . .."
"I
know," Kharl replied. "It seems stupid, but there has to be some reason
for all this, and we weren't finding out in Brysta." He climbed into the
saddle and turned the chestnut back toward the gray stone road. He did not turn
in the saddle to look back. He could not have done that and maintained any
composure.
They rode
more than another glass, another five to seven kays, from what Kharl judged
before he sensed another set of lancers riding northward toward them from
beyond the low hill crest ahead. He glanced around before speaking. "Off the road, over by those trees. There are more
lancers coming."
The five
others followed, gathering around Kharl beneath an ancient black oak.
"Before they get here, I'm going to put a sight shield around us. You
won't be able to see, but they won't see us, either."
"No
more fire?" murmured Cevor.
"No.
Not this time." Kharl didn't want too many lancers disappearing. Also,
doing too much of the order-release magery took a heavy toll on him. "Just
be quiet. They won't be able to see us, but they can hear us."
Once he
had raised the sight shield, Kharl could hear more than a few swallows and
someone's fast and nervous breathing. He just hoped none of his group would do
something stupid.
The
second patrol was close to forty lancers-two full mounted squads. The riders
were moving at a trot, and were out of sight before long. Kharl waited until he
was certain before releasing the sight shield.
"Whew!"
Alynar shook his head. "Felt like I was in a cave, ser."
"Strange,"
added Demyst. "I could hear the hoofs, but they just kept riding."
Kharl
turned the chestnut toward the new road, heading southward once more.
Over the
next glass or so, east of the gray stone road, a road that had gradually
changed its course so that it now pointed south-southeast rather than due
south, the hills became more rugged, with occasional gray escarpments. Kharl
had the feeling that the same kind of stone had been cut and used for the
highway.
By then,
it was well into late afternoon, and the holdings were getting more scattered.
Kharl frowned as he looked at a hillside to the west at the blackened ruins of
what had to have been a mansion or a lord's dwelling. The cots below it were
unharmed, and he could see some figures working the fields. Then he nodded. An
unfriendly lord-or one independent of Egen-might well have been a threat. Now,
the golds from rents doubtless went to Egen.
For the
next kay or so, Kharl began to sense something ahead, but he couldn't tell
exactly what, beyond the general feeling of people and chaos and order-almost
like a sizable town. That would not have been surprising, although there were
few large towns to the southwest of Brysta, from what Kharl remembered. Most
were either on the coast, to the east or north.
Still,
the feeling grew.
Then they
had to take cover once more, as another patrol appeared from the south and rode
northward.
Once the
third patrol had passed, Kharl concentrated on what he had been sensing ahead.
There were lancers, buildings, and the chaos left from wizardry, and not all that
far away. From what he could tell, it was beyond the hillcrest on the east side
of the road.
"This way." Without looking back, he turned the
chestnut into the meadow to the left of the gray stone road and headed toward
the woods or woodlot that looked to be a kay or so farther to the east,
straddling the top of the low ridge. He hoped the woods would provide some
cover.
A single
holder at the bottom of the hill yelled something, but Kharl ignored him, and
the man went back to digging out his irrigation ditch.
It took
nearly a half glass for Kharl to reach the woods and guide his mount through
the edges until he reached a place where he could look southward over the long
and shallow valley that stretched to the southeast from the ridge. The gray
stone road split the valley almost evenly. Another two kays to the southeast,
between the road and a stream, Kharl could see what looked to be a town, except
that the buildings were all long and low structures.
"Looks
like barracks," ventured Demyst. "Rows and rows of 'em."
To the
north of the area with the barracks were fenced enclosures filled with horses.
Smoke rose from more than a score of chimneys. Farther to the east, beyond the
streams, were rows of huts, and beyond them was a raw slash in the stony
escarpment and a long and wide pit. Lines of tiny figures snaked in and around
the pit.
"That's
the quarry, one of them," Kharl said.
"Like
a town ..." murmured Erdyl.
"More
like a fort, with the quarries there." Demyst frowned. "They don't
need a fort to guard the quarries."
"The
fort's not for that. It's to train armsmen."
"For a war against the Lord South?"
Kharl
didn't want to answer that. Lord South was certainly what Egen wanted people to
think, but the fort was far closer to Brysta than to Surien. As he studied the
valley, Kharl could sense at least two white wizards, perhaps three. Two of
them were strong, perhaps not so strong as the strongest he had faced in
Austra, but not to be taken lightly.
After a moment,
he turned in the saddle and looked at the undercap- tain. "We've seen what
we need to see. We can head back."
"Just...
head back, ser?" asked Erdyl.
"You
want us to charge an entire fort and all those armsmen?" asked Kharl.
"Some of them are Hamorian, and the others are Nordlan. We're not at
war." Not yet, anyway, he thought.
He eased
the chestnut back though the woodlot. At the north side, he checked the road
and the meadows, but both were clear. The holder still labored on the
irrigation ditch. The man did not even look up as Kharl and the others rode
back to the gray stone road and turned back north.
As Kharl
rode back northward, his eyes and senses concentrating on discovering Egen's
lancers before they spotted his small group, questions twisted through his
thoughts. The gray stone road extended at least twenty kays south of Brysta,
but how far did it go? One of the histories said that the forces of Fenardre
the Great had been able to complete a kay of stone road a day. If Egen's forces
had been working on the road for even half a year, and could do half as much,
he might have already completed over a hundred kays. That still left close to a
hundred more before the road reached the border of the south quadrant- unless
the road-building had been going on in secret much longer. How long had it been
going on? Was the refused consorting just an excuse? Were the Hamorians helping
Egen with the road so that they could use it once they took over the South and
West Quadrants of Nordla? Couldn't Egen see what they had in mind? Or did he
think he could outwit them? More important, could Kharl do anything? What? How?
When?
Kharl
rubbed his forehead. For the moment, they needed to get off the road and find
somewhere to spend the night. He doubted he would sleep well. He hoped he could
sleep some.
LXXI
Kharl
and his small group did not manage to get back to the envoy's residence in
Brysta until close to dark on eightday. Kharl had avoided Peachill on the way back,
not wanting to face it as a reminder that he had failed Warrl as well.
While
they had been able to find shelter in one of the abandoned cots on sevenday
night, time after time, all through eightday, they had been forced to leave the
road and hide, to avoid being seen by armed road patrols, far more than they
had seen on their way southward. Kharl hoped that was because of the
disappearance of the one road patrol, and not because some armed action was
about to begin.
After
the evening meal, most welcome after two days of bread and cheese and dried
meat, Kharl, Demyst, and Erdyl sat in the library.
"What
do you think of the road?" Kharl looked at his secretary.
"I
have never seen one so fine," Erdyl admitted. "We traveled more than
twenty kays, perhaps thirty, and it must continue for at least another
ten." He paused. "But, ser ... I do not see the need. There were no
large towns. According to the maps, Surien is more than five hundred kays to
the south."
Closer
to six hundred, Kharl thought. "So why are the Nordlans building such a
high road? Is that your question?"
"The
Nordlans and the Hamorians," suggested Demyst. "Hamor likes good
roads."
"They
make it easier to control a land," added Erdyl. "They make transport easier. If we had a good road
from Norbruel to Bruel.. . Ghardyl was always saying that we could see another
hundred golds a year."
"So
Hamor is fanning the conflict between Lord West and Lord South to get Lord West
to build the road?" Demyst set his goblet on the table, tilting his head
slightly.
"They
might even be paying for part of it." Kharl thought that the Hamorians
were going farther than that. He would not have been surprised if they were
even supporting Egen in a bid to unseat his father-and his brothers. That way,
Egen would at the very least owe Hamor, and if his bid failed, Nordla would be
weakened and racked with conflict. Either way, it would be far easier for the
emperor to begin the conquest of all of Nordla than it would have been
otherwise.
"What
can you do, ser?" asked Erdyl.
That was
indeed the question. What could he do?
"I'll
have to think about that," he finally replied. "It's been a long
eight-day."
Later,
he sat in the study, with but the single desk lamp lit, his eyes fixed on
nothing, his thoughts spinning through his skull.
What
should he do? Envoys were just supposed to report, weren't they? To let Hagen
and Ghrant know what was happening? But he had no way to send a report, and by
the time he could, the West Quadrant would be a battlefield-or a fiefdom of
Hamor.
He
didn't know for certain that Egen was going to replace his father, or when that
might happen. Nor did he know what the Hamorians would do ... or when. He
didn't think that it would be that long. At the least, he needed to be ready,
to plan what he could do.
Deliberately,
he took out a sheet of paper and a markstick, slowly sketching out a rough map
of Brysta, and the surrounding area. If Egen held the harbor and the south,
then the only way to leave the city was by the east road-really the southeast
road-to Eolya. The north road to Sagana turned into little more than a dirt
trail after a half score of kays, and there were no roads worthy of the name to
the northeast or due east. That suggested that any movement of lancers or white
wizards along the ring road from the south might indicate the beginning of
whatever might happen.
He
leaned back, trying to recall the road.
After a
time, he folded his crude map, uncertain that he had accomplished anything.
Then
there was Jeka. According to Erdyl, she was still with Gharan. What should he
do there? He hadn't been able to do anything for Jenevra and Charee, and they
were dead. He'd tried to talk Arthal out of leaving, but his older son had been
far too stubborn-like his father. He'd been too late to save Warrl, and Warrl
had asked the very least of him.
He put
his head in his hands. Why Warrl? He'd been only a child. He couldn't have hurt
Egen. He was too gentle to have hurt anyone.
After a
time, Kharl lifted his head. He had to look ahead. He couldn't undo what was done. What could he do for
Jeka? Or Gharan? Did he have to do anything immediately?
LXXII
As he
rose from the breakfast table on oneday, Kharl turned to Erdyl. "I'll be going
out. I want to take another tour along Crafters' Lane."
"Do
you want me to come?" The secretary scrambled to his feet. "I'll only
be a moment."
"No.
Not this time. Demyst will come with me. You'd said that the assistant to the
Sarronnese envoy ..."
"Jemelya."
"She
said that she'd be happy to meet with you after I met with Envoy Luryessa. I
think you should meet with her. Don't tell her about how far we went or about
the fort and the quarries, but mention the gray stone road- and the new patroller
barracks on the south side of Brysta- and the lancer drills. See what her
reaction is."
"She's
very sharp, ser."
"So
is the envoy," Kharl replied dryly. He had the feeling that everyone was
smarter than he was, and it wasn't the most cheering of thoughts.
"Do
you want me to have Mantar ready the carriage, ser?" asked Demyst, rising
from the table.
"Please.
I'll be washing up, then in the library." Kharl forced a smile he did not
feel before turning and heading up to his quarters. He had not slept all that
long and certainly not that well. He'd dreamed of Warrl, a nightmare about what
had befallen his son, and he'd been trying to reach him, and had never gotten
close enough.
He felt
as though everywhere he went, unrest and chaos followed. Or was he bound to
follow trouble? Was it him, or just circumstances?
He
laughed softly, wryly. Did it matter?
He
washed quickly, then donned a lighter black jacket,
also trimmed in Austran green, to go with the silver shirt. He made his way
down to the library. Enelya was in the front hall, dusting the pair of
portraits on the inside wall.
"Good
morning, Enelya."
"Good mornin', Lord Kharl." Her eyes did not meet his.
"How
are you feeling?"
"I've
been sleeping. Wasn't doing much of that for more 'n few eight-days. Khelaya's
teaching me to cook the better stuff, too."
"Good."
He paused. "That's if you like it."
"Can't
be a tavern server forever, specially not here."
Kharl smiled
and stepped into the library. It was clear she didn't associate him with the
ragged beggar who had bribed food from her almost a year earlier. Would Jeka or
Gharan recognize him? There was only one way to find out.
Less
than a quarter glass later, he and Demyst were seated
in the carriage, riding through another warm and cloudless morning that
promised to become a sweltering day.
"Are
we looking for something special like, ser?" asked the undercap-tain.
"In
a way... I want to talk to the weaver-Gharan. He might have some cloth I'd like
to buy and ship to Cantyl. I'll have to see. He's had some before that I
liked." Kharl had liked some of what Gharan had woven, but he'd never been
able to afford much, and some of it Charee had not liked at all. So, for one
reason or another, he'd bought little from his former neighbor, and that had
nagged at him as well.
As
Mantar brought the carriage to a halt outside Gharan's shop, Kharl swallowed.
Was he doing the right thing? How would he know? He'd waited far too long with
Warrl. He shook his head. It wouldn't have mattered. Yet, no matter how much he
told himself that, he still felt that he had caused Warrl's death. He wasn't
certain, and probably wouldn't be, ever, what else he could have done-except confess
to a murder he hadn't committed. If he had just let himself be hanged .. . then
his consort and children might still be alive.
.. . and
Ghrant and his consort and children would be dead, and Hamor would hold all of
Ausrra . ..
"Ser . .. we're here." Demyst's voice was apologetic as
he opened the carriage door and stepped out, holding the door for Kharl.
"I'm
sorry. I was just thinking ..." Forcing a smile, Kharl eased his frame
through the narrow doorway. The faintest breath of wind swirled around him,
then died away. "I'd like you to remain here and guard the carriage and
the doorway, if you would."
"Are
you sure that's wise?"
"I'm
not certain that anything is wise anymore." Kharl studied the entrance to the
weaver's shop. The door was half-open to catch what vagrant morning breezes
there might be.
He
squared his shoulders and stepped into the shop, past the racks just inside
that showed four separate wool patterns. One was a variation on what was considered
the "Brystan" design, a plaid of burgundy and blue, with faint lines
of black. Beyond the display racks was the open main room that held the looms.
There were three, one more than when he had left Brysta.
Gharan
hurried away from his loom. "Ser? How might we help you?"
"It's
me, Gharan. Kharl. The cooper."
The
weaver's mouth opened. Then he closed it, and shook his head.
"My
secretary was here last threeday. He asked you about the cotton cloth used for
the patrollers' uniforms."
"He
said ... he said that he worked for the Austran envoy ..
."
Kharl
grinned. "He does. He works for me. A lot's happened in the last
year." He tried to look beyond Gharan without being too obvious, but
neither Amy la nor Jeka had looked up from their looms.
"It'd
be true then . .. that... that you're a lord? An
Austran lord? Ser?"
"It
is." Kharl's lips curled. "I took a position as a subofficer- after a
while-on an Austran ship-the Seastag. Her captain was a lord, and he ended up
as the lord-chancellor of Austra."
"A
real lord ..." Gharan shook his head. "Hard to believe."
"It's
true. But I'm the same Kharl who gave you the silvers to try Jeka as a weaver,
and you're the same man who warned me to flee before Egen got his patrollers
after me."
"Egen . .. he'll never forget," Gharan said.
"He
won't expect to see me as the Austran envoy, or without a beard. You're the
only one who knows."
The
weaver looked down for a moment. "And you're telling me?"
"I owe
you-and Jeka-too much to deceive you. Besides, I always wanted to buy some of
your wool, but I never could afford it before." Kharl smiled. "You
had a pattern of dark and light green. I always wanted a set of blankets out of
that."
"The green grid pattern." Gharan laughed. "Charee .. ."
His face stiffened. "I'm sorry ... I didn't mean."
"I
know you didn't. She never liked it. I'd also like you to design a pattern for
me, for my lands."
"Lands,
too?"
"Some.
Will you do it?"
"Why
did you come back? If Egen finds out..."
"He's
not likely to." Kharl wasn't so sure about that, but there was no point in
telling Gharan that. "If he does, he does. I came back to get Warrl.. .
and to see about some other things."
"How
are your boys?"
Kharl
shook his head. "Arthal was killed when a Hamorian warship sank the
Fleuryl. Egen, some way or another, killed Warrl... and Charee's sister and her
family. That's another reason why I'm here."
"Kharl...
Lord Kharl... I'm sorry."
"Kharl... just Kharl."
"You're
an envoy? Really?"
Kharl
nodded. "How is Jeka?"
"Do
you want her to know?"
"She
saved my life. She can keep a secret."
Gharan
grinned. "You'd best tell her yourself." He turned. "Jeka...
please to come here."
From behind
the second loom appeared a gaminelike face, but the face was framed by longer
hair, and set above blue trousers and shirt. She walked toward the two men
briskly. Her steps slowed as her eyes took in Kharl.
He
watched her closely, amazed at the transformation from an urchin boy to a
woman.
"Cooper
.. . Master Kharl..."
"He's
Lord Kharl of Austra, now," Gharan said. With the slightest of winks, he
stepped away, moving toward the back room. "I'll be getting that pattern book.
Might take me a while. Amyla ... I'll need you."
The
weaver and his consort left Kharl and Jeka standing in the loom room, alone.
"Master
Kharl.. . you'd be looking far better dressed ..
." Jeka looked down abruptly.
"You
look ..." He wanted to say "beautiful," but only could come up
with "good." He hadn't realized how green her eyes were, or how
lustrous her sandy hair. He'd also forgotten how tiny she was, her head not
even to his shoulder.
"So
do you." Her eyes flashed. "Why'd you come here?"
"I
owe you. Without you, I'd never have lasted until the Seastag ported." He
found himself moistening his lips.
"You're
a real lord?"
"Yes.
With lands. I'm also the envoy from Lord Ghrant of Austra to Lord West."
"What
you do want from me?"
Kharl
almost laughed. Jeka was still Jeka, fierce and independent as ever.
"You're
not saying. You think golds and lands make a difference?"
He did
understand what she meant. "Not that way. I'm not here ..." He wasn't
quite certain how to say what he meant without being condescending on the one
hand or crude on the other. "I'd never be like Egen or his type.''
Her
expression softened, but only slightly. "Why?"
"Because
..." he swallowed. "Everyone I left. .. even if I had to ... they're
all dead-except Sanyle, I think, but she got away, the scrivener said."
"Your boys?"
Kharl
nodded.
"Egen?"
"Warrl and his aunt. Arthal was on a ship the Hamorians
sank."
Jeka
shook her head slowly. "Shoulda stayed with you."
"I
had to make sure you were all right."
"I'm
fine. Better 'n a long time."
"I'm
glad." He wanted to reach out and touch her, but he'd never touched her,
except to break the bonds of the white wizard.
Their eyes
met, hers fierce like those of an untamed hawk.
"You
see me. Now what?"
Another good
question, and one he didn't have an answer for, not
that he wanted to state. "I worried about you so much," he finally
said. "I didn't think much beyond that."
She
laughed, not loudly, but almost melodically, and he realized that he'd never
heard her laugh. He liked the sound.
"I'm
not your daughter. Won't be a plaything, either."
"I
know."
"Need
to think about it. You're a lord. Me, I'm a weaver girl." She smiled
wryly. "Amyla helped me finish learning my letters. I wanted to write a
letter to Enelya. Don't dare go near the White Pony, but wanted her to know I
was still safe. Probably Selda'd have to read it to her."
"Enelya
was hiding from Egen behind Werwal's place. We found her. She's working in the
kitchen at the envoy's residence. She's got a good room..."
"You collecting playthings?"
"No."
For some reason, her question hurt.
Jeka
looked down. "Sorry. Wasn't fair. You saved a lot of us."
"I
didn't want Egen to get her. I've got guards and a staff there. She's learning
to cook from Khelaya." Kharl paused. "She doesn't know who I am. She
thinks I heard about her from a nameless old beggar who was with you. An old
beggar." His last words were dry.
Jeka
laughed once more. "You're older 'n us."
He was.
That was true, but he didn't feel that old.
"You
did leave in an awful hurry, too."
He
almost missed the teasing sound in her voice. "You would have, too, in my
boots."
"Never had boots. What you going to do 'bout pissprick
Egen?"
"Whatever
I have to," Kharl said. "He's not in Brysta right now, from what I've
been able to find out." After a moment, he added, "Things are going
to get bad here in Brysta, before too long."
"Gharan
and Amyla and me, we wondered 'bout that. Lots of Hamori-ans around, and those
patrollers are mean bastards, just like Egen." Her chin set, and her green
eyes hardened. "You still got that staff?"
"No.
I've learned how to do some of that without it."
Her eyes
took in the black jacket and trousers, as well as the black boots.
"Thought you might be a mage."
"Not
a full mage, but enough to do some things."
"More
'n a few, I'd wager."
"Enough."
They
stood there, looking at each other, and Kharl had no idea what else to say. He
didn't want to leave her, and yet... in some ways, he knew her better than any
woman, and in others not at all.
"Ah.. ."
At the
sound of Gharan's voice, Kharl turned.
"You
did mention the blankets and a pattern ..."
Kharl
smiled. "I did, and I meant it." He glanced at Jeka. "You stay
here."
"Me?"
"You'll
tell me exactly what you think, and since I don't have a consort or a sister
..."
"No
playthings ..." Jeka's words were half-playful, half-warning.
"No
playthings," Kharl agreed.
Gharan
glanced uneasily from the lord to the weaver girl, then back to Kharl.
"Here's the pattern book, and this one here is one I never wove for no
one."
Jeka
shook her head.
"It
has to be black and green," Kharl added, "and the green should be
close to the Austran green ..."
"Not
thin-fancy, either," suggested Jeka. "Lord Kharl's a solid type.
Pattern needs to be solid, too."
Kharl
wasn't certain he liked Jeka calling him Lord Kharl. Then, he wasn't certain
about much of anything where she was concerned. But he did owe Gharan, and he
did need new fabric for some of the chairs and some new linens.
As for
Jeka, he needed to think, and he couldn't do that with her so close to him.
LXXIII
Once he
returned to the residence, Kharl went to the library to await Erdyl's return
from the Sarronnese envoy's. He and Gharan-and Jeka-
had worked out a pattern for Cantyl-one that could be woven in linen or wool.
Kharl had ordered forty yards, in various weights and fabrics-enough to
reupholster the not-quite-threadbare chairs in the dining room. Doubtless it
was an extravagance of sorts, but Gharan had stood by him when few had.
As for Jeka .. .
Kharl
walked to the window overlooking the garden. He shook his head. He'd forgotten
her eyes ... and her directness. It didn't matter to her that he was now a
lord, and she'd suggested from the beginning that he was more than a cooper.
Her insight and directness-those he had missed. And for all her blunt talk, she
saw more than the educated and lordly young Erdyl. All that was fine. What had
bothered him had been his physical reaction. He'd wanted to sweep her into his
arms, to never let her go. It wasn't just that he hadn't been with a woman in a
while, either. Herana- the second mate on the Southshield-had been attractive
and had made a play for him. So had ser Arynal's daughters, especially Meyena.
But Jeka . .. she was a good ten years younger than he was, maybe fifteen. She
was older than she let on, probably close to five or six years older than
Arthal. .. than Arthal had been.
Abruptly,
Kharl turned and began to rummage through the stack of papers on one side of
the desk, until he came up with the listing of cases before the lord justicers.
His eyes ran down the sheet. Werwal's trial was set for fourday. Kharl would be
there. What he could do for the renderer who had once befriended him was
another matter.
At the
rap on the door, Kharl turned. "Yes?"
"Ser
..." Erdyl took a step into the chamber.
"I'd
like to hear what you found out. She was there? The assistant?"
Erdyl
nodded.
"Ah
... you'd better have the undercaptain join us, too."
"Yes, ser."
When
Erdyl returned momentarily with Demyst, the three settled into chairs around
the desk.
"What
did you find out from her?" asked Kharl.
"Jemelya?" Erdyl's voice was casual.
"You
like her?"
Demyst
smothered a grin at Kharl's question.
"She's
years older than I am, ser." Erdyl smiled sheepishly. "She is
beautiful, though."
"Beautiful
women are dangerous," suggested the undercaptain. "Then, maybe all
women are." He laughed nervously.
"What
did she say?" asked Kharl.
"She
didn't say all that much. Well... she talked a lot, but... She knew about the
patrollers' barracks. She said that the one in the harbor has an armory, and
that there are three companies billeted there, and none of the patroller
rankers can have consorts."
"She
said it that way?" asked Demyst.
"Yes, ser."
"They
think of them as armsmen, then," Kharl said. *?
"She
never said that... oh, I see ... companies ... billeted ..".
rankers
... armory ..." Erdyl nodded. .
"What
about the other barracks in the south?"
"She
said that held five mounted companies and another four arms
companies. She also said that there was another new barracks to the
east, just off Angle Road. I'm sure she said Angle Road. That only holds six
foot companies, but there's an armory there that also has cannon."
"Loaded
with grapeshot," Kharl suggested.
"She
didn't mention that."
"No,
but it makes sense. That's the road that Osten and Vielam would have to use to
bring their armsmen back to Brysta," Kharl pointed out.
"It's
not a Hamorian barracks," Erdyl said.
Kharl
shook his head. He'd never said anything to them about his suspicions. Should
he? He fingered his bare chin. There was no point in hiding his thoughts now.
"Ser?"
"I've
been thinking about all this. All those patrollers are nothing more than a
small army. They all report to Captain Egen. He's Lord West's youngest son.
He's moved the regular lancers and armsmen-the ones that might be more loyal to
Lord West or Overcaptain Osten-to the quarry fort in the south. That means
they're farther from Brysta, and his patrollers control who travels south, or
who can do so quickly, anyway."
"That
means they can't know what's happening in Brysta, not soon," suggested the
undercaptain, "unless this Egen wants them to know."
"Egen's
also the one dealing with the Hamorians."
"You
think he's trying to get rid of his brother and succeed his father?" asked
Demyst.
"I
don't know. He's an evil little bastard, and he wouldn't hesitate to do
something like that if he thought he could get away with it. He's also
tightened up the laws and is having the lord justicers sentence more men to
work in the quarries and, I'd guess, on that road as well."
"The
Hamorians are backing him?" Erdyl moistened his lips.
"The
cloth for the patroller uniforms comes from Hamor. There are only Hamorian
ships in the harbor. The Hamorians are supplying engineers, and they're often
in the south." Kharl paused. "And more than half the envoys from
other lands have left Brysta, for one reason or another."
"When
is something going to happen?" asked Demyst.
"Soon,
but how soon, I don't know. I'm hoping I can find out more from Lord West
tomorrow."
"I'd
better see about looking into hiring a night guard or two," suggested the
undercaptain. "We can afford that, can't we?"
"You
think they'll come after an envoy?" asked Erdyl.
"Egen
will come after anyone he thinks he can best." Kharl snorted.
"You
know a lot about him?" Demyst frowned.
"Enough."
More than enough, Kharl added to himself. "The guards are a good idea. I
should talk to them before you hire them, though."
"I'd
planned on that, ser. Mantar has some cousins, used to
be arms- men. Thought I could talk to them first."
"You
might have Enelya get a look at them, too."
Erdyl
and Demyst exchanged glances.
"She
knows about some of the worst ones." Kharl looked to Erdyl. "Did
Jemelya tell you anything else we should know?"
"She
said that the roads to the east weren't usually passable during the late-summer
rains. Not with any speed, leastwise."
"I think
she's suggesting that when the rains finally come, so will trouble,"
ventured the undercaptain.
That
made an unfortunate kind of sense to Kharl. "Anything else?"
"I
can't think of anything. I mean, she talked a lot, about everything from the
good taverns to Overcaptain Osten's consort only giving him three daughters and
Egen not having a consort, and Vielam's consort and children dying last summer
when their coach went off the road and into the river..."
Kharl
winced.
"Ser?"
"I'd
wager that the coach accident was planned. That leaves no heirs."
"Planned
by who?" asked Demyst. "Egen or the Hamorians?"
"I'd
say Hamor. That's just a guess." Kharl's eyes rested on Erdyl once again.
"That's
all, ser. I think. If I recall anything else, I'll tell you."
Kharl
stood. "After we eat, Erdyl, I'd like you to make the rounds of the
envoys' residences. Ask for the secretaries or assistants. If they're there,
ask about the date you've chosen for our function. What I really want to know is
how many of them are still in Brysta and how many have left or are planning on
leaving soon."
"Yes, ser."
"When
you get back, you and I will go over what I'll need to expect when I present my
credentials tomorrow. And some good meaningless phrases."
Erdyl
bobbed his head.
"I'll
start on trying to find some guards, ser, this afternoon. Unless you need
me," said Demyst.
"Not
this afternoon."
After
Erdyl and Demyst left, Kharl paced back and forth across the residence library.
Everything seemed calm in Brysta, but beneath that apparent calm everything was
unsettled, and likely to get more so in the days ahead. He paused and looked
out the window. The sky was still clear. So far.
Before
long, Khelaya and Enelya would be serving the midday meal. Kharl wasn't that
hungry, but he supposed that he needed to eat. The way matters were going, he
might have to do magery at any time.
He tried
not to think about Jeka, but the image of her eyes,
and the sound of her laugh, remained with him.
LXXIV
Kharl
stood in the library on twoday morning, waiting for Mantar to ready the
carriage to take him to present his credentials to Lord West. He hoped he could
remember all that Erdyl and he had gone over the evening before, especially all
of the phrases and courtesies.
On
Erdyl's advice, he wore his second-best finery, a silver-gray shirt, black
jacket trimmed in green, and black trousers and boots.
His eyes dropped to the silver box on the desk, shimmering from its recent
polishing. The box had had been Hagen's suggestion for a token to Lord West. A
handspan in length and half that in height and width, it was ornately chased
silver, with three narrow courses of stone inset as a border on the hinged top.
The outer course and the inner courses were black onyx, and the middle course
was lapis lazuli. In the center was a silver replica of the seal of the West
Quadrant.
"Something
tasteful, but not something he can convert easily into golds,"
Kharl
had understood that well enough. He smiled at his recollection of Hagen's dry
words. He eased the gift into a plain pouch of new soft calf leather, then
slipped the pouch into the elaborately carved leather case that held his
credentials as envoy. He set the case on the corner of the library desk and
turned toward the window, looking out at the dark clouds to the west. Were the
late-summer rains finally arriving, or would the clouds blow over and leave Brysta
hot and close for another eightday?
What did
he expect to find out from meeting Ostcrag, the present Lord West? Did Ostcrag
know what Egen was planning? Did Osten? Did they have plans of their own? If
the reception and presentation allowed any questions at all, Kharl might get a
better idea about Hamor and Nordla.
All that
wouldn't help with Jeka, though. There, he was at a loss. He'd worried about
her, but he'd been stunned to feel his own reactions to her. That was something
he'd never expected. He just hadn't, and he was thinking about her when he
should have been worrying about Lord West and Egen.
Warrl-what
had happened to his youngest also lay close to the surface of his thoughts,
with the sadness sweeping over him when he least expected it.
"The
carriage is ready, ser," Demyst announced, from outside the library.
Kharl
picked up the elaborately tooled leather case with his credentials. As he
stepped out of the library, he saw three men awaiting him- Erdyl, Demyst, and
Alynar. He raised his eyebrows.
"You
need to take a guard, ser, someone in addition to Undercaptain Demyst,"
Erdyl said quickly. "So we asked Alynar to accompany you."
"Thank
you." Kharl glanced at the two armed men. "We'd best be going." He
turned and walked down the corridor to the front portico, then outside.
While
Kharl and Demyst entered the carriage, Alynar settled himself next to Mantar on
the right side of the driver's bench seat.
The
Quadrancy Keep was at the top of the hill to the northeast of the harbor, an
ancient and sprawling pile of gray stone at the topmost end of the Lord's Road.
At perhaps a quarter before the hour, the carriage rolled up to the iron
gates-closed and with three guards stationed outside-all regular armsmen, and
not patrollers. Kharl could see a raised stone tower on the right, just behind
the wall and gates, and he sensed several more armsmen there.
"Lord Kharl, the Austran envoy," Mantar
announced.
Kharl's
name was relayed to another armsmen on the inside of the gate, and several
moments passed before the gate began to swing open. As the carriage passed the
iron gates, Kharl noted the heavy oak gates behind them, held flush against the
outer stone wall. An inner and higher stone wall stood another rod or so inside
the outer wall. The inner gates were open, and Mantar drove the carriage into a
courtyard beyond the second set of gates. There he pulled up opposite an arched
entryway.
Two more
armsmen flanked the archway.
As Kharl
descended from the coach, a man stepped from the archway.
"I'm
Mihalen, Lord Kharl, secretary to Ostcrag, Lord West." The slender
dark-haired man bore a sabre and looked as though he could use it. His eyes
measured Kharl. "You look like you were once a marshal."
"I've
seen a few battles," Kharl replied, with a slight laugh, "but not as
a marshal."
Mihalen's
smile was faint. "This way to the small receiving chamber, ser." He
turned and walked through the archway leading into the keep building. Beyond
the entry was a small foyer, then a wide but dimly lit corridor. Mihalen kept
walking.
Kharl
followed.
Close to
a hundred cubits down the stone-walled hallway, the secretary turned and
stopped at a doorway. There he tugged at a bellpull. After a moment, he spoke.
"Lord Kharl, the Austran Envoy, to present his credentials."
"Show
him in, Mihalen."
The secretary
opened the door and gestured for Kharl to enter.
The
envoy and mage extended his order-senses .. . and paused
for the briefest of moments. Somewhere beyond the door was a white wizard.
Ready to raise shields or harden air, Kharl stepped through the open door into a chamber no more than twenty cubits
by ten. The walls were of dark wood, and without painting or ornamentation, and
the ceiling above was of plaster once white, but yellowed through age. The two
high windows were open, but no breeze issued from either.
Four men
were on the low dais at the far side of the chamber. Lord West, wearing a dress
tunic of Brystan blue and gray trousers, but looking grayer and more frail than
the one time Kharl had seen him before, was seated in a carved ebony chair. At
his shoulder stood a younger man, close to Kharl's age, with deep-set black
eyes and blond hair cut carelessly short. His dress tunic was burgundy.
Stationed at each end of the dais was an armsman, both in burgundy and blue.
Kharl
took several steps forward before bowing. "Kharl of Cantyl, here to
present my credentials as envoy of Lord Ghrant of Austra to the West Quadrancy,
and its Lord."
"And
to his son, Lord-to-be, Osten," replied Ostcrag. His voice was hoarse.
"Step
forward, Lord Kharl," suggested the younger man, "so that we can see
you face-to-face."
Kharl
did so, stopping less than two cubits from the dais. "My
credentials." He took out the proclamation and sealed letter and extended
them.
Osten
stepped forward. He broke the seal and read the letter, then the proclamation,
quickly and seemingly almost casually, before handing them to his sire.
"They seem to be in order."
Ostcrag
took more time in reading through the documents. He kept the letter and handed
the proclamation back to Kharl. "Welcome to Brysta, Lord Kharl. We honor
you as envoy of Lord Ghrant."
"Thank
you." Kharl inclined his head, then straightened. "In addition to my
credentials, I bring a small token of Lord Ghrant's esteem and respect."
Ignoring the probes by the white wizard for the moment, he extracted the pouch
from his case and extended it.
Osten
took the pouch as well, easing out the silver box, which he lowered for his
sire to see.
"The
Lords of Austra have always bestowed such small and exquisitely tasteful
gifts," Ostcrag replied.
"That
is because the taste of the Lords of the West Quadrant are well known," Kharl
said, hoping he didn't have to deal with too many more implied slights, but
grateful for the time Erdyl had spent going over some of the possibilities.
Kharl
could sense that the white wizard remained behind the hanging at the back of the
dais. The wizard was not one as strong as those he had faced in Austra, but one
with enough strength to throw firebolts and possibly detect untruths. Yet Kharl
could say little about it, without revealing his own abilities. Then, he
considered, he could not conceal them.
He
looked directly at Osten. "You could invite your wizard to join us. I'm
sure he would be more comfortable here than behind the arras."
"There
were rumors," suggested Ostcrag. "You seem to be affirming
them."
"I have
some order-ability," Kharl admitted. "Enough to sense a white wizard,
anyway. That takes little enough."
"I
am certain that Borlent feels more comfortable where he is," suggested
Osten.
Kharl
merely nodded. "We all have our places and preferences." Another
phrase from Erdyl.
"Lord
Ghrant has survived some difficult challenges in recent times. He must feel
most confident-or most adventuresome-to send a mage of any sort to Brysta as an
envoy." Ostcrag's smile did not extend beyond his lips.
"Times
have indeed been difficult in Austra, but Lord Ghrant is most fortunate in
having Lord Hagen as his lord-chancellor. Matters have improved greatly. Lord
Ghrant is most interested in strengthening Austra within itself. He has little
interest in adventures."
"Not
even in Nordla?" Ostcrag raised his eyebrows as if in disbelief.
"Lord
Ghrant would hope that matters remain as they have with the four quadrants of
Nordla. He would certainly not wish to support any change here." Kharl
managed to keep his expression pleasant, even as he could sense a swirling of
chaos from the hidden white wizard. He stood ready with his shields, but the
momentary spike of chaos behind the hanging subsided.
"Things
always change," observed Osten, his voice languid, at odds with his almost
rigid posture.
"That
is true," Kharl admitted. "Lord West succeeds Lord West, and so long
as the succession is proper, that is change as it should be."
"Yet.. . small as you claim your talent for order-magery may be,
Lord Kharl," Osten said, "does not your presence suggest... a certain
... proclivity ... an indication that Austra might favor the policies of
Reduce."
"I
don't think so." Kharl paused for just a moment. "Hamor uses white wizards, but I would not claim that such
use has ever meant that the emperor is inclined to follow the views of
Fairven."
Ostcrag
laughed harshly. "One would hope not. In either case."
"How
are you finding Brysta?" asked Osten quickly. "Or have you been here
before?"
Behind
him, Lord Ostcrag nodded.
"I've
seen Brysta from the deck of a merchanter before," Kharl replied. That was
certainly true, if definitely not the whole truth. "And I've traveled the
streets." He paused. "I could be mistaken, but I've seen no beggars
at all on the streets since I've been here this time."
"I'm
glad that you have not." Osten's voice was hearty. "My brother has
taken it upon himself to ensure that no such riffraff bother honest
people."
"I've
also seen more Watch patrollers. They are most alert."
"The
Watch was reorganized last winter. That was after several malefactors escaped
..." Osten shrugged. "My younger brother was not pleased and took it
upon himself to overhaul the entire Watch. We have had far fewer thefts and
disorder since."
Kharl
turned to face Ostcrag directly. "Your sons are most diligent."
"That
they are, and a boon to the West Quadrant."
"Still..."
mused Kharl, drawing out the expression, "all cities, save Brysta, seem to
have beggars. How have you managed this miraculous feat?"
"By
putting them to work," replied Osten, before his sire could say a word.
"They earn an honest wage in the quarries and upon the new south road."
"The new south road? Where does it go? To Surien?"
"Not
yet," answered Ostcrag. "Were Lord South to finish his portion,
within a few years we would have a metaled road between Brysta and Surien. Not
the poor clay track that is now a mere excuse for a road. Then we would have
greater trade and prosperity."
"Just
like the
"That
would certainly improve trade, I would think," said Kharl.
"Exactly,"
replied Osten. "Have you such highways in Austra?"
"None of that length. Only a few shorter ones near
Valmurl," Kharl admitted, before getting to his own questions. "The
Hamorian envoy told me that you were using Hamorian engineers for
road-building, but I had no idea that you were planning to build
such a large highway. Is that why there are so many Hamorian merchanters in the
harbor?"
"There
are no more than usual," replied Ostcrag.
The
older lord was telling what he believed was the truth, and that stopped Kharl
for a moment.
"I
understand that you are also a scholar of the law, Lord Kharl," offered
Osten. "Is that why you've been spending so much time in the Hall of
Justice? Or is it familiar to you for other reasons?"
Kharl
offered a laugh. "I have studied the law, as the chief clerks will tell
you, but an envoy's task is also to better understand the land. What happens in
the Hall of Justice reveals much."
"What
has it revealed to you in the very short time that you've been here?"
asked Osten, his words pointed.
"You
like Brysta to be a very orderly city. You do not permit beggars and thieves.
You would rather sentence a careless man to hard labor than risk letting a
thief go free."
"Carelessness
can be as dangerous as theft," Osten countered.
Kharl
smiled politely. "You asked what I saw, Lord Osten."
"Overcaptain. My sire is the only Lord."
Kharl
nodded to Ostcrag. "I beg your pardon."
"Granted, Lord Kharl." Ostcrag looked hard at the envoy.
"You are a large man. Few are so large, and you speak as though you have
some familiarity with Brysta. Yet you have lands in Austra. How did this
happen?"
"I
was fortunate in being in the right place during the revolt against Lord
Ghrant. I was an officer on a merchanter of Lord Hagen's and was part of a
force that was called to support Lord Ghrant. I managed to be of some assistance
when it was most useful."
"A merchanter officer who is now a lord, who has
demonstrated prowess in battle, and who has studied the law. Most unusual."
"Perhaps, Lord West. Yet envoys must know about trade and
battles, and knowing the law cannot hurt."
"Such
abilities are useful, Lord Kharl," Ostcrag returned, "but they can be
most dangerous when an envoy does not have a large force nearby."
"I
would not go against your judgment, ser. I would think that the danger would
only exist if the West Quadrant were ruled by a Lord without scruples and
honor, and all say that you have exhibited both." Those words Kharl had
managed to adapt, if in a scrambled form, from a phrase that he and Erdyl had
worked out the night before.
Osten
frowned.
Ostcrag
laughed. "You would entrap me by my own honor, Lord Kharl. Indeed, you are
a dangerous man." He stood. "It has been a most. .. intriguing ...
presentation. You may find you need more than words to represent Lord Ghrant in
these times. Between Hamor and Reduce, the rest of us must tread with great
care, even wizards and order-mages."
"I
will remember your words," Kharl replied.
"Best
you do. Good day, Lord Kharl." Ostcrag nodded.
Kharl
bowed, then stepped back, his senses alert; but neither the hidden wizard nor
the armsmen moved or acted as he left the chamber.
Outside,
in the corridor, Mihalen waited.
"You
must have intrigued them. Such presentations are usually shorter."
"I'm
new to being an envoy," Kharl replied. "I'm sure that it showed."
"All
envoys must have a first posting."
Kharl
smiled politely. He just wanted to leave the Quadrancy Keep. The walls seemed
to press in on him, although his order-senses detected nothing except a feeling
of age and faint chaos throughout everything.
Mantar,
Demyst, and Alynar were waiting in the courtyard with the carriage, and Demyst
offered a smile of relief as Kharl stepped through the archway. Kharl did not
bother with a parting greeting to Mihalen, whom he trusted even less than Lord
West and his son.
Not
until the carriage rolled out of the gates and onto Lord's Road downhill toward
the residence did Demyst ask, "How did things go, ser?"
"Mostly as expected. They wanted to know more about me, and I
wanted to find out things about them. I didn't find out much. They didn't
either." He just hoped that he had not revealed too much, although he had
expected more probing questions.
As he
rode back to his own residence, Kharl pondered over the presentation. He still
could not tell, not for certain, if Ostcrag and his son had received word about
his magely exploits in Austra. From what he had sensed, he was also fairly
certain that neither Ostcrag nor Osten fully understood what Egen was doing.
But how could they not see what was so obvious? Was it because they did not
wish to see it? Or because they liked the orderly streets of Brysta and did not
wish to look at how that order had been created? Then, there was Ostcrag's
parting comment about the conflict between Reduce and Hamor. Kharl was unaware
of such a conflict, and he was confident he would have felt something when he
had been in Nylan. Yet Ostcrag believed what he had said, and the implications
of that belief were anything but good for Kharl and Austra.
LXXV
Midmorning
on threeday found Kharl and Alynar in the carriage, heading through a warm
drizzle toward the residence of the Sarronnese envoy. That was assuming that
Luryessa would speak to him-if she was even still in Brysta. Kharl wasn't above
begging for information, not after his meeting with Lord West, and not after
Erdyl had reported late on twoday afternoon that none of the envoys who had
been absent from Brysta had returned and that two others-from Lydiar and
Delapra-had also left Brysta.
The
outer gates to the Sarronnese residence were open, and Mantar brought the
carriage up the drive and to a halt under the receiving portico. Kharl opened
the door and stepped out of the carriage. "Just wait here with
Mantar," he told Alynar.
"Yes, ser."
The duty
guard stiffened as Kharl approached. A
"I'm
Lord Kharl of Austra. I'd like to see Envoy Luryessa, if she% here."
"Ser
... I can't say. I'll summon her assistant."
"That's
fine." What else could he say? So he stood under the portico, out of the
drizzle. The rain wasn't strong enough to be a true late-summer rain, but
sometimes several days of light rain preceded the downpours that announced the
end of summer.
The door
opened, and a dark-haired woman stood there. She wore a short-sleeved, plain,
dark blue shirt and matching trousers. A lock of unruly hair crossed her
forehead, and, as if she had noted his observation, she brushed it back.
"Lord Kharl?" A sense of blackness- order-rather than the white of
chaos-flowed around the woman. Somehow, after meeting Luryessa, he hadn't
expected a Sarronnese order-mage.
"You
must be Jemelya." Kharl offered a pleasant smile.
"I
am. You must be here to see Luryessa. She thought you might come by unannounced
at some time. You are fortunate. She is here, in her study. If you would like
to come in?"
"Thank
you."
Kharl
followed her to the library, then to the open door to the private study.
Luryessa
did not rise from the desk, but smiled. "Do come in. You might close the
door for me."
Kharl did
and settled into a straight-backed chair across from her. "Jemelya said
you were expecting me."
"I
thought you might come. You are inexperienced as an envoy, but most perceptive.
If you came anywhere, it would likely be here."
Kharl
found he was neither surprised nor angered by her calm presumption. "I'm
sorry to stop unannounced-"
"Don't
apologize. It's better that you didn't. Already, the word is out that you're a
minor mage." A smile danced on Luryessa's lips and in her hazel eyes.
"You
had something to do with that?"
"Only the 'minor' part." The smile faded. "We will be
returning to Sar-ron for consultations with the Tyrant. So we will be closing
the residence, tomorrow or the next day, whenever our ships arrive."
"Ships? Warships?" Then Kharl shook his head. "That's
to make sure that they arrive."
Luryessa
nodded.
"What
else should I know? That you can tell me?"
The
mischievous smile returned. "You have just met with Lord West and his
eldest. You must know far more than a mere woman."
Kharl
snorted. "I am most certain that you have noticed that there are no
regular armsmen in Brysta and that the patrollers loyal to Captain Egen
effectively control the city. Doubtless you already know that their uniforms
came from Hamor, and that the road leading to Surien has been designed by
Hamorian engineers. It is a very good road, by the way."
"Yes.
You have a point?"
Kharl
decided not to make it-not yet. "I am also quite sure that you know that
Captain Egen controls-or influences strongly-the lord justic- ers and that they
have been instructed to find any way possible to sentence those who commit
minor offenses to the quarries or the road- building crew. And that at least some wealthy
factors who support Osten have left Brysta."
"I
suspected that, but I did not know that. Your point, Lord Kharl?"
"I
don't think that either Lord West or Osten understands what all that means. You
do, if I understood the message about the late-summer rains."
"You
discovered this by some sort of magery?"
Kharl
shook his head. "Just by talking and listening to Ostcrag and Osten. They
also knew something about me, but I don't think they understood what that
meant, either."
"You
had best hope that they do not."
"No
... I'd best hope that Egen doesn't. Or the Hamorians."
"I
am most certain that they do know. All of them. The Hamorians only have two or
three wizards here. At the moment." Luryessa smiled sadly. "A fleet
was being provisioned in Swartheld two eightdays ago. It was being readied to
head northwest. With at least several more white wizards."
Kharl
couldn't say that he was surprised. He would have been astonished if Luryessa
had suggested that all was well. "Lord West suggested that he-and
Austra-were being caught between Hamor and Reduce and needed to tread
carefully. He believes that. So does Osten."
"That
is because Egen and the Hamorians have prepared the ground well."
"How
soon?" asked Kharl.
Luryessa
shrugged. "Soon, but I cannot name a date. It is not likely this eightday,
but not impossible. You have changed everything."
"Me?"
"Oh . .. they do not know that. None of them do except
Whetorak and his assistants, and Whetorak will say nothing until additional
white wizards arrive. He has heard of your exploits in Austra, and he is most
cautious. Otherwise, Egen would now be poised to take Brysta at the first true
rains."
Kharl
had surmised as much, but it was still a double shock to hear Luryessa's
words-first, her casual revelation that she understood just who he was and,
second, her confirmation that Egen and the Hamorians were indeed planning to
topple Lord West.
"Egen
feels his father is weak and that his brothers are little better
. .." Luryessa noted.
"Whetorak
is encouraging that, I would wager."
"I
won't take that wager." The Sarrortnese smiled. "So what do you plan
to do?"
Kharl
really hadn't thought that through.
"Will
you just watch? Or throw your abilities behind Osten and Lord West, incompetent
as they are?"
"What
would you do?" he countered. "You're a sorceress."
"I'm
not in your class, Lord Kharl. Few are. That's why we're leaving. We could
assassinate Egen, but the Hamorians would know we had. They'd make certain that
all the world knew. That's why our departure will be soon and very public. I
just hope that it's soon enough."
Kharl
sat there for a time, silent. Once again, it seemed that he had created a
bigger problem just by showing up and trying to find out what was happening.
"A good envoy would have discovered all this without..
." He broke off. He wasn't certain what he really meant.
"You're
acting like too many men," Luryessa said dryly. "I expect better of
you."
"You
might explain that," Kharl replied, tartly.
"Oh. .. that's simple enough. You're here something like two
eight- days, and you discover what it's taken the best envoys seasons to figure
out, and because you don't have a ready solution, you're acting like it's all
your fault. Men ... you can't stand it if you don't have an answer."
Kharl
winced.
"Of
course, you don't have an answer. You can't. No one could. You still don't know
everything. I don't either." She smiled sardonically. "I don't have
to have an answer. I just have to get my people out of here safely."
"And
I don't?"
"Were
you sent here to leave at the first sign of trouble?"
Kharl
smiled wryly. "I wasn't given any instructions at all in that way."
"Exactly. Lord Hagen is counting on your sense of
responsibility."
"How large a fleet?"
"Not
large. More like a flotilla. Six or seven vessels. Only one troop
transport."
"Is
Lord Justicer Lurtedd still close to Osten?"
Luryessa
frowned. "He will not cross Egen or Reynol."
"Would
he warn Osten?"
"I
would doubt that. He understands that Egen holds more power."
Kharl
nodded slowly.
"I
do not envy you, Lord Kharl. Anything you do will have adverse
consequences."
"Some
acts less than others, I would hope."
"That
is always true. Do you have other questions that I can answer?"
Kharl knew
he should have had scores, but he could think of few, although he knew he would
come up with the most important ones only after Luryessa departed. "Where
does Egen store his golds-the ones he uses to pay the patrollers?"
"I
do not know that for certain, but a storehouse with barred windows and stone
walls was erected in the post that serves the south road and the quarries.
There is also an underground chamber in the main new barracks on the south side
of the city."
"Is
Whetorak truly in command of the Hamorian forces here? Will he remain so?"
"No.
Submarshal Teorak-he is the assistant envoy in name-controls all armsmen and
lancers and probably will command any additional forces landed in Nordla."
"Will
this Hamorian flotilla try to conquer Surien as well?"
"They
will not attempt anything unless there is no one with a claim to rule."
Kharl
wasn't sure he liked that. The implication was that Osten or Vielam-or even
Lord West-needed to survive, for any plan to block Hamorian control to be
successful.
"I
said that none of the choices would be good," Luryessa said.
"And
you think I should do something?"
"I
think nothing. I suggest nothing. I will say that a powerful black mage who is
not from Reduce is the only hope for the West Quadrant not to fall under the
iron fist of Hamor. And that is but a hope."
"Most of kind of you."
"You
wanted my judgment, not my flattery."
Kharl
sat there silently for a moment.
Luryessa
stood. "If you have no more questions ..."
Kharl
rose. "I should, but I can't think of any more."
"Do
what you feel is right. Trust Egen to be himself, and the Hamori-ans to weigh
and be patient, and you may have a chance to change what others think is
inevitable." Luryessa smiled, faintly. "Good day, Lord Kharl. Our
best wishes are with you."
Kharl
turned and walked down the corridor to the portico, followed by Jemelya. At the archway, he nodded to her,
then walked toward the waiting carriage.
Once he
was settled into the carriage, Kharl looked blankly at the faded green fabric
above the seat across from him. What could he do? He had no ships. He had no
lancers or armsmen. He didn't even know what Egen would do first-or when.
He
paused. There was one thing he could do-and should have thought of earlier. He
eased the carriage door open and leaned forward, calling to the driver.
"Mantar!"
"Ser?"
"Take
me to the Factors' Exchange!"
"The
Factors' Exchange it is, ser."
Alynar
looked at Kharl, but didn't speak.
"We
might need a few more golds on hand," Kharl said. He wasn't certain the
guard fully appreciated what he was saying, but Kharl didn't feel like
explaining in more detail.
At the
Factors' Exchange, Kharl managed to draw two hundred golds, claiming that the
terms of his arrangement allowed two eightdays' draw at any one time. He
doubted he'd get away with that again, but he hoped he wouldn't have to.
After
the carriage left the Factors' Exchange, he tried to think about what was most
likely to happen. While Egen would not need the Hamorian warships immediately,
Kharl couldn't see the captain starting his revolt without them. At the very
least, their long guns could reduce the Quad-rancy Keep, if necessary. Luryessa
was right about the timing. If the rains came, then Osten and Lord West could
not move their loyal troops against Brysta and Hagen's patrollers that easily.
A quick
campaign would also end before harvest, and that would leave Egen with the full
amount of the year's tariffs in his coffers. Then, mused Kharl, while Egen
planned for a quick campaign, that did not mean it would be so-or that Whetorak
and the Hamorians would want a quick resolution.
When
Mantar brought the carriage to a halt at the residence, Kharl headed for the
strong room inside. He'd no more than locked the door, after putting most of
the golds in the chest, and gotten halfway up the rear steps to the back hall
when he saw Khelaya standing there.
"Lord
Kharl. .."
"What
is it?"
"Best
you talk to Enelya, ser. Some other tavern girl just left. The poor thing's
sobbing her heart out, talking about leaving ..."
"Where
is she?"
"In the back pantry. You need to see to her afore she goes off
wild- like."
Kharl
took a deep breath. "I'll do that." Even if dealing with a sobbing
Enelya was the last thing he felt like doing.
Enelya
looked up as he stepped into the pantry. Tears coursed down her cheeks. She
swallowed.
"What
is it?" asked Kharl.
Enelya
just shuddered. She said nothing.
Kharl
forced himself to be calm. Then he reached out with his order- senses, trying
to create a sense of reassurance. "You can tell me now."
"Selda
.. ." Enelya's eyes widened, but she said nothing
more.
"What
about Selda?"
"Nalona
... Marya ... they found her with her throat cut... all her fingers
broken..."
Kharl
had a feeling he knew who the woman was, but decided he should ask.
"Selda? Who is Selda?"
"She
was another server .. . White Pony ..."
"Long-faced, with blond hair?"
Enelya
nodded, trying to stop sobbing. "... only friend . .. really ...
except..." She closed her mouth abruptly.
"Except
Jeka, you mean?"
Enelya
gaped at Kharl.
"Did
Selda know about Jeka?"
"Don't
know what you're sayin', ser."
"I know
about Jeka, and I know where she is-and where she was. If Selda knew . .. how
safe will Jeka be? Did Selda know?" Kharl's voice was hard, demanding.
"What did she know?"
"Only
knew she-Jeka-was in trade ... somewhere on Crafters' Lane."
"Why
was Egen after you? It wasn't just because you told him no, was it?"
"...
told him no ... two things ... he was askin' about a girl dressin' as a boy . .. told me I was lyin' when I said I didn't
know."
"Why
would he care about that?"
"The
old fellow ... the beggar .. . once
was a cooper, they say ... killed one of Egen's killers and got clean
away ... Folks talk about it... guess it curdled him .. . folks saw 'em
together ..."
Kharl swallowed. Then he straightened. "You'll still be safer here. Don't go
anywhere. We'll talk later." Kharl turned. "Demyst! Alynar! Cevor!
Erdyl!"
"Lord
Kharl?" asked Khelaya.
"We've
got-I've got-another problem. You and Fundal and Mantar-make
sure Enelya stays here. Tie her up of you have to, but she leaves here
... they'll get her, too."
"Who'll
get her?"
Kharl
decided to ignore the question. He wasn't certain he knew, except that they
worked for Egen. Or maybe Egen himself had killed Selda. He'd always liked to
hurt people. "I don't have time to explain now."
Leaving
Khelaya standing in the back hall, Kharl hurried up the stairs to reclaim the
sabrelike truncheon and sword belt. He was still belting it in place as he
hurried back down the front staircase.
Demyst
was standing in the corridor. "Ser?"
"We'll
need the mounts. As soon as possible, and one extra." Kharl winced at
those words. The last time he'd brought an extra mount had been for Warrl. He'd
only been three seasons too late.
"Yes, ser."
Kharl followed
the undercaptain out to the stable. He chafed at every moment it took to saddle
the mounts, and at his own slowness in saddling the gentle gelding he'd ridden
south. The drizzle had turned to mist, then lifted into low clouds that still
suggested rain, but none was falling as he led the gelding from the stable and
mounted.
Once
they were away from the residence, and headed westward toward Crafters' Lane,
higher on the harbor side of the hill, Kharl turned in the saddle to the
undercaptain. "We're headed to the weaver's-Gharan's. Egen's after..
." He paused. He'd never mentioned Jeka. "... someone there who
helped me a lot. I need to get her out of there and warn Gharan."
"Yes, ser."
Kharl
studied both sides of the street as they rode down from Sixth Cross. He didn't
see any sign of patrollers nearby. For that he was glad as he reined up outside
Gharan's shop. "Wait here," he told Demyst as he dismounted, and
handed the gelding's reins to the undercaptain. "Let me know if any patrollers
are headed this way."
Demyst
nodded. "Erdyl can come get you."
Kharl
hurried into the shop.
Gharan
looked up from his loom. "Kharl? I mean, Lord Kharl. What is it?"
"Where's
Jeka?"
"She's
upstairs with Amyla and the children. Why?"
"She's
got to leave. Right now."
"You
wanted me to take her, and now that-"
"Egen's after her. She stays here, and he'll find her."
Kharl fumbled through his wallet, and finally extracted five golds. "Here.
I don't think Egen is after anyone else. If he asks about your weaver girl, you
tell him that she left and didn't say where she was going. If it looks like
trouble, just come to the envoy's residence. If you can't find me there, or
I've had to leave Nordla, the golds should be enough for passage to Valmurl. If
it comes to that, I'll take care of all of you at Cantyl."
Gharan's
mouth opened. Then he closed it. "We ... Brysta is our home."
"If
you don't have trouble, then you can keep the golds. Call them payment for my
upsetting your life." Kharl saw a flash of sandy blonde hair.
"Jeka!"
"What
are you doing here?"
"Coming to get you."
"Just like that? Like a fancy lord?"
Kharl
forced himself to take a deep breath. "It's not like that. I told you that
Enelya was working for me? Well... you know Selda, at the White Pony?"
Jeka's
face froze for a moment.
"Egen
or his men cut her throat. That was after they broke her fingers. They wanted to
know something. Egen was after Enelya, and Selda knew about you and that you'd been
the one who'd told Enelya where she could hide from Egen. She knew some other
things, too."
"Doesn't mean he's after me."
For a
moment, Kharl didn't know what to say.
"Well?"
asked Jeka, green eyes flashing.
"He
is after you. He only knows you're somewhere on Crafters' Lane. Didn't I know
when that wizard-"
Jeka's
jaw tightened. "Doesn't change anything if I go with you."
"Not
that way," Kharl agreed. "Just grab everything you can. I've got a
horse outside for you."
"Can't ride."
"You'll
learn, and if you can't, you can hang on to me."
"I'll
learn. Right now."
"Just
get your things. Don't leave anything. Otherwise, they might think that Gharan is
hiding you somewhere."
"Already figured that out." Jeka turned and hurried toward the narrow
rear steps to the upper level.
Kharl
turned back to the weaver. "Egen might not ever come here. But he or his
men might be here this afternoon. I can't risk losing Jeka. Not... after
everything." He swallowed. "I didn't mean to cause you trouble. If
you want to leave right now ... you can. You can stay at the envoy's residence
..."
Gharan
shook his head. "Weaver girls come and go. Everyone knows that. I'll just
let it be known that she said she had a chance to go home."
"You're
sure?"
"I'm
sure ... Lord Kharl." Gharan flashed a smile. "If we see trouble,
we'll be at your door. I'm not a fool. Don't think it will come to that,
though."
Jeka
reappeared, carrying a burlap bag and wearing a shapeless jacket over her blue
shirt, as well as a cap, under which she'd swept up her hair. She looked boyish
once more. "I'm ready." Abruptly, she turned to Gharan and hugged
him. "Be thankin' you, always."
After a
moment, Gharan bent down and murmured in Jeka's ear, low enough that Kharl
wasn't supposed to hear it. "You did good work, better 'n almost all. But
I wouldn't a' given you the chance, weren't for Kharl. Don't forget it."
He straightened.
Kharl
didn't say anything, appreciating Gharan's words.
"You two goin' to keep jawing? We stay here, just cause trouble for the
weaver," Jeka said.
"Thank
you," Kharl said to Gharan, inclining his head before turning.
"It
was my gain," Gharan said. "I'll send to the residence when the cloth
is ready."
"If
I have to leave Brysta," Kharl said, "I'll have one of the
merchanters pay for it and pick it up."
"Your
word's always been good." Gharan grinned. "
'Sides, you left a good deposit."
Kharl hurried
out of the shop.
"No
sign of patrollers, not even a street Watch," Demyst told Kharl.
That was
a troublesome thought as well. Where were the patrollers?
Kharl
turned to Jeka. "This horse."
She
looked at the saddle dubiously. Her face was pale.
Kharl
reached out and lifted her, mostly by her arms and shoulders, and set her in
the saddle. "Hang on to the reins with one hand, the saddle rim with the
other. I'll take your bag until we get there."
He
remounted the gelding and turned his mount back toward Sixth Cross. He glanced
back at Jeka, riding beside Alynar. She grimaced at him. He gave an exaggerated
shrug, then lurched in the saddle. He still wasn't that good a rider. He could sense
her smothered laughter.
"Street's
real quiet, ser," observed Demyst. "Could be trouble."
"Likely in the next few days. How are you doing on finding guards?"
"One's
coming round this afternoon. Maybe two."
"Let's
hope they're good."
"One
might be. The others . .. who knows?"
Kharl
keep watching the roads, both with eyes and senses, but he saw no patrollers,
nor did he sense any unusual amount of chaos. Even so, he was relieved when
they finally reined up in the open space before the residence stable. He
dismounted and turned the gelding to Mantar, before walking over to Jeka's
mount.
Kharl
held out a hand. Jeka took it, but only long enough to scramble down. He took
the mount's reins with one hand and gave her the burlap bag with the other
before she could request it.
"Now
what?" asked Jeka.
"You
can take one of the empty rooms on the third level."
"Where's
Enelya?"
"In the retainer quarters there." Kharl gestured.
"Why
not put me out where she is?"
"Because you're not a retainer here. You're a guest."
"A guest in a lord's house? What kind of guest?" Jeka glared.
Kharl
could feel Demyst and Erdyl edging away, leading their mounts into the stable
with relief. Mantar stood by the open stable door, holding the reins to Kharl's
gelding, waiting.
"You
can have one of the large bedrooms on the second level, then."
"That
where your room is?"
Kharl
nodded.
"Third
level's better. Door better have a bar."
"It
has a latchplate. It's very solid."
"Good."
Kharl
led the mount over to Mantar. "Thank you."
"Not at all, ser." The driver, who was also the groom, did
not look directly at Kharl, but Kharl could sense his amusement.
The mage
and envoy turned back to Jeka. "This way."
Fundal
and Khelaya were waiting inside the rear hallway. Kharl could sense Enelya in
the rear pantry. "Enelya, you might as well come greet Jeka." Kharl
waited, ignoring the impatience of the steward and cook, until the serving girl
appeared. "Fundal, Khelaya, this is Jeka. She'll be staying with us for a
while. Up on the third level. Enelya already knows Jeka."
Fundal
glanced at Jeka.
The
small woman looked hard back at the steward.
Fundal
edged back.
"Captain
Egen is after her as well. Not a word," Kharl ordered.
"Yes, ser."
Kharl
could sense Fundal's puzzlement, but he wasn't about to explain. He wasn't sure
that he could. He turned to Enelya. "If you would take Jeka up to the
third level? She can have any chamber she wishes-except the ones being used by
the guards and Undercaptain Demyst."
"Yes, ser."
"I'm
going to my chamber for a bit. Then I'll be in the library." Kharl left
the four in the rear hall and made his way to the front staircase.
Once he was halfway up and out of sight, he called up a
sight shield and hurried up and then along the corridor past his chamber and to
the door to the rear staircase. There he waited until the two women passed the landing
before opening the door just enough to slip inside.
"...
look!"
"Look
where?" asked Jeka.
"Thought someone comin' from there. Maybe Lord Kharl just shut the door,"
replied Enelya.
"He's
really a lord?"
"He
is. Erdyl-he's sorta nice-he was telling me that Lord Kharl has
lands
with a vineyard and forests and a sawmill. And you know what he
did? He
built a cooperage with his own hands. A lord who wants to be a
cooper.
Doesn't that beat all."
Kharl
listened, wondering what Jeka would say.
"Takes
all kinds," the weaver replied. "He found you back of Werwal's? That
right?"
"Didn't know where else to go."
The two
reached the top of the stairs and turned toward the front of the residence.
"Best
room left is in the front, west side. Sun doesn't wake you."
"Good
enough." Jeka cleared her throat. "Lord Kharl... he ... interested in
you?"
Enelya
laughed. "He's interested in you. He found out that Selda knew where you
were . .. look on his face ... think he woulda shaken me like a rat... he was
runnin' for the stable." There was a moment of silence. "Good-looking
fellow. Older, but not that old. Wouldn't mind someone like that..."
"No!
Not even for a lord."
"Pretty
choosy, you are. Especially for someone who was hiding as a boy. You
ever-"
Kharl
moved slightly closer as Enelya opened the door.
"Oh..."
The involuntary exclamation from Jeka tore at Kharl. "Never.. ."
"He
likes you," said Enelya. ,
"Leave
me 'lone."
"All right." Another silence followed. "He's good
to people. You don't bed him, fine. Leastwise be nice to him. Don't spoil it
for the rest of us." Enelya slipped out of the front chamber, closing the
door softly.
Kharl flattened
himself against the wall, remaining silent while the serving girl passed him.
Then he eased forward. Was Jeka humming? Singing?
He
stopped. She was sobbing.
He
swallowed, then turned and made his way back to his own chamber. Not until he
was certain that he was alone did he release the sight shield. He stood at the
window, looking down at the side garden. Jeka ... sobbing?
He stood
at the window for a long time.
At
around the second glass of the afternoon, he finally went downstairs to the library.
For all
his worry about Jeka, he still had to consider what he might do when Brysta
erupted into fighting. The clouds had lifted more, and hazy sunlight bathed Brysta. Still, it would not
be that long before the summer-end rains arrived.
He settled
behind the desk and took out a markstick. He couldn't think of what to write.
Or what he could do. Killing Egen made the most sense, and if there had been an
Egen in Austra . . .
Kharl
laughed, ironically. Ilteron had been much like Egen, except he'd been Ghrant's
older brother, and Kharl had killed him with magery. But that had been in a
battle. No, Kharl had killed when necessary, but was it something that he
should do as an envoy?
Being an
envoy made matters harder, not easier. As just a mage and cooper, and not an
envoy, for what Egen had done to Kharl and those he loved, Kharl could have
killed the captain without a qualm. But.. . would that be the best thing to do?
For that matter, where was Egen? Kharl didn't dare try to travel south again. He
frowned. Egen might well be at Werwal's trial the next day. Kharl could get a
sense then. If Egen was not, he might be able to ask the others where the
captain was. That would be far quicker than searching blindly.
He nodded,
then began to sketch out a rough map of Brysta, using
an older map in one of the histories as a rough guide, but updating it from
what he knew. He needed to know how long it might take to get from the two
barracks to the Quadrancy Keep-or to the harbor piers and other places.
Before
Kharl knew it, Khelaya was standing in the doorway.
"Supper
is served, Lord Kharl... the others ..."
"Oh...
I'm sorry." Kharl rose quickly and hurried to the dining chamber.
His place
at the end of the table was empty, of course. The others stood behind their
chairs, Erdyl was to his right, and Demyst to his left. Jeka stood to the left
of the undercaptain. She still wore the weaver's blue, but it became her,
especially in the soft lamplight of the evening.
"Please..."
Kharl gestured for them to sit. "I was working on some maps."
"You
missed the midday meal, too," Erdyl said.
Kharl
hadn't even thought about eating then. That might have been why his stomach
decided to growl. After he seated himself, he filled his beaker with lager and
handed the pitcher to Demyst, knowing that Erdyl would have wine, as the
secretary always did.
Khelaya
set three platters in the middle of the table, the main dish, something like
flankaar, closest to Kharl. He served himself and handed the platter to Erdyl.
"Ah
... ser," Erdyl began.
"Yes?"
"Just
a while ago, there were two warships standing off the breakwater."
"Sarronnese,
I'd wager," Kharl said, taking a helping of some cooked and wilted
greenery he did not recognize. "Did you find out?"
"Cevor
said they looked Sarronnese. Oh, and the Gallosian envoy has decided to go
hunting somewhere north of Sagana."
"Not
much to hunt there," observed Jeka.
"He's
not really hunting," Kharl said, "unless it's for a place to hide
from what's coming."
The
faintest look of puzzlement crossed Jeka's face, then
vanished.
"We
think that Captain Egen may decide he should be the next Lord West," Kharl
said blandly.
"Won't stay lord long."
"Because he's too mean?"
"Likes
to hurt people," Jeka said. "More people find that out, fewer
folks'll support him, or fight for him."
Kharl
laughed, softly. "You're right about that, but a lot of people could get
hurt before people find out. Lord West-the present one-isn't too kind,
either." He took a sip of the lager. It tasted flat, but that wasn't the
lager, he suspected.
They ate
in silence for a time. Kharl studied Jeka, trying not to be too obvious. One
thing was clear. She watched the others, and copied their manners and how they
used cutlery and how they drank. Finally, as he finished the last of the mutton
flankaar, Kharl turned to her.
"Is
your room all right?"
"It's
fine."
Fundal
appeared in the archway. "Undercaptain ... I hate to intrude, but..."
"Sestalt
is here?"
"Yes, ser."
Demyst
looked to Kharl. "If you would excuse me, ser?"
"Go
ahead."
Erdyl
glanced at Kharl. "Ser?"
Kharl
nodded.
After
the two men had left, Jeka looked at Kharl. "You managed that nice."
"I didn't
manage it. Undercaptain Demyst is trying to hire more guards. He told me that
they would be coming this afternoon or evening."
"Don't
want your assistant around me, either."
Kharl
wanted to sigh. Instead, he laughed. "You're right. He said you were
pretty. You are. But it bothered me."
"Never said that to me before."
"I
shouldn't now," he said. "You told me nothing had changed."
"Hasn't. Woulda been nice to hear, though."
Kharl
thought he understood. "I'm sorry. I didn't understand. I've thought
about. .. everything."
"Friends . .. right now." Jeka looked directly at Kharl.
"Please?"
"For
now," Kharl agreed. Not that he had any choice, he realized.
To the
side, there was a cough. Demyst stood in the doorway. "Ser ... I thought
you should meet Sestalt."
Kharl
didn't know whether to be relieved or displeased as he rose from the table. But
then, that seemed to be the way everything was headed.
LXXVI
On
fourday, Kharl dressed to appear in the Hall of Justice. He wasn't sure what else
he could do. He hadn't slept that well, with dreams about Hamo-rian warships
bombarding Brysta from the harbor while he staggered through the streets
looking for a black staff. He'd awakened from that dream with a start, gotten
up, and walked around his chamber before climbing back into his bed. The second
nightmare had been worse-Egen had burst into the residence with a squad of his
patrollers, looking for Jeka. Kharl had not returned from his presentation to
Lord West in time, and found everyone slaughtered. Jeka had been used-horribly.
He lay
awake in the warm night for a good glass after that, and slept only fitfully,
especially after a steady rain began to patter on the roof of the residence.
As he finished
dressing, except for his jacket, he considered the day ahead. The rain
continued, steady, but not quite a downpour. Should he still go to the Hall of
Justice? He shrugged. What else could he do? Demyst was better at finding
guards than Kharl would ever be. Besides, Egen might well be at the Hall for
Werwal's trial, and, if he was, that would mean a few days-one day at least, he
corrected himself-before any attacks began. Since Werwal's case was second on
the docket before Reynol, Kharl had time to eat breakfast before heading to the
Hall of Justice-if he hurried.
Kharl
could sense Jeka and Demyst at the table, and he could hear that they were
talking. He paused, then eased the sight shield around himself as he moved
toward the archway into the breakfast room.
"Lands
and all... why'd he come here?" asked Jeka.
"Lord
Ghrant asked him to."
"Did
he have to?"
"I
doubt any man could make Lord Kharl do what he felt was wrong."
Kharl
appreciated Demyst's words, but doubted their accuracy.
"We in trouble here?"
"That
we are. There is no help for that, I fear."
"He's
staying here and going to let it happen?"
Kharl
winced at Jeka's question.
"In
Austra, I questioned his actions. I was wrong. When he acts, there is none
braver..."
Kharl heard
steps above. Where he was standing in the narrow archway, one way or another,
he was likely to be discovered. He released the sight shield, then coughed
before he made his way into the breakfast room.
"Don't
believe that business about bravery," Kharl said, with a smile. "He
was far braver to accompany someone who rides badly and knew little about
fighting."
"He
is also modest," Demyst said to Jeka, standing as he did. "I fear I talked
too long. I need to spend some time with Sestalt, and I am awaiting another man
who may do as a guard." He nodded to Kharl. "Ser?"
"Do
what you have to. At the moment, you're getting more done than I am. How are
you doing with finding guards?"
"Not
so well as I'd like. Sestalt will do, and so will Sharlak."
"Take
them on, if they'll start today. Can you talk to Mantar, or Fundal, and see if
we can get some more mounts and riding gear?"
A
sheepish expression appeared on the undercaptain's face. "I was going to talk to you about that, ser.
Already been scouting. We can pick up four pretty good mounts, but they'd be
three to four golds each."
"Do
it. I'll get you the golds after I eat." Kharl was glad that he'd thought
about the need for golds and gone to the Factors' Exchange earlier, especially
since it appeared that the summer-end rains had arrived. "What about
sabres, or crossbows?"
"We
have enough in the armory here. Fundal had them stowed out of sight."
Demyst laughed. "He's most cautious."
"About everything."
With a
smile, Demyst inclined his head, then slipped out of
the breakfast room.
Kharl
settled himself at the circular breakfast table. As he did, Khelaya appeared
with a platter on which were cheesed eggs, thick ham slices, and a basket of
bread. "Erdyl said you'd be leaving soon."
"I'll
be at the Hall of Justice."
"No
good comes from there," replied the cook.
"Not
often," Kharl agreed. "Has to be a first time, though."
"When the
Kharl
laughed.
Khelaya
shook her head, then glanced at Jeka. "You want
more?"
"No."
After a moment, Jeka added. "Thank you."
Because
he wasn't sure what he could say to Jeka, Kharl took several mouthfuls of the
eggs, then a swallow of the cider, tart, as early summer cider always seemed to
be.
"Why
are you going to the Hall of Justice? Thought you'd seen enough of that."
"Werwal.. . he's before Reynol today."
"You going to bust in there with horses, too?"
"No.
I'll do what I can-if I can do anything. While I'm gone, you can use the
library. Practice reading." Kharl kept eating. He didn't want to be late
to the Hall.
"That's
harder than weaving."
"Or
you can talk to Enelya. I'd wager that she's still upset about Selda. I won't
be back for a while."
"Like
last time . .." muttered Jeka.
Kharl
winced. "I didn't have much choice, did I?"
"Suppose
not."
"I
did come back."
"For your boy."
"And for you."
Jeka
looked down. "Your boy? Undercaptain said you went south... graves there."
"Egen and his men. They killed Merayni and Dowsyl, all the
children and Warrl." He looked at Jeka, waiting until she met his eyes.
"I couldn't let that happen to you."
Jeka
looked back across the table at Kharl. "Wouldn't. You didn't have-"
"I
was supposed to leave you?" asked Kharl. "Let Egen find
you?"
"I
could have hid."
"For how long?"
"I
was a good weaver."
"You
are a good weaver. You stayed with Gharan, and you might have been a dead
one."
"What
about Gharan and Amyla?" demanded Jeka.
"I
told him that if he ran into any trouble to get out of there and come here. If
he can't find me, to get a ship to Austra and go to Cantyl. I gave him some
golds."
"You
only gave me silvers." Her face was deadpan.
It took
Kharl a moment to catch the hidden humor. "That was all I had then. I gave
you half of all I had." He forced a grin. "Do you think you were
worth it?"
Surprisingly,
to Kharl, Jeka looked down at the table for a moment. Kharl didn't know what to
say. Finally, he stammered. "I'm sorry."
"No
need for that. You're a lord."
He felt
like pounding the table. The last thing he wanted was to hurt Jeka. "Being
a lord-it doesn't mean you hurt people. I don't want to be like Egen."
"Never
be like that pissprick." Jeka looked up. "You're going to the Hall.
What if Egen sees you?"
"He
won't know I'm the same person. I don't think he'll believe a cooper could come
back as a lord."
"Mean
bastard. Doesn't forget much."
"Even
if he does, he's not going to do anything in the Hall of Justice."
"Better
be real careful when you leave."
"He
might not be there."
"Why
you're going, isn't it? See if he's there?"
"That, and Werwal."
"You
really got lands in Austra?"
Kharl
nodded. "I didn't expect it, but that was how it turned out. You'll like
them." He tried to keep his expression pleasant as he realized just what
he'd said.
"You
think I'm going? Didn't ask me."
"You're
coming to Austra. You'll be safe there. You can't stay here."
"Says
who?"
Kharl
took a deep breath. "I do."
"You been right about stuff." Jeka didn't quite meet his eyes.
"Still doesn't change things."
"It
might be a while," Kharl added. "Things could be dangerous
here."
"No
worse than hidin' from Egen between walls."
"No,"
Kharl agreed, although he wasn't so sure about that. He finished the last bit
of ham and took a swallow of the cider. Then he stood. "I need to get to
the Hall."
"Guess
I'll talk to Enelya first."
"She
can come with us to Cantyl, if she wants."
"You givin' her a choice, but not me?"
Kharl
did catch the attempt at humor this time. "That's right." He grinned.
After a
moment, Jeka returned the grin, although hers was shaky. "You be
careful."
"I
will." He turned and hurried up to his chamber, where he washed quickly,
donned his black jacket, then hastened down to the strong room to get more
golds for Demyst. Then he locked up the chests and the strong room, and made
his way up to the front portico and the waiting carriage beyond. Demyst stepped
out into the rain and opened the door. He slipped inside after Kharl.
On the
way to the Hall, Kharl gave Demyst the golds for the mounts. Then he studied
the streets, and, when he could see it through the rain, the harbor. There were
two iron-hulled warships moored at the outermost piers, and several wagons on
the piers themselves. Kharl could barely make out the ensign on one-mostly
blue. Although he did not recognize the design, he had no doubts that the
vessels were Sarronnese, and that Luryessa, Jemelya, and the rest of the Sarronnese
at the envoy's residence would be boarding those ships-if they had not already.
"Sarronnese
ships' suggested Demyst, looking past Kharl.
"They've
closed their residence. If Erdyl's right, the Hamorian envoy is the only one
left here in Brysta, except for us."
"How
soon before the fighting starts, you think, ser?"
"I
don't know. Another eightday. Could be sooner. Could be later."
"Even
with guards, we can't really protect the residence."
"I know.
We ought to have some supplies laid by so we could ride out in a hurry."
"Yes,
ser. Already been working on that. Khelaya's been
helping. Says she won't go with us, but she'll make sure we're ready to go. Any
chance of catching a ship back to Austra?"
"No.
Not that I know of." Besides, although Kharl wasn't about to say so,
leaving now didn't feel right. Was that because he'd fled once before, and Ward
and Arthal had died? Was he being stubborn and foolish? What could he do?
Offer
his services to Lord West? When the lord had sentenced and executed Charee,
knowing she was innocent?
"Ser?"
"Just thinking."
It was
just half past the second glass of the morning when Mantar brought the carriage
to a halt outside the Hall of Justice. After getting out, Kharl turned and
looked at the driver. "This time, I'd like you to come back in a glass,
Mantar, if you don't mind. I'm sorry about the rain, but I'll need you. If
anything changes, Undercaptain Demyst will let you know."
"Yes,
ser. Thought that might be the way it was."
Kharl
readied himself, extending his order-senses, but he could detect nothing more
than the usual minute trace of chaos that existed anywhere frequented by
people. Once the two men stepped into the front foyer of the Hall of Justice,
Undercaptain Demyst halted, stationing himself just inside the doors. Kharl
walked on toward the two patroller guards.
"Just finishing the first one, ser."
"That
didn't take long."
"No, ser. Never does."
Kharl slipped
into the chamber, past the bailiff, who gave him a quick glance. Outside of
those involved in the trial, the chamber was almost empty, except for a handful
of men and a single woman in the front row on the left.
A sturdy
man was being marched to face the justicer seated behind the lower podium desk in his blue velvet
gown-Lord Justicer Reynol, round- faced, gray-haired, and blocky. Behind him,
on the upper dais, the single carved high-backed seat was vacant.
"...
you have been accused of disturbing the peace and
assaulting a patroller of the Watch. The first offense is a minority. The
second is a majority against the Lord West. For the first, you are sentenced to
five lashes. For the second you are sentenced to two years' hard labor in the
quarries."
"No..."
"Any
further outbursts will add another five lashes. Justice be done."
"All
stand!" ordered the bailiff.
As the
patrollers led the prisoner out, followed by two other patrollers who might
have been witnesses, Kharl eased up the side of the chamber. He stood waiting
at the end of the first row on the right side.
Fasyn,
sitting at the side table, glanced toward Kharl. Beside him was Dasult.
The
young scrivener murmured to Fasyn. "That the advocate for the next
one?"
"...
advocate . .. also lord and envoy from Austra ...
sometimes watches cases ..."
The
bailiff's staff thudded three times. "Is there one who would take the
Justicer's Challenge? There being none, the Tenderer Werwal is here, accused of
disturbing the peace, and a majority against the Lord, to be brought before
justice!"
"Bailiff,
bring forward Werwal, the Tenderer."
The
doors at the back opened, and two patrollers stepped into the chamber, with
Werwal between them.
As they marched
Werwal in, Kharl noted that the eyes of the woman on the other end of the first
row followed the Tenderer. Behind Werwal and the patrollers came Fyngel, the
tariff farmer, and behind him, the slender figure of a captain that Kharl
recognized too well-Egen. Ostcrag's son was surrounded by a mist of chaos, some
of the chaos of having been exposed to magery and some the sullen reddish white
chaos of evil. Kharl could also sense the chaos of a beating permeating Werwal.
Egen and
Fyngel stood before the benches next to the aisle on the left side, less than
ten cubits from Kharl.
"Does
anyone represent the accused . .. Seeing no one-"
Kharl
rose. "I would ask leave to represent the accused, your lordship."
The lord
justicer stopped and looked to Fasyn, seated at the black table to the side.
"Fasyn? Is he a registered advocate?"
Kharl
could sense Egen's eyes upon him, but he did not turn.
"Ah.. . Lord Kharl is the envoy from Austra, your
lordship," Fasyn said nervously. "You have seen his credentials.
There is no bar in the law to his representing the accused. That is, if the
accused chooses to accept him as an advocate."
Reynol
looked directly at the Tenderer. "Werwal, the Austran envoy and advocate
has asked leave to represent you. You may accept his offer or decline it."
"It
can't be worse than it is," mumbled the battered Tenderer.
"Yes or no? And be civil."
"Yes,
your mightiness. I will take aid from any quarter."
"Be
it noted that the advocate from Austra represents the renderer."
Kharl
stepped forward. He did not wish to get too close to Werwal. The renderer had
been very perceptive. He might not be that observant in his current condition,
but Kharl did not wish to offer him that choice.
"You,
the renderer Werwal," Reynol announced, "have been charged with
obstructing the tariff farmer in the performance of his duties and in using
violence against the Watch. Both are majority offenses against the Lord West.
What you say or believe is not a question. We are here to do justice, and that
justice is to determine whether you did so act." Reynol seated himself.
From
behind Kharl and Werwal came the rap of the bailiff's staff. "All may
sit."
The
patrollers sat Werwal in the armless chair of the accused. Kharl reseated
himself on the bench.
The
first witness called was Fyngel, the tariff farmer who had once tripled Kharl's
tariffs on Egen's orders. Fyngel avoided looking at Kharl as he described his
efforts to inspect Werwal's property.
"...
told him he had to let me see everything. He said that
I'd already inspected his place, and I needed a warrant from the lord justicer
for a second inspection. He barred the door. Wouldn't let me in. Told him I
didn't need no warrant thing."
Kharl
watched Reynol with his order-senses. From the lord justicer's reactions, Kharl
got the impression that such a warrant was needed-or that Reynol thought it
was.
"What
did you do then?" asked the lord justicer.
"I
went and told Captain Egen. Stopping a tariff farmer in his duties, that's for
the Watch."
"What
did you do after that?"
"I
didn't do anything, your lordship. Heard that the Watch had taken Werwal, and I
figured that was something for your lordship."
Reynol
nodded, then turned to Kharl. "Do you have any
questions?"
Kharl
stood. "Just a few, your lordship." He faced the tariff farmer.
"Has anyone ever asked you for a warrant before?"
"No, ser. Never needed one."
"Have
you ever asked the justicers about the need for a warrant?"
"No."
Fyngel looked puzzled.
"I
would like to note, your lordship, that the Tenderer
was acting within the precedents and the Code when he requested a
warrant."
"So noted, advocate." Reynol looked to the patroller seated
beside Egen. "Serjeant Feryt, please step forward."
The
narrow-faced patroller with the two stripes on his shoulder stepped forward.
"Please
explain what happened when you and your men went to the Tenderer's?"
"Not
all that much to say, your lordship. We went there, like the captain said, and we
knocked on the gate. There weren't no answer. We knocked again, and there
weren't no answer then, either. So we broke out the hinges and went into the
front courtyard. The Tenderer there, he had a staff, and he laid out Hionot and
Jospak cold. Busted Calsot's arm so bad he'll be mustered out. Took the rest of
us to lay him out." The serjeant shrugged.
"The
Tenderer did not ask who you were?" asked Reynol.
"Not
that I heard, your lordship .. ."
Reynol
asked a number of questions, but all pertained to the injuries suffered by the
patrollers, and Werwal's use of only a staff to attack the patrollers.
Abruptly,
he stopped and looked, not to the serjeant, but to Egen. "Is that
all?"
Egen
stood and bowed his head briefly before speaking. "There is little more to
be said about that, Lord Justicer. The Tenderer attacked the Watch in
performance of its duties." He cleared his throat. "There is one
other matter, Lord Justicer. Just yesterday morning, we discovered that
vagrants had been using a hidden space behind the Tenderer's rear courtyard
wall to hide from the Watch. One of those hiding there may have been a murderer as well. The murderer who was there has
been reported to have left Brysta, but the renderer allowed him shelter."
"That
will be considered, Captain Egen."
Egen
smiled and seated himself.
The
captain and the serjeant had both been lying throughout-or slanting things so
much that what had been reported might as well have been lies. Kharl could
sense that. But how could he make that clear without revealing that he knew it
through magery?
Reynol
looked to Kharl. "Are you ready to address the charges, advocate?"
"If
it please your lordship."
"You
may begin."
Kharl
turned. "Serjeant Feryt?"
"Yes, ser?" The patroller stood.
"You
said that you knocked on the gate twice?"
"Yes, ser?"
"Did
you say anything?" Kharl projected a feeling that the patroller should
tell the truth. He hoped it was strong enough. He also looked hard at the
serjeant.
"Wasn't
nothing to say, ser. We were there to do our duty."
Kharl
had recalled what Erdyl had told him. "When was this? What part of the
day?"
The
serjeant glanced toward Egen.
"You
must recall what time of day it was," Kharl suggested.
"We
were late, ser, by the time we got orders."
"Was
it dark out?"
"Yes
... ser." The words sounded dragged out.
"It
was dark. Did you have lanterns or torches?"
"No, ser."
"In
the darkness, the renderer could not see your uniforms, then?" Kharl
projected another compulsion at the patroller.
The man
turned, opened his mouth, then swallowed. Finally, he
answered. "No, ser."
"Was
there any other reason why the renderer might not have seen you clearly? Any
reason at all?"
Feryt
did not answer.
"Serjeant?" Kharl intensified the projection of order.
"Captain
Egen made us blacken our faces."
"Did
you announce that you were Watch patrollers?"
The
patroller serjeant swallowed again. He did not speak.
"You
must answer the question," Reynol admonished the serjeant, "and you
must answer with the truth."
"No, ser. The captain said he'd know well enough who
we were."
Kharl
looked hard at the serjeant. "You have said that the renderer was supposed
to know that you and your men were patrollers. Yet it was dark. You carried no
lanterns, and you have said that you had all blackened your faces. You never
announced that you were Watch patrollers. How was the renderer to know that you
were patrollers?"
"He
shoulda known."
"Can
you tell me how?"
"He
shoulda known," the serjeant repeated, helplessly.
Kharl
turned to the lord justicer. "I have no more questions for the serjeant. I
do have questions for Captain Egen."
"Captain,
would you step forward, please?"
Egen
rose.
Kharl could
sense the anger and the chaos within Egen. He ignored it. "Captain, your
serjeant has said that the renderer was supposed to know that they were
patrollers. Yet it was dark. They carried no lanterns, and they did not
identify themselves. Their faces and uniforms were hidden. Was what the
serjeant said correct?"
"I
did not tell them to act that way," Egen lied. "They were supposed to
tell him who they were."
"So
you gave them proper orders?"
"Yes."
"You
were not there?"
"No.
That was their task."
"Then
you were not there to enforce your orders?
"I
just said that I was not."
Kharl nodded,
then cleared his throat gently. "There is also
the question of the space behind the rear wall. Captain Egen, you said that the
hidden space was behind the rear wall. Most rear walls are solid. Was there any
evidence of an entrance to the Tenderer's courtyard?"
Egen
paused, as if he thought about lying. "No. But the renderer should have
known about it."
"You
said that the space was used to hide a murderer. Was this murderer ever
charged?"
"He
escaped Brysta. There was no point in charging him."
Kharl
fingered his chin, turning back to Reynol. "Perhaps I have missed
something, your lordship. While there may indeed have been a murder, I do not believe
that the renderer can be charged with aiding a murder that has never been
brought to the Hall of Justice."
"Your
point is taken, advocate. That charge is dismissed." Reynol looked blandly
at Egen.
Kharl could
sense the growing anger and frustration in Egen.
Kharl
addressed Reynol. "A Lord of a land has right to know what property a man
has in order to set the tariff properly. The Lord also has the right to use
force when his officers are opposed. That is the law. The renderer would not
contest that. But he must know who the proper officials are. He must be able to
identify them. Otherwise, he could lose everything to brigands posing as
officials. Both the Code and the precedents allow a man to protect what is his
against unlawful acts. The Watch has the duty to identify themselves. They did
not do so. The accused did not know that he was opposing patrollers. He thought
he was defending his property against brigands. That is not an offense in any
land. Also, the renderer had the right to ask for a warrant from the tariff
farmer. He may have been unwise, because such a warrant would be granted. But
turning away the tariff farmer because he had no warrant was not an offense
against the Lord."
"There
seems to be a reasonable doubt in the eyes of all involved in this."
Reynol glanced at Egen.
Kharl
could sense the growing anger in the young captain.
"He
still turned away the tariff farmer and attacked the Watch, Lord
Justicer," Egen replied.
"What
do you say to that, advocate?"
"The
renderer did not use force against the tariff farmer, your lordship. He asked
for a warrant. The tariff farmer did not show one. He did not show his
medallion. The renderer was not wise, because the right to tariff is well established,
but foolishness should be punished far less severely than defiance or a crime
against the Lord."
"Your
points are taken, advocate."
"Your
lordship," Egen said. "At the very least, the renderer used force
against others and disturbed the peace."
"Your
point is also taken, Captain Egen." Reynol coughed, then spoke.
"Werwal the renderer. Step forth."
Werwal
was yanked into a standing position, not gently, but Kharl was not about to
make a point about that.
"You
are hereby sentenced to five lashes for disturbing the peace. You are ordered
to make your premises open to Fyngel the tariff farmer, and to pay all tariffs
imposed. You are also sentenced to pay one gold for the time and costs of this
trial." Reynol paused. "Consider yourself most fortunate,
renderer."
"Yes,
your lordship."
"Take
him away. The sentence is to be carried out immediately, and he is then to be
released."
"All
stand!" The bailiff's voice boomed through the chamber.
The
patrollers led Werwal out of the Hall.
Almost
as the renderer went through the doors, Egen stepped up to Kharl. "Lord
envoy, you are a most effective advocate." The captain's voice dropped
slightly. "Might it be that you have had other . .. means? Magery,
perhaps?"
Kharl
offered a smile. "It is doubtless no secret that I do have a very slight
ability with order. It is just enough to see who tells the truth and who does
not, Captain Egen. That can be helpful, I will admit, but I cannot make anyone
tell a lie or what is not so. Not even the greatest of order-mages can do
that." His eyes met those of the smaller man.
"Even
envoys must recognize what is, Lord Kharl, and I do not forget."
Kharl
smiled again, politely. "I am certain you do not, Captain. I hope that you
are not suggesting that I should suffer for pursuing justice within the
law."
Egen's
smile was cold. "I would never say that. Good day, envoy." He turned
and strode stiffly from the chamber.
The
woman who had been in the front benches eased toward Kharl. "Ser?"
"Yes."
"Thank
you. I would pay you all I have for my consort's life, but we .. ."
"You
have paid enough." Kharl lowered his voice. "As soon as he is
released, come to the Austran residence on the east hill. You can stay there."
"Ser?"
"Captain
Egen will find someone, I would judge ..." Kharl let the words hang.
"Ser?"
"Tell
Werwal what I said, then. Let him decide."
"Yes, ser." The woman backed away.
At that
moment, Fasyn hurried up. "Lord Justicer Reynol would appreciate it if you
would do him the honor of seeing him in his chamber, Lord Kharl."
"I
would be happy to see the lord justicer."
Kharl
followed the chief clerk through the side entrance behind the dais, and to a
chamber not all that much larger than that of the chief clerk's. Unlike Fasyn's
chamber, Reynol's did have a window that looked out on the courtyard.
"Lord Kharl, ser." Fasyn bowed, then stepped back and closed
the door, leaving the two men alone together.
"Lord
Justicer." Kharl bowed his head briefly, then looked directly at Reynol.
"I
have the sense that we may have met before, Lord Kharl, although I cannot
recall where." Reynol's smile was brittle.
Kharl
could sense that the justicer was being truthful. He did feel that he had seen
Kharl before, but he did not recognize the former cooper. For now, that was
just as well. "It could be, Lord Justicer, that I have watched in the Hall
so often in recent eightdays that you feel that you should know me."
"That
might be." Reynol took a long pause before continuing. "Might I ask
why you chose to defend the Tenderer?"
"I
cannot say, your lordship." That was true. Kharl
could not say, not yet at least. "He looked honest. I might have been
mistaken, though. That would not have been the first time I have been deceived."
"I
do not think you are often deceived, Lord Kharl. Still... you are fortunate you
are an envoy. The captain is not pleased."
"I
would hope justice would always be served."
"We
all hope that, even the heirs of Lord West, but justice is
a tool, and it can be turned many ways."
"Heirs of Lord West? Is the captain ...?"
"His youngest."
Kharl
forced an ironic laugh. "I am glad I am an envoy. I will have to tender my
apologies. I had not thought..."
"Having arrived so recently, it is not something
that would have come to your attention."
Kharl
understood the reproof. "It should have come to my attention, and I will discuss this at some length with
my secretary." Again, he was being truthful, but the discussion would not
go the way Kharl implied.
"It
is not all that great a problem," Reynol lied. "Captain Egen will
understand that there are often ... unforeseen circumstances in life."
"I
would rather not have contributed to that... understanding."
This
time Reynol laughed. "I understand that." He paused. "I have
read your letter of recommendation from Lord Justicer Priost of Austra. Seldom
does one get that fine a recommendation, and particularly for a lord who does
not practice often as an advocate. Might I ask your scholarly interest?"
"I
would have to say that my interest is more practical," Kharl said, drawing
on what
Reynol
tilted his head slightly, as if pondering what Kharl had said. He waited
several moments before replying. "I do not recall any envoy before being
so assiduous. I also note that your choice of garb is almost... magely."
"I
have been told I have some small abilities in that area, Lord Justicer. I do
have some ability to know when people are not telling the truth. I do not
believe that this should be any bar to representing an accused. I doubt that
anything I can do is of the scope of the great mages of Reduce or of the
past."
Reynol
nodded, then laughed softly. "You are a dangerous
man, Lord Kharl."
"I
am?" Kharl replied, almost without thinking.
"A scholar of the law, a talented, if unpracticed advocate, a
man who is physically imposing, and who can tell when others are not telling
the truth-those are traits that make a good envoy, but a dangerous opponent. It
is a good thing that you represent a ruler who has no designs on Nordla."
"I
can assure you that Lord Ghrant does not," Kharl said. "He wishes
nothing more than for the Quadrants of Nordla to remain as they have always
been. He was most clear about that."
"Were
that all rulers were so impartial." Reynol offered another smile. "Do
you intend to make a practice of appearing in the Hall?"
"No, your lordship. I fear that I may already have appeared
more than is wise. If you encounter the captain, you might convey that to him
as well."
"I
will indeed."
"Thank
you."
"Good
day, Lord Kharl. It may be that your appearance was indeed for the best."
Reynol nodded.
"Good
day," Kharl replied, before turning and letting himself out of the
chamber. He had not liked the thought that his appearance was for the best,
because Reynol had been truthful, and anything that the lord justicer thought
was for the best was not likely to be good for Kharl-or for Brysta.
Kharl
followed Fasyn, who had been waiting in the corridor outside, back to the front
foyer, where the undercaptain waited. Neither said a word until they were in
the carriage. The rain continued, steadily falling, neither heavier nor lighter
than earlier in the day.
"What
happened, ser?" Demyst's voice carried concern.
"I
represented the renderer. Captain Egen was not exactly happy. Did you see where
he went?"
"He
looked less than pleased, but he rode off up the hill."
"The
renderer may show up at the residence. We might as well use him, if he does. He
has some ability with a staff. Enough to take out three of Egen's
patrollers."
Kharl
glanced out the carriage window, toward the harbor. One of the Sarronnese
warships was swinging clear of the pier, and the other looked to be ready to
follow the first.
If
matters in Brysta simmered on, and no conflict appeared in the next few days,
Kharl would have to have Erdyl write a letter begging Egen's indulgence, but he
could do that. He'd also have to tell Fundal to expect Werwal.
Kharl
smiled. At the least, if Werwal could fight off Egen's patrollers, he wouldn't
make a bad guard until Kharl could make arrangements to have the renderer and
his consort leave Brysta.
LXXVII
Belatedly,
Kharl had ordered Mantar to drive up Lord's Road from the Hall of Justice. Even
from just outside the Quadrancy Keep, Kharl had not been able to sense the kind
of chaos that surrounded a white wizard. Nor had there been any chaos near the
Hamorian residence. In fact, the Hamo-rian envoy's residence had felt deserted.
Kharl had not liked that at all.
After checking
the Hamorian residence with his order-senses, Kharl had Mantar swing back by
the harbor. Both Sarronnese warships were well beyond the breakwaters, and a
single iron-hulled warship was making its way past the harbor forts-a Hamorian
ship. Despite the muting effects of the water and the iron, Kharl could sense
that there were several white wizards on board.
"Ser?"
"More
white wizards on that ship."
"With
them and the rain, won't be long before things get tight," suggested the
undercaptain. "You thinking we should move out?"
"That
would be a good idea, if we had anyplace to go." Also, even using the
wagon and the carriage, Kharl doubted that they had mounts and space enough to
take everyone housed at the residence. Given Egen's vin- dictiveness, Kharl had
no doubts that anyone remaining would be in great danger, and the captain could
always claim that none of them were protected by being part of the envoy's
staff because they were all from Brysta.
"Sure
would like some more armsmen."
"That
would help," Kharl agreed, not voicing his thoughts that even a full
company of armsmen and lancers would not make that much difference.
The
streets were not quite so busy as usual on a fourday, but they were far from
deserted. Kharl found the situation almost like a dream-or a nightmare. Egen
had a private army ready to take over the city. The rain would keep falling,
and make it hard for anyone else to contest Egen's control, and the Hamorians
now had at least four white wizards supporting them. Kharl also suspected that
the white wizard who had been in the Quadrancy Keep might well have left to
join Egen-or the Hamorians.
Yet,
with all that, nothing in Brysta looked amiss.
"We'll
have to mount some sort of guard," Kharl said.
"Yes, ser." After a moment, the undercaptain added,
"Sure would like a good squad of lancers."
"That
would help," Kharl said. So would being in a position to strike at Egen.
One of Kharl's problems was that neither Ostcrag nor Osten seemed to
understand, or want to acknowledge the depth of Egen's treachery. Every other
envoy seemed to see it. Then, reflected Kharl, perhaps Ostcrag and Osten did as
well, but had their own plans. Or found themselves unable to act because they
had discovered too late that they had been out-maneuvered.
What
made it worse for Kharl was that he didn't care for any of them. It was just
that the idea of Hamorian control of Nordla was even less appealing.
He took
a deep slow breath.
"Piss
poor situation, ser," offered Demyst.
"It
is." It was even worse than that. If he could find Egen at the moment,
killing him might well help Kharl and those with him. It would not help Ghrant
and Hagen, because they would be seen as wanting to meddle in other land's
affairs. That would not help Kharl over the long term. And that was if Kharl
could even find Egen and kill him against the opposition of the Hamorian white
wizards. Then, he might not have to find Egen. Egen might well soon be after
him-and everyone close to Kharl.
Kharl
looked out the coach window. Once more, everything that he tried to do to help
those he cared for seemed to turn back against him. Yet, if he had not stood up
for Werwal.. . who would have?
Kharl
just hoped Werwal listened to his consort and hurried to the residence.
LXXVIII
In the
late-evening air, misty and damp, Kharl stood in the darkness on the front
portico of the envoy's residence. He could barely see Sestalt, stationed by
Demyst on the corner of the portico overlooking the brick drive and the
now-closed gate, but the newly retained guard's presence was more than clear to
Kharl's order-sense.
In the
end, after talking matters over with Demyst, Erdyl, and Jeka, Kharl had decided
to remain at the residence for a time. While staying was far from good, in the
rain and without the support of armsmen or lancers, until he had a better idea
of what was going to happen, trying to leave could well place them in a worse
position, at least. He was definitely missing such necessities for the road as
scouts and supplies. For the moment, at least, he was also in city that he
knew.
The rain
had subsided into a foggy mist a glass or so past sunset, but the clouds above remained, and the next few
days would likely bring more rain.
There
were two concentrations of chaos. One was centered near the harbor, probably at
the newer barracks at the old slateyard or at the Hamo-rian warship. The other
was somewhere to the south, near the new south patroller barracks. There was
another fainter hint of chaos even farther south, but that might have been
seemed fainter because it was at the quarries and more distant, although Kharl
was guessing about that. The nearer chaos to the south was moving slowly toward
Kharl.
The rain
would not help the white wizards, but Egen also faced a tradeoff. He needed the
rain to slow any reinforcements to his sire and brothers, although, from what
Kharl had heard, it was likely that Vielam was also backing Egen. For the
moment, Kharl could not tell exactly how far away the chaos might be, except
that it had to be several kays away.
"What
you doing?"
Kharl
jumped slightly. He'd been so intent on tracking the chaos that he'd not paid
any attention to his immediate surroundings, and Jeka had seemed to appear from
nowhere. "There's a white wizard heading in our direction, maybe more than
one. I was trying to find out how far away he was."
"Why'd
you come back? Really?"
"I
had to."
"Don't
tell me it was for me."
"I
can't lie about that." Kharl paused. "I was worried about you and Warrl.
For different reasons." His laugh was soft and bitter. "I really
thought Warrl would be mostly safe. I wasn't sure about you."
"I
was safe."
"I
didn't know that. I was wrong about both of you. You were safe, and he
wasn't." Kharl looked out into the darkness, all too aware of Jeka's
warmth and presence.
"Don't
know what to make of it, do you?"
Kharl
understood. He also understood that he didn't have a good answer.
After a
silence, Jeka said, "Can't sleep. Mind if I stay here?"
"I'd
like that' Kharl admitted.
Neither
spoke for a time.
Kharl
continued to track the white wizards. The one from the harbor area was clearly headed up in the direction
of the Quadrancy Keep, while the one from the south was nearing the residence,
and was less than a kay away. With him were at least two squads of lancers.
"Jeka,
would you go find the undercaptain, and tell him that there are lancers headed
our way?"
"I'll
find him." She turned, then stopped. "You can tell that?"
"Yes."
Kharl
kept tracking the wizards, but, in the few moments that passed before Demyst
hurried across the front portico to where Kharl stood, the lancers and the
accompanying wizard had not moved that much closer. "Ser? How long before
they get here?"
"Somewhere between a quarter glass and half a glass." Kharl looked through the darkness at Jeka.
"Would you wake the retainers, Fundal and all the others, and have them go
down to the cellar in the main residence?"
"Not
staying there."
"You
don't have to. I'll need you for messages."
Jeka was
off.
"Mind
of her own, that one," Demyst said quietly. "Beauty, too, if you look
close. She hides it."
Kharl
was all too aware of both.
"How
do you want to handle this, ser?"
"They've
got two squads or so. I don't think they know who I am. You know what I
mean?"
In the
darkness, Demyst nodded, then replied belatedly.
"They think you're Lyras, maybe?"
"Something
like that. We've got a couple of crossbows, don't
we?"
"Three."
"Why
don't we just wait, and let them get close. I'll just
keep behind the stone pillars there at the corner. If our men can use the
third-floor front windows, that might give them an angle."
"You
don't want to be inside?"
"I
can't do what I need to do if I am." That was always the problem for
Kharl. While he had means of releasing great force or redirecting the chaos of
a white wizard, he had to be fairly close to do so.
"I worry
.. . someday, ser ..."
"So
do I," replied Kharl.
"I'd
best be getting them positioned." Demyst slipped away into the darkness.
The
force approaching the residence through the darkness was less than half a kay
downhill, when Jeka reappeared. "Got everyone down in the cellar. Wanted
to know why. Told 'em that Egen sent a white wizard. Better stay down there
less they want to get burned. That right?"
"That's
right."
"Undercaptain's
got Cevor, Alynar, and Erdyl up top with crossbows. Erdyl said he was a good
shot."
"Probably
is." Kharl felt a slight twinge of something. Jealousy? He was too old to
be jealous, and in too much trouble to worry about it. "He doesn't
boast."
"You
don't, either."
"I
try not to."
The
street and the other dwellings seemed suddenly silent, hushed as if the very
structures knew that danger neared.
Kharl
thought he heard hoofs on brick, but that might have been his imagination.
He kept
waiting until he was certain that the muffled clop-clop-clop was indeed nearing
and not something he just thought he heard.
"They're
almost here. Keep down!" he hissed at Jeka.
"I'm
down." She was crouched beneath the low stone half wall that formed the
outside edge of the portico around the residence.
As the
lancers drew up in the street below the residence, Kharl wondered why they were
waiting-and for what. He could sense but a single white wizard, and an effort
to collect free chaos.
Four
lancers rode toward the gate. Between them they carried some sort of ram-sling
that swung into the gate. Thud!
The four
backed off, then rode forward again.
With a
second thud, the gate, more decorative iron than barrier, broke open, and the
four lancers turned their mounts.
As the
remainder of the lancers shifted formation in some fashion, Kharl forced
himself to remain behind the shelter of the stone. Then something flew past
him, and the window behind him and to his left shattered, spraying glass into
the residence. Flame flared up. The crossbow bolt had carried chaos.
What
could Kharl do? For a moment, he just stared. Then he reached out with his
order-senses, and hardened the very air around the chaos- flame, clamping a
small order shield around it. The flame died. After a moment, he released both
barriers, but the flame did not rekindle.
He could
sense another flare of chaos headed toward the residence, and he threw up an
order shield. Chaos flared against the shield, lighting the night like a
lightning flash that vanished. In that moment, Kharl peered out.
Crack!
He
jerked his head back. The lancers had rifles, and they were using them.
Crack!
Crack!. . .
Another
chaos-filled bolt smashed through a window to Kharl's left. This time, he
managed to smother it immediately with order and hardened air.
The
reports of the rifles came more quickly, and Kharl could feel the bullets
flying toward the residence and past him.
What
could he do about so many rifles? He hadn't faced those before, not in such
numbers. He tried to think. Rifles meant powder, even if kept within soft iron.
He
extended his order-senses, but all but two or three lancers were beyond his
reach for what he needed to do, and sweat was already streaming down his face.
Those he
could reach would have to do.
All he
needed was just to unlink a small bit of the order in the iron ... just a small
bit. His entire body felt hot, as if he were about to catch fire. Then, the
unseen, but strong links began to unravel, and Kharl flattened himself against
the stone.
Whhhstt. . . CRUMPTM
The entire
residence shook. Flames shot up from the front rank of the lancers, and parts
of the trees overhanging the street began to smolder.
A wave
of death surged over Kharl.
The
lancers were dead, and so were their mounts, so quickly that there were no
screams-just ashes and several charred figures of men and horses, those farther
away from the point where Kharl had unbound order and released pure deadly
chaos.
For all
that, Kharl could sense the shields of the white wizard, just beyond his reach.
Raising his own shields, he eased sideways across the portico.
"No..." whispered Jeka.
Kharl
kept moving, taking the steps down to the drive.
Whhhstt!
A firebolt arced toward him, splashed across his shield.
So much sweat
was streaming down his face that his eyes stung, and he could barely see. He had to get to this
white wizard before the man tried to flee. Kharl didn't want the other white
wizards to know any more than they might gather from a distance about him, and
he certainly didn't want to deal with three or four at once. That could happen
if this one escaped. Kharl had barely managed two at a time before, and that
had been chancy, even with lancers supporting him.
Two
firebolts flashed at Kharl, one right after the other. Both sheeted around him.
Kharl felt as though he were standing in the middle of one of his coopering
fire pots, but he kept walking toward the attacking wizard.
The
white wizard was still mounted. Even from fifty cubits away, Kharl could see
that he was young. He didn't look that much older than Erdyl. A look of
surprise had appeared on his face as he saw Kharl walking through the gate that
the lancers had battered open.
Whhstt!
Another firebolt flared toward Kharl, spraying around him as he walked forward,
readying his own attack.
With the
next firebolt, Kharl created the shield that deflected the chaos back at the
young wizard, then struck by hardening the air around
the man.
The
wizard froze in the saddle, then slowly toppled
sideways. A flicker of chaos whispered toward Kharl, then died as the younger
man struck the bricks of the street. Kharl still had to hold the hardened air
shield for a time before the other man died.
He took
a deep breath. He still knew of no way to capture chaos- wizards-not that would
keep them from escaping. From what he knew, he wasn't sure that there was a
way. Or maybe he just didn't know enough.
When he
released the shield, the figure of the wizard, young as he had looked, shimmered,
and disintegrated into dust.
Kharl
turned and trudged back to the residence.
Demyst
and Jeka were waiting on the portico-both shielded by stone pillars.
"Ser?"
asked Demyst.
"They're
dead. All of them." Kharl sank onto the half wall, half- sitting,
half-leaning. White points of light flickered in and out of his vision.
"Need to eat, drink. In case someone else comes." He straightened
slowly, then walked into the residence.
He
hadn't done that much heavy magery recently, and it
showed. He also hadn't eaten that much the night before, and that hadn't
helped, either. So many things to think about.
Demyst
headed up to the third level. Kharl knew someone up there had died, and he hoped that it hadn't been
Erdyl. Then, he hadn't wanted anyone to die.
He
settled into a chair in the breakfast nook.
Jeka
reappeared with a wedge of cheese and some bread. "You want lager?"
"Please."
"The
others can come up from below?"
Kharl
nodded, then, realizing she might not see the movement in the darkened room,
added, "Yes. Won't be anything happening for a while."
Kharl
sat in the darkness, slowly chewing some bread. His mouth was so dry he was
having trouble swallowing, and he was grateful when Jeka reappeared with a
pitcher of lager. She found a beaker and filled it. He took a careful swallow,
then sliced a piece of cheese off the wedge with his belt knife. He had trouble
holding the knife, but managed.
As Kharl
slipped the cheese into his mouth, Demyst entered the breakfast room, followed
by Erdyl.
"They
shot Cevor," the undercaptain said.
"I'm
sorry. I felt it. I didn't know who, though."
"One
man ... against forty-odd of theirs and a white wizard-there was only one,
wasn't there?"
"Just one." Kharl took another sip of lager. The worst
of his weakness and light-headedness was beginning to subside. "Hate to
lose even one of our own. The thing with the chaos-bolts and the windows.
Hadn't seen that before."
"What?"
"The
windows they broke ..." Kharl went on to explain how the bolts had been
infused with chaos to set the residence on fire. "... probably wanted the
place ablaze so that they could pick off people trying to escape."
"Sounds
like the Hamorians," said Demyst.
"More
like Egen." Jeka's voice was hard.
"He
wasn't with them, I don't think," Kharl said.
"A
course not. Let someone else do the dirt," Jeka replied.
That
would only work for a while-at least Kharl hoped so. Eventually, he needed to
face Egen, if only for his own sake.
After a
time, Jeka, seated across from him, asked, "You .
.. you coulda done this before?"
"No.
I didn't know I could. The staff started it, but I never knew." Kharl smiled sadly. "A lot of lancers and
armsmen died because it took me a while to learn what I know."
"More
of 'em lived than would have otherwise," suggested the under- captain.
In fact,
he and Demyst were both correct, but it didn't make Kharl feel that much better
about it.
LXXIX
By just
after dawn, and only a few glasses of sleep, not only could Kharl still smell
smoke, and the ashes of burned men and mounts-and foliage, but despite the
clouds, he could also see a pall of thick gray smoke still rising from
somewhere near the top of the hill. The only place it could have come from was
from the Quadrancy Keep. Whether Osten or Ostcrag had survived was another
question, but that speculation could wait. Regardless of that, Kharl needed to
deal with Egen and the Hamorians, especially the Hamorians.
Alynar
was standing watch out front, and one of Demyst's guards in the rear, as Erdyl,
Demyst, Kharl, and Jeka ate hurriedly in the breakfast room.
"How
many men do we have?" Kharl asked Demyst.
"We
lost Cevor, and Sestalt's pretty bruised. Why?"
"We're
going after Egen."
"Better
'n sitting here any longer."
"We
couldn't start a war. Egen started it," Kharl said. "We can try to
make it very short."
"Why
didn't-" Erdyl broke off his words.
Kharl
understood the unspoken remainder of the question, and he didn't have the best
answers. He hadn't wanted to overreact to Egen's evil viciousness. He hadn't
really understood what being an envoy was all about. He'd worried about setting
up a situation where all the rulers of the Quadrancy and Candar would back
Hamor in invading Austra- because Austra, in the person of Kharl, had tried to
upset the established order in Nordla. Worst of all, while he had understood
how evil Egen truly was, Kharl hadn't realized the true depth of
Egen's ambition until the last few days.
"Because,"
was all he said.
"Lord
Kharl's been here less than three eightdays," Demyst pointed out.
"Not very long to learn what's happening and do something about it.
Especially when we got no lancers or armsmen, and Egen's got wizards and his
own private army."
"Envoys
aren't supposed to bring private armies," Kharl said dryly. "We're
just supposed to watch and report." Had it been less than three eightdays?
He felt as though he'd been back in Nordla forever. He forced himself to eat another
helping of egg toast, followed by a healthy swallow of the too-tart early
cider.
"Where
are we headed, ser, if I might ask?"
"To
the south barracks, the ones out by the new road, just south of the city."
Kharl had already used his order-senses to determine that there were no
chaos-wizards remaining at the new harbor barracks, or anywhere around the
harbor, and the chaos that surrounded them appeared to have come from the
south. He was guessing, but he didn't think the white wizards who had been at
the quarry fort had joined Egen's patrollers. He didn't know about the wizard
who'd been in the Quadrancy Keep before, either, except that he wasn't there
any longer.
Demyst
frowned.
"He'll
be there. Or his patrollers will be. That's where his golds are. If he's not
there, he'll be at the fort off the east road."
"Why
there?" asked Erdyl.
"That's
where they can block any lancers from the north and east who might support
Ostcrag and Osten."
"Do
we know if they're still alive?"
"I'd
guess that at least one of them is. If they were both dead, Egen and the white
wizards would already be holding the Quadrancy Keep."
"What
about the other son-Vielam?"
"I
don't know. He favors Egen, I've heard. Doesn't matter, though. Either Ostcrag
survived the attack on the Quadrancy Keep, or one of the older sons did.
Otherwise, Brysta would be crawling with patrollers and white wizards."
Jeka
grimaced, but said nothing.
Kharl
rose. "We'd better get ready." He turned to Khelaya, standing in the archway to the kitchen. "We'll
need some provisions, and I'll need a hefty bag, and my water bottles filled
with cider."
A
quizzical look momentarily crossed the older cook's face.
Demyst
raised his eyebrows in a different inquiry.
"It's
not much of a secret now," Kharl said. "I'm an order-mage. I can't
keep using magery without eating a lot."
"After
last night, it had to be something like sorcery," Khelaya said.
"Never seen anything like that."
Behind Khelaya
stood Enelya, and the serving girl's mouth opened. She shut it quickly, and her
eyes went to Jeka, who gave the slightest of headshakes.
"We'll
make sure you have enough," added the cook.
"Thank
you." Kharl hurried up to his chamber, where he donned a black riding
jacket and quickly washed, before heading down and out to the stables. As he
crossed the stretch of gardens, he glanced up. The clouds had lifted some, but
had also darkened slightly, suggesting more rain later.
Mantar
had the chestnut gelding saddled and waiting for Kharl. Demyst and Alynar were
packing provisions into their saddlebags. Erdyl had already mounted, as had
Sestalt, bruised as he was. Enelya stood to the side, holding several more
bags.
Kharl
looked to the serving girl.
"Jeka
already packed yours, ser," Enelya said quickly, not meeting Kharl's eyes.
Kharl
followed her glance to the side of the stable yard. Jeka was already mounted.
She wore a gray jacket, and she'd cut her hair boy- short once more. Before
Kharl could say a word, she spoke. "I'm going. I can run messages. Do
stuff."
Kharl
didn't say anything. He just stood there for a long moment. He didn't want Jeka
anywhere near the fighting.
"Don't
leave people," she added. "Told you that once."
She had.
More than once. And Kharl had let Merayni take Warrl away for his son's safety.
Warrl and Merayni were dead. Who could protect Jeka at the residence if Egen
sent men after her? He didn't like the idea of her coming with them . .. but...
with all the chaos and Egen's viciousness, she well might be safer with him.
Finally,
he took a deep breath and nodded slowly. "Stay out of the direct fighting.
Thank you for taking care of the provisions."
"Yes, ser. You got two bottles, both filled with the
cider. I got three bottles, case anyone needs some."
"Good."
Before mounting, Kharl used his order-senses to make sure that the saddlebags
were indeed filled, but did not touch them, not wishing to suggest that he
doubted Enelya or Jeka.
As was
all too often the case, he was the last mounted. He looked to Khelaya and
Mantar. "Take care."
"That
we will, ser."
Kharl
eased the gelding forward and past the side of the residence. As he rode past the
sagging gates, he studied the street. The on-and-off rain of the night and
early morning had dampened the ashes into a black- and-gray paste that mottled
the ancient yellow bricks, but the few charred lumps that had been the men and
mounts not totally turned to ash by Kharl's magery had disappeared. Marks in
the sodden ash indicated that a wagon had been used. Kharl suspected that
Mantar and the gardener had taken care of that. He could worry about that
later. He looked back at the residence. He still worried about those remaining
in the residence, but Mantar insisted that they'd be safe, and that they could
retreat to the cellar if need be.
"Don't
wait," Kharl had said.
"No,
ser, but there's just ash out there now," Mantar had explained with a
smile. "A bit more rain, and no one'll see anything except some blackened
trees, and that happens when lightning strikes."
Thinking
about it, Kharl wasn't so sure that the groom-driver wasn't better prepared
than Kharl was. Once well into the street, the envoy- mage turned the gelding
downhill, then, at the next street, southward.
Demyst
moved up alongside Kharl. "City's quiet this morning. Can't say I'd expect
otherwise."
"Everyone's
hiding and waiting."
"WhatTl
we be facing?"
"Several
companies of lancers, and two or three white wizards.
Maybe more of either."
"We
have to do this?"
"We
don't, and our children will be fighting Hamor in Austra." After he'd
spoken, Kharl realized that he didn't have children, not any longer, and Demyst
had never had any. "Or all those who do have children will."
"Sad choice, ser."
"Most
are," replied Kharl dryly.
As he
rode, his eyes and senses alert, Kharl felt-more than once-the brush of chaos
that meant a white wizard was trying to keep track of him. From what he could
tell, all the white wizards around Brysta were in the same place to the
south-unless one was using chaos-skills to hide himself.
He
wanted to look back and see how Jeka was doing, but decided against it although
he wasn't certain he liked that she was riding with Erdyl. Then, he had his
doubts about her coming, except that her staying behind might be even worse.
Ahead,
near where the side street joined the south road, a young man looked at the riders,
then sprinted across the bricks and into a single-
story dwelling, whose shutters were closed. For just a moment, the echo of the
slammed door drowned out the clopping of hoofs.
As they
neared the southeast side of Brysta, the bricks of the south street gave way to
the packed clay. Each step of the gelding threw up some mud. Because few had
traveled the road since the rains had begun the day before, only parts of the
road were muddy, and there were but a handful of deep wagon ruts.
On the
less-traveled and unpaved section of the south road beyond the city, a company
of lancers would chum up the road enough to stop any wagon, and after the first
two or three companies traveled it, the later riders would have great
difficulty traveling with any speed, and the lower-lying sections would become,
if not impassable, places where men and mounts bunched into groups making their
way through slowly.
"Road's
going to be slow from here on," observed Demyst.
"It's
only a kay or so." Kharl studied the small plots that were neither true
holdings nor just gardens that now bordered the road.
To the
east of the winding road, the low hills were covered with rocky meadows, and
dotted with woodlots and odd-shaped fields. Farther ahead, the road turned due
south to skirt the long ridge that overlooked the new patroller barracks and
camp.
Kharl
held up his hand and reined up. Somewhere ahead, coming up the back side of the
hill just ahead, were lancers, more than a few, but not an entire company.
"Close in! Right behind me!"
Before
he finished his orders, the half squad of Hamorian lancers reined up on the low
rise of a field to the east of the road and less than a
quarter kay south of where Kharl had halted. As he watched, they drew
weapons, blades he thought, until they raised them to their shoulders. More
rifles.
Kharl
hardened a space of air just in front of him.
Crack!
Crack!.. .
The
reports of the rifles sounded muffled. Abruptly, Kharl could feel the force of
bullets on the air shield, leaching away some of his strength, if only a slight
bit.
As
quickly as they had come, the lancers wheeled, then rode back over the rise.
Kharl
released the shield. He reached for his water bottle and took it out, taking a
long swallow of the still-cool cider before corking it and replacing it in its
holder.
"Why'd
they do that?" asked Demyst.
"To
tire me out," Kharl replied.
He sat
in the saddle, thinking. The rifles changed everything, at least in the open field.
Facing sabres or even crossbows, he could get close enough to use his
order-magery-or his disorder-magery. With the white wizards tracking him with
their sorcery, he couldn't use a sight shield to get closer without the lancers
seeing him-and they could keep firing at him until he was exhausted before he
could ever get close enough-on the road or open ground.
He
glanced toward the ridge ahead and took in the woodlots. From what he recalled,
there was a narrow road through the ridge from the east. The ridge was steep
enough that the lancers and patrollers couldn't fire directly at him and his
small party without getting close- very close.
"Ser?"
asked the undercaptain.
"We'll
have to leave the road. We're headed up toward that ridge, using the hills and
woodlots for cover." Kharl turned the gelding off the road and through a
gap in the low stone wall that bordered the meadow.
He kept
his order-senses looking for lancers, or patrollers, but could not sense any as
they rode up the sloping meadow almost directly east. A slight gust of wind
swept across them, bringing a few scattered drops of rain, then died away, as
did the rain droplets.
As they
reached the first woodlot, Kharl could sense no one near the trees, but to the
south, another squad of lancers-or the same squad-was using the lower ground
between the hill and the ridge as an approach to the road-to try another
attack. Kharl smiled, because by the time the lancers reached a point
overlooking the road, their quarry would be to the east and south of them, and
the lancers would have to ride uphill to catch Kharl.
Still,
he didn't like the fact there were lancers between him and the ridge.
The
woodlot ended just short of the flat hillcrest, and Kharl reined up while still
in the trees, looking southward.
"We
could follow these hills. There's that other road," Demyst said, pointing
to the brown track a good kay to the south. "Cross the road and follow
those hills on the south till we get to the gap in the ridge."
Kharl
nodded. At least until they reached the road, they would either be in the trees
or close enough to cover, and mostly on higher ground than any attacker. He had
to remember that his goal was not necessarily to kill lancers, or patrollers,
but to get close enough to kill Egen and the white wizards.
They
covered another half kay to the south before a company of mounted patrollers
rode eastward on the narrow road through the ridge gap. Behind them were what
looked to be several oblong, canvas-covered carts.
Kharl
looked farther south. The next hill had an escarpment of gray stone that faced
south and slightly west, and looked to afford some protection, at least for men
on foot, and they could tie the mounts farther back in the woodlot.
"Can
we make it to that next hill there, you think?" Kharl asked the
undercaptain.
"Easy,
ser. Won't even take more than a fast walk. That grass
down there is long, and the ground's soft. Harder here near the crest. You
thinking about that rock there." Demyst grinned.
"I
was. Is there something wrong with it?"
"Not
so long as we don't let 'em circle to the southeast and come up through the
woodlot. Could trap us then."
"We
could have Jeka watch back there."
"Might be a good idea."
Kharl urged
the gelding forward.
Demyst
was right. Kharl and the five other riders reined up just above the jagged
upthrust gray rocks before the patrollers had stopped riding the road. There
were far more than Kharl had realized-a good three companies. The mage turned
in the saddle. "Jeka?"
The
former urchin and weaver rode slowly toward Kharl, then
reined up. Kharl thought that she was far more graceful on horseback than he
was, even though she'd only ridden twice in her life.
"You
want something, ser?"
"You
said you wanted to be helpful. We need some help." Kharl pointed to the
southeast. "We're going to see if they attack us here. We don't want
someone sneaking up the back side of the hill on us. Can you ride over to the
edge of the woodlot there, on the higher ground, and keep watch. If they start
something like that, ride back, but don't come out of the woods. Just call out
and let us know."
"I
can do that."
"Thank
you."
"You
want me to go now?"
"Be
best if she does, ser," suggested Demyst.
"If
you would," Kharl said to Jeka.
She
turned the horse and rode steadily up the gentle slope until she was riding
beside the trees.
After
watching her for a long moment, Kharl turned his mount uphill toward the nearest
part of the woodlot. By the time he had had tethered his mount well back in the
woodlot, remembering to pull out his provisions bag, all three companies of
mounted patrollers were drawn up on the flat to the north of the narrow road.
Kharl hurried back downhill and into a position behind the rocks. Behind the
patrollers, surrounded by two squads of lancers in the tan uniforms of Hamor,
were the white wizards- three from what Kharl could tell.
"Like
as they were waiting for us," muttered Alynar from the rear.
Kharl
had no doubts that they had been, not after having felt one of the wizards
tracking them. He still didn't understand why the patrollers and wizards were
going to attack him. "If they waited," he murmured, "we'd have
to come to them."
"Ser,"
said Demyst, with a crooked smile, "they don't know that. Best we don't
tell them."
Still,
Kharl wondered as he peered out through a gap in the gray rock. He would have
liked to have gotten closer to the barracks as well. Something was happening behind
the patrollers, with the carts, but Kharl couldn't see exactly what it was. The
mounted patrollers, their lines dressed, moved forward slowly across the flat,
but less than a third of a kay before halting once more. That left them at the
base of the slope, a quarter kay downhill from Kharl and his small party. Kharl
could see that these patrollers also had rifles-every last patroller.
Thwump!
Soil and rock and mangled vegetation exploded from the ground less than a
hundred cubits below and to the right of Kharl.
"Cannon,"
murmured Demyst. "Friggin' cannon."
What
could Kharl do about cannon? If they tried to reach their mounts ... at least
some of them, if not all of them, might get shot... or run down. And Kharl
couldn't do magery on the run, either.
Thwump!
The
second blast was to the left, but more like seventy cubits away.
Kharl
forced himself to concentrate on the cannon. While they were too far away for
him to affect with his order-senses, he had felt the mixture of chaos and order
that had accompanied the shell and the explosion. Was there any way to channel
that? To turn it back?
He could
sense the expansion of chaos and the near-instant flight of the next shell-and
it landed less than fifty cubits directly in front of the rock outcropping.
Soil and rock fragments sprayed above his head.
"Ser?"
"I'm
working on it!" Kharl snapped. There had been a channel of order and
chaos, the path that the shell had taken.
Kharl
watched and waited, sensing the next shell.
The moment
before it exploded, he focused all the energy, order and chaos, back along the
flight path.
What
seemed like a brownish red streak flashed back at the cannon, half-burying the
weapon in rock and soil, and hurling the cannoneers aside. Kharl sensed at
least one death, but focused his efforts on the second weapon.
This
time, he not only returned the explosive force, but boosted it with a touch of
released chaos-enough so that the second cannon, and the shells beside it,
exploded in a gout of flame.
Cannoneers
fled from the third and remaining cannon.
Kharl
sat down, slightly light-headed. He took a swallow of the cider and tore at the
bread. After several mouthfuls, he looked over at Demyst. "Tell me if, or
when, they start to ride uphill."
"Yes, ser."
Kharl
kept eating, biting a chunk out of the hard cheese, glad that there had only
been three cannon, and that the cannoneers of the third had fled. The effort of
handling just two shells had almost exhausted him.
"Those
Hamorian lancers, the ones in tan," Demyst said, "they're
riding across the flat up behind the patrollers."
Kharl
could sense the growing mass of chaos on the flat below the slope. He took a
last swallow of the cider and stood. Most of the light- headedness had
subsided.
As he
looked down through the rocks, he could see the patrollers beginning to spread
out into a wider line, with more space beside each rider. None of them moved
forward.
Kharl
could sense three white wizards, but the three had linked somehow.
A single
trumpet triplet sounded, and the patrollers started riding uphill. Their
tactics were simple enough. Each patroller rode, then slowed and fired, then
rode more quickly. The erratic nature of the advance would have made it
difficult for anyone with a rifle or a crossbow to fire back effectively. But
since Kharl and his small group had neither, the only effect was to make them
to keep their heads down. And with fire coming from such a wide front, Kharl
couldn't erect a hardened air shield that would be strong enough and broad
enough to protect them-not without exhausting himself within a fraction of a
glass.
Whhssttt!
A chaos-bolt arced uphill, aimed directly at Kharl. Caught half-off guard, he
could only deflect it, but he was ready for the second one, and using the
linkage back to the white wizard, he turned it back.
Instead
of slipping inside the white wizard's shields, it splashed across the linked
shields of the three.
Kharl swallowed.
He hadn't thought about that effect. The back- linkage didn't exist for the
other two, and by linking their shields, they effectively blocked his
technique.
Whhstt!
Another firebolt flared uphill.
Knowing
that the whites' shields would hold, Kharl just redirected the chaos across the
first rank of the patrollers, who were within three hundred cubits of Kharl.
Death
voids washed across Kharl, and he staggered. He'd never gotten used to dealing
death, not really.
Whhhsttt!
Whhhstt!
The firebolts
kept coming, one after the other. Kharl kept throwing them aside and across the
ranks of the patrollers.
"That's
the last of 'em, ser!" announced Demyst. "The patrollers, I
mean."
Kharl
was well aware of that. He was also aware that he was lightheaded, and having
trouble seeing.
The
three white wizards and their Hamorian lancer guards had remained beyond his own effective range for
unbinding order and releasing chaos-or for hardening air. If they kept flinging
firebolts, sooner or later, they'd break through his defenses. Kharl couldn't
think of what else he could do. He couldn't make his way downhill undetected.
He
stopped. He didn't have to make his way downhill undetected. With the
patrollers and the cannon gone, all he needed was to get closer to the white
wizards.
After
diverting another chaos-bolt, Kharl turned to his left and scuttled from point
to point behind the rocks until he was at a gap that he could take straight
downhill.
He
almost stepped through the gap when he saw the squad of lancers flanking the
white wizards, all three mounted. Wearily, Kharl called up a sight shield, and
moved through the rocks and down onto the grass, trying to move in a zigzag
fashion, and not trip because he could not see, except through his order-senses.
He could
only hope that by the time the wizards explained to the lancers where he was
and the lancers got out their rifles, he'd be close enough-
He
stumbled and pitched forward, releasing the sight shield for a moment to right himself, and catch a glimpse of a flatter slope to his left.
Crack!
Crack!
He
thought he felt something fly by, and he staggered back to his right, heading
downhill, covering yet another fifty or sixty cubits.
Whhsst!
He
parried deflected the firebolt, and kept moving.
Sweat
was running into his eyes, and he was seeing flashes across the darkness
through which he stumbled and shambled downhill. He could tell he was getting
almost close enough.
"See
that dust! Fire there, or charge him! Do something!"
Kharl
half jumped, half flung himself sideways in his own private darkness, then charged downhill, reaching out toward one of the
lancers closest to the wizard on the left.
The
vibration in the ground told him he didn't have much time.
Desperately,
he reached for a chunk of soft iron in the lancer's cartridge belt, using his
senses to unlink it.
Eeeeeeee. ..
A
terrible whining screeched at him, through him, as he fumbled at unlinking the
iron in more cartridges ... as many as he could.
Then chaos
flared, and with his last strength, frantically, he tried to throw up his own
shields. Redness, whiteness ... ... and hot blackness flashed over him, and
swallowed everything.
LXXX
When Kharl
woke, he was flat on the ground looking up. It was late afternoon. That he
could tell from the light, despite the drizzle that sifted through the trees.
"Did
yourself in, almost," Jeka said, sitting on the
gnarled root of a tree, looking down at him.
"I...
didn't have ... much choice." His head was splitting, and flashes flared
across his eyes. Slowly he sat up, looking around the clearing in the woods.
His face was dry. He looked at Jeka, who had her jacket across her arm. Her
blue shirt was damp across the shoulders.
She
looked away for a moment, before she spoke. "Brought you up here out of
sight. Not that there was anyone down there left to see anything."
"The
whole flat is burned grass and ashes," said Erdyl. "I've ... never
seen anything like that."
"Hope
you don't see it often," added Demyst.
Jeka
extended an uncorked bottle to Kharl. "Better drink."
"Thank
you." He took it and drank the cider, slowly.
"I
don't think Egen was down there, ser," offered Erdyl.
"I
don't think so either." Kharl lowered the bottle. "In a while, we'll
move closer to the barracks, but I'd wager they're empty."
"They'd
just leave?" asked Erdyl. t
"Without any white wizards to back them up? I think so."
Demyst
nodded.
"Then what?"
"We
sneak north to the other fort. That's the one with the cannon that guards the
main east road. If there are any cannon or powder left there, we destroy
it."
"Just
like that?" asked Jeka.
"Like
this." Kharl gestured downhill, in what he hoped was the right direction.
"Then we see what's left." He didn't like where matters were pointing
him, but another effort like the last would get them all killed.
"What
about the fort at the quarry? The one in the south?"
"That's
where most of the regular armsmen who will probably support Egen are. That's
where most of the white wizards are. I'd like to see if we can drag up some
lancers to help before we take them on." Kharl didn't want to consider-not
yet-dealing with the southern forces without some sort of support.
"You
gonna throw in with Lord West?" asked Jeka.
"Osten,
I hope," Kharl admitted. "He may not be any better than his sire, but
he can't be any worse than Egen."
"Some
choice," muttered Jeka.
"You
have a better idea?" Kharl took another swallow of the cider. Jeka handed
him some bread, and he began to eat. He mixed the bread with some of the hard
cheese as well.
After a
time, he looked up again. "We might have some influence on Osten-or even
Ostcrag, especially if we get rid of Egen and the Hamori- ans. Egen doesn't
listen to anyone. I don't think he ever has."
" 'Sides, pissprick doesn't deserve to live,"
Jeka pointed out, more practically.
Kharl
had to agree with that.
LXXXI
Kharl's
guess had been right. There was no one in the southern barracks. All the
buildings were deserted-except for one elderly groom who could only say that
everyone had left "soon after the big battle" and that they'd all
headed south on orders from Overcaptain Vielam. While some gear had been left,
there were no provisions, and no rifles or cartridges. There were bags of
powder in an iron-lined, stone-walled magazine building well away from the
others, but nothing besides cannon shells and powder.
The quick
departure confirmed Kharl's secondhand impression of Vielam, both of his
abilities and his courage, since Vielam couldn't have been in the force that faced Kharl. It
might also reflect Vielam's intelligence in assessing the situation, Kharl
reflected.
Kharl
and the others settled back into their saddles and rode northward. Less than a
kay from the deserted barracks area, they turned from the south road onto the
ring road that led northward to the east road. Like the south road leading out
of Brysta, it was packed clay, turned sloppy by the rain, but there were few
tracks, and nothing to indicate that any large body of lancers had traveled in
either direction, or that armsmen had marched the road recently. Hadn't Vielam
sent any messengers northward? Was the eastern road camp or barracks even held
by Egen's forces?
Kharl
shrugged. In a sense, that didn't matter. If all of Egen's forces were already
regrouping in the south, then finding Ostcrag or Osten might well be easier. If
they weren't, Kharl needed to do something to neutralize the camp ahead.
As he
rode along the ring road that he had once walked with Jeka, fleeing a white
wizard before he'd even known he was a mage, that journey seemed ages ago, for
all that it had been slightly less than a year before. So much had changed, and
was still changing.
After a
glass or so, he turned in the saddle and called to her. "It's faster
riding."
"Sorer,
too," she responded, with a faint smile.
Erdyl
looked puzzled, and, after turning to watch the road ahead, Kharl extended his
order-senses to hear what his secretary might ask.
"..
. why did he say that?"
"Been this way before, time back. He can tell you," Jeka said
pleasantly.
"How
did you come to know him?"
"Better
if he told you." Her voice remained pleasant.
Kharl
couldn't help but smile at Jeka's responses.
Less
than two glasses later, Kharl turned his mount off the ring road, a good kay
before it intersected
Ahead,
the green hills steepened into irregular and rocky shapes, and the lane turned
sharply south. Kharl reined up, extending his order- senses once more, feeling
for the camp and lancers that he knew could not be that far to the northeast of
where he was. There was no concentration of chaos that would have marked a white wizard, but
Kharl did gain a sense of the muted chaos that often marked large groups of
people-almost due north. He studied the ground, mostly small meadows marked by
stone walls and hedgerows, and infrequent cots and huts.
About
two hundred cubits ahead on the left side of the lane, just before it turned,
was a gap in the low, piled-stone wall, and a narrow track seemed to head
north. They could try that, Kharl decided, and he urged the gelding forward.
The
track was more like an animal trail, or a lane that had once seen more traffic and
since been largely overgrown. There were no tracks in the damp clay, except for
those of coneys and other small animal traces that Kharl did not recognize. He
had to duck continually, or brush away branches that poked out from the two
hedgerows that framed the track.
They had
traveled less than half a kay when the track turned leftward, but more to the
northwest, rather than straight west. Kharl could sense that they were still
slightly to the east of the camp. He kept checking with his order-senses, since
he could not actually see beyond the trees and bushes that had once been a
better-kept hedgerow.
Another
three hundred cubits or so later, they neared a gap in the vegetation on the
right side. Kharl reined up and looked through, out onto what had once been a
meadow, but now sported a forest of saplings that ranged from knee high to as
high as his mount's ears. From what he could tell, the camp lay beyond the
former meadow, even beyond the woods on the far side.
"This way."
As he
rode slowly through the saplings, he wondered why the area had been deserted.
Land was life to a holder, and Kharl couldn't imagine it being neglected
without some reason. Had the holder let the lands lapse back to the local lord?
Why? Or had the holders been removed by Ostcrag? Or Osten?
The
light was beginning to fade by the time Kharl reined up on the far side of the
narrow woods, at the edge of a short bluff that began within a half score of
cubits from the end of the trees. Below the bluff was a gully cut by another
stream flowing out of the hills. In the middle of the rise on the far side of
the gully stood what he had sought.
The
eastern camp was more like a fort than the barracks to the south of Brysta.
Gray stone walls a good six cubits high surrounded the buildings and stables.
There were gates to the south and west, but not to the east.
There
the low hill had been cut away, and cannon mounted on the top of the wider
walls faced the main road. The road was on the north side of the stream that
had cut a narrow canyon through the higher hills to the east, giving the fort
control of the road. Given the rocky and rugged nature of the hills-and the
crumbliness of the rock-the fort clearly controlled the east road. The area
around the fort had been cleared of brush, although the grasses looked to be
almost knee high.
Even in
the dimming light, the rising fog, and the growing mist, Kharl could tell that
the walls were manned not by Nordlan armsmen from the West Quadrant, but by Egen's
patrollers, and the gates were closed.
He eased
his mount back into the trees, toward a small clearing they had passed less
than fifty cubits back. There he dismounted, tied the gelding, and stretched.
The others followed his example.
"What
are you going to do?" asked Jeka.
"Eat
and rest, and when it gets full dark, I'll slip under the walls on the east
side and blow up the cannon," Kharl said. "Then come back here."
"Like before?"
"Mostly. Except I won't be facing white wizards.
There aren't any near."
"Do
you have to, ser?" asked Erdyl.
"No.
I can wait until they leave and swell Egen's forces. Or I can wait until Egen
shows up here with white wizards, then face them all alone. Or we can ride northeast
to Hemmen and catch a ship back to Valmurl, where I'll tell Lord Ghrant that I
failed and the West Quadrant will soon be a possession of Hamor."
Erdyl
took half a step backward. "I'm sorry. It's just. .. you've done so much,
and we haven't been that much help."
"And
I look like second death, probably," Kharl added. After a moment, he
laughed. "You know, when I found out I was a true lord, I asked Speltar,
the steward at Cantyl, what that meant. You know what he told me?"
No one
answered.
"He
said it meant that, if I did something wrong, I had the privilege of being
beheaded instead of being hanged."
Jeka and
Demyst were the only ones who smiled. Erdyl just looked bewildered.
Kharl
rummaged through his provisions sack. There was still some bread and cheese
left, and he knew one bottle held cider. He could use all the sustenance he could get before he took
on the fort on the other side of the gully.
After
eating, Kharl propped himself against a tree and closed his eyes. He thought he
might have dozed, but started into full awareness at the sound of a bell
tolling.
"Watch
bell," Demyst said. "First glass of the night watch."
Kharl
rose, stiffly, and stretched. He couldn't help yawning. He stretched again,
then looked through the darkness to the undercaptain. "Time to get
moving."
He could
feel Jeka's eyes on him, but she said nothing.
"I'll
be back as soon as I can. If this works, you'll hear things long before I get
back."
He moved
slowly along the rough track the horses had made earlier, stopping at the edge
of the woods-or former woodlot, he suspected- where he surveyed the open space
beyond and the dark gray mass of stone. There was still no sign or sense of a
white wizard.
Kharl
couldn't say that he understood, but he wasn't going to question the absence of
a chaos-wizard, not when he'd faced more of them than he'd expected all too
many times.
He took
a deep breath and moved toward the gully.
The low bluff
was steeper than he'd recalled, and he ended up grabbing roots to slow his
descent to the stream-less than two cubits wide, although full to its banks
after the rain. He jumped across and promptly found his boots sinking into the
spongy ground on the other side. The slope on the north side was more gradual,
but longer, and he was breathing heavily when he reached the top. He stayed
low, not wanting to be silhouetted against the lighter-colored soil on the
south side of the bluff, as he began to cross the meadow toward the south wall
of the fort.
He kept
his order-senses extended but did not use a sight shield, although he was ready
to raise it at any moment. He was tired enough that he wanted to avoid any
unnecessary order-magery.
He tried
to move quietly, but the swishing of the wet grass against his boots and
trousers sounded to him like it carried for kays. He'd only covered a hundred
cubits or so before his trousers were soaked below the knee, and water was
seeping down into his boots. Step after careful step finally brought him to the
south wall, about a third of the way toward the southeast corner.
He
extended an order-probe toward the magazines beside the cannon, but they were too far-or rather, the
combination of distance and cold iron defeated Kharl's efforts.
He
flattened himself against the gray stone blocks and began to edge his way
westward toward the southeast corner of the fort.
Above
him, he heard a rustle; and he raised a sight shield and froze in place.
"Serjeant.
.. serjeant..."
Under
the sight shield, Kharl kept moving, if more slowly and deliberately. Behind
and above him he heard boots on stone, then voices.
"...
thought I saw something down there ... grasses moving
..."
"...
ought to be able to see a man, Navoyt.. . might be a
fox ... Keep watching .. . don't want Osten's men slipping up on us ..."
"Yes, ser."
The
voices got fainter as Kharl reached the corner and began to ease his way down
the section of the hill that had been cut away, a drop of another three cubits.
Even for all that, he was getting closer to one of the magazines holding
powder-or cammabark-and the locked chaos of the powder was definitely stronger
to his order-senses.
At the
base of the hill-wall, he edged northward, until he stood directly below one of
the magazines. Slowly, Kharl extended the finest line of order, upward toward
the magazine almost directly above him. Even so, it was an effort. Carefully,
he began to unlink the order of a small section of iron on the inside of the
magazine, directly beside bagged powder loads for the cannon.
At the
moment the linkage began to spray apart of its own
momentum, Kharl concentrated and surrounded himself with a shell of hardened
air.
CURROMPTTTM.
Despite the
shield, Kharl's ears rang so badly that he could hear nothing. He felt, rather
than heard, the successive explosions of the other magazines. For all his
caution, he was thrown against the inside of his own air shield, then hurled
back the other way, bouncing back and forth.
Stones
and stone fragments crashed down against the shield.
Another
wave of explosions followed the first, and yet another after that.
Reddish
white waves of death cascaded across Kharl, and his guts tried to turn
themselves inside out. He swallowed, convulsively.
Another
round of explosions shivered the ground beneath his feet, and more stone
hammered at the air shield.
More
waves of death buried Kharl, each a knife of reddish white, yet a gaping
emptiness as well.
The
ground shifted, jerking Kharl against the air shield once more. He struggled to
stand erect.
Kharl
waited until he was sure that not only the explosions had stopped, but that no
more rocks and fragments of the fort were falling. Then, he forced himself to
expand the air shield slightly, just to make sure nothing was resting on top of
it that would fall on him once he released the shield. Several more chunks of
stone rumbled and rattled away.
When he
finally released the shield, he was standing in a pit surrounded by stone piled
somewhat above his head.
Almost a
quarter glass passed before he had climbed out of the
pit- most carefully-and started back toward Jeka and the others. He stumbled
more than a few times, and half fell into the spongy ground on the north side
of the stream, coming down on his knees. He struggled upright and jumped across
the stream, then searched for a place where he could use roots to help him
climb the bluff that had seemed so much shorter coming down.
Jeka and
Demyst were waiting at the top of the bluff. They reached out and pulled him
up.
"Thank
you," he panted.
"Not
much left," Demyst pointed.
Kharl
looked back. Before, the fort had looked solid and gray. Now, sections glowed red,
and even in the darkness, the trails of smoke that wound up toward the overhead
clouds were easily visible. It looked like a vision from the time of the white
demons.
Kharl
turned away, almost stumbling again.
Jeka
steadied him. "Now what?"
"We
find a place to wait where we don't get too wet. There should be some cots or
something near here," Kharl said tiredly. "When Lord West- or
Osten-or whoever-discovers that the fort is gone, they'll ride down toward
Brysta, or they'll send scouts."
"If
they don't?" inquired Demyst.
"Then
Egen will move his troops back up here to guard the gap to the east. That won't
happen. Even Osten isn't stupid enough to stay blocked away to the east, not if
he wants a chance at succeeding his father. He might not confront Egen, but if
his lancers and armsmen are where they could attack, he'll be in a stronger
position."
"Why
haven't they fought over Brysta?" asked Jeka.
"Because
Brysta is what brings golds into their coffers. They fight over the city
itself, and everyone loses, no matter who wins." Kharl took a deep breath.
Demons, he was tired. "If the fighting goes on, they might. I don't think
so, because even the Hamorians wouldn't want Brysta that badly damaged."
He made
his way toward the gelding, hoping he could mount. He really didn't want to
remain too close to the burning ruins of the fort. He thought, tired as he was,
that he could lead them back the way they had come, using his order-senses and
night sight. He stifled a yawn. He hadn't been sleeping that well, and he
needed sleep. He wasn't certain that he'd get that much, but anything would
help-after they put some distance between them and the destruction he had
created.
LXXXII
Kharl
did not find a cot or a hut, but they did find a shed with a thatched roof that
had once been used to store hay and shelter a flock. After pulling off his damp
boots, Kharl had collapsed on a scattering of very dry hay. His dreamless sleep
lasted but a short while before the nightmares began.
The
first one was almost like the battle against the three white mages, except this
time, he could not find a way to break their shields or to get close enough to
them to unbind order and release chaos-because there were scores of cannon
pounding at him.
Abruptly,
he was running through the streets of Brysta, looking for Jeka, because she had
slipped away while he was considering what sort of magery to use against the
harbor forts that were still held by Egen's patrollers. After that, he fought
against shadowy demons-both black and white. Sometime in the night, however, he
dropped into a deeper and dreamless sleep. Or, at least, he didn't recall any
other dreams.
Both
Jeka and Demyst were looking at him when he finally struggled awake and sat up.
"Cloudy,
but it's not raining now. Might not, either." Demyst paused, then added,
"There's lancer scouts coming down that east road."
"You've
been out scouting?"
"Took
Sestalt with me, ser, but I thought it might be a good thing."
"It
was. I'm sorry. I wasn't thinking all that well-" Kharl wrestled his
all-too-stiff boots back on his feet, then stood.
"You've
been doing enough for three men. Time for some of the rest of us to earn our
keep." The undercaptain grinned.
"You'd
mentioned that we needed to do something with Osten or Ostcrag ..."
ventured Erdyl.
"We
do. We'll need lancers and some support to face Egen and the Hamorians. Whether
it's Lord West or Osten, they need us, or they'll get burned into ashes. I'd
like to meet Ostcrag or Osten, or both of them, on the flat before the ruins of
the fort. If it will make them comfortable, they can bring some guards, but not
many."
"Do
you think they will?"
"After they look at the fort?" Kharl raised his eyebrows. "If they
don't, then we'll have to wait until they get beaten, and hope that there are
enough left for a second battle."
"If
that happens-"
"We'll
worry about that if they won't meet me."
"I
don't know ..." muttered the undercaptain. "Don't know as I like you
just riding up there to them."
Kharl
had thought about that, and he didn't like it, either, but he was the envoy.
"I'll
do it," Erdyl said. "Besides Lord Kharl, I'm the only one any of Lord
West's people might recognize. It'd be better if I went."
"Thank
you," Kharl said, hoping that he wasn't sending his secretary out to his
death, but knowing that Osten and Ostcrag were such traditional lords that for
Kharl to ride up and announce himself would lessen his stature and increase
their contempt for the envoy-mage- despite what he had already done. To
overcome that would require more magery and force. He held in a sigh. Magery
would probably still be required. "You'd best take both Sestalt and
Alynar."
"I'll
get ready." Erdyl started for the shed door, then paused and called back,
"You ought to eat whatever you can, ser."
Kharl
was already looking for what remained of his provisions. There was some bread,
and a chunk of cheese. That was all.
The
undercaptain had followed Erdyl, leaving Jeka and Kharl in the shed.
"Don't
like sending him, do you?" asked Jeka.
"No,"
Kharl admitted, after chewing a mouthful of bread. "But he's right."
"You
can't do everything."
While
Kharl knew that, it had never been easy for him to let others do things for him,
especially when he had been a cooper, perhaps because so seldom had they done
them well, and he'd usually had to do them over again-or live with the
consequences. But then, he reflected, as he felt the uneasiness within himself
that suggested he was not being accurate, there were all too many times,
especially in the last year, when he had not done so well, and it might have
been better in some cases to listen to others.
"Can
you?" pressed Jeka.
"No."
"Leastwise,
you know that." She offered a smile.
Kharl
just took it in.
Abruptly,
Jeka rose. "Be back in a while."
Kharl
finished his meager provisions, and waited. While Jeka drifted in and out, she
never stayed long, and that worried Kharl.
Erdyl
returned almost two glasses later.
Demyst and
Jeka joined Kharl as Erdyl dismounted in front of the ramshackle shed.
"Lord
Osten has agreed to meet with you in front of the fort in half a glass,"
were Erdyl's first words.
"He
doesn't want you to try any trickery," suggested Demyst.
"How
much trouble did you have?" asked Kharl.
"It
took a while, and a lot of words," Erdyl admitted. "I just kept
pointing to the fort and asking if they wanted the mage who did that on their
side or against them. It helped that they finally brought Mihalen to see me.
After that, it only took about half a glass."
Kharl
shook his head. He wasn't certain he would have had Erdyl's patience. "It
was a good thing you went. Thank you."
"Ah
.. . yes, ser. He said that he'll have guards, and a
crossbowman ready to cut you down if there's any trickery."
Kharl
snorted. "If I wanted to do him in, I wouldn't be stupid enough to try it
there." Osten's reaction didn't do much for Kharl's opinion of the
rightful heir. "Did he mention Lord West, or Ostcrag, or say anything about
what happened?"
"No, ser. I thought it was best I didn't
press."
Erdyl
was probably right about that as well. Kharl looked toward the gelding that
Demyst or Sestalt had already saddled for him. "I'd better be going."
"Ah . .. and you're to ride ahead of your guards, ser."
"So
that his bowman has a good shot, I'm sure."
"Can
you-" began the undercaptain.
"I'll
try, but I can't hold shields the whole time." Kharl climbed into the
saddle. He still couldn't vault up the way Demyst and Erdyl, and even Aly-nar,
could.
Demyst
and Erdyl rode back along the lane, north on the ring road, then out
Kharl
halted in the middle of the open space.
"He
has to make you wait," Erdyl said quietly from where he had reined up
behind Kharl. "To prove he's more important."
The more
Kharl dealt with lords and rulers, the more he just wanted to return to Cantyl.
Almost a
quarter of a glass passed before Osten, at the head of a squad of lancers, rode
across the deep and damp grass toward Kharl.
He
reined up.
Kharl
eased the gelding forward, then also reined up a good ten cubits from Osten.
"Lord Osten." He inclined his head.
"You
asked to meet me, Lord Kharl." In the dark blue riding jacket, with silver
piping, Osten looked more imperious than he had in the receiving hall of the
Quadrancy Keep.
"I
did. The night before last, your youngest brother's patrollers and a Hamorian
white wizard attacked my residence in Brysta. We prevailed, but I discovered
the next morning that he had also attacked the Keep. We were less than pleased
that he appeared to be attempting to remove you and your sire. I attempted to
track him through the white wizards."
"How
fared that?"
Kharl
shrugged. "We fought three white wizards and several companies of
patrollers to the east of the barracks just south of Brysta. All were
destroyed, but Overcaptain Vielam had not taken the field. After the battle he
fled southward before we could reach him. I would wager that he has rejoined
Captain Egen somewhere to the south, perhaps at the fort Captain Egen built
along the south road."
Osten
said nothing.
"Because
we knew of this fort, I decided to attack it last night. I thought that would
make it easier for you to bring your lancers to Brysta and south against your
rebellious brothers-if that is your intent."
For the
slightest moment, Osten's eye strayed to the smoldering pile of stone that had
been a fort. "Could you not have spared the fort?"
"Magery
does not work that way," Kharl replied.
"Why
did you come to me?" Osten's tone was dismissive.
"When
I presented my credentials," Kharl said, "I suggested that everything
was not as it should be. You chose not to listen."
"You
knew of my brother's treachery .. . and you let-"
Osten's face darkened. "That is insufferable-"
"Osten . .. you chose not to listen." Kharl's patience
was wearing thin. "Do you want my help or not? If I walk away, your
brother and his Hamor-ian wizards will do even worse to you than I did to this
fort."
"Why
do you care?"
"I
don't care about you very much. The alternatives are just worse. Your brother
would be the most evil ruler the West Quadrant has ever had, and before a
handful of years had passed, Hamor would rule both the West Quadrant and the
South Quadrant. Austra does not want Hamor gaining a foothold so close."
"So
you will help me, whether you like me or not?"
Kharl
could see Osten beginning to scheme.
"No.
If you don't promise to make the justicers more fair, and tariffs lower, and a
few other things ... I'll walk away and let all of you fight over it. Then,
when you're dead, and your brother thinks he can take his pleasures, I'll have
to destroy him and the Hamorians, and then I'll probably have to make someone
like your justicers next Lord West." Kharl wasn't certain of any of that,
but he was determined to try, and probably Reynol and Lurtedd wouldn't be much
better, possibly even worse.
"You
seek to bargain."
"No,"
said Kharl coldly.
Osten's
sabre appeared from nowhere, and whistled toward Kharl.
Kharl
raised the hardened air shield, and the sabre shattered against it.
Wincing,
Osten dropped the useless hilt. "You .. . you mages ..."
Kharl
released the shield, but was ready to raise it instantly. "I am not
bargaining. I am giving you terms. You don't keep them, and I can return to
Brysta anytime and kill you. And I will. Do you understand?"
The
lord-heir swallowed.
"I
am not interested in being a ruler, but I want you to be a good ruler. The kind
people respect and praise, not the kind that people fear and flee."
"You're
weak, mage."
Kharl
laughed. "Am I? Tell me that when you must have scores of guards. Tell me
that when you need to have someone taste everything before you eat."
Osten's
face darkened once more.
Alert to
any movement, anyone nearing them, Kharl waited, saying nothing.
Finally,
the young lord nodded. "I must accept your terms. Better you, insufferable
as you are, than to lose all to Hamor."
Kharl
waited once more.
"What
do you want from me?"
"To accompany you when you ride south to confront
your brother. Two squads of lancers who will keep stray patrollers from getting too
close to me while I attack their mages."
Osten's
brows wrinkled. "You could do that-"
"It's
easier that way. Otherwise, I'd have to chase him. Also, he might avoid me and
attack your lancers with his forces and the Hamorian wizards. They'd destroy
you."
"They
still might destroy you," Osten pointed out.
"They
might. But you're no worse off that way." Kharl laughed ironically.
Talking to Osten was more than a mere chore; it was painful. "He has at
least three white wizards. You have none." Kharl paused, then asked,
"What happened to the one you had in the Quadrancy Keep?"
Osten's
face narrow face froze. For a moment, his black eyes hardened. "He was the
one who betrayed us and killed my sire."
Kharl
had suspected something like that, from the wizard's reactions when he had
presented his credentials to Ostcrag, but there was little point in letting Osten
know that. "You are the rightful successor to
your sire."
"What
is that to you, ser mage?"
"As
a mage," Kharl shrugged, "not enough to risk my life. But as Lord
Ghrant's envoy, and one who has seen what the white wizards will do to a land, it
means a great deal to me. I would not see any land fall to Hamor- or to anyone
who might be their tool."
"You
think my brother is their tool?"
Kharl
was ready for that question. "Don't actions speak louder than any flowery
words? What do you think?"
"I
think that I need you, whether I like you or not." Osten's laugh was hard.
"As
I need you, Lord West," Kharl replied, "so that Hamor will be kept
from both our shores. How long before all your forces are gathered?"
"Tomorrow, at the earliest."
"Where
will you assemble them?"
Osten
frowned, but replied, "At the Quadrancy Keep. There is no other place
suitable. It once was just that, and it will suffice for now."
"Then
I will send my secretary to yours early tomorrow, to learn when we should join
you."
"Are
you leaving Brysta?"
"No.
We've destroyed two of Egen's forces, and one fort. I'm going to get a good
meal and some rest." Kharl smiled politely.
"Till the morrow, ser mage."
As Kharl
rode off the flat and eastward along Angle Road to rejoin the others, followed
by Demyst and Erdyl, he kept his senses alert. He trusted Osten not at all. His
problem was that Egen and the Hamorians were far worse.
LXXXIII
Brysta was
quiet as Kharl and the others rode back to the residence. While there were some
souls about the city, they were few, and they scurried away at the sound of
riders and hoofs. For the moment, that was fine with Kharl.
The
moment Kharl reined up before the stable, Mantar and Fundal appeared. They
assured Kharl that no one had even neared the residence.
He had
not stepped into the rear hallway when Khelaya confronted him and protested,
almost as if she needed to complain, that she could have fixed a better meal
than they would receive if Kharl had only sent word ahead.
"I
couldn't, but it will be a good meal, and far better than anything we have eaten," he had replied. Then, of
course, before the evening meal was even being prepared, he had to explain,
briefly, but in more detail than he wished, all that had happened.
From
that, Kharl escaped to his chambers, where he indulged himself with a bath,
followed by a nap-one without nightmares.
Around
the table that evening, everyone looked far cleaner and more rested than the night
before, and there was little conversation for the
first moments.
"You
think we'll ride out tomorrow, ser?" Erdyl finally asked.
"No.
Egen won't rush north. We may even have to ride to him. Osten will find that he
lacks something. It will be the next day, perhaps even the day after."
"Is
that wise?"
Kharl
shrugged and looked to the undercaptain.
"There's
a time for haste, and a time to wait, and times when it matters not," the
undercaptain volunteered. "When Lord Kharl destroyed the fort, that was
time for haste, because there were no white wizards to protect it. I can't see
that haste matters that much now."
"Unless
the Hamorian fleet shows up in the harbor," Kharl said dryly, "with
more white wizards."
"I've
been thinking; ser. Those patrollers had rifles-the ones in the south. They
were shooting well, more like trained lancers. Have we ever seen patrollers
with rifles anywhere?"
Kharl
felt that he should have seen that. "You think that they offloaded their
troops somewhere, then left, and that the lancers were wearing patroller
uniforms so that folks wouldn't think that Hamor was playing too big a
part?"
Demyst,
his mouth full of lace potatoes, nodded.
"You're
right. He had more patrollers there than we ever saw on the streets, and they
could use those rifles. They were trained, better than I've seen except with
the Hamorian lancers," mused Kharl.
"That's
because they were Hamorian lancers, I'd wager," said Demyst.
"It
was all planned from the beginning, then," Erdyl said. "The cloth
came from Hamor ..."
All the
pieces fit. Kharl just wished he'd seen them earlier. But it was another case
where his lack of experience showed-all too clearly.
"If
that's so," said the undercaptain slowly, "they can't land any more
lancers soon."
"We
don't know how many more white wizards there are," Kharl said. "There
were three in the south before, and that doesn't count the one that killed
Ostcrag. He's probably with Egen. I count four of them with the rebel
forces." At least.
"Handled
three of 'em yesterday," Jeka pointed out. "Didn't have any lancers
with you, either."
"I've
never faced four at once," Kharl said. "Two or three, and I almost
didn't make it. We can't trust Osten much, either, especially if we win."
Erdyl
frowned, momentarily, then nodded.
"Can't
trust none of them," observed Jeka. "Never could."
"No.
That's the problem."
"Not
if you do away with them all."
"That's
a bigger problem. There are no heirs, and there's no one else who's
sufficiently well known to take over without blood in the streets. Who will
take over the West Quadrant? Lord East? Lord North? The Emperor of Hamor?"
"You're
a mage," Jeka pointed out.
"That's
a problem, too. People don't like mages as rulers, not since Fairven. I've seen
how folks here in Brysta feel about blackstaffers and order-mages-and they're
considered the good mages."
"A
good mage is a trusted advisor and a feared ruler," Erdyl said.
"Hated,"
Kharl suggested, recalling Charee's repugnance at Jenevra- and Jenevra had been
little more than a girl.
"You
mean ... you'd put Osten up as Lord West?" asked Jeka. "Really
would?"
"Does
anyone have a better idea? We don't want Egen or Vielam, and we don't want the
Emperor of Hamor or one of his tools."
Jeka
looked away.
Kharl
couldn't blame her. Once he would have felt the same way. But he'd seen the
other side. When Egen had turned against him, most of the people he had known
and trusted had refused to stand up for what was right. Only Tyrbel and Gharan
had. And Jeka, especially Jeka. Wassyt the miller and Werwal had done what they
could without making it public. Everyone else had gone along.
He
frowned. That wouldn't have happened in places like Reduce or Southwind. He'd seen that. Even in Austra,
there were men of power-like
Why was
Nordla-or the West Quadrant-different?
He
wasn't sure he had an answer.
He also
worried about Werwal, since he hadn't seen or heard from the renderer; but he
couldn't be in all places, and he didn't have enough retainers to send them
through a city where anything could happen at any time.
Lost in those
thoughts, he said little for the remainder of the meal. No sooner had he stood
than Jeka slipped away the moment his eyes left her.
After
dinner, Kharl walked into the kitchen to talk to Fundal and Khe-laya, because
he had worried about provisions for the residence. "Do we have enough for
the next eightday or so?"
"That'd
be tight for full meals, ser," Khelaya had answered, "but there's
plenty to fill stomachs."
"You
can pay more if you can find what we need." After what he'd told Fundal
earlier, Kharl thought he needed to say something about prices.
"Good
to know," Fundal replied.
When
Kharl returned to the dining area, he saw no one. Erdyl and Demyst were sitting
on the front portico, but Jeka wasn't there.
He'd known
he'd upset her, but he'd wanted to explain in private why he didn't have any
good choices in the matter of whom he supported. Yet he didn't want to chase
her all over the residence.
He
shouldn't have to do that, should he?
Besides,
unfortunately, he needed to figure out how to deal with the white wizards. If
he could work out a better shielding for his innate order, so that they could
not sense where he was, he might be able to surprise at least one of them.
Musing about that, he walked toward the library.
LXXXIV
Although
Kharl had stayed up until late in the evening, working on and refining a shield
to hide the concentration of order around him, he was up early, still worrying
about Jeka. When he came down for breakfast, she was not anywhere on the first
floor of the residence. Enelya was in the kitchen, helping Khelaya with the egg
toast.
"Have
you seen Jeka this morning?"
"No,
ser. Didn't see her none last night after supper,
either."
"Thank
you." Kharl turned and walked up the back stairs to the third floor. He
could sense that she was in her room.
He
knocked.
"Go
away."
"I
wanted to talk to you last night."
"Don't
want to talk."
Kharl
stood there. What exactly was he going to do? He didn't want to hammer down the
door. That wouldn't help. "I'm not going away until you let me in."
"Can't bust in here with horses."
"I
don't want to break in. I want to talk to you."
Jeka
said nothing.
"Do
you think I'd want to do anything to hurt you? Do you think I lifee what's
happened?"
There
was still no answer.
"Do
you want patrollers and lancers and mages tearing up all of Brysta-and then
Sagana, and wherever else they'll go?"
Jeka
opened the door and stepped back. "Just talk."
Kharl
stepped inside, slowly. The room was neat-spotless. He almost said so, but
realized that wouldn't be good at all.
Jeka
seated herself cross-legged on the bed. She was wearing faded gray trousers and
an equally faded blue shirt. She was barefoot.
Kharl
pulled the side stool out and straddled it, facing her.
"You
didn't say you were going to .. ." Jeka shook her
head.
"It's
not good," Kharl admitted. "Everything else is worse."
"That's
what you say." Her green eyes flashed.
"I've
made mistakes," Kharl admitted. "You know that. Do you think I like
making Osten the next Lord West?"
"Another mistake."
"It
might be. But. .. bad as he might be, the choices are worse. You see how folks
feel. Did anyone stand up for you in Sagana when the tariff farmer turned out your
mother and tried to get you sold to a pleasure house? Did anyone want to buy my
barrels after Egen put out the word on me? I was the only one who even stopped
to see if Jenevra was hurt-"
"Jenevra?"
"That
was the blackstaffer girl that Egen raped, then had
killed while I was fighting the fire."
"Oh."
Jeka's brows knit together for a moment.
This
time Kharl was the one to be silent, much as he wanted to say more.
"Shouldn't be that way." Jeka sighed.
Kharl
kept waiting.
"You being a mage. Guess I thought. .. don't know what I
thought."
"I
can do some things ... I'll do everything I can to make sure Egen doesn't hurt
another girl, doesn't murder another person. I can't change the whole land.
People have to want to change."
"Osten. He doesn't want to change."
"He
will," Kharl said. "I told him that if he wasn't a better lord than
his sire, I'd come back and kill him. I told him that was something I could
do." He grinned ruefully. "That was why he tried to hit me with his
sabre. It broke."
"Told
him that?"
Kharl
nodded. "Wasn't all that smart, I guess. If we win, he'll try to kill me
if he thinks he can. But I wanted him to know that he couldn't be like his sire
or his brother."
"You'd
come back and do that?"
"I
came back for you," Kharl pointed out.
"Not
just me."
"No.
But I did."
Jeka
uncrossed her legs and reached for the scuffed shoes. "Need to eat. So do
you."
"Once
this is over, we need to get you some boots."
"See
about that, then." But there was a faint hint of a smile.
As he
headed down to breakfast, following Jeka, Kharl realized something else. He
still hadn't seen Werwal or his consort. There was no one he felt comfortable
sending to the rendering yard. If he went, he'd need to take at least Alynar or
Sestalt, and that would leave the residence poorly protected with Osten's
lancers coming into the city. Jeka was good at sneaking around, but Kharl
didn't want her where he didn't at least have a chance to protect her. He
didn't want to send anyone, in fact, until he knew that Brysta would remain
relatively orderly.
Everything
he did, he felt, was some sort of compromise between what ought to be and what
could be. Belatedly, as always, he realized, that was why Lyras wanted to stay
away from the Great House and the Lord of Aus-tra. There was always conflict, a
need for compromise in ruling, and in law, as the clerk Jusof had pointed out
to him in Valmurl. Law was not justice, and given people's differing feelings about
what they deserved, and what they wanted, it couldn't be.
That was
another reason why he shouldn't ever try to be more than he was,
a mage and a lord. He'd just make matters worse-or tear himself up inside-or
both. He'd precipitated the second revolt in Austra by trying to second-guess
what Ghrant had needed. Now, in less than a season, he'd created swaths of
death and destruction just trying to do his job as envoy to the West Quadrant.
Still,
he fretted about both Werwal and Jeka, for very different reasons.
LXXXV
As Kharl
had suspected, Osten's forces were not ready on sevenday, although Kharl had
been able to sense the approach of Egen's white wizards by late in the day. By
sunset, he felt as though they were still well south of Brysta proper, south
even of the barracks on the south side of the city.
Early on
eightday Kharl and his group rode out to join Osten's forces. The day had
dawned with a hazy sky, but Kharl had the feeling that it would clear. That
meant that Egen was more likely to attack, since the white mages preferred not
to fight in the rain. By midmorning, all of Osten's forces were moving
southward on the ring road, less than a kay from where it joined the south
road. The lancers led the column, and the armed foot brought up the rear, with
the supply wagons trailing, and having a hard time of it in the muddy clay left
by the combination of summer-end rain and the mounts and men traveling before
them.
Kharl
and his small party rode just behind the vanguard, in the second body of troops,
following Osten and his personal guard-lancers clad in a blue so dark it was
almost black, with a thin piping of silver-gray. Osten had detailed-not quite
grudgingly-two squads of lancers as support for Kharl. Kharl's trousers were
mud-spattered, and there were even a few splotches on his sleeves, although
those had dried quickly even under the hazy morning sunlight.
The
ground on both sides of the road held low hills, but the
those on the eastern side were higher and presaged the more rugged hills to the
south. Kharl could just make out, over the tops of the woodlot trees ahead to
his left, the beginning of the long ridge to the north of the southern
patroller barracks.
"How
far away do you think Egen is?" asked Demyst.
"About
four kays south of here, close to the barracks where
we were before." Khaii's order-senses gave him a rough idea. Over the past
day, he had pondered whether he should have destroyed the structures, but at
that time, he'd been more worried about the eastern fort and whether more white
wizards might appear. If he had, he certainly wouldn't have had the strength
for at least another day to deal with the eastern fort, and who knew what those
patrollers might have been able to do?
"They
moving?"
"They
don't seem to be."
"Waiting for us to come to them."
Kharl
nodded as he sensed two scouts who rode back toward Osten. He just hoped that
Osten would tell him what they had discovered, although he had more than a few
doubts about Osten's judgment. Not for the first time, and certainly not for
the last, he wished he had been faced with better choices as to whom he needed
to back on behalf of Lord Ghrant.
After
perhaps a quarter glass, a lancer pulled his mount
from the column ahead and began to ride back toward Kharl.
"Lord
Osten wants something, I'd wager," offered Demyst, riding beside Kharl.
"All
lords do," Kharl said dryly, realizing as he spoke the words that he'd
condemned himself as well. His wry smile was brief.
The
lancer turned his mount to ride on the shoulder, alongside and matching pace
with Kharl and his escort. "Lord Kharl, Lord Osten would like you to join
him."
Kharl
eased his mount forward and onto the shoulder, where he rode past the rear of
Osten's guard until he neared Osten himself.
"Lord
Osten ..."
The
blond lord turned his head. "Join me."
Kharl
eased his mount beside Osten, momentarily conscious of just how much bigger he
was than Osten.
"Lord
Kharl," Osten began, "what can you tell me
about the would-be usurper's position?"
"I do
not have scouts, as you do, but the main body of his forces, and three or four
white wizards, are somewhere ahead. I would judge about three kays."
For a
moment, the narrow-faced Osten was silent. Then, he nodded. "Almost
exactly two and a half kays ahead. His wizards or his patrollers killed one
party of scouts. The two who just returned tell me that we face three companies
of mounted patrollers and two companies of patroller foot, with almost ten
companies of regular Nordlan lancers. The entire rebel force has retaken the
southern barracks area."
"There
was nothing to stop them. The barracks were empty, and they took everything
with them when they retreated earlier."
"All the supplies?" Osten's voice was disbelieving.
"All
of them except some cannon powder, but the cannon were damaged in the
battle." Except one. And Kharl wasn't about to mention that.
"The
scouts did not report cannon."
Kharl
nodded, waiting to see what Osten would say next.
"They
have blocked the road, and hold the flat to the east and the high ground to the
west. They have fixed crude pikes across the road to block our lancers there or
to force us into the marshy part of the flat or uphill against the patrollers
with rifles."
"Most
of the patrollers are probably Hamorian lancers in patroller uniforms,"
Kharl suggested.
"That
is like him. Ungrateful wretch!" Osten spat to the side away from Kharl.
"I found it hard to believe that he could have trained so many in a year,
even with ..." The lord-heir let the words trail away.
Kharl
noted that Osten had yet to refer to his brother by name. "He didn't. That
way, the emperor-"
"The
white demon can claim that he only supplied a few wizards and some training to
the men of the would-be usurper. That is so like Hamor. Be that as it may, what
great aid do you offer us?"
"The
hills to the west are not at all that high, and the slopes are gentle. That is
where the white wizards are. If they were not there, you could take the hills and
flank ... the usurper. Then he and his men would be trapped against the ridge
and the marshy ground."
"You
want me to send men against the wizards?" Osten's voice turned scornful.
"No.
I intend to deal with the wizards-with the two squads of lancers you loaned me,
of course. We'll circle behind them and attack them from the west. From what you've said, and from
their positions, they expect you to attack. They plan to use the wizards to
kill as many lancers as possible before you can reach them." Kharl smiled
politely. "What I suggest is that you ready your men for such an attack,
and take a great deal of time doing it. When I have dealt with the white
wizards, you take the hills to the west and begin to encircle them."
"What
about the rifles?"
"They'll
go when the white wizards do." If I am successful.
"Pardon
me, ser mage. What happens if you are not successful?" Osten's voice was
cold.
"You
have lost nothing but two squads of lancers, and your enemy is that much
weaker," Kharl pointed out. "You hazard little. From where his forces
are set, he cannot attack quickly."
"When
will you begin your attack?"
"When
we get there," Kharl said flatly. "You will see chaos-fire and much
else."
Osten
offered an excessive half bow from the saddle. "We await your efforts,
Lord Kharl."
"Thank
you, Lord Osten." With a smile he did not feel, Kharl turned his mount,
his shields ready for any treachery, although he did not believe such an
attempt would come until later.
As he
rode back northward to his own small detachment, when he passed the last rank
of lancers, he infused a small mass of order into the saddlebags of one of the
lancers. When he later cloaked his own order, he hoped that the white wizards
would perceive the order in the saddlebags as him-or as his failure to shield
himself adequately.
Even so,
Kharl couldn't help but wonder what new tactics the white mages with Egen might
try. He had no real idea, but he did know that almost every time he had faced
one of the Hamorian mages, they had done something he had not anticipated. That
might also reflect his own lack of training and experience. From what Whetorak
had revealed, Hamor trained its envoys extensively, and Kharl would have been
surprised if its mages had not also had some type of instruction. He could have
used some of that himself, rather than having to discover everything by trial
and error.
He
snorted quietly. That blade had two edges. On the one edge, he'd had to learn
late things others had known early. On the other, he'd discovered techniques no
one else seemed to know.
Kharl rode
directly to the subofficer in charge of the two lancer squads accompanying him.
"Serjeant."
"Yes, ser?"
"We're
going to be heading west from here. We're breaking off, and we'll be circling around."
"Ser?"
"The
white wizards are on high ground ahead to the west of the road. We'll be
attacking them ..." He paused. "I'll be attacking them, and you'll be
there to make sure that someone doesn't send a squad or something at me. Also,
with two squads, we'll look more like a scouting party, and they won't think so
much about it. You ride with me, and we'll lead the way."
"Ah
.. . yes, ser."
Kharl
looked past the serjeant to his own undercaptain.
Demyst
nodded, although his face carried a worried expression that was not quite a
frown.
After
raising the shield to cloak his own order, Kharl eased the chestnut gelding
back onto the shoulder of the road, then over a soggy depression into a field
that looked to hold some sort of beans. At the western end of the field, there
was a lane that wound to the southwest. That was the general direction they
needed to go.
As he
and the serjeant rode down the rows of the bean field, Kharl was conscious of
the words of the lancers who followed Demyst, Erdyl, Jeka, and Alynar.
"One
mage ... and he's gonna take on the white devils?"
"You
see what he did already? Nothing but rocks ..."
"Rocks
aren't wizards . . ."
Kharl
was well aware of that. He turned in the saddle and managed to get out some of
the bread and cheese that he had taken from the residence, knowing he would
need it. He managed several bites before they reached the lane-barely wide
enough for two mounts abreast.
"How
far, ser, before we reach the wizards?"
"They're
about two kays over there"-Kharl pointed south-southeast- "but the
way we're going is more like three or three and a half. Lord Osten will be
slowing his advance and preparing. He won't attack until we're done."
"We're
not going to charge the wizards, now, are we?"
"Not
all the way. Just to get me close enough to deal with them." And that was
far closer than Kharl wanted to be.
Although
there were cottages and sheds amid the meadows and fields, Kharl saw not a
single soul. That was scarcely surprising, not with a long column of lancers
and armsmen visible on the south road stretching back toward Brysta.
After
less than a kay, the lane turned westward and downhill, arrowing straight west
toward the seacoast cliffs and ridges. Once more Kharl turned off the lane,
this time across a meadow toward another set of hedgerows.
A good
glass later, he reined up on a low rise, one roughly half a kay to the south of
the rise where the white wizards and the mounted "patrollers" waited,
although from where he was, Kharl could only see the southernmost of them. He
looked more to the northeast, out onto the lower ground. Egen's regular lancers
held the flat to the north of the barracks area. Two hastily constructed lines
of angled and sharpened posts blocked the road and ran a good ten rods to
either side, while mixed companies of foot patrollers and armsmen were drawn up
in formation behind the posts.
Kharl
looked back to the north. He thought there were four wizards, but he wasn't
about to probe to find out. That would only reveal where he was. He turned.
"Follow me."
He
started the gelding down the slope, mostly grassy, but with some scattered
bushes, and a handful of isolated blue oaks.
They had
ridden no more than a few hundred cubits down toward the swale between the two
hills that were little more than large rises, when the Serjeant cleared his
throat loudly. "Ser .. . looks like some of those patrollers might be
breaking off, heading toward us."
"We'll
ride through the swale toward that pair of low oaks on the lower part of the
slope there, above that woodlot."
"Ser...?"
"The
woodlot is right below. They'd have to break formation to follow us through the
trees, wouldn't they?"
"Yes,
ser ... but.. ."
"We
aren't going to do that, but I want them to think that. I need to get closer to
the wizards." Kharl eased the gelding into a trot, trying not to bounce
too much in the saddle.
The
others followed.
Kharl
kept checking the hillside to the north as he rode across the grassy swale
between the two rises.
Once he
started up the other side, where the slope of the grassy rise blocked sight of the main patroller force
and the other white wizards, Kharl turned the gelding more to the northeast and
began to angle up the side of the larger rise that the patrollers were riding
down. The patrollers were riding far faster.
With the
patrollers-what looked to be half a company-rode a white wizard.
Although Kharl was still shielding himself, he got the impression from the
other's projected chaos that the man was the wizard who'd betrayed Lord West.
Whhstt...
A firebolt arced from behind the leading riders.
Rather
than extend any great effort until their pursuers were closer, Kharl used his
shields just to nudge the chaos into the ground uphill of them.
"Ser?"
asked the Serjeant.
"Don't
worry about this one," Kharl snapped. The patrollers were almost close
enough.
Another
firebolt flared at them, and Kharl slid it behind the short column. "Halt.
Right here." He reined up, and concentrated on the oncoming riders, now
less than fifty cubits away.
Whhsttt!
This
time, Kharl twisted the chaos-energies through the back linkage into the white
wizard, beyond him across the sixty-odd riders. Death voids flashed across him,
but many of the trailing riders escaped. Within moments, the score of survivors
had turned and galloped eastward, not uphill but along the side of the hill.
"Now! Straight uphill!" Kharl called.
This
time, while he pulled his shielding cloak back together, he knew that the other
wizards would know that he was somewhere behind them. He needed to get as close
as he could before they could turn their forces and force him to fight his way
to them-if he could.
Kharl
reached a point several hundred cubits below the hillcrest on the west side
when he saw that perhaps half the patrollers on the rise had finished a
wheeling maneuver into a formation to face his small force. He dropped the
cloaking shield that had kept him from the full perceptions of the white
wizards.
Between
the two sets of mounted patrollers were the white wizards, and to their right
was another group of riders-wearing dark blue and burgundy. At their head was a
slender figure he recognized even at a distance-Egen. The would-be lord's
chaos-that of evil and not of chaos- force-was clear enough to Kharl.
Kharl
permitted himself a smile that vanished as chaos mounted from within and around
the white wizards.
Whhsttt!
Whssst! Whsstt! The three firebolts that arced from behind the line of charging
patrollers were linked together, feeding off each other, seemingly expanding
into a wall of chaos flame.
Kharl
had already sensed the linked shields of the three. He couldn't use the
wizards' tie to the firebolts to funnel that chaos back at them, but instead,
he created his momentary hardened air shield curved to fling the chaos back
across the first wave of patrollers-much as he would have preferred to throw
that massive force at Egen and his personal guard.
More
than two companies of patrollers vanished as the wall of fire flared across
them.
A swath
of knee-high grass was no more-just a bare stretch of blackened earth, with
occasional low rocks protruding from the baked soil.
While
the wizards retained their shield, the early-afternoon sky was empty of
firebolts.
Slowly,
the remaining patrollers began to wheel toward Kharl.
Kharl
grabbed for his water bottle and took a long swallow of cider, watching the
hillcrest to the east. Then he urged the gelding forward, not at a walk, but at
what he thought might be a canter. He could see what was likely to come, even
before the patrollers began to raise their rifles. After a moment, Demyst,
Erdyl, Alynar, and Jeka followed him, as did some of the two squads of lancers,
although Kharl thought that some of the lancers had dropped back. So had the
serjeant, but there was no help for that.
Kharl
glanced over his shoulder, then shouted, "Demyst!
Jeka! Erdyl! Get right behind me! Now!"
"You
heard him!" ordered Demyst.
Kharl
snapped his head back forward. He kept riding, watching the patrollers as they
brought their rifles up. At what he thought was the last moment, he threw up a
shield of hardened air-a good fifty cubits in front of him-and wide enough, he
hoped, to shield him and his small party. He couldn't spare the energy to
shield the lancers behind him, spread as they were.
Crack!
Crack! Crack!. . . The rifle reports sounded like continuing whip cracks.
Behind
him, Kharl felt one death, then another, as he narrowed the gap between him and
the patrollers and the white wizards behind them. In those moments when he
thought that there was a lull in the firing, he dropped the air shield and
rebuilt it farther ahead. Each time he wondered if he would be shot in that
brief instant when he was unprotected.
Yet, for
all the rifle fire, there were no firebolts, no use of chaos by the white
wizards, except to maintain their linked shields. Had they realized that Kharl
was using their own chaos against them? How could they not?
Kharl
kept riding, trying to reach a point where he could extend an order-probe to
where the white wizards stood, impervious, waiting, and to the right, Egen and
his personal patrollers.
All the time,
the patrollers kept firing, and lancers behind and flanking Kharl dropped,
wounded or killed. Before him, chaos drawn from somewhere began to mount behind
the shields of the three white wizards. His entire body was hot, burning like a
fire pot, it seemed, and he was drenched in sweat, squinting as the salty stuff
ran by and into his eyes.
He was
less than two hundred cubits from the first line of patrollers, and the ground
shivered. With that shivering, the chaos behind the white shields intensified.
Kharl could sense chaos building everywhere-in the ground under him, in the air
above him-and yet he was still not close enough to unbind chaos against the
wizards.
But...
if he unbound it against the patrollers ...
He
reached out and unlinked the order within the iron of the rifle of the
patroller closest to him.
Currumpttt!!!
White-and-red
chaos-flame flared back across the mounted patrollers, pressed by the shields
Kharl threw up hastily. Those patrollers and mounts who were not turned into instant
pillars of ashes flared like trees blackened in a firestorm-then toppled.
Abruptly, the chaos-flare vanished, sucked into the swirling vortex of
brilliance that rose around the three Hamorian wizards, a whirlwind of energy
burning brighter than the sun, so bright that not a single figure remaining on
the hillcrest cast a shadow, a pitiless searing light, with which nothing Kharl
had ever seen or felt could have possibly compared.
Yet
behind that vortex, protected as the other patrollers had not been, remained
the enemy wizards-and Egen and his personal guard.
Egen-coward, betrayer of his own family, and destroyer of
Kharl's. Egen ..
. protected by the chaos energy of the white wizards.
From
somewhere deep within Kharl a cold rage began to build. They would not protect
Egen!
A high
whining sound began to build.
Kharl
raised both an air shield and order shield directly in front of him.
The air
itself vibrated, and the shrilling penetrated Kharl's ears like sharpened
needles. As it did, a line of white light flared from the shielded chaos toward
Kharl. As that light lance struck the air shield, coruscating, strobing light
exploded like cannon shells going off in all directions.
The well
of white chaos that surrounded the three Hamorian wizards throbbed. The white
vortex dimmed-but only for a moment. Then the ground shivered once more, and
the shrilling began to build again.
Kharl
kept riding, although he could sense that few remained riding with or behind
him. He had to get close enough to reach Egen-and the chaos-wizards. He had to.
Now, he
was on the flat of the hillcrest, and only a hundred cubits from the wizards
and their linked shield . .. and the blindlingly
brilliant chaos vortex that rose like an inverted triangle into the sky- and
Egen!
As he
neared the vortex, he struggled, through sweat and heat, and exhaustion, to
rebuild his air shield and order shield. Exhausted as he was, he had to ...
just to get close enough to do what he could, what he had to do.
What could
he do? The blinding lightsword he had never seen before, never even read about
or thought about. Could he turn it against their shield?
The
shrilling rose until he could hear it no longer, until his eyes were watering
with agony from the unseen needles stabbing through his ears and into the depth
of his skull... and still it rose. Kharl forced more order into the air shield,
waiting, watching, trying to pick out Egen as well.
The
lightsword flared toward him.
He tried
to grasp it with order, and it was like trying to grasp smoke or fog. Yet it
struck his shields so hard that he rattled back and forth in his saddle.
Explosions of brilliance and light made the noon sun in summer seem as dark as
night in the deepest cave that had never seen light.
Once
more he was without shields, his defenses shredded.
The
chaos-vortex dimmed more than the last time, but the ground shivered, and the
vortex began to regain its brightness once again.
The
gelding was barely walking forward, and Kharl was panting, breathing heavily.
His face felt burned as if he had spent days in the sun without shade, and he
knew much of his exposed skin was blistering. It was hard to keep his eyes open
from the swelling around them.
What
could he do?
The
ground quivered once more.
Kharl
tried to swallow, but his throat was so dry he nearly choked.
What. ..
how?
He
looked at the glowing chaos shields and the brilliant vortex rising once more
like a hammer that was about to strike and smash him flat.
The
ground trembled more strongly.
The ground?
With
what felt like his last strength, Kharl reached toward the white wizards, not
directly, but toward the chaos tap that extended deep within the very earth.
There was the slightest chink, one of necessity, he felt, just beneath the
earth, where one kind of chaos met another and was transformed.
Kharl
did not try to change or force anything created by the chaos- wizards. Instead,
he began to work on a simple red stone, one mostly of iron, to release the order
bounds within that chunk of rock lying just between the two kinds of chaos-and
directly beneath the wizards and Egen.
As those
bounds dissolved in the iron-stone rock, Kharl drew back his order-probe and
flung shields around himself and those just behind him, hoping that his party
was all there.
The
ground rumbled.
A
firebolt flared toward Kharl, a fraction of an instant too late, exploding
against his belatedly drawn shields.
Somewhere
to the east, he could sense a handful of riders galloping southward from the
Hamorian forces, trying to put part of the hill between themselves and the
battle; but he would have to worry about them later, after dealing with the
wizards.
Then...
A sound
like iron being ripped apart, like the agony of a mother losing a child, knifed
through Kharl.
The
light of the great vortex was nothing compared to the flaring chaos-inferno
that exploded skyward. As each chaos-wizard's shield failed, the explosion lanced higher. Kharl
shuddered in his saddle, hanging on with both hands as the gelding reared,
screaming.
As the
whitened redness of death flared around him, he knew, could sense, that none of
those opposing him on the hill had survived.
A grim
smile crossed Kharl's face, if but for a moment.
Slowly,
so slowly, it seemed, everything faded, and the afternoon sun returned, so dim
by comparison that the sunlit afternoon looked like late twilight.
Kharl,
Demyst, Jeka, Erdyl, and Alynar remained alone on a fire- scoured rise. The air
was like a furnace, and fine ash drifted everywhere.
Kharl
forced himself to turn the gelding, although he could see nothing, except
through his order-senses. His face was aflame, and he felt as though every bit
of skin had been blistered away.
"We
need to get away." His voice came from a great distance, it seemed to him,
and patches of blackness appeared before his eyes, then vanished.
Deliberately,
he rode southwest, picking a path down the hill away from the area where the scattered
grass and brush still smoldered, down to where he could turn westward, then
back toward Osten and his forces.
Before
long, riders appeared, moving from the east. Kharl squinted. There had to be close
to half a company, and all were wearing patroller uniforms-except for one
figure in blue.
"Ser!"
called Demyst.
The
patrollers spurred their mounts toward Kharl and his small group. Several had
their rifles out.
"Behind me!" Kharl ordered, hoping that Jeka, above
all, was close enough for his shields, shields he only hoped he could hold long
enough for Egen to approach more closely.
"Fire! Aim for the mage!" Egen's voice carried across the
ten-odd rods that separated the two groups.
Crack!
Crack!...
Kharl
rocked in the saddle at the force of the patroller's volley, and he could feel
his grasp on his shields slipping.
"Keep
firing! He can't hold on!" snapped Egen.
Kharl
forced himself to reach out, to stretch for a bit of iron, sensing a small
amount in Egen's belt, and untwisting and releasing the order-bonds.
Crumpt!
More
light flared across the hillside. When Kharl could see again, his eyes took in
another patch of blackened ground.
Somehow . .. after all that had happened, Kharl just wished Egen
had known, really known, who Kharl was. But life didn't always work out the way
one hoped. There hadn't been a real confrontation, just a footnote to a battle,
and Egen was dead. It didn't seem that Egen had paid enough for all his
villainy, not near enough.
"Ser?" Demyst's voice broke through Kharl's
reverie. "It's not that safe here, still."
"You're
right." Kharl urged the gelding downhill and more to the west.
They had
ridden less than half a kay when yet another group of riders appeared, these in
Brystan blue.
Kharl
blinked when he saw the serjeant who commanded the squads
of
lancers that had accompanied him-and the half score of lancers who
remained,
though the lancers hung back from the Serjeant. ・
You
stayed here?" Kharl asked. ,,
"As
would any smart man, ser mage."
Kharl
could feel his own party closing up behind him.
"Lord
Osten is now Lord West," Kharl announced, using almost his last strength.
"He has the field. You can tell him that he will know where to find
me."
Kharl
swayed in the saddle.
The
serjeant smiled, driving his mount toward Kharl and lifting his sabre. Kharl
tried to turn, but he was sluggish, so sluggish.
The
blunt edge and the hilt of Erdyl's sabre-thrown end over end- slammed into the
Serjeant's shoulder and neck.
Then
Demyst and Alynar struck, and the serjeant sagged in his saddle.
Another
lancer slashed at Erdyl, who had no sabre.
Somehow
... Kharl managed to unlink the tiniest bit of order from something-whatever
was easiest-in the lancer who had slashed Erdyl. As the chaos flared, Kharl
flung up a half shield, one that directed the force across the rest of Osten's
lancers.
Not only
blackness, but strobing light-flashes flared across and before Kharl, clouding
his order-senses. He could barely feel Jeka, riding closer to him.
"Get
me out of here," he hissed to her. "Can't hang on much longer. If
Osten gets to me ..."
At that
moment, the deeper blackness swept over him.
LXXXVI
Kharl woke
up in a bed. He thought it might be the large bed in the residence, but, since
he still could not see, and since his head throbbed so much that he could not
use his order-senses, he was far from sure.
His
throat was dry, and he tried to sit up.
"Easy
there." The voice was Jeka's.
"Thirsty
..." The single word was an effort.
"Got some ale here."
"Can't
see," he tried to explain.
Jeka
guided a mug into his hands.
He drank
slowly. After several small swallows, he could feel the ale easing the dryness
in his throat. Some of the throbbing in his skull subsided, enough that he
could tell that he was in his own chamber and that Jeka was the only one with
him.
"What
happened?"
"Undercaptain
got me onto your horse. Held you, and we rode back. Alynar helped Erdyl."
"How
is he?"
"Khelaya
thinks he'll be all right. Arm's pretty smashed up. Hope it doesn't get wound
chaos."
"That
takes a few days," Kharl said. "When I'm feeling better, I think I
could help there." He took a longer swallow of the ale.
"Told you not to trust Osten. Bastard, always," said Jeka.
"Stupid, too."
Kharl
could agree with both Jeka's judgments.
"Still
think he ought to be Lord West?"
"Who else? If Vielam's still alive, he's worse. He'd
betray anyone. The two lord justicers don't have any guts ..." Kharl
stopped and coughed. His head throbbed more. When the spasm passed he took
another swallow of the ale.
"Anyone
shown up," he asked, "looking for me?"
"Not
so far ..."
"What
time?"
"Close to midnight. Could be Osten's still out there ...
grabbing coins and booty."
"He
doesn't know what happened," Kharl said. "The only ones close enough
to see ... We don't know what happened, either."
"That
was Egen at the end, on the hillside, wasn't it?"
"Yes.
He abandoned the wizards, I think, just before .. ."
"Too quick for that pissprick."
Kharl
had to agree. Egen didn't deserve a quick death, or just to die once, not after
all he had done. "Best I could do."
"Hope
it hurt-a whole lot."
"With
Egen gone ... and the white wizards..." Kharl paused for another sip of
the ale to forestall a second bout of coughing.
"You
think Osten managed to come out on top?"
"He
might not have had to fight that much," Kharl suggested. "The
regulars might have accepted him as Lord West. You think they want to die for
someone who's dead?"
"What
about the other one?"
"Vielam? He might have tried to rally them around
him, but that's hard to do in the middle of a battle." Kharl stifled a
yawn.
"You
need sleep," Jeka insisted. '
"So
do you."
"Won't get it unless you do."
He could
hear a hint of humor in her words. "Thank you ..."
"Nothing
... did what..." Her hand touched the back of his briefly, then squeezed
gently before taking the mug from his hands. "Go to sleep."
Kharl
leaned back into deeper darkness.
LXXXVII
By
twoday evening Kharl had regained his eyesight, at least most of the time,
although he had moments when everything turned black. Brysta remained quiet,
from what he could see and hear and from what Mantar and the other retainers
had observed. The lower market square was almost as filled as usual, according
to Enelya, who was more willing to venture out, although there were no patrollers
around. The upper market square was less frequented, with but half the vendors
and buyers. That could have been because it was closer to the Quadrancy Keep,
where many of Osten's forces had returned.
While he
recovered, Kharl spent some time considering exactly how to deal with Osten,
and how he might handle matters-if he had to meet with Osten, as well as if
Osten decided to avoid or ignore Kharl. He still had not heard anything from or
about Werwal, but he still didn't have retainers to spare to go inquiring, not
at the moment. Nonetheless, it nagged at him.
As with
everything else involving Osten, matters took longer to sort out, and Kharl
heard nothing from the new Lord West until midmorning on threeday, when a pair
of Osten's personal guards escorted an undercap- tain to the residence.
Kharl,
Erdyl, and Demyst met with the undercaptain in the library. Kharl stood in
front of the desk and did not seat himself, nor did he offer a seat to the
lancer officer.
"Undercaptain
Huard." The young officer gave a perfunctory nod.
"Greetings,
undercaptain." Kharl did not smile. "You have a message from Lord
Osten."
"Lord
West had noted that you did not remain long on the field." The
undercaptain's words were delivered in a matter-of-fact tone. "And that
none of the lancers who accompanied you have been since seen."
Kharl
had thought that a few might have escaped either the white wizards or his own
wrath, but he couldn't have said he was surprised that they had not.
"I
thought it unnecessary to remain," Kharl replied coldly, "since Lord
West had conveyed the message that he had no further need of my services after
I had defeated the white wizards and destroyed the Hamorian lancers."
"Ser?"
"The
message was both direct and personal, undercaptain, and Lord Osten is well
aware of it. What do you want?"
Huard
looked from Kharl to Demyst, then to Erdyl, his arm bound and in a sling. All
three looked coldly at the junior officer. Huard swallowed. "Ah ... I was
not aware of any such message ..."
"It
was sent, nonetheless," snapped Erdyl. "Your lord should have been
more respectful of a mage who salvaged his rule for him."
Kharl
repressed the faintest of smiles.
"Nor
is it exactly respectful," Erdyl continued, "to send a boy of an
undercaptain after displaying such disrespect."
"But...
he is Lord West..."
"Lord
Kharl represents Lord Ghrant, the ruler of all Austra, and a domain many times
the size of the West Quadrant." At the chill in Erdyl's words, Huard looked
almost helplessly at Demyst.
The
older undercaptain remained stone-faced.
"What
has happened has happened," Kharl said evenly. "Why did Osten send
you?"
"Ah
... he wishes to meet with you, ser."
"Why?"
Huard
glanced around the library, then finally looked back
at Kharl. "I do not know."
Kharl
could sense that was not quite the truth. "Then I would suggest that you
guess," he said dryly. "I am not interested in meeting with Osten
unless I know why."
"It...
might be about the harbor forts. The remaining rebels hold them. There are no
cannon remaining, and the two gunships cannot be found."
Kharl
suspected that the two small warships of the West Quadrant would never be
found, not unless someone found a way to search the bottom of the
"He
had thought.. . the Quadrancy Keep."
"At the foot of the piers, at the third glass past
noon. I will
be there."
"Ah.. ."
"You
heard Lord Kharl." Erdyl's voice was cutting. "Lord Osten requested a
meeting. He has it."
"Ah
... yes, ser."
"Oh
... undercaptain," Kharl said politely. "I would also request your
presence at that meeting. If you are not there, I will not meet with Lord
Osten, either."
"Me, ser?"
"I
am only thinking about your health, undercaptain," Kharl said.
At those
words, Huard paled. "Yes, ser. Thank you, ser." He bowed.
When the
captain had left, Demyst laughed softly. "Scared the piss out of him, you
did. Little snot deserved it."
Jeka
opened the door and slipped into the room. She looked at Kharl.
"Bastard
Osten wants something from you. What?"
"He
wants me to bring down the harbor forts, I'd wager. We're meeting at the third
glass after noon on the ocean piers."
"Bastard
tried to kill you."
"He'll
deny it," Kharl said.
"Still
did."
"There's
no proof. Osten and the five of us are the only ones alive who know what
happened. That may be for the best."
Jeka
snorted. "You're still going to meet him?"
"Yes.
So long as the rebels hold the harbor forts, there won't be any merchanters in
here. We can't leave, and neither can anyone else." Kharl fingered his
chin. "The rebels probably wouldn't be holding out if Vielam didn't happen
to be with them, and Osten's afraid that so long as he's alive, the Hamorians
will keep meddling. That's not good for anyone."
"Don't
like it," said Jeka.
"You
think I do?" asked Kharl.
"What
will you do?"
"Take
some precautions." Kharl turned to Demyst. "Can you find a pair of
good pistols that you can use?"
"Yes, ser."
"Good.
Now ..." As he spoke, Kharl just hoped that, among the four of them, they
could cover most of the possibilities that would allow him to deal with both
the harbor forts and with Osten's treachery and duplicity.
LXXXVIII
Erdyl
had suggested that Kharl keep Osten waiting. Kharl had demurred. "It's
better if I'm there first." For one thing, Kharl could sense any changes
that might reveal any treachery Osten planned. Also, Kharl saw no point in mere
pettiness.
With
Alynar seated beside him on the driver's bench, Mantar drove Kharl, Demyst, and
Jeka to the piers. Jeka was still attired as a young man, wearing openly the
knives she had learned to use so well in her days as a street urchin. The carriage came to a halt
at the first ocean vessels' pier at half before the third glass.
Before
getting out, Kharl turned to Jeka. "I'd prefer that you stay here with
Mantar and Alynar, but if you see anything that looks like trouble, let me
know."
"I
can do that." She nodded solemnly.
Kharl
caught the gleam in her eye. He hoped she didn't see trouble, because she'd be
in it if she did. He got out and looked up to Mantar. "I'd like you to wait,
but more toward the slateyard-that new barracks there- a little away from where
Osten will show up."
"Yes, ser."
As the
carriage moved away, Kharl walked onto the pier a good thirty cubits, stopping
next to one of the heavy bollards nearly as tall as he was.
Demyst
took out one of the pistols. "Good weapon. Wasn't quite sure we could get
these, but Sestalt has his ways."
"We
ought to make him the head of guards at the residence. Start a regular guard
corps. It'll have to be small."
"I've
mentioned the idea to him. Besides Sharlak, he has another man who might do
well."
"That's
all we can afford," Kharl said. "For now, anyway."
The
moments drew out.
"You
think he'll come?" Demyst finally asked.
"Osten? He wants something that no one else can provide. He'll
come."
"He
won't be happy."
"He
never will be." After the words left his mouth, Kharl looked down at the
worn and graying timbers of the pier. Was he like Osten? Not exactly, because
he'd been satisfied with being a mage, even being a cooper-the undeniable
satisfaction of a task well-done. But what about happiness? Joy even?
He
glanced along the seawall toward the slateyard, where the carriage waited.
"What do you think of Jeka?" he asked Demyst.
"Why,
ser, if I might ask?" Demyst's voice was quiet, deferential.
Kharl
wasn't certain what to say. "I came back here for her. Not just for her,
but more for her than I knew."
"That
says something, I'd wager." Demyst half smiled. "She didn't leave your
chamber that night after the battle. Don't ever tell her I told you."
"She
doesn't like to let people know she cares," Kharl said.
"Begging
your pardon, Lord Kharl, ser . .. but neither do you,
not in words. You'd walk through chaos to save a friend, but you'd find it hard
to tell him he was your friend."
Kharl
started to protest, then stopped. Had he ever told
anyone he'd cared, or loved them? Warrl-but only when he'd had to leave his son
with Merayni. After a long silence, he said quietly, "Thank you."
"Ser . .." Demyst broke off. "Riders coming down
Cargo Road, ser. Looks to be Lord Osten, or ... Guess he's probably Lord West
now."
Kharl
extended his order-senses toward the short column of riders. So far as he could
tell, there was no chaos, and none bore rifles. That would doubtless change in
the seasons and years ahead, now that the Hamorians had discovered how to keep
the powder from being set off except by more powerful mages. Still, he stood
ready to throw up shields.
"I
count just two squads. Think he's got a company holding farther up the
hill."
Kharl
reached out farther to the north, then smiled. "He does."
"He's
the type. Like your little Jeka's words for him."
"She's
not mine," Kharl said with an embarrassed laugh.
"She'll
never be anyone else's, ser."
"She
won't belong to anyone. She has to be herself."
"So
do you, ser," the undercaptain said.
"When
you want to point out something, Demyst, you get very formal."
"You
are a lord, ser." The undercaptain's words were delivered in a humorously
sardonic tone.
Kharl
would have said more, but Osten had reined up at the foot of the pier and
dismounted. Kharl focused his senses on the new Lord West, and upon the squad
of armsmen that followed him. Leading the squad was Undercaptain Huard. His
face was set... and pale.
Kharl
could sense Demyst easing back, to give the two lords space to themselves.
"Well,
Lord Kharl, mage of mages, I have received your messages," said Osten, his
voice cold, "and I am here to attend you."
"You
requested the meeting, and I obliged," Kharl replied. "I also must
apologize," he went on smoothly and politely. "I fear that
Undercaptain Huard did not appreciate all that occurred. You will understand if
I did not enlighten him. I would hope that he has a long and rewarding service
under you."
Osten
frowned. His eyes fixed on Kharl. "Your face is blistered, ser mage."
"Chaos
can get very hot, when facing four Hamorian mages." Kharl paused. "Undercaptain
Huard did not convey the reasons for your wanting this meeting. Your youngest
brother had garrisoned the harbor forts with his patrollers. He was killed in
the battle south of Brysta. It appears as though the forts have not
surrendered, and I would also surmise that Over-captain Vielam is now
commanding the remaining rebels and has taken refuge there."
"You
surmise much, Lord Kharl."
"That
is what envoys for rulers are supposed to do."
Osten
did not quite meet Kharl's eyes. "It is true. The last of the rebels still
hold the harbor forts. The ... other rebel... is in one of them."
"They
will not surrender?"
"No.
They say they'll be killed anyway." Osten laughed, harshly, bitterly.
"Killing is too good for them. For him."
"They-and
the Hamorians-have caused much trouble," Kharl observed politely.
"Could
you not have captured the two traitors?" asked Osten. "Especially the
one?"
"Egen?"
asked Kharl. "He was hiding behind the white wizards. When their chaos
turned on them, everything around them was blasted into ash." That wasn't
quite the truth, but Kharl didn't feel like explaining.
"That
was too quick a death for him."
"What
would you like of me?" Kharl asked.
"I
would like the harbor forts captured and the remaining traitor taken alive. He
betrayed my sire, and he betrayed me."
"Do
you want personal revenge more than you want to hold Brysta?" asked Kharl.
"What
do you mean?"
"I
can destroy the harbor forts. I can bring them down around Vielam. He will not
escape. I cannot do that and save him for you to kill later."
"Would
that I could let them sit there and starve. ..
slowly," said Osten.
Kharl
thought briefly of how he would just as soon wring Osten's throat or turn the
new Lord West into ashes.
"But...
that will not do," Osten admitted. "They have some cannon, and the harbor chains, and they can stop
traders from porting. There will be no trade. Before long we will be
paupers."
"The
people in Brysta would suffer and blame you, and some might even turn to Hamor
once more," Kharl pointed out.
"You
think I do not see that?" Osten glared at Kharl. "What will you do
for me in this?"
"I
will do nothing for you." Kharl held up a hand to stop the lord from
reacting. "I will destroy the forts for your people. They will not defend
the harbor against the warships of Hamor in these days, anyway. The Hamor-ian
guns would pound the forts to crushed stone and gravel."
"I
like that not."
Kharl
ignored the lord's words. "Find me a good boat and a pair who can row it
well. Position your armsmen at the ends of the breakwaters, as far from the
forts as they can be and still capture anyone who might try to leave."
"That...
I have already done."
"Good.
I will return here a half glass after sunset. If the boat is ready, we will
take care of the forts tonight."
"Why not now?"
"Because it will be easier and quicker
tonight." Because I'll have less worry about their sighting cannon
at me.
"So long as it is done."
"It
will be."
A silence
fell between the two men on the pier.
Osten
was the one to break the silence. "For all that you have helped me, ser
mage, after this matter is over, I think both our lands would be best served by
another envoy."
Kharl
wasn't surprised. "That is not my choice." He paused. "I will
return to Valmurl and convey your request to Lord Ghrant. I will leave my
assistant, because Lord Ghrant does not wish to be ignorant of what may happen
here in Brysta. Lord Ghrant will do as he sees fit. He may insist I return. He
may appoint another envoy. He may decide to make Lord-heir Erdyl the
envoy."
"Mihalen
had thought your assistant might be of lordly birth."
"His
sire is lord of Norbruel."
Osten
looked as though he might say something about that, but then merely said,
"The boat and rowers will be here before sunset. I trust you will not
request my presence."
"No.
It would be best if those in the forts saw nothing."
Osten
nodded. "Good day, Lord Kharl."
His
shields still ready, Kharl watched as the latest Lord West turned and walked
off the pier.
Demyst
moved closer to Kharl. "He is not to be trusted, not so far as one could
heave his mount."
"I
don't intend to trust him." Kharl also had his own plans for making the
best of a bad situation. "We need to get back to the residence. I'm going
to need a very solid meal before this evening." He began to walk toward
the carriage.
Neither
Mantar nor Alynar said anything as Kharl and Demyst approached, but both men
looked relieved.
"We're
heading back." Kharl stepped into the carriage.
"Yes, ser."
Once
Demyst closed the carriage door, Mantar turned the coach up
"What
did he want?" asked Jeka.
"The
last rebels hold the harbor forts. Vielam's in one of them," Kharl said.
"Vielam's probably worse than Osten, at least as a ruler, because he's not
only cruel, but weak." He didn't know that, not for certain, but based on
what he'd seen it seemed more likely than not. Vielam had played all sides and
betrayed both his father and his eldest brother. Like everything Kharl had had
to deal with in Nordla, he had no good choices. "So long as he's alive,
he'll betray whoever he can, and the Hamorians will try to make trouble."
Kharl
turned to Demyst. "Are you willing to come with me ... with your pistols?"
"Pistols against forts?"
"No.
They're for you to shoot the two rowers if they try anything."
Jeka
laughed.
"We
also won't row back to where we leave. Mantar can bring the coach down to the
old wharf off the lower market."
"Good,"
declared Jeka. "Alynar and I will be with Mantar. Sharlak, too. He's got a
hunting rifle. Good shot. Even in the dark. He potted one of those patrollers
that night they came against the house."
Kharl
looked at Jeka, trying not to be too obvious, taking in the brilliant green
eyes, the short-cut sandy hair. She was good-looking, but it was not that which
appealed to him, he realized, but that she was alive. Even when she had been scrounging out a living
by her wits, she had not just gone through the motions.
"You
all right?" she asked.
"Thinking,"
he replied.
She just
nodded, as if she knew those thoughts were not for
saying aloud in a coach.
Within a
glass of returning to the residence, Kharl sat down to a solid early-evening
meal, one that Khelaya declared-again-was not up to her standards because no
one was selling good produce and meat, not at any reasonable prices, not in the
upper market square, and she wasn't about to frequent the lower one.
At
sunset, Kharl and his party climbed into and onto the carriage, with Alynar
inside with Kharl, Jeka, and Demyst. Sharlak, a long- barreled rifle in his
hands, sat beside Mantar.
When
Mantar brought the carriage to a halt at the end of the pier, Kharl could see a
half squad of lancers there-again commanded by Undercap-tain Huard. "Poor
Huard."
"Poor
... and stupid to serve Osten," Jeka said.
Demyst
nodded, but added, "Could be he had little choice. Younger lordly sons
have few."
Jeka
frowned.
"They
cannot inherit. Trade is considered beneath them, and some are trained to be
lords in case their elder brothers die. If the brothers survive, the younger
ones are ruined for anything else. Especially honest work." Demyst
laughed.
Jeka
even smiled.
Carrying
a small bag of provisions, Kharl followed Demyst from the carriage, glancing to
the west, where the two forts were outlined against orange-tinged clouds. He
moved toward the half squad of lancers, nodding to Huard.
"Undercaptain."
"Lord
Kharl. The boat and boatmen are ready for you."
"Thank
you." Kharl kept his shields ready, but there was no sense of treachery or
chaos, although Kharl couldn't help but feel sorry for Huard.
Halfway
down the pier, two older men-fishermen, Kharl suspected- were waiting with a
high-sided dorylike boat, moored on the shoreward side, well out of direct
sight from either fort. The craft was smaller than most dories Kharl had seen.
"You're
the mage, ser?" asked the taller of the two, a muscular man with graying
hair perhaps ten years older than Kharl.
"He's
Lord Kharl. He's a mage and the Austran envoy," Demyst replied.
"Do
you understand what we're going to do?" asked Kharl.
"No,
ser," replied the older man, "except we're
to do what you want."
"How
did Lord West find you?"
"He
sent an overcaptain to the Fishers' Guild. Offered a gold each for the two best
rowers to row a mage where he wanted to go this evening. Overcaptain said if
someone didn't volunteer, wouldn't be a Fishers' Guild tomorrow. Gerrik and me,
we figured a gold each was better 'n pissin' off a hothead lord. Beggin' your
pardon, ser."
"Gerrik,"
Kharl asked, "is he telling the truth?"
"Yes,
ser, Holyt's right fair, excepting that we didn't need to be threatened. Can't
take our boats out now, nohow. Cannon blew poor Jotrok right out a the water
this morning."
"I'm
not threatening. We get through this, and I'll add a gold to each of you from
my own purse-once we get to the old wharf there." Kharl gestured to the
south.
"Beggin'
your pardon, ser," said Holyt, "but it seems a mite strange for an
Austran to be doing something for Lord Osten '.. .
Lord West."
"I'm
doing it for the people in Brysta, and because Lord Ghrant of Aus-tra doesn't
want the Hamorians any closer than Hamor."
The
younger man laughed. "We don't either."
Kharl
studied the pair. "You'll be rowing blindly. The way we're going you won't
be able to see a thing. I'll give you directions. Do you understand?"
The
older, slightly graying Holyt nodded. "Don't much care, ser mage, so
long's as we get back."
"That's
why." He looked toward the breakwaters. From the end of the pier the
northern fort would be closer. He eased down and sat on the forward thwart, not
exactly comfortable, but a position from which he could direct the two rowers.
Demyst
settled aft of the pair. He did not reveal the pistols.
Twilight
was settling across the harbor, but they would still be visible against the
shimmer of the water for a time.
"You
can cast off," Kharl said.
"Yes, ser."
"You'll
be able to see until we reach the end of the pier. Then, everything will go
black. You won't be able to see, but the lookouts on the fort won't see us,
either. Once we get close to the breakwater, we'll need to be quiet. They won't
be able to see us, but they can hear us."
"So
long as you know where you're going, ser."
"How
close can we get to the breakwater on the harbor side .
.. without going aground?" asked Kharl.
"In this craft, ser?" Holyt smiled. "Maybe a cubit from the
rocks. Oars'd hit the rocks before we'd ground."
"Good."
As the
small dory's prow reached the end of the pier, Kharl raised the sight shield,
extending it a good five cubits behind the stern. In the dim light, he hoped
that would be enough so that the ripples from the oars would not be that
obvious to the forts' lookouts.
"Bring
her starboard," Kharl said.
"Coming starboard."
Kharl
used his order-senses, trying to get a course line from the end of the pier to
the northern breakwater.
"Just
a touch more starboard," he said.
After a
moment, he added, "Steady as she goes."
"You
been at sea, ser?" asked Holyt.
"Merchanter
subofficer," Kharl admitted.
In a
murmur Kharl was not meant to hear, Gerrik murmured to Holyt, "Maybe we
got a chance."
Kharl
certainly hoped so as the dory moved across the twilight-calm waters of the
harbor toward the northern breakwater.
Nearly a
glass later, he could sense the stones of the breakwater and the port.
"Port a quarter."
"Coming port."
"Hold
on this line," Kharl said quietly. Just thirty cubits ahead was the
northeast corner of the harbor fort. The stone walls ran straight down into the
harbor.
Less
than a quarter of a glass later, the dory was little more than an oar's length
from the wall, and less than twenty cubits north of the southeast corner.
"Back
down and stop here," Kharl said.
He just
sat in the prow of the dory, extending his order-senses toward and around and
through the stones of the ancient fort, searching out the magazines and the linkages he might be able
to make between them. As he did, a sense of profound sadness settled over him.
He could
not but help recall what Jusof had first said to him about the law, that it was
a tool and a necessary evil-and that, bad as it was, without it, matters were
inevitably worse. That was the position in which he found himself. Bad as what
he was about to do was, not doing it would lead to worse evil, and because he
was but one mage, his choices- those that seemed to be effective-were limited
to the use of great power applied seldom and violently.
He
swallowed, and began to undo the linkages in the iron-lined walls of the
largest magazine that he could reach, at the same time creating order-tubes to
the other magazines nearest.
As chaos
flared, the first magazine exploded.
Kharl
released the sight shield and clamped a shield of hardened air around the small
dory.
The
early-night sky flared into red and whitish orange flashes that streaked out
from the northern harbor fort. Beneath the colors of powder and cammabark
exploding was the red-tinged white of released chaos.
"Friggin'
demons!" hissed one of the fishermen.
".
.. poor bastards .. ."
Kharl
just sat in the prow, holding his shields. The chaos voids of death washed over
and around him. Stone fragments, chunks, pebbles, and other things he didn't
want to think about pelted the hardened air. The dory rocked back and forth,
wildly for at time, then bobbed up and down within the shield. As he had half
expected, his eyes saw nothing.
Finally,
he released the air shield. Hot air washed across them, air laden with the
smell of ashes, hot metal, and all manner of burned things.
"It's
time to start rowing again," Kharl said. "Across toward the south
fort."
He forced
himself to ignore the odors. Instead, he opened the provisions bag and slowly
began to eat, interspersing food with ale from the water bottle.
Not
until Holyt and Gerrik had rowed the dory halfway across the channel between
the burning and sundered north fort and the southern fort did Kharl raise the
sight shield once more.
As they
neared the southern harbor fort, Kharl could make out voices
from the
battlements above. He set aside the provisions bag and tried to
hear
exactly what was being said on the walls above them. '
"No
ships out there, ser!"
"Nothing in the harbor."
"There
must be something. Forts don't explode by themselves."
"Chaos
or fire in the powder magazines could do it."
Kharl
listened, using his senses to discern the dory's progress. "A touch to
starboard," he whispered.
The dory
eased to starboard.
"Steady."
As the
dory neared the harborside wall of the southern fort, Kharl began the process
of seeking out the magazines and setting up another set of links. He pushed
aside the sadness and concentrated on the task at hand.
Once
more, as the order links parted, and chaos flared into the first magazine,
Kharl dropped the sight shield and set the hardened air shield in place.
Currumptt!
Light and
chaos once more flared across the harbor, though Kharl could only sense that
brilliance, rather than see it, followed by the voids of death.
When the
stone fragments and blocks finished falling onto the shield and into the dark
waters of the harbor, Kharl released the air shield. His hands and arms were
shaking. Point-lights flared across the blackness that was all he saw with his
eyes.
"Ser?"
asked Holyt.
"Back
to the old wharf. .. just row where the undercaptain
tells you..." He could barely get the words out. He hoped he had some
strength left by the time they made the old wharf because, even though he
hadn't told Osten what he planned, he didn't trust the new Lord West any more
than his sire, or than Egen.
As the
dory turned eastward, toward the old wharf, Kharl looked back over his
shoulder, extending his shaky order-senses. At the end of each breakwater, a
pile of stone burned and smoldered, glowing red in places. From the diffuse
chaos, Kharl could tell that trails of smoke spiraled upward in the still night
air.
After a
long moment, Kharl turned his unseeing eyes toward the shore, clasping his
hands together to keep them from shaking.
Jeka was
waiting at the old wharf. So was Sharlak, his long rifle held at the ready.
Kharl climbed out of the dory, then fumbled with his wallet, extracting two
golds. He handed them to Holyt. "I promised. Here are your golds."
Holyt
bowed his head. "Thank you, ser." He looked up with a crooked smile.
"We just might not want to try to collect from Lord West."
Kharl
walked slowly to the carriage, without turning back. He could still sense the
death and the ruins across the harbor behind him.
LXXXIX
On
threeday night, Kharl had managed to remain alert on the return to the
residence, but he had barely managed to undress and climb into bed before
succumbing to exhaustion and order-weariness. He slept late the next morning,
but still could not see when he finally rose, bathed, shaved, and dressed.
After
breakfast, taken alone because the others had already eaten, Kharl sat in the
chair behind the library desk, a beaker of lager on the wood before him. He
picked it up and took another sip before setting it down carefully.
He had
not unlinked nearly so much order, or released as much chaos as he had in the
battle south of Brysta. Was his present blindness because he had not fully
recovered when he had dealt with the forts?
Thrap.
"You
can come in, Jeka," he called.
"Scary,"
she said, settling into the chair across the desk from him. "You
not being
able to see and still knowing."
"It's
scary not being able to see."
"You'll
get better."
Kharl
shrugged. "Hope so. Lyras told me that Creslin couldn't see most of his
later life."
"Lyras? Creslin? Who are they?"
"Creslin
was the weather mage who founded Reduce. Lyras is a mage in Austra. You'll
probably meet him."
"Me?
Not likely."
"You'd
agreed that you would come to Cantyl," Kharl said. "Even with Egen
and Vielam dead, it's not all that safe for you here."
"Safe
enough."
There was
something in Jeka's voice, and Kharl wished that he could see the expression on
her face. Demons! He wanted to see her face again. He swallowed.
He
would. It would just take time, he told himself.
After a
moment, he spoke. "It's not safe enough. You ... I wouldn't want anything
to happen to you."
"Be
fine."
Kharl
took a long, slow breath. Demyst's words from the night before came back to
him. "... You'd walk though chaos to save a friend, but you'd find it hard
to tell him he was your friend."
"Jeka..."
"I'm
here."
As she
spoke, he realized one other thing. He would always be who he was, at heart,
and Jeka knew who that man was. The young ladies like Meyena never would know,
never would understand. He swallowed once more, before speaking. "I...
want you to come to Cantyl. I don't want to leave you here."
"Told you. Can't come like that. Won't be a
plaything. Rather take my chances here."
"I'm
not asking you to come as a plaything. I'm asking you to come to see if you
like Cantyl well enough to be my consort."
For a
long moment, there was silence.
"Don't
need to come to Cantyl for that."
Kharl
shook his head. "I... we can't stay here. I'd have to spend every moment
worrying about what Osten was trying to do next."
Jeka laughed, the melodic laugh that he had heard so seldom and
loved so much. "Wasn't what I was saying. Be your consort anywhere. I
don't need to see Cantyl. Doesn't matter whether you've got more lands or less.
Matters that you want me."
Kharl
swallowed again, not unhappily. "You mean that?"
Another
warm and rich laugh answered his words. "You saved me. Two, three times.
You did everything you could for me. You came back, partly for me, ran to find
me when you thought Egen might be after me. You're handsome. You're good. Used
to watch you, you know? Would have been a cooper's consort." There was a
pause. "You sure?"
"Very sure." Kharl didn't even hesitate.
Before
he could take another breath, she was beside him, her arms around him.
For the moment,
and those that followed, Kharl did not worry about blindness, or anything else.
XC
Kharl,
Jeka, Erdyl, and Demyst sat in the library. Jeka perched on a stool beside
Kharl's desk chair. He couldn't help but keep looking at her. He had persuaded her
to have some new outfits made-still trousers and shirts. She wore dark green
trousers and a matching shirt, with a lighter green leather vest, not quite so
shapeless as those she had worn before, but not form-clinging either. She also
still bore the pair of belt knives, not to mention the hidden blade.
"...
someone had to have been waiting at the rendering
yard, Sharlak said," Demyst finished.
"One of Egen's people." Kharl shook his head. With everything that
had happened, it had taken days before he'd been able to send someone out to
check on Werwal-and as in the case of Warrl, even if he'd sent someone the next
day, it would have been too late. He'd warned Werwal's consort, but he should
have waited and taken Werwal straight to the residence. Another case where he
hadn't quite finished the task at hand, and another one of those who had
supported him had died.
"You
can't do everything, ser," offered Erdyl.
Somehow,
those words didn't reassure Kharl very much.
"You
two going to have an official ceremony?" asked Demyst quickly.
"As
soon as we get to Valmurl," Kharl said.
"Consorted
now," replied Jeka. "He never breaks his word." She looked
sideways at Kharl with a grin.
"That
shouldn't be that long, then. When will the Seastag be ready to leave?"
asked Erdyl, shifting his weight in the chair to avoid banging the edge of the
side table with his injured arm, still in a sling.
Kharl
had tried to use order to speed the healing. He'd definitely kept any wound chaos from forming, and probably
his efforts would result in Erdyl's earlier recovery, but it was clear that he
was no healer.
"She
just ported two glasses or so ago," said Kharl. "Why do you think
we're leaving? Why are you in such a hurry?"
"I'm
not so sure I did very well, ser." Erdyl glanced down at his injured arm.
"I
wouldn't be in that much of a hurry." Kharl smiled.
So did
Jeka, from beside him, knowing what was coming.
"We
aren't going back to Austra, ser?" Erdyl's face fell. "I saw you and
Jeka packing."
"Oh,
we are." Kharl drew out the words. "You aren't."
"Ser? What did I do wrong?"
"Nothing." The mage grinned at the younger man.
"That's why you're staying. Lord West-the new Lord West-has requested that
I return to Austra. I insisted that Lord Ghrant needed to keep someone here, at
least an assistant envoy. You get to be that assistant envoy. Either Lord
Ghrant confirms you as envoy or he doesn't, but either way, it's a better
position, and you'll get to be in charge here-at least as much as Undercaptain
Demyst and Khelaya let you."
"I
worry about Lord West," Erdyl said.
"Don't
worry too much," Kharl said. "He knows that, if anything happens to
you, I'll be back. He'd much rather have you as an envoy."
"Me
... I don't know ..."
"You
will do much better with the functions, and being polite. You understand that.
Every time I had to meet with them, I spent glasses learning just a handful of
the proper phrases," Kharl pointed out.
"When
will you leave?"
"Tonight. There's not that much cargo to onload, and
Furwyl really just returned this way to check on us before heading back to
Valmurl. Lord Hagen had ordered him to."
"Thoughtful
of him," said Demyst dryly.
"He
does worry. Occasionally." Kharl turned back to Erdyl. "Besides, you
can send a letter to your sire. You can sign and seal it as the envoy in charge
in Brysta."
Erdyl
laughed. "You think-"
"Lord
Ghrant can't send another envoy for a season. Besides, he can trust you, and
there aren't many that he can. You can write well and report on what Osten does. That's what envoys are
supposed to do." Kharl stood. "We need to get ready. I'll tell you
what I think that you might not know while we do ..."
It took
Kharl less time than he'd thought to do both, perhaps because he didn't know as
much as he'd thought, and because Erdyl had been more observant than Kharl had
realized, and because Jeka had little to pack.
The sun
was low in the west, almost ready to set, when Kharl watched the last bag being
loaded into the baggage cart, along with the first bolts of fabric from Gharan.
The others would have to be shipped on one of Hagen's ships when Gharan
finished them. Demyst had the two mounts saddled and ready.
Jeka
stood beside the carriage. She looked at Kharl. "Still think you've done
enough."
"No.
This is ... I have to do it."
"You
think that it'll work? That he'll be there?"
Kharl
shrugged. "I don't know. Not for sure. He was there earlier today, and
Sestalt's people say that he didn't ride out. I have to try. I can't leave this
job unfinished."
"Don't
let anyone get close enough to hurt you." Jeka's green eyes flashed as she
looked up at him. "Rather be with you."
"I
have to do this alone." He opened the carriage door for her, then stood aside
as Alynar stepped into the carriage. Sharlak sat beside Mantar. "Straight
to the Seastag."
"Yes, ser." Mantar smiled, then
gave the reins the slightest flick.
As the
carriage headed down the drive, followed by the cart, Kharl turned and looked
at the envoy's residence. With all that had happened, it was hard to believe
that he'd been back in Brysta less than a season. Less than a season, but as
the druids had predicted, a necessary season.
He
walked to the gelding, took the reins from Demyst, and mounted. Neither man spoke
until they were well away from the residence.
"You're
all right with staying?" Kharl asked the undercaptain.
"Yes,
ser. Erdyl, he'll need me." Demyst smiled. "Done the hard work, and
I'd like to enjoy what comes next. Besides, I sort of fancy Enelya."
Kharl
hadn't even noticed that, but that wasn't something he would have noticed.
"She seems a good sort."
"Not
like your lady, ser, but good. None like yours."
Kharl
laughed softly. He'd never met anyone like Jeka, not even close.
As they turned
their mounts uphill, shadow fell across the hillside.
"You
sure this is necessary, ser?" asked Demyst.
"Not
for me. For Brysta."
"Doesn't deserve it. Deserve what they put up with."
"If
I don't, they won't know anything better, and they'll come to put up with
worse. Then we'll have to," Kharl countered.
"That's
one way of looking at it, ser."
It was
the only way Kharl could look at it. The Lord's Road was almost deserted at
twilight, and no one even seemed to look at the two riders as they passed the
entrance to the Hamorian residence-the gates locked and the guards absent. How
long before Whetorak or another envoy returned? Kharl shook his head sadly.
Hamor wouldn't change. He didn't see it happening in his lifetime, maybe not
ever.
Kharl
turned at the next side road, the one that turned east and bordered the lower
gardens of the Quadrancy Keep. After about fifty cubits, he reined up under an
ancient oak, one that shielded him from direct view from the southeast tower,
and dismounted.
"I'll
be hereabouts somewhere, ser," said Demyst.
"I'd
guess it won't be much longer than a glass," Kharl said.
"Be
careful."
Kharl
nodded. He intended to be most careful. He waited for a brief time until Demyst
was another fifty cubits farther east, then turned to the tree.
While
the oak had been trimmed and pruned to eliminate any lower branches, Kharl
visualized a set of steps made of hardened air, then created the stairs as a
form of air shield. He released the air shield as soon as he was in the
branches of the oak.
He
climbed up several more branches until he was above the wall. Then, creating a
sight shield, he eased himself down onto one of the stone merlons and slipped
down onto the guardway.
Walking swiftly
but carefully, he followed the guardway back west, then northward toward the
main section of the keep. Kharl had to step into embrasures twice as guards
passed, but his sight shield was enough, and none even paused.
From
what he had discovered earlier in the eightday, Osten had taken apartments on
the third level while the Lord's quarters were being repaired and rebuilt, and
his study was directly above where the battlement ran beneath and adjoined the
west wall. There was a balcony outside the study.
Kharl
stopped a good ten cubits short of the balcony. He let his order-perceptions
reach upward. As he had anticipated, Osten was in his study alone, as he
usually was in the glass before the evening meal. Because it was still summer,
the door to the balcony was also open, providing air to the study.
Kharl
smiled, briefly. For most, a six-cubit sheer wall would have been a problem.
Kharl created another set of steps out of hardened air and made his way up to
the balcony. Holding the sight shield, Kharl made his way unseen up his
invisible steps. He was sweating profusely by the time he stepped over the
parapet and released the steps of hardened air.
Still,
he was inside Osten's defenses. While there were guards throughout the keep,
the closest pair was stationed outside the door to the bedchamber, beyond the
study. Kharl eased through the open balcony door.
Osten
sat at a table desk, a large ledger before him, his back to Kharl.
Kharl
stepped slowly to the door between the empty bedchamber and the study. Once
there, he quietly closed the door, which had been only slightly ajar, and slid
the lock plate closed. Osten did not look up or turn his head.
Kharl
hardened the very air around Osten, leaving only space for his nostrils and
ears, before stepping forward and releasing the sight shield so that Osten
could see him.
"Osten,
Lord West," he said quietly. "I don't think you believed me when I
said that I could always get to you."
Osten
tried to struggle, but could move not a muscle.
"This
is to show you that I can. If I ever hear of cruelty or unfairness- the way
your brother and father acted-I will return, and you will no longer be Lord
West. You will no longer be anything."
Osten's
breath rasped in and out of his nostrils.
"If
you ever try to send assassins after me, or after whoever is envoy for Austra,
the same thing will happen. It is very simple. All you have to do is your best
to be a fair and just ruler. You do that, and you have nothing to worry
about." Kharl laughed softly. "You didn't see me coming, and you
didn't hear me, and all your walls and guards meant nothing." Kharl took
the pen from the stand and dipped it in the inkwell, then wrote across the open
page of the ledger: "Be fair. Be just, and fear nothing."
He set
the pen back in the stand, then looked at the
red-faced Osten. He smiled and said, "Good night, Lord West."
After
stepping back, Kharl raised the sight shield around himself. Then he walked to
the balcony. He took a deep breath and wiped the sweat from his forehead, then re-created the
air-steps, releasing them as soon as his boots touched stone once more. Not
until he was on guardway below and halfway to the garden oak did he release
Osten's bonds.
This time,
short of the oak, he used the stairway of hardened air to the ground beside the
lower garden wall.
Behind
him, he heard no alarms, no outcries, and he sensed no guards moving. Was that
because Osten had decided against telling anyone what had happened? Because it
showed he was vulnerable? Kharl didn't know, and didn't much care, so long as
he reached the Seastag safely.
He did
not see Demyst immediately and began to walk eastward. He'd been walking almost
a quarter of a glass before he sensed the undercaptain and the two mounts.
Releasing the the sight shield, he stepped out from behind one of the hedges.
"I'm
back," he said quietly.
"Getting worried, ser."
"So
was I." Kharl grinned, then mounted, and wiped his forehead.
They
rode quickly downhill through the darkness toward the waiting Seastag-and to
Jeka.
Epilogue
There
won't be any great mages in the future," Kharl said, standing on the front
porch and looking out at the small
"Doesn't
matter," Jeka said, squeezing his hand. "Always someone making
trouble. You fixed things now. When the time comes, folks then, they'll have to
fix things for themselves."
"I
suppose so."
"You've
done enough. 'Sides no one's going to bother Lord
Ghrant so long as you're his mage. Folks are stupid, but not many stupid enough to
get you after them."
"I
didn't really create all that chaos," Kharl pointed out. "The
chaos-wizards did."
Jeka laughed, the musical laugh that he loved so much. "Who
knows that, except you and me?"
Kharl
squeezed her hand back and looked at the smooth silver of the harbor water, calm
in the late fall evening.
======================
Notes:
Scanned
by Anon
If you
correct any minor errors, please change the version number below (and in the
file name) to a slightly higher one e.g. from .5 to .95 or if major revisions,
to v. 1.0/2.0 etc.
Current
e-book version is .9 (some formatting errors have been corrected-but OCR errors
still occur in the text. Unproofed)
Notes:
This book is not proofed. You will find some errors, though it should still be
very readable.
DO NOT READ THIS BOOK OF YOU
DO NOT OWN/POSSES THE PHYSICAL COPY. THAT IS STEALING FROM THE AUTHOR
——————————————————————
Series: Saga
of Recluse, Book 13
v1.1 - Fixed
formatting, broken paragraphs, garbled text; by Seregil
v0.9 - Original scan saved as text